YOU ARE THE REASON

@theartofmadeline
RMH
No title available
styofa doing anything
hello vonnie
Keni
One Nice Bug Per Day

titsay

Discoholic đȘ©
Monterey Bay Aquarium

if i look back, i am lost
macklin celebrini has autism
Mike Driver
Three Goblin Art
Not today Justin

tannertan36

Kaledo Art
Alisa U Zemlji Chuda
dirt enthusiast

seen from Canada
seen from United States
seen from United States

seen from United States
seen from United States
seen from United States

seen from United States
seen from Philippines
seen from United States
seen from United States
seen from United States

seen from United States

seen from United States

seen from United States

seen from Romania

seen from United States
seen from United States

seen from United States
seen from United States
seen from Pakistan
@yunoyeol
sincerely not | season one
âł gojou satoru x f!reader
â series masterlist
summary. with an arranged marriage set in place, the sacred bond is doomed with a wife who wants to make the relationship work and a husband whoâs ready to ruin it all. unbeknown to him, a tragic fate already lies within the pages of his romance book.
genre. heavy angst, arranged marriage, ceo au, 18+
word count. 213k
fic warnings. mean!gojo, VERY OOC, adultery/infidelity, profanity, explicit smut, violence, emotional trauma/physical abuse from past experiences, neglect, heavy family drama, illnesses, classism, pregnancy, undertones of masochism, undertones of manipulation, abandonment issues, overall toxic relationships, graphic depictions of self-harm, suicide/murder (and attempts thereof), minor character death, plot loosely based on twotm & tre. please read with proper discretion. this is a work of fiction. all characters are written to portray roles that are necessary to the plot and are in no way a reflection of their canon counterparts.
fic art + playlist + gallery + faqs + ko-fi + misc + podcast feature
one + two + three + four + five + six + seven + eight + nine + ten + eleven + twelve + thirteen + fourteen + fifteen + sixteen + seventeen + eighteen + nineteen + twenty (final) + sequel
status: completed
all rights reserved © 2021 saintobio. please do not copy, repost, translate, or modify my works in any platform.
at some point in their life
Baby (k.sy)
Pairing: Soongyoung x f. reader
Summary: Soonyoung had been in your life for as long as you can remember. You havenât spoken since your wedding to someone who isnât him, but when you uncover your husbandâs plans to turn against your family, you donât know who else to call. Â
Word Count:Â 29,988
Genre: Mafiaverse, Cyberpunk, Childhood Friends/Exes to Lovers
Type: Smut, Heavy Angst
Rating: 18+ Minors are strictly prohibited from engaging in and reading this content. It contains explicit content and any minors discovered reading or engaging with this work will be blocked immediately.
Warnings: Full warnings available under the cut.
A/N: This fic was posted on my original blog which has been deleted. I am now reposting it. I hope it does half as well as it did when I originally posted this story - thank you to everyone who left amazing feedback the first time. It genuinely made me so happy and I am so sorry that it got sent to the moon where I can no longer read it.
A/N 2: Â Thank you @daechwitatamic and @eoieopda for beta-reading this fic.
Main Masterlist | The Syndicates Collection | Ask | Playlist | Read Next
Warnings: Graphic violence generally associated with mafia behavior, mentions of murder and blood, morally grey characters, themes of codependency (a little bit), a bit of a toxic relationship with Soonyoung and reader at times (they like to make each other jealous), bar fights, women being very petty, recreational drinking and drug use, heavy angst, depictions of death (funerals for parents), fight scene that ends in death in a domestic situation, difficult relationships with parents, reader and her husband have a terrible relationship and hate each other, depictions of blood and stabbing in one scene (it is the most graphic scene in the whole fic but kept short), reader agonizes over decisions she's made and struggles mentally with a lot of it, depiction of a full blown anxiety attack, sexually explicit content including fingering, unprotected vaginal sex, crying during sex, a lot of making out and biting, multiple orgasms... sorry this is so long, I want to over-warn for everything happening here so if I have missed something you think needs to be warned, please tell me!
Kwon Soonyoung is crying the first time you meet him. Itâs a loud, warbling cry that youâre not used to, and you flinch at the pitch as you hide behind your mother. Soonyoung and his mother are standing in the grand foyer of your home, his fists twisted in her tweed skirt as he begs her not to leave him.Â
His mother sighs heavily, pinching the bridge of her nose. Youâve seen her around before on the arm of her husband at your family dinner parties and for afternoon tea with your mom. This is the first time youâve seen Soonyoung, though, and youâre unimpressed as his shrieking only gets louder when she crouches down to look him in the eye fondly, brushing the tears from his face.Â
You donât know a lot of other kids, but the noisiness of him startles you. Unsettles you. Sensing your unease, your mother reaches to pull you from behind her, giving you a single look that you know means please behave. You straighten immediately, turning to watch the sniffling boy as he calms down.Â
Soonyoung is round-cheeked, his dark eyes swollen and face reddened from working himself up. His mother murmurs something to him and he nods, wiping the snot from his face with the back of his hand.
Seungcheol must notice the crying has stopped. He appears from the kitchen, giving Soonyoung an unimpressed once over as he strides toward you and your mother. She clucks her tongue at the cheek of her eleven year old, giving him a hard look.Â
âSeungcheol, donât be rude,â she admonishes. âGreet our guests properly.âÂ
Your older brother glances at you and you lift a shoulder. Heâs going to lead the family one day, itâs important for him to show manners. You know this even at a young age - have always known what his place is among your family, what your place is.Â
Cheol is in line to become the Tower of the Choi Syndicate, an empire that you cannot fathom at your age but you know is important. You are its insurance, a second heir if something happens to the first and a bargaining chip for future partnerships. A potential logician, if youâre good enough.Â
Turning to Soonyoung and his mother, Seungcheol bows politely. âItâs nice to meet you, Soonyoung. Are you here to play video games?âÂ
Soonyoung perks up at that, looking at his mom, eyes going round. She grins and nods her head, pulling her hands from where they rest on his shoulders. âHe is,â she agrees. âWe thought it might be good for you to become friends.â Her gaze drifts to you. âAll three of you.âÂ
That makes you frown. You donât really like playing video games. Seungcheol never lets you win and forces you to play for hours in exchange for him letting you borrow his AetherLink at night to scroll the internet. Youâre not allowed to have one yet, even though youâre only four years younger and all of your other friends have them to enter virtual chat rooms and play online games. Â
âDo I have to?â you ask your mom, looking up at her.Â
âYes,â she says firmly, gently nudging you by the shoulder toward where your brother is not so patiently waiting to escort you to the gaming room. âGo.âÂ
âWhy donât you want to play?â Soonyoung asks, pouting a little.
âIâm not any good.â
âThatâs okay. Iâll let you beat me.âÂ
Seungcheol moans. âUgh, donât let her win. Come on. I got the new Grid Fighters game on the Reality Rift console!âÂ
âNo way!âÂ
Seungcheol grins and shoots off toward the gaming room, Soonyoung hot on his heels. You hesitate for a moment, staring after them with indignation. Soonyoung stops at the doorway, turning to you. His face is still ruddy from crying, but heâs suddenly smiling, cheeks round and smooth.
âCome on,â he whispers. âIâll let you win, I promise.âÂ
âHoly fuck, can you let me win for once?â Soonyoung groans, rolling over on the mat. Heâs dripping in sweat, wiping it away from his brow as he stands with effort.Â
Grinning, you skip away from him, reaching for your water bottle. Music pounds through the speakers of the training room. Overhead, the blue neon casts an eerie glow over the two of you. Seungcheol ignores you both in favor of using the weight machines in the far corner of the room.Â
On the far wall, your health and fitness data is displayed, each one of your bodies outlined and flashing as new data comes in. Right now, youâre in the red zone, heart pounding hard from your bout with Soonyoung, who is in the orange zone.Â
Which confirms your suspicion that heâs not trying as hard as he could be.Â
âMaybe if you werenât afraid to actually hit me,â you offer. The water helps cool you down as you eye Soonyoung. Even at fourteen, heâs started to fill out his form more, arms corded as he hones himself into a weapon. âYouâre not going to hurt me.â
Seungcheol scoffs from across the room. Maybe he wasnât totally ignoring the two of you. He drops his cool-older-kid act to turn and grumble, âHeâd put you on your ass, Baby. Lucky for you, he always lets you win.âÂ
The nickname makes you bristle. You hate when people point out that youâre the baby of the family, like youâre something less than or incapable of keeping pace. You especially hate it when Seungcheol uses it to put you in your place, reminding you that one day your shithead older brother is going to be leading the family business.Â
The family business is the reason you spar with them at all. Occasionally Vernon joins, though those days are as unpredictable as his appearances. Usually when heâs over at your house, itâs never a good thing. His arrivals are always bracketed with the sound of his fatherâs manic yelling and his motherâs frantic begging, followed closely by slammed doors and your fatherâs calming voice.Â
Today itâs just the three of you, though. Soonyoung comes over and sits on the mat by your feet, holding a hand up to you. You pass him your water bottle, rolling your eyes at him even though it doesnât really bother you.Â
Nothing Soonyoung does really bothers you. Since that first day he showed up at your house sobbing because his mother was leaving him for the day, heâs grown on you. More than grown on you, in fact. Youâre pretty sure he hasnât noticed your lingering gazes and the way he flusters you when he gets too close, and you hope to keep it that way.Â
âI donât want to hit you,â Soonyoung offers gently, voice low over the metal clang of Seuncheolâs weights. âAnd itâs not âcause I donât think you canât take it,â he adds with a grin, bumping his shoulder against your leg. âI just donât like the idea of you getting hurt.âÂ
âEveryone treats me like a baby.âÂ
âYou are. But itâs not a bad thing. For example, you say jump and everyone says how high. Even my dad.âÂ
That makes you smirk a little. You look at the floor, letting his words wash over you. They do ring true - thereâs no one in the Syndicate who would deny you anything, and though youâre utterly terrified of Soonyoungâs dad, he would do anything for you. In a way, it was the Kwon familyâs divine purpose to be by the side of the Chois.Â
âWhat about you?â you ask.Â
âWhat about me?âÂ
âJump.â
Soonyoung grins and sets the water bottle down, getting up to his feet at your command. âHow high, Baby?âÂ
Soonyoung doesnât shed a tear on the day of his parentsâ funeral. Heâs a far cry from the little boy who showed up at your house to play video games and become friends.Â
Instead, he sits in silence, eyes raging - always raging, now. You donât think the fury stops, his gaze burning the entire ceremony. His grip on your hand is like iron, and after a while, your arm tingles with pins and needles. You say nothing, willing to endure. Eventually, your arm goes numb entirely, and he keeps holding your hand.Â
Afterward, Soonyoung says nothing. You do the talking for him, accepting the hand shakes and bows on his behalf when he doesnât reach out to accept them, thanking those who have come to offer him condolences and respect when he doesnât speak.
His grip on you is steadfast. Iron and fire. Even when your father drops his gaze down with a look of disapproval, Soonyoung doesnât let go and you donât ask him to. If thereâs any day that you can break decorum and tradition, itâs certainly now in the wake of Soonyoungâs loss.Â
They donât need to know youâd let him hold you anyway. Â
The boy who existed before the murder of his parents is dead. You knew it before the funeral. But when the last guest finally leaves the Choi Estate and Soonyoung doesnât shed a tear, you realize it isnât just his parents that youâve buried.Â
The sweet, gentle boy who had cried those tears for fear of his mother leaving him has died too. And you donât think youâll ever see him again.Â
-
âYou want me to do what?â Soonyoung asks, pulling you into his room and looking out the cracked door to make sure no one else is around. âWhere is your brother?âÂ
âI have no idea.âÂ
âYou canât just- â Soonyoung fumbles for words as he shuts the door and takes a few steps past you into his room proper. Itâs dark, safe for the glow of his AetherLink glowing with a paused video game. âDid he see you follow me up here?âÂ
âWhy are you being weird? Iâm in here all the time. You live here.âÂ
âIâm being weird? You just asked me to kiss you. Neither your brother nor your dad want you in my room in the middle of the night.âÂ
You frown. âSince when? Look, Iâm sixteen and Iâve never been kissed, and Lin just lost her virginity to Jeonghan. What happened to when I say jump you say how high?â
âOh donât start with me. Who cares if Lin is giving it up to Jeonghan. She blew Wonwoo like two weeks ago. Itâs not a competition.âÂ
You cross your arms over your chest, caving in on yourself a little. Maybe it was a stupid idea to ask Soonyoung after all. But you canât get over the way all of the other girls were clinging to Linâs every word as she spilled the details of sleeping with Jeonghan. Everyone else in your friends group had at least made out with boys - you had nothing.Â
Being the daughter of the leader of the Choi Syndicate has its benefits. Being accessible to do things like kissing boys and going out with your friends to new cool clubs like Echo Space and Hyper Vibe were not one of them. Getting any of the boys your age to even look you in the eye was impossible, the fear of catching the wrath of Seungcheol and your father looming over them like the Sword of Damocles.Â
Soonyoung is Soonyoung, though. Your father has brought him into the fold like one of his own, keeping his oath to Soonyoungâs parents to always watch over him and protect him. Youâre old enough now to understand that the bonds between higher members of the Syndicate are bonds of faith and blood, of family and something more.Â
If anyone shouldnât be afraid to kiss you, itâs Soonyoung. He lives down the hall from you, and heâs best friends with your brother. It wouldnât be that weird. At least, thatâs what you told yourself as you lay awake in your bed at night while you stared at the ceiling, fingers trailing your lips.Â
Now, youâre not so sure. The way Soonyoung recoils makes you realize you hadnât thought of the single most important thing before marching in here and asking him to be your first kiss: maybe Soonyoung didnât want to kiss you.Â
It hadnât even crossed your mind - one of the many downsides to getting mostly everything you wanted. Youâre so infrequently told no that in the light of rejection, you donât know what to do, recoiling like youâve been mortally wounded.Â
Nodding your head, you turn away from Soonyoung, throat tightening as the new wave of emotions threatens to spill over. âYouâre right, Iâm sorry.âÂ
âBaby,â he sighs. You ignore him, bolting for the door. Soonyoung is fast, though. He snatches your arm and drags you back toward him, though you turn your face away from him to hide the evidence of oncoming tears. âDonât be like that.âÂ
âIâm not being like anything. It was a stupid favor to ask.âÂ
âWould you look at me?â
âNo.â
He sighs heavily. âWhy are you being so difficult?â
Trying to wrench your arm from his hold is useless. Heâs not hurting you, but the grip on your bicep is firm. âWell if Iâm so difficult then let me go.â
âBaby.â The frustration in his voice is evident. You ignore the way your nickname rolls off his tongue, the way heâs the only person you donât absolutely hate the name from.Â
âJust let me go!âÂ
âNo. Why do you want me to kiss you?â
The question is like nails against chalkboard now, your embarrassment peaking. âForget I even asked, just let me go!âÂ
âFuck - are you crying?â
âNo.â
âBaby, look at me.â
Too afraid that the wavering in your voice will give you away, you shake your head, refusing to turn and face him. With a growl, he gives a sharp tug on your arm, spinning you toward him. You let out a noise of protest, ready to lash out at him again when you feel his mouth on yours.Â
Startled, you donât do anything at first. Soonyoungâs grip is still on your bicep, firm and steadfast. Your eyes blink for a second before they flutter closed, unsure exactly what to do beyond lean into him a little, pressing your lips firmer to his.Â
Itâs somehow exactly what you expected and totally unexpected at the same time. Soonyoungâs mouth is softer than you were ready for, slotted gently against yours. Heâs warm and smells like vanilla and sandalwood, a scent youâve grown familiar with. Your thoughts peter out, enjoying the way he holds you to him, your heart pounding wildly in your chest.Â
When Soonyoung pulls away, you look up at him through half-lidded eyes, your breath shaky. He doesnât pull back very far, looking down at you with a dark gaze. This close, you can see the real Soonyoung. His expression is soft, eyes sparkling in the blue light of his room. He looks so young suddenly, all of the rage and wrath that lurks under the surface of the calm mask he wears gone for just a moment.Â
âYou have pretty eyes,â you whisper. His mouth twitches at the corner, an almost smile. âIâve always thought you had beautiful eyes.âÂ
He opens and closes his mouth again, trying to find words. You wait him out, heart thudding. Heâs still holding you close to him, fingers digging desperately into your arm.Â
Footsteps thundering up the stairs wake him from his daze, Seungcheol calling your name. Soonyoung drops his hand and steps away from you, a cool mask of calm sliding into place, the vulnerability gone in an instant. âThereâs your kiss,â he murmurs. âIs there anything else you need from me or do I need to jump too?âÂ
Synth pulses through you, vibrating your very bones as you lounge on the velvet couch in a private section of the club. The lights above you are hazy, but you can make out the shapes of holographic dancers, their graphics so high definition that you can see the sweat beading down their bare backs.Â
From the VIP section, you have the perfect view of the DJ platform. Screens flash behind it, holographic wonders of creatures and places and visuals flashing brightly. Writhing bodies twist on the dancefloor around the DJ like a pit of snakes. Among them, you know your fatherâs Taps slither among the crowd, pushing drugs and psychedelics into the hands of those who can afford it.Â
A trained eye can spot a Tap well enough. Though they blend in with the nylon and leather of the partiers, they tend to be sharp eyed and lucid, chewing on stim pops or some other substance to keep them awake and alert.Â
Itâs not the drug dealers in the crowd who keep drawing your attention, though. You shouldnât be able to spot Soonyoung in the mass of bodies so easily, but you do. His hair is bleached, reflecting the flashing lights around him as he presses in close to the girl attached to him, hips swaying.
Your mouth sours. Leaning forward you snatch one of the bottles from the ice bucket and pour a shot into a crystal glass. Angel raises her brows as you slide the glass over to her and pour another for yourself. Sheâs not much of a drinker, but she takes the glass wordlessly, sensing your need to have a partner in crime.
Knocking it back, you hiss as the liquor burns all the way back. Even the high grade alcohol is like fire, washing away your irritation for a dizzy moment, veins buzzing. Leaning back, your eyes scan the crowd and settle on Soonyoung again. This time, heâs leading his partner through the crowd and toward the stairs. The stairs that lead to you.Â
Seungcheol and Wonwoo crashing onto the seat next to you breaks your concentration. Seungcheolâs pupils are wide as saucers, eyes trailing upward to dance at the visual of a woman with pink skin sliding out of her top.Â
Next to him, Wonwoo pulls a small bag with glittering dust from his pocket, shaking it to settle all of the contents at the bottom before unsealing the top. The way the powder glows against the lights tells you its high quality frostbyte, a powerful stimulant named for the biting feeling when inhaled.Â
Instead of yelling over the music, you gesture toward the bag, catching Wonwooâs attention. He gives you a surprised look followed by a wolfish grin. Wonwoo loves when you partake in partying harder, a side everyone so rarely sees from you.Â
Sliding a knife from his pocket, you watch with rapt attention as Wonwoo dips it into the baggie, scooping delicately. Youâd rather he cut lines on the table, but youâll take what you can get, watching as he expertly fishes out a decent sized amount for you to take.Â
Youâre mutely aware that a group of bodies enters your section. Vernon throws himself down next to Angel, jostling you both as you lean over Seungcheolâs half-asleep form toward where Wonwoo extends the knife toward you carefully. You ignore the weight of Soonyoungâs eyes on you as he, Mingyu and a group of girls sit down and reach to fill their glasses with liquor.Â
Wonwooâs hands are steady as he holds the tip of his blade out to you, a hand held underneath to catch any powder that slips off the blade. Careful not to lose your balance and stab yourself, you level your face with the knife, inhaling sharply.Â
Immediately the drug bites the back of your throat, eyes watering as you tilt your head upwards and blink for a second, letting it settle. Sniffing harshly a few times, you clear your nasal passage and blow out a breath, feeling the softest beginning of a tingle as you look at Wonwoo, who is still holding his hands out to you.Â
âThanks,â you nod. He grins and pulls back, rubbing the excess powder along his gums as you fall heavily against the back of the booth.Â
Turning to look at your brother, you elbow him. âAre you alive?â
âMhmm,â he grunts, eyes closed and arms crossed over his chest. Lights dance across his face, all pinks and blues and purples as he breathes in heavily. âI am fucked right now. Can you get me a stim pop from Hoshi? If I do anymore frostbyte Iâm gonna get a nosebleed. Again.âÂ
Actually, asking Soonyoung for anything is the last thing you want to do. However, your brother does look like he needs to wake up, the mess of drugs and alcohol in his system working overtime to put him on his ass. Stim pops are a quick fix, a careful mix of sweet candy and methylphenidate to wake up the nervous system. Soongyoung always has them on his person, especially for when he works late night shifts.Â
Turning in the booth, youâre smacked with a wave of color. For a moment, you drink it in, tilting your head upward as the figures dancing above explode into a world of lavender butterflies. Theyâre utterly captivating, your eyes watching them twist and dance in the air as they flutter.Â
A laugh bubbles from your lips, entirely childlike. Grinning, you watch them for a few moments more before they disintegrate into stars, entire solar systems hovering and floating through the space above your head.
Seungcheol elbowing you breaks you from your concentration. Right. Stim pop. From Soonyoung. Glancing at the man in question makes your stomach plummet. Soonyoungâs head is resting against the back of the booth, the girl next to him draped over him with her mouth pressed hot to his throat, her teeth overly white in the blacklight of the club.Â
A surge of rage shivers through you, your nails scratching across the green velvet, leaving marks in their wake. Leaning forward, you reach out a hand and smack Vernonâs knee to get his attention. He turns his lazy gaze on you, brows raised. When you point at Soonyoung, he nods and yells over his shoulder to get your targetâs attention.
Soonyoungâs eyes flutter open and flick to where youâre sitting. He drinks in your expression before muttering something to the woman mouthing at his neck and peels her off, standing up and shuffling over to you. Angel makes room for him, all but sliding into Vernonâs lap as Soonyoung crashes down on the couch next to you.Â
âHi, Baby. Whatâs up?âÂ
âCheol needs a stim pop,â you answer curtly, leaning away from him. He smells like vanilla and sandalwood laced with alcohol. Soonyoung is so close you can feel his body heat, his breath fanning across your bare shoulder as he moves to look at Seungcheol half asleep on your other side. âThen you can go back to your little public sex session.âÂ
Soonyoung makes an angry cat noise, narrowing his eyes at you as he smirks. He leans toward you further to reach into his pocket, shoulder pressed against you. His scent fills your nose, heady and familiar. Youâre dizzy with it, the touch of his warmth against your skin making you flush.
Suddenly, his nearness is overwhelming. Every hair on the back of your neck stands on end, your skin hypersensitive to the way he leans against you. The glow of the lights is sharper than you remember, and you swear you feel the blood rushing through your body.
A response that could be either because of the drugs you inhaled a moment ago or because Soonyoung is pressed against you and you have the sudden urge to lean into him, to feel his warmth, to press your lips against his and feel their softness.Â
In an attempt to save yourself from the trap, you shove back at him. He huffs, glaring at you as he fishes a stim pop out of his pocket and hands it over to you. Youâre careful to avoid his touch when you snatch it from his nimble fingers, turning your back on him in the booth to look at Seungcheol.
âWhy are you being a brat?â His voice is loud over the music, shouted into your ear as he tilts back into your space again. You can feel the warmth of him on your back.Â
âGo away.â
âBaby, please donât start with me.â
âIâm not starting fuck with you.âÂ
Seungcheol cracks an eye open to observe your argument with a look of interest. Seungcheolâs pupils are dilated like moons, totally empty of any coherent thought. You peel the wrapper off the stim pop, careful to hold it by the cardboard stick as you pop it into your brotherâs mouth.Â
For a few moments, your brother lolls the candy around his mouth, sucking greedily. Then, he blinks his eyes open, pupils narrowing as he drinks in the lights and the clubs. He sighs in relief, patting your thigh gratefully as the stimulant chases away whatever else is washing him out.
When you turn around, Soonyoung is still lingering, his dark eyes fierce and focused only on you. He looks good tonight. He looks good every night. He has become your picture perfect torture since that night you asked him to be your first kiss, kickstarting something you were incapable of foreseeing.Â
The bleached hair is new and you hate how much you like it. The silvery strands look just as soft as his natural black, and itâs a nice contrast to his dark eyes and sharp cheekbones. Those stormy eyes are staring at you now, something playful that you donât like glittering under the surface.Â
He pouts at you. âWhy are you mad at me?â
âIâm not mad at you. Go away!â
âYou definitely are. What did I do, hmm? Tell me.âÂ
âPlease fuck off.âÂ
He rolls his eyes, peeling himself off the couch and muttering something under his breath. Youâre sure he has nothing nice to say, so you sink further into the couch, crossing your hands over your chest as you sulk.Â
Sticky air clings to your skin. You can feel your heart racing in your chest, the music vibrating your ribcage. Your anger is like a monster given life, fueled by the frostbyte and the feverish anger taking root in your stomach as Soonyoung settles back in his spot, pressing his mouth sloppily to the woman next to him.Â
And thatâs the problem, really. Itâs not you that is pressing your mouth to his jaw while he leans against the back of the seat. It isnât you running manicured nails down the front of his shirts, pulling at buttons despite the audience.Â
It isnât you and it should be. You want it to be.
Itâs been two years since Soonyoung kissed you for the first time in his room. Youâve had more experience with other people since then, but it dulls in comparison to his simple kiss. You hate it. What you hate even more is how childish it makes you feel, embarrassment heating your cheeks and throat when he catches your gaze across the booth and you divert your attention.Â
For the second time, Soonyoung peels the girl off of him, making like heâs going to get up and come sit next to you again. This time, his companion keeps him rooted to the spot, her nails digging into his forearm as she hisses something at him. He groans, head tilted back like heâs once again the most inconvenienced man in the room.Â
Wanting nothing more than to blot him out, you call Wonwooâs name again, leaning forward heavily for more frostbyte. Soonyoung whistles and snaps his finger in your direction as though to tell you no. You bristle, your anger turning to an inferno, burning up inside of you.Â
Vernon and Angel both cringe, leaning out of your line of fire as you swivel to angle yourself toward Soonyoung, hands shaking. âDonât fucking whistle and snap at me! Iâm not a dog.â
âBaby, you donât need more. Your pupils are the size of Mingyuâs big ass head.â
Mingyu, though right next to Soonyoung, doesnât hear the insult, his tongue being sucked down the throat of the girl sitting in his lap, hips grinding on him. Another girl is pressed to his side, teeth nipping at his jaw. At least someone is having fun, you think, the three of them totally aware of the crackling tension in their booth.Â
The girl attached to Soonyoungâs neck a moment ago bristles when she hears your nickname. âBaby?â she asks, face scrunching. âAre you serious?â
âChill out, Victra. Itâs her nickname.â
âYeah,â you agree, shooting her a venomous look, despite her doing nothing to earn your ire. âChill, Victra.â
Once again, you turn your back on Soonyoung, standing and scooting Seungcheol over to swap places with him. He does so with a keen eye, watching the scene unfold as he sucks his lollipop happily, content to watch the drama.Â
Wonwoo dips his knife into the bag as you settle in next to him, bouncing with excitement. âI love when you do drugs, youâre so much fun.âÂ
âI donât feel very fun right now.â
âDrugs will fix it!âÂ
âWonwoo, donât you dare give her that,â Soonyoung warns. He pries Victraâs hands off of him, leaning forward as though to reach across the table.Â
âIgnore him,â you insist.Â
Wonwoo hesitates, stuck between a rock and a hard place. The last thing he wants to do is tell you no. No one but your father and older brother get to tell you no. Wonwoo knows this better than most people. But he also doesnât want to cross Soonyoung, a venture nearly as dangerous as pissing off Seungcheol.Â
Soonyoung hisses at the girl next to him, âStop clawing at me! Baby, please stop being stubborn for one moment. Just one. â
âWhy the fuck did you even bring me up here?â Victra interrupts, ignoring Soonyoungâs plea. âYouâve done nothing but fawn over her since we got here. This isnât fun.âÂ
Soonyoung ignores her. âIf youâre mad at me, be mad at me. Stop blowing shit up your nose to prove a point and be a bitch, though.â
âIâm not proving fuck, Soonyoung. And Victraâs right, go fuck her in the bathroom or something and stop telling me what to do.â
âSo it is about her?âÂ
âI have a name!â The her in question snaps. You turn around, temper flaring as you level your glare at her. She turns her nose up at you as she says, âItâs obvious youâre bothered he brought me here. Your jealousy is insufferable.âÂ
âDing, ding ding,â Seungcheol imitates a bell. You turn around to look at Victra. âRound one! Fight!â
It takes a second for Victraâs words to land. Itâs like each one hits you a second apart, packing their own punch as you register them. The pulsing music around you fades to a dull roar as you stare at her, seeing the way her lips twitch upward as she realizes sheâs right. You are jealous that Soonyoung brought her up here.Â
Victraâs grin is all it takes for you to spill over. Before you can register what youâre doing, youâre out of your seat and leaping over the table at her, knocking over glasses and bottles. Wonwoo cheers in delight behind you as your brother catches you by the waist, trying to keep you on your side of the booth as you tear at his hands to get across the booth.Â
Seeing the attack of opportunity while youâre subdued, Victra shoots to her feet. Angel is fast as an adder, one moment sitting in Vernonâs lap and the next striking Victra down into the booth, knee planted in her stomach. Vernon does nothing to stop his girlfriend, opting instead to reach for a water bottle, unscrewing it to take a sip as his girlfriend pins Victra down to the seat with little effort.Â
Noticing for the first time that their friend is in distress, the two women with Mingyu lift their heads. As soon as one starts to slide from his lap to reach for Angel, you kick a foot out, striking the bucket of alcohol and ice. The bucket goes flying at her, hitting her hard in the face. She screams, crumbling in Mingyuâs lap, cradling her face.Â
Mingyu and Soonyoung are on their feet in seconds, soaked from the waist down and trying to gain control of the situation as it spirals. Mingyu becomes a blockade between Victraâs two friends, trying to keep them on their side of the booth. Soonyoung is prying a bottle from a hand before it can make its way toward you, yelling something indecipherable.Â
Angel is still pressing her knee deep into Victraâs gut. Victraâs attention has diverted from you entirely as she screams like a wounded animal, pushing and scratching at Angelâs knee to try and get her off. Youâre sure it hurts, but Angel doesnât budge, sinking her weight into it.Â
Leaning down, you grab something to lob at them - someoneâs shoe - but Seungcheol manages to haul you off your feet and spin you, planting you into the booth behind him. You growl, shoving at his legs to move him out of the way, trying to re-engage.Â
âFucking hell,â he grunts. âAre you fucking juicing? Why are you so strong?â
âItâs the drugs,â Wonwoo offers unhelpfully. âReally top of the line drugs.â
âShut up, Wonwoo!â Both you and Seungcheol bark at the same time.Â
Wonwoo holds up his hands, leaning back into the seat as he watches the mess unfold with a delighted grin. You strike out with your foot, slamming against the boothâs table, shoving it in Soonyoungâs direction. You hear glass shatter as more things fall off the table, clattering to the ground. There are shrieks and curses that you canât see with Seungcheol blocking the way.Â
âHeâs a fucking asshole!â You seethe to your brother, panting with rage.Â
âHe is, and you did exactly what he wanted you to do.â You try to kick the table again but he stops you, grabbing your knee. You feel like you canât get enough air, sweat slicking your skin and the velvet of the couch too sharp against your flesh. âSoonyoung loves a fight when heâs fucked up. You know that.âÂ
âWell fuck him!â
He pulls the stick from his mouth, candied stim gone. He tosses it onto the floor and looks over his shoulder where Mingyu and Soonyoung are corralling the three women out of the booth. âGod, Angel broke that girl's rib I think. Hahahha!âÂ
âI want to break her fucking face!âÂ
âI think you broke her friend's face. She is fucked up. That bucket hit her right in the eye. What a shot.âÂ
âIf youâre so entertained, whyâd you get in my way?â
âThereâs a lot of eyes here.â You glance around, noticing other booths looking at you, people ducking toward one another to whisper. âYou have an image to maintain.âÂ
Adjusting your shirt, you settle back into the booth. âAlright. Alright Iâm good.â
When Seungcheol moves out of the way to take a seat, Soonyoung replaces him. You glare up at him, feeling your anger curl up in you again. His lips twitch, a hint of a smirk as he sits down next to you, sighing heavily and tilting his head to look up at the flashing lights.
The girls are nowhere to be found. Angel is sitting back down next to Vernon who hasnât moved, and there are servers picking up the mess you made. Mingyu is notably absent, though you can guess where heâs gone for the night. Heâs good at making scorned lovers feel better about their bad luck.Â
âJealousy is crazy on you,â Soonyoung notes, tonguing the inside of his cheek as he glances at you sidelong. âI kind of like it.âÂ
âDonât ever do that to me again,â you warn. He laughs, the fight totally leaving him. âIâm serious. Donât ever do that to me again, Soonyoung. Not to me.âÂ
âAlright, alright. When you say jump, right?âÂ
Soonyoungâs fingers brush against yours. Just the rough feeling of his calluses against the tips of your fingers has you shivering, anger replaced with want. He doesnât take your hand, doesnât move to do anything else but lean back in silence with your fingers touching.Â
Resigned, you say nothing else to him. Youâd got what you wanted - sort of - even if you know you made an ass out of yourself doing it. It isnât the first time heâs made you jealous, but it is the first time itâs boiled over so violently.Â
You remind yourself not to do frostbyte when youâre mad anymore.
You turn your attention to where Angel is snorting frostbyte up her nose off of her boyfriendâs phone, accidentally turning on the hologram as she does, her face suddenly caged by green screen data. You call her name gently. She looks up at you, pupils blown, reflecting the lights dancing above like dark glass. âThanks,â you offer.Â
Her grin is too wide, teeth too white. She reminds you of a demon more than she does an angel. âAnytime.âÂ
When you settle back in, you glance at Soonyoung once. He looks down at you, smirking a single time before he leans into you and rests his head on your shoulder. You feel him melt into you, sighing as his eyes close and he nuzzles a little closer. You put your hand on his thigh, squeezing once before you leave it there, feeling the heat of his skin through his pants.
It isnât until heâs almost asleep, pressed as close as possible to you that you realize maybe he got what he wanted too.Â
Rain washes over the black city, the mist turning the thousands of digital and holographic advertisements into a watercolor smear of neon. It smells wet and like rot, the drains overworked and belching water and trash back out into the street as you walk, feet splashing.Â
You quickly duck out of the way of a group of rowdy men spilling from a bar. You can smell the drink on them, their feet sloshing in the rising water of the street as they dredge toward the next bar. They whistle at the pretty girls dressed in light up raincoats and flickering green contacts, stumbling toward a brothel instead of the bar.Â
Gripping your umbrella tighter, you quicken your steps. Grease smoke drifts toward you from various hawker carts, the sizzle of meat making your stomach growl. You ignore them, knowing you have dinner with your family later as you take a corner and plunge into the darkness of an underground stairwell.Â
The LEDs on your umbrella cast a pink light as you descend the stairs, careful not to slip on the caked grime. Two guards stand outside metal double doors, music pulsing faintly behind it. They look you up and down, ready to deny entry until you state your name at the bottom of the steps.Â
âID?â the one on the right asks, giving you a critical eye.Â
Of course he doesn't believe you. The daughter of the Tower would never walk anywhere without a body guard, especially in this part of the city. You spin the umbrella, the pink coalescing as he takes the phone from your hand and taps it, blue lighting up his face when your ID and profile appear in holographic data above the screen.Â
He clears his throat and bows at the waist. When his counterpart doesnât, he smacks him hard on the back, making the man lean over. âApologies, Miss Choi. Right this way.âÂ
Music hits you full on when the doors open, the base creating static in the air. You cringe as it vibrates through your ribcage and teeth, wondering how anyone could stand to be in a club this loud. Popping the umbrella shut, you let your eyes adjust while one security guard remains at the door, shutting it behind you, and the other hands you your ID.
âShould I escort you to the office, Miss?âÂ
Writhing bodies dance together, scintillating like snakes in a pit. Above them, lasers and holograms light up the world with flashes of colors you didnât even know existed. A wide bar stretches to the left of the floor, lit up by soft cyan lights. Behind it, the bartenders move in a blur, the glow on their clothes turning them ethereal.Â
You glance at the security guard, who waits patiently before shaking your head. You point to the space above the bar where there are two large, mirrored windows looking out into the club. âUp there?â
âYes,â he answers, hesitating. âLet me escort you.âÂ
With a roll of your eyes you nod, gesturing to him to lead the way. He clears a path, clubbers and workers alike moving out of his way when he shoves them. You walk behind him, swinging your head from side-to-side as you look at the people, fascinated.Â
People with spikes pierced in their skin and whorling tattoos with glow ink stare back at you, glowing contact lenses and gemmed teeth all taking you in. You rarely get to mix in with the crowd that partakes in more unique cosmetic alterations and fashion, fascinated by someone who walks by with red glowing face tattoos like a demon mask.Â
At the foot of the stairs, the guard lets you walk up first. Itâs clear of people, so he remains standing at the bottom, taking up an imposing position with his hands linked in front of him, blocking the stairway entirely.Â
The thud of music vibrates through your boots as you climb the stairs, greeting another security guard. You can tell heâs already been warned youâre here - he bows immediately and keys in the pad at the door, opening the office for you.Â
You pass by him airily, stepping into the dry and much cooler office. The door closes behind you, immediately cutting off the sound with highâtech sound proofing. Soonyoung is leaning against the bar, his back to the door as he watches out the windows, a glass in his hand.Â
âWhat in the fuck are you doing?â he asks, tossing you a look over his shoulder. You grin, skipping over to him. He doesnât grin back, looking you up and down as you join him. You reach for the decanter heâs drinking from but he smacks your hand, viper fast. âNot a chance.â
âWhat? Why not?â
âYou shouldnât be here, much less without a security team. The Tower will be livid.âÂ
âThe Tower doesnât have to know.â
Soonyoungâs jaw flexes. âThe security team will tell him you were here.â
âNot if you tell them not to.â
âBaby,â he sighs, tilting his head up and closing his eyes. You lean against the bar, watching him. The lights from the club are dimmer in here, but they flash against his face, painting him in golden light. Heâs beautiful. âWhat are you doing here?â
âAngel said you had a bad day.â
âI always have a bad day. And tell Angel to shut her mouth.â
You snort. âYou tell her that.â
That gets a grin out of him. He lowers his head, dark gaze finding yours. âYou canât just walk around the Lower City without a personal guard, Baby.â
âIâm not helpless.â
âI know youâre not. Iâm not either but people try to rob me all the time. You, on the other hand, are a lot prettier of a prize than I am.âÂ
âSo you think Iâm pretty?â
This time when Soonyoung sighs, itâs affectionate. He sips his glass of amber liquid, turning to watch the crowd outside the office. He holds out his glass to you, a concession. You grin further, accepting it from him and bring it up to your nose to smell. You donât know anything about liquor, but from the spiced scent you can tell itâs good quality.
You take a tiny sip. It goes down smooth - strong, but good and warm. Instead of giving him the glass back, you cradle it to your chest, leaning against the bar next to him close enough that your arms are almost touching. He continues looking out at the crowd, keen eyes serious and back to work while you look at him.Â
Soonyoung is beautiful. His side profile is lethal, the slope of his neck elegant, the curve of his jaw sharp but delicate, his high cheekbones catching the light. His eyes are dark pools, reflecting the snatches of light that come through the dark windows.Â
âDid you come here to stare at me?â he asks, never taking his eyes off the crowd.Â
âWhat if I said I did?âÂ
His mouth twitches at the corner. âUnfortunately I would believe you.â
Watching over clubs isnât usually Soonyoungâs job. But this club is in a terrible part of the city and isnât worth much to the Choi Syndicate, so sometimes heâs awarded the opportunity to prove himself to your father and to the elders of the Syndicate that heâs competent and capable of leadership, despite the fact youâve always known him to be.Â
Soonyoung isnât meant for leading like Seungcheol. But there is a certain level of loyalty and understanding he has to cultivate with the heavies of the family, the Swords who carry out the bloody tasks of removing people from the way and keeping assets safe. His father had been the Sentinel of your family for years until his death, and Soonyoung is expected to pick up that mantle.
This is all a part of that. Soonyoung already has the loyalty of the security team running this hole in the wall, alerting him the second you arrived and refusing to let you go up the stairs alone. Had they failed to do that, you might think a little less of them.Â
Soonyoung also probably would have had them beaten.Â
Finally, Soonyoung turns to look at you. He sighs and raises his brows expectantly.Â
âWhat?â you ask.Â
âWhat did you come here for? Real answer, this time.âÂ
âI told you. Angel said you had a bad day. That is my real answer.â
âAnd?â
You shrug, sipping from the glass and turning toward the windows. âI wanted to make it a better one.âÂ
That makes him go silent. You can see him turn to look at you, his stormy gaze pinning you to the spot. You donât look at him, letting him stare as you nurse the drink and watch the dancing crowd down below. Theyâre beautiful, in a way, an ocean of bodies saying as colors turn them blue and then green and then bright red and then lavender.Â
Soonyoung leans toward you, bumping his head on yours lightly. That gets a laugh out of you, stomach fluttering and wishing he would stay leaned against you. He pulls away though, crossing his arms over his chest and turning his eyes back to his job.Â
âThank you,â he finally says, voice quiet. âIt is already a better day.âÂ
The silence is comfortable. You eventually give him the drink back and he takes it, tongue darting out to lick the lip gloss you left. He hums. âCherries.âÂ
âYouâre gross.âÂ
He smiles into the glass, taking a sip. âI actually have something for you.âÂ
âA present?â
He snorts. âNot exactly. Go to the desk - top drawer on the right.âÂ
Eagerly, you do as he says. The heavy wooden desk sits in the back of the room, imposing even without the metal lockers behind it with weapons. You ignore the heavy guns under padlocks and go for the drawer in question.Â
A rectangular box is in the drawer Soonyoung specified, unmarked. You turn it over in your hands, curious. Itâs not very heavy and fits mostly in your palm.Â
âBring it over here.âÂ
You do, trailing back to Soonyoung. He extends his hand and you pass it over to him, watching with interest as he cracks the box open with the sheer strength of his fingers. He pulls out a small device, a wire and what looks to be a plug, tossing the box to the bar.Â
âDo you know what this is?â he asks, holding up the device.Â
Itâs a small rectangle with a keypad and a screen. You raise your brows in surprise. âIt is a very old phone.âÂ
âIt is.â He smiles, pleased with your answer. He passes the materials over to you and you hold them against your chest. âThatâs the charger and the charging cord. Itâs one of the old kinds of phones that requires a phone tower. There are barely any in the city.âÂ
âAnd what is this gift for?âÂ
âI own the phone towers that support it.â You raise your brows. Soonyoung rarely spends the inheritance his parents left behind, so youâre surprised. âIt only has a single phone number programmed into it that will call the one I have.â
At this, he reaches into his pocket and produces the phoneâs twin. He shakes it for emphasis, pressing a button and lighting up the screen. âYou have to make sure to keep it charged. I want you to have it for emergencies only. And I mean emergencies, Baby. This is a last resort kind of device, alright?âÂ
You chew your bottom lip, dragging your eyes to look up at him. âWhy?âÂ
âBecause I need to know that you always have a last resort.â His gaze darkens. âClearly your assigned security team lets you give them the slip. I need to know that you can hit the dial on this faster than you can on our phones. Theyâre overly complicated and not quick. With this?âÂ
He reaches over and turns on the phone in your hand. Once booted, he presses the one button. The device in his hand starts ringing. âDirect and fast access to me at all times. Do it even if you canât tell me where you are. Iâll find you.âÂ
Emotion twists your throat. You grip the phone with a vice grip, looking up at him with wide eyes. His face is serious. He slips his phone in his pocket, turning back to do his job. âI will answer,â he promises. âIt doesnât matter when and where. I will answer that phone even if Iâm dying. Do you understand?âÂ
âYes.â
He nods. âGood.â
A knock on your door wakes you up from a dreamless sleep. Darkness spills across your room like ink as you slip from your bed, cursing when you kick the corner of your nightstand. With a raspy voice, you ask the automated room assistant to turn on the nightlights, a hazy purple immediately lighting the circumference of your room.
Squinting against the lavender glow, you pad over your room to open the door. Soonyoung is leaning heavily against the wall just beyond the threshold, his chin tucked to his chest and his hair sweaty and clinging to his temples.Â
He doesnât move when you open the door, the lilac light casting an eerie radiance on the side of his face. Itâs hard to make out his expression in the lurking shadow of the hallway, and he offers no explanation for why heâs knocking on your door at three in the morning.Â
âSoonyoung?â you whisper, eyes darting down the hall. No one else is around. âWhere are Cheol and Vernon?â
âSâcheol is still working. Vernon went to stay at Angelâs.â
âAre you - Soonyoung are you drunk? Or high?â
âYeah.âÂ
Both you realize. You can deal with both.Â
Grabbing him by the hand, you tug him gently. He pushes off the wall with heavy steps, stumbling through your open door and into the room. You grip him tighter, shutting your door with a gentle click before turning around to face him.Â
Soonyoung wonât look at you, turning his face away as he sways a little where he stands. Now that you can see him fully, you realize that there is blood on the collar of his shirt. Heart thudding, your hands reach for it, peeling it back to look at his neck. Specs of dry crimson flake from sweaty skin, making your terror reach new heights.Â
He shrugs you off. âNot mine.âÂ
âI - whatâs going on?âÂ
Instead of answering you, he walks a few crooked steps toward your bed and sits down on the edge. Licking your lips, you approach him slowly. Heâs slouched over, elbows pressed to his knees as his head hangs heavily. He still hasnât looked at you properly and youâre aching to see his eyes. You can always understand him better when you see his eyes, able to read the depth of emotions hiding beneath his mask.
When you reach him, you crouch down. Instead of grabbing for him again and risking him pulling away, you rest your hands on top of your knees. When afraid or upset, Soonyoung is like a cornered animal. You donât know whether heâs in fight or flight, both just as dangerous as the next.Â
âSoonyoung,â you say again gently. You watch his every move. âYouâre scaring me. Do you need me to call Cheol or Vernon?â
If Seungcheol is working the circuit, he isnât the best to call. Late night circuits include going from club to club under the Choi banner to monitor the drug trafficking and attend small business meetings as appropriate. Seungcheol will drop whatever heâs doing for you in a heartbeat, but itâs more complicated than that.Â
In theory, Vernon is easier to get a hold of. Heâs already off work and though he might not answer his phone if you call, you know his girlfriend will. Plus, the blood on Soonyoungâs shirt and skin can give you a guess at whatâs happened, and Vernon is more equipped for that type of thing than you are.Â
âLet me call Vernon-â
âNo,â he finally says. âNo. Sorry. I just.âÂ
Your chest squeezes in pain. Itâs like you can feel the torture radiating through him, feel the weight of whatever it is thatâs dragging him down yourself. Desperation drives you to reach out toward him slowly, watching for any sign of startling him. When he doesnât move to pull away, you touch him gently, squeezing his knee gently. âWhat do you need?âÂ
âMy dad always said I should feel something.â His words are halting, coming out slurred. You wait, holding your breath as he works through them. âAlways said that you should feel something when you kill someone. If you donât, it means youâre nothing more than a beast with base instincts. Not intelligent or refined.â
It takes everything in you not to let your grip turn to steel at his words. Instead, you rub your hand up and down his thigh soothingly, saying nothing. Soonyoung has never killed someone before. You would know if he had. Heâs the last in your immediate circle of friends beside yourself to take on the weight of stealing life, and youâve dreaded this day for a long time.Â
Murder is an inevitability in your family. Keeping the Choi Syndicate on top requires sacrifice, cruelty and cunning. Soonyoung had started serving as an officially ranked member of the Syndicate over a year ago, and though he had fucked up a lot of people and brought them to the brink of death, he hadnât actually done it yet.Â
âI felt nothing,â he whispers, voice thick. âFucking nothing.âÂ
âWhat do you mean?â
âThere was no guilt. I didnât even flinch. It was so easy, like fucking breathing. Thatâs not what my dad wanted me to be. He always said that those who felt nothing were just⊠baser creatures. That we were better because we were⊠made better.âÂ
âI think your dad wanted a lot of things. You being alive was the most important of those things, Soonyoung.âÂ
âIâm just tired of feeling fucking empty. I donât give a shit that I killed someone, Baby. Honestly? I was fucking looking forward to it. I thought maybe - just maybe - I would feel something, even if it was guilt or horror or satisfaction. There was nothing.âÂ
You have no idea what to say. Instead of words, you surge forward, letting go of Soonyoungâs knee to push yourself between his thighs, wrapping your arms around his middle. He flinches for a moment, arms hanging dead at his side as you press your cheek to his chest, squeezing.Â
Inside, you feel your heart crack open. You shove down the overwhelming sense of despair on his behalf, instead focused on him. Thereâs nothing to say with words, and you hope he can feel what youâre trying to tell him through touch, that he can feel everything you donât know how to say as you hold him tight, clinging to him.Â
Slowly, his arms encircle you. It takes him a moment, but he applies a little pressure back. It makes you scoot in more, pressed as close as you can get to him. He buries his face in your neck, his breaths warm and smelling like tequila. He smells like him too, vanilla and sandalwood.Â
âI donât feel like a person sometimes,â he whispers. âItâs like the ability for me to feel anything died forever ago. Like I killed it so that I didnât ever have to hurt again. Now I only ever feel when-â
He cuts himself off and sinks into you a little more. You bear his weight, willing to carry any burden for him. You donât think he realizes that he could ask you to jump and youâd say how high. Youâve always been willing to jump for him, always willing to do whatever he wants, whatever he needs.Â
Gently, you ask, âYou only ever feel when what? You can tell me if you want. Whatever you need.âÂ
âI feel when Iâm with you.â Soonyoung whispers it like itâs a secret he doesnât want you to hear. You feel the words hit your skin where he speaks them, a shiver slithering through you. His grip on you tightens a little with the admission, like now that heâs said it, he canât let go. Wonât. âI feel most like a person when Iâm with you.â
Pressing the flat of your hand to his back, you begin to stroke up and down slowly, touch following the careful ridges of his spine. He sighs, shivering in your hold. You want nothing more than to take the pain or whatever heâs feeling away, to rip it from him and to destroy it.Â
The fierceness of your love for him is hard to tamp down. A fiery admission of your feelings for him isnât what he needs right now. You know Soonyoung like the inside of your own soul, everything that makes him tick, every habit heâs picked up over the years. You can sense him standing lost at sea, needing an anchor. Needing you.Â
âOkay,â you say softly. âSo stay with me. Be a person with me.â
âIâm not made for you.â
âYes you are.â Your nails dig into his back through his shirt, pressing sharply. The desire to covet him is so intense it overtakes you. âIf I make you a person, then how could we be made for anyone but one another?âÂ
Silence greets your logic. You stay holding him like that, desperate to keep him there, terrified heâll shrug you off and get up. Heâs done it before, shucking off your affection like something to be disposed of. And still you give it to him freely, begging him to take it.Â
He doesnât shy away from you. Instead you feel him nod, mouth brushing tenderly across your throat in the ghost of a kiss. âIf I stay right now, you will never get me to leave. Do you understand? I wonât⊠I will be incapable of ever letting you go. Ever. Do you understand what Iâm saying?â
You hug him tighter. âTry to leave me at your own peril, Kwon Soonyoung.âÂ
âWhereâs your other half?â the voice causes you to turn from where you lean against the bar. Angel slides up next to you, cocking her head as she does. She looks like a wraith, dressed in a rain slicker over black long-sleeved shirt thatâs tucked into black pants. Her jacket and combat boots are wet, suggesting itâs still raining outside. âYouâre usually attached at the hip. My therapist calls that codependency. Says Hansol and I have it too.âÂ
âDoes your therapist also know youâre a murderer?â you mutter. The bartender slides drinks over to you and you nod in thanks. âOr that youâre only seeing her because Jeonghan made a bet with you? Or that your job often involves extortion? What does she think about that?âÂ
As a Rook of the Choi Syndicate, Angelâs job is a far cry from the holy nickname sheâs sported since she was a child. Like Vernon, her role within your fatherâs empire is to collect debts owed to the Choi family and to remind them never to fall behind on payments. Other times, sheâs simply used as a good tool to put the fear of god into enemies of the Choi family, and sheâs good at it.
Raised under the careful tutelage of the Yoon family, thereâs no weakness Angel canât find and use. The only one better at it than her is her step brother, who is probably sitting next to your brother behind closed doors somewhere in the Choi Estate holding a meeting.
As Seungcheolâs future second in command, itâs Jeonghanâs responsibility to learn the ropes just like your brother. One day, itâll be the two of them leading your family, a thought that makes you cringe with worry.Â
Angel answers your question with a shrug. âIâm sure she knows Iâm into some shit. Iâm learning all kinds of new things about myself.âÂ
âOh yeah? Like what?âÂ
âI donât like therapy. And I kind of want to ask my therapist why she thinks sheâs qualified for therapy when sheâs fucking three of her clients.â
A snort escapes you as you shake your head. Of course Angel knows that about her own therapist. Lifting the two drinks on the bar, you drift away from her, eyes flicking over the Rook. âStay out of trouble, Angel. And give Vernon my love.âÂ
She grins, wicked sharp and deadly. âNo bar fights, hmm? Enjoy the party.âÂ
The party in question is exhausting. Youâve been playing pretty princess all night, saying hello to all of the right people, shaking all of the jeweled hands, kissing all of the right asses. Youâre exhausted and the tension in your shoulder has been knotting further and further.Â
Once upon a time you would have been thankful to at least not be Seungcheol. He shouldered a lot more responsibility. Now youâve realized that you donât shoulder less than him - itâs just different. If Seungcheol is the sword and shield of the Syndicate, youâre the face and smile. Galas, charities, celebrity events - itâs a never ending stream of smile, pose, shake hands.Â
It doesnât hide the fact that you sit on a throne that belongs to a criminal empire, of course. But itâs also no secret that the Three Syndicates run the city. Your family has long been one of the stalwart backbones of the government and city infrastructure. Only the Kim family and the Yong family come close.Â
Still, appearances are everything. Especially when the Yong family owns most of the media outlets, weaponizing it against the Choi Syndicate every chance they get. You make it harder for them, using your appearances and platforms like a carefully wielded sword.Â
Spotting Soonyoung among those dressed in dark security uniforms is easy. He nearly blends in with the dark pipe and drape that has been set up all over the ballroom of your home, but you could find him anywhere, your internal compass pointing to him even in the dark.
Soonyoungâs eyes alight on you, sharp and intense. His face is a cool mask of indifference, but you can see the way interest sparks in his eyes as he drinks you in. Heâs already seen you in your dress tonight, but it doesnât stop him from refamiliarizing himself, eyes tracing every dip and curve.
God you wish you were somewhere else with him. Specifically wrapped in the gray sheets of his bed, sweat-slicked and out of breath.Â
âStop looking at me like that,â you say shyly, handing him a drink.
He takes it and looks up at you, arching a brow. âI canât drink this, Iâm working.âÂ
âItâs just soda with lime, the way you like it.âÂ
His lips twitch in a smile as he takes a sip, nodding in confirmation. He doesnât reach out to you and hold you close like you know he wants to, respecting the propriety of his position and the fact that he is on the clock right now.Â
âYou look tired,â he murmurs, eyes studying your face.Â
So does he. As an official Sword of the Choi family, his job keeps him out late, bloodied, and tired. Heâs completely changed from the man who sank into your arms that first night he killed someone, hardened into someone that your father sends to do just that often.Â
A weapon. A Sword. A trusted knife in the dark for the Choi family.
You think Soonyoung is more capable than being a heavy for your dad and his associates. Soonyoung is intelligent and sharp, having gained perspective and a wealth of knowledge from living with your family. Still, his dad had been the leader of the hired guns for the Choi Syndicate. Soonyoung is an efficient killer, his fate bound by his father long ago.
âWhen are you off tonight?â you ask instead of telling him how tired he looks.
âIâm not.â You frown. He sips his drink again and gives you a soft smile that doesnât reach his eyes. âItâs been busy. The Yong family are getting in our way at the docks. I gotta head down there with Vernon and Jeonghan after the party.âÂ
âThe Yongs are doing it outright?âÂ
âNo. Weâre pretty confident itâs them though. Jeonghan is working on it. If we can bring the Xu family under our wing, it would be a lot easier to push them out.âÂ
âThey have a son,â you note, thinking about the last event you attended where the Xu heir was in attendance. âMaybe marriage to one of our big hitters? Nexus Capital has an heiress.â
âIâll mention it to Jeonghan. Who the fuck would want an arranged marriage, though?â
âNot me,â you laugh, wiping the eyelash you spot on his cheek gently. He gives you a tired, albeit affectionate smile. âYouâve been working nonstop. Tell Seungcheol you need a night off.â
âWe both know itâs not Seungcheol working me to the bone, Baby.âÂ
Swallowing thickly, you turn away from him under the guise of scanning the crowd. You know you donât fool him. Both you and Soongyoung know your father does not approve of your relationship, taking it out on Soonyoung to keep him busy and away from you.Â
Your father would never hurt Soonyoung directly. You know that. He loves him like a son - sees his late best friend in the features of the man that Soonyoung has been shaped into under his care and tutelage. When you started dating Soonyoung seriously, you thought your parents might be happy. They adore him and they loved his parents just as much.Â
Soonyoung is below your station, though.Â
Your father will never say it outright. He wouldnât insult his late friendâs son that way. But the way your father works Soonyoung harder than anyone else, holding him to a standard he doesnât even keep for his highest level of men, you realize how deep the dissatisfaction goes. Even your motherâs adoration of Soonyoung does little to shield him from the petty assignments, try as she might.Â
Still, you donât care. And at the end of the day, neither does Soonyoung. As long as he gets to have you, heâs willing to put up with the petty assignments and the working late.Â
âHey,â Soonyoung says gently, bringing your attention back to him. He finishes his drink and sets it on a banquet table nearby. His eyes are averted, looking somewhere across the room as his hand slips around your waist to squeeze you quickly and press a kiss to your temple. âIâve got to go - Iâve got a meeting with Vernon before we head out tonight. Iâll see you when Iâm done. Probably wonât be until late morning.âÂ
âAlright,â You sigh. His hand slips from your waist and you wish you could pull him back to you. âLove you.âÂ
He grins brightly, giving you a wink before he melts into the crowd, weaving around party goers. Your heart squeezes when you lose sight of him.Â
Someone clearing their throat catches your attention. You spin around to see Lan, one of your fatherâs personal Swords nodding politely at you. âYour father wishes to see you in the West Parlor. Iâm to escort you.â
âOh. Sure.â You set your drink down on the banquet table, wiping your damp hands on your dress. âLead the way.âÂ
People bow their heads in respect as you go. You keep an even pace with Lan, which is hard to do with his long strides and your strappy heels digging into your ankles. He slows for your benefit and you give him a grateful smile, the swelling noise from the party leaving you behind as you step out of the ballroom and walk toward the west wing of the house.Â
Some people mill about the halls of the estate. You can spot the members of the Syndicate who are on duty, mostly Swords that belong to the security force employed under the Choi family. You spot Chan leaning against a wall while gesturing broadly with his hands as he speaks to the owner of a new club on the edge of the Pearl District. When he catches your stare, Chan winks before focusing his attention back on the owner. Probably trying to work out some sort of deal or partnership, as is his job.Â
The west wing of the house is quiet and off limits to the rest of the party. Your bedroom is just up two flights of stairs, your bed calling your name as you pass under the stairwell into the hallway that belongs to the West Parlor, the library, the study and your fatherâs billiards room.Â
Old Man Vero is standing outside your fathers study, his hands linked in front of him and his head straight forward. He glances your way as Lan leans you toward the door, cracking a bit of a smile on his leathery face and giving you a wink. You grin, lightly reaching out and touching his elbow as Lan opens the door for you. Your fatherâs Swords have been in your life since you were a child, permanent figures of fixed loyalty and familiarity.Â
They love you like they love your father, like they love your brother. It isnât pure fear and power that keeps the Choi Syndicate together. Your father has plenty of that among the ranks, but the loyalty and love between him and his higher ranking members is real. Critical. It was a skill he taught you and Seungcheol, both of you arming yourself with your own shield of friends and confidants.Â
Your father sits in a leather armchair, leaned back with his eyes closed. Next to him, a cigar smokes in the ashtray, threatening to go out as the thin wisps of smoke vanish into the air. An old fashioned record player echoes in the far corner of the room, smoothe notes vibrating through the air.Â
âTower,â you greet him formally, bowing at the waist. âHow can I be of service to the family?âÂ
His eyes flutter open and he looks at you tiredly. He looks so much like your brother that itâs uncanny, sometimes. But his youth has worn off, his age more and more evident these days as he spreads himself thin expanding the Choi empire. Your mother has asked him - begged him - to give more responsibility to Seungcheol, but he refuses.
At least you know where your stubborn streak comes from.Â
âSo formal,â he notes, his lips twitching upward. He gestured for you to sit in one of the arm chairs. You do, smoothing your dress carefully as you sit. Behind you, Lan exits the room, the soft click of the door behind you. âYou were always a better student than your brother.â
âThatâs because heâs a man.â
A hearty laugh makes you grin, feeling a flutter of fondness. He was never an overly affectionate father, but heâs always been kind, though firm. You respect him, which is saying something in your world.
âSpoken like an intelligent woman,â he sighs. You wait patiently, watching as he seems to gather his words. Your stomach knots, sensing a trepidation about him that youâre not used to. âYour intelligence has always been your best asset, though youâre a little hot-headed like your brother.âÂ
âSteadfast is the mountain,â you say, quoting the Choi family motto.
He grins and adds your motherâs family moniker, âBut the fire does burn. I knew marrying your mother was a good choice. Marrying the right person is paramount in this life. Family unions can make or break an empire, and they forge old alliances anew or secure new alliances.âÂ
A prickle down your spine makes you sit straighter. You had implied as much earlier to Soonyoung about the Xu family, knowing marriage was a viable option to bring the shipping mogul into the Choi empire. Now, though, the notion has you on edge, watching him like a frightened cat.
âI didnât pick your mother, you know,â he muses, his eyes unfocusing somewhere far away. âBut when my father recommended her, I knew he was right. I was familiar with her, of course. We went to school together. Fought like cats, but she was so intelligent and fierce.âÂ
Youâve heard this story before. Your father hadnât loved her to start, but your mother had loved him right away. Had always known that she loved him. Sheâd shown up at one of his billiard nights and told him exactly how she felt, asserting that they would be married and that he would be loyal to her.Â
Heâd fallen in love with her that night.Â
He sighs heavily. âI see a lot of your mother in you.â
âDonât let her hear you sound so disappointed. She might be offended.â
âSheâs better than me,â he says. His eyes focus on you, flicking back to appraise you. Sweat slicks on your back and only years of training keep you from not fidgeting under his weighty gaze. âBut it would be easier sometimes if you were more like me. Less fire, more mountain. Still, you are rational, so let us speak plainly: you are going to marry the Kim family heir.âÂ
Silence hangs in the air. You stare at him, your brain taking a moment to catch up with his words. Itâs like youâre moving in slow motion, processing the firmness in his voice, the way he looks at you with heavy countenance.Â
You are going to marry the Kim family heir.
A high-pitched ringing starts in your ears and you feel the buzz of panic start to tingle at the base of your spine. Your fingers dig into the arms of your chair a little, trying to fight the staccato rhythm of your heart from getting out of control.Â
âWhat?â you ask. It feels dumb, compared to the eloquence youâre capable of.Â
âKim Yijun is a perfect match,â he says simply. âHeâs in line to inherit the Kim Syndicate. There is tension with the Yong family, and I will not lie to you: they have a far larger reach than we would like. They donât do things the old way like the Choi and Kim families. They have started to ally themselves with the Arash family in Veridian, giving them cuts and room in our city to spread their reach outside the bounds of their own city.âÂ
âI donât understand.â
âThe Kim and Choi families have been united before. Theyâve always been our first ally in times of city upheaval and Syndicate war, and they, like us, donât believe in letting outsiders have a seat at the table. The Yong family donât understand that, and are willing to let vermin have scraps if it means scooting us out.â
âIâm-â you shake your head. âYou canât ask that of me.â
âIâm not asking.â He reaches for a lighter and picks up the cigar. He takes a moment to relight it, taking his focus off of you. You feel your pulse spiking, your grip on the chair like iron. âI am telling you that this is what your future will be. I understand you like the Kwon boy, but-â
You sneer, baring your teeth. âThe Kwon boy? Donât reduce him to some stranger. Soonyoung grew up in this house, he is family. And I donât just like him, I love him. Donât think I havenât noticed you bullying him because youâre frustrated that I love him. You love him too.âÂ
âI do. I love him like my own. But he is not for you.â
âHe is. I will not marry Yijun. I am asking you not as a member of this Syndicate, but as your daughter to drop this machination from your plans. I am your blood, you cannot ask this of me.â
âI told you, I am not asking. I am telling you.âÂ
A tremor starts in your hands. Your heart races so fast that you feel sick, sweat slicking your skin as you begin to pant sharply. The ringing in your ears grows until you feel disconnected to it, like suddenly youâre living in third person. Youâre aware that youâre hyperventilating and yet, suddenly itâs separate from you.
Standing abruptly, you feel the world tilt. You take a second to steady yourself, feeling the numb tingle spread throughout you like a flood.Â
âSit down,â your father demands. You hear the warning. Recognize the firmness in it. This is the Tower of the Choi Syndicate speaking, not your father.Â
âTake this as my resignation from the family,â you tell him. Your voice doesnât feel like your own, steady and without inflection. âIâll renounce my inheritance and will not use the Choi family for any connection or advantages-â
âYou will not!âÂ
His voice startles you. Lures you away from the safety of your detachment. You look at him, eyes wide and shaking. His hand is fisted on the armchair, his rage crackling around him like a thunderstorm. âI will not have my only daughter sabotage everything this family has built for the affection of someone unfit for her station. Kwon Soonyoung is a weapon meant to serve you. You will marry Kim Yijun or I will remove the obstacle altogether.âÂ
Your entire life there have been two versions of your father. The stoic leader of one of the oldest criminal empires in Hyperion, the vicious man who could be cold and calculating, and who was reverently feared by his enemies. The kind father who watched you and Seungcheol study math together, carefully explaining to you how to carry numbers over in the equation.Â
It is the former who sits before you now. Someone entirely unfamiliar to you, though youâve always known he existed. And why would you? Your father has never had to be ruthless with you before, hiding the way he could cut from you until it was necessary.Â
Soonyoung knew. You know it with absolute clarity. You remember the fear in his eyes when you had slipped into his room that night asking for a kiss, the way that he is always so careful about when and where he touches you, the way he takes the assignments and the mistreatment without so much as a protest because it means he gets to have you.
âYou would kill him?â you whisper, looking your father in the eye. âYou promised to take him in when his family was murdered. He had no one, and you promised his father youâd raise him as your own. You would go back on that?âÂ
He scowls. âIf his father knew what he was, heâd kill Soonyoung himself. That boy is a dog to be set upon whoever his owner wishes, who kills with impunity.â You say nothing. I donât feel like a person. Soonyoungâs words echo in your mind, haunting. âI hold the collar and I will put him down, if need be.âÂ
âSo you raised a pet to be disposed of at your convenience?â
âI raised a boy who should be grateful I havenât put him in the fucking ground for sullying my only daughter. I let you two have time, and you should be grateful. It is my love for him that has stayed my hand this long. No more. You will marry Kim Yijun, or you will bury that boy. This is the command of your Tower.â
âMother will not let you-â
âYour mother doesnât let me do anything. I am the Tower of this family, and it does what I command. You will fall in line.âÂ
Tears spill from your eyes. You suddenly feel like youâre standing on a cliff, the vertigo of nothingness at the bottom making you sick with fear. Desperation grips at you as you stare at your father, willing him to change his mind. Begging him.Â
His pity doesnât come. There is only resolute silence, watching as you crumple in front of him, knees going weak as you abruptly sit - fall - on the floor. You bury your face in your hands, grief for something lost stealing your ability to maintain control before youâve even given an answer.Â
Iâm not made for you.Â
Soonyoung had tried to tell you a long time ago and youâd brushed him off. Of course he was made for you. He was all youâve ever wanted, and youâve always been given what you wanted. You made him whole, and he you. How could you not be made for one another.Â
âPlease donât do this to me. Daddy,â you whisper, trying to appeal to him with the little girl he loves. âPlease, I love him.âÂ
âLan will escort you to your room.â You ignore his words, pressing the heels of your palms into your eyes, willing the tears to stop. You know later youâll feel pathetic for the display of emotion, for the meltdown in the face of adversity. âYou will announce your engagement at the end of the week.â
âYes, Tower.â
âIf you so much as remotely try to sneak around with him, I will put him in the ground and bear the weight of that grief for eternity.âÂ
âYes, Tower.â
âKnow that I love you. We must make sacrifices for this family we wish not to. But you will make the sacrifice like I have so many times before. So will Soonyoung.âÂ
You stand, limbs shaky as you look at your father, the heat of your motherâs rage fueling your gaze. âYes, Tower.â
Sleep claws at you with greedy fingers, unwilling to give you up to the waking light of day. You groan, suspended in that moment of almost awake but achingly unaware. A brush of warm skin on your arm pulls you the rest of the way from heavy sleep, your thoughts sticky as they formulate and you open your eyes, squinting in the gray light of your room.Â
Squinting at the clock displayed on your nightstand, you realize itâs late morning. The tinted windows of your room keep out the sunlight, but a single panel has been adjusted to let some of the cloudy day in, a single shaft of gray spilling into your room like muddy water.Â
Warmth presses behind your back, the steady touch on your arm trailing up and down. For a second, you lean back into it, feeling your head thud against Soonyoungâs chest, his mouth pressing against the crown of your head. He drags his fingers up and down your arm absently, light as a feather. He smells like soap, a hint of his familiar vanilla and sandalwood.Â
âHave trouble sleeping?â the words are mumbled against you.Â
âHmm?â
âThereâs lines of crushed knockout on your nightstand, Baby.âÂ
You look at the nightstand. Sure enough, the white pills you crushed are dusted across the surface. The reality of why you used them slams into you so suddenly that you stiffen, muscles locking.
Soonyoung notices immediately, his touch stilling. âWhat?â
Finding the words is impossible. You donât know where to start, your fatherâs words make you dizzy. The sheets stick to your skin, Soonyoungâs warmth too hot to stand. You scramble from bed, kicking at the sheets and putting distance between you as you bolt toward the bathroom.Â
âHey,â he calls after you. You donât turn to look at him, the cool tile giving you goosebump as the lights flicker on. You close the door behind you firmly, pressing your back against it. Soonyoungâs knocks are immediate, his voice calling your name on the other side. âWhatâs wrong?âÂ
The use of your name sours your stomach. You lurch forward, diving for the toilet as the contents of your stomach empty. The bile burns, your eyes watering as you press against the cold porcelain, clinging to it for life.Â
Soonyoung opens the door, letting himself in as you heave again. Heâs quick to react, opening the medicine cabinet to remove an anti-nausea inhalent. He wordlessly pads over to you, crouching down to extend it toward you.Â
You avoid looking at him directly in the eye as you snatch it from him. His brows are pinched in concern, face swollen with what little sleep he got and mouth turned downward. Your stomach roils again but holds as you crack the inhalent and wave it under your nose, breathing in gently.Â
The stimulant makes your eyes water, but immediately the churning in your stomach subsides. You close your eyes for a moment, breathing in and out slowly, trying to regulate yourself. Soonyoung watches in silence, his hands opening and closing at his sides like he wants to reach out and touch you but doesnât.Â
When you open your eyes, there is so much love and concern on his face that you almost break right then and there. Instead, you clear your throat and straighten, tossing the medication in the trash.
âThanks, just hungover. I need to shower.â
He looks doubtful. âAlright.â
Soonyoung stands, heading to the shower. You clear your throat and he pauses, glancing at you over his shoulder. âAlone, please.âÂ
âWhatâs wrong?â
âNothing, I just want to shower.âÂ
He says your name again. Not Baby. Not any other derivative. Your name. âYou can talk to me.â
Your heart cracks. You panic. Your brain races for the only viable option. âI just want to take a fucking shower, Soonyoung.â You push yourself off the ground, scowling at him. He moves out of your way as you pass him, stunned to silence. âI donât need you crowding my space every five seconds.âÂ
Refusing to look at him as you hit the panel in the wall, you instead focus on the water that falls from the ceiling, a storm of heat and the smell of peppermint. You keep your back turned toward him, staring at the water as it heats, steam curling in tendrils where it hits the stone tiles.Â
âYou can go,â you say sharply.Â
âAlright.âÂ
The gentle click of the door when he leaves is barely audible over the hum of the shower. You let the rushing water lull you into a state of numbness, peeling your clothes off with unsteady, mechanical movements.Â
Hot water slicks off your shoulders. You close your eyes and hang your head, letting the feel of the peppering water sluice over your ears, eyes, nose, mouth. You let it blind your senses to nothing but the roar of water, blotting out everything else.Â
If I stay right now, you will never get me to leave.Â
You remember when Soonyoung whispered it against your skin just a few years ago, spoken carefully and clearly, a promise and a warning. He would never let you go. You had to let him go. Telling him what your father has asked of you - has threatened to take away from you - will only make Soonyoungâs feet dig in further.
For as long as youâve known him, Soonyoung has been a covetous creature. You remember the night at the club he antagonized you just to see that spark of want, just to prove to himself it was him you wanted. You remember the way he clung to you in the dark of your bedroom, the only person who could ever make him whole. Who could make him feel.Â
Your father sees Soonyoung as a loyal attack dog - but it isnât the Tower of the Choi Syndicate who holds Soonyoungâs collar. It never has been. Soonyoung has never asked your father how high.Â
Pressing your palms to your eyes, you start deep breathing exercises. In through your nose, out through your mouth. The shaking in your fingers begins to subside, the logic part of your brain turning on.Â
The threat on Soonyoungâs life is real. You saw the resolve in your fatherâs eye, the painful glint. He would hate to do it, but he would do it. Youâre entwined too deep into your familyâs affairs and business to vanish. There is nothing in the world you have thatâs your own, no assets that are not connected to them in some way.
And if you tell Soonyoung, heâll face the problem like he does everything that stands in his way: try to kill it.Â
For a split moment, your brain chases the thought like a mouse after cheese. Like a long math problem, you work out if itâs possible to commit patricide and get away with it. Your mother will never forgive you, but Seungcheol might. Your friends would - theyâre loyal to you, especially Jeonghan and Angel.Â
The older generation, though-Â
You toss aside the thought almost as quickly as you thought of it - not because you donât want to kill your father, but because it isnât possible. Not just like that. There are too many pieces on the chessboard, too many domino effects spreading out in every direction if you take that route.
No. There is only a single path for you, set in motion by a hand with more power than you.Â
And thereâs only one way you can move forward with Soonyoung.Â
Thereâs so much of your motherâs side of the family youâve inherited. Her side has always been associated with the phoenix, the burning immortality of their name and their strength, a blazing glory. Your maternal relatives have always been the rage and the fire that was needed for a Syndicate to advance, a good partnership for the Choiâs who were cold and steadfast.Â
What you need now is the winter of the mountain, not the rage of the phoenix. You need to be a Choi.Â
Steadfast is the mountain.Â
You love Soonyoung. You love him you love him you love him youlovehimyoulovehimyoulovehimYOULOVEHIMYOULOVEHIM-Â
Pressing your fist to your mouth, you bite down for one, blinding moment of untapped rage. You feel your skin break, taste iron and salt, feel pain bloom.Â
Steadfast is the mountain.Â
Then itâs gone. You drop your hand from your mouth. Open your eyes. Turn off the shower. The rage is gone, buried beneath a layer of newly formed ice. If there is anyone you can do this for, itâs Soonyoung. You love him. You will destroy him. But heâll be alive.Â
Soonyoung is sitting on your bed when you open the door. Heâs got a tablet in his hand, the holographic images displaying above the screen, haloing his face in blue light. There are circles under his eyes and his teeth worry at his bottom lip, which is chapped. Heâs shirtless, the compact planes of his body half shadowed by the single shaft of light filtering through a window.Â
He looks up at you but you ignore him, heading to your closet. The silence is brutal. You push through it, opening the closet doors to reveal a massive space nearly the same size of your bathroom. Track lights kick on, rows and rows of clothes by color greeting you. In the middle, there is an island counter, filled with drawers and biolocked jewelry safes.Â
Soft steps tell you Soonyoung is standing at the entrance of the closet. You still donât face him, walking over to your section of black clothes. You flick through them, eyes scanning. Black seems appropriate. It feels like death, afterall.Â
Soonyoungâs voice is soft as his late night kisses. âWhatâs going on?âÂ
âIâm marrying Kim Yijun.âÂ
A beat passes. Then another.Â
âIs that supposed to be a joke? Iâm not interested in pranks this morning.â
âItâs not a prank.â You pull out a black, silk dress. âThe Tower has asked this of me, and Iâll be doing it.âÂ
âWhat the fuck are you talking about?â
You continue, undeterred as you put the dress back and keep looking. âThe Kim family has agreed to the match ahead of the rising tensions with the Yong Syndicate and their new take on foreign allies. A united front of the old families will benefit our family-â
âYouâre not fucking marrying Kim Yijun.âÂ
âAll of the metrics weâve run for public opinion and potential city-wide reaction are favorable. The Tower needs his children to fall in line, and I intend to do so.â
Soonyoung storms toward you. You turn on your heel, holding a finger out to him, voice severe, âDonât come near me.âÂ
âWhy? Because you know youâll lose your resolve? Because the second I touch you, youâll drop whatever bravado this is and let me help you?â
Exactly that. He knows you inside and out. Sees through the front. It doesnât matter. You donât need him to believe you, you need him to obey.Â
He takes another step and you back up. âI will scream,â you threaten, venom in your voice. âI will scream and Seungcheol and Vernon are right down the hall. Whose side do you think theyâll take, with your reputation for violence?âÂ
âFuck you, they know Iâd never hurt you.â
You hear the waver in his voice. That tiny sliver of doubt, so small and tiny but there. They do know he would never hurt you, but Soonyoung isnât convinced theyâd believe him. It makes you sick, but you latch onto it, unspooling that tiny bit of hurt. âDo they, Soonyoung? I hear some of them call you a mad dog because you attack with no regard for anything. Do you really think they trust you entirely with me?â
Soonyoung is raging. His chest rising and falling, shaking his head back and forth as he tries to understand. Youâre rooted to the spot, muscles coiled, pulse thudding in your throat. âYou are not,â he growls. âMarrying Kim Yijun. You donât even want to, donât try to lie to me about your feelings or insult me thinking you can bait me. You love me. You are mine.âÂ
âI belong to the Choi family and itâs what my family needs from me. I will do my duty.â
âFuck your family!â His roar makes you flinch, briefly closing your eyes. His palm slams on the top of the countertop in front of him, sharp in the silence. âYou have a duty to me. I told you I would not fucking let you go. Youâre not doing it. Iâll fucking kill him, you think I wonât? Iâll murder every last one of them-âÂ
âYou donât tell me what to do, Kwon Soonyoung. I will do this, and you will obey.â He bristles, going rigid as your words land like a slap. âWhen I say jump, you say how high. Youâve always known that.âÂ
For a second, he cracks. The Soonyoung you first saw on your doorstep, crying and round-cheeked and ruddy returns. His lip trembles and the way he looks at you nearly melts your iron will. Youâre so close to collapsing, to laying it out before him, to risking it all.Â
âDonât do this to me.â His whisper is made of glass. Delicate. He presses his palm to his chest, right over his heart. Earnest. âI canât - you know I canât. I- please. I canât do this.âÂ
Licking your lips, you look him in the eyes. His eyes are your favorite. Dark. Stormy. Endless. They are lined with silver, panic rippling across the surface.Â
You lift your chin and push back your shoulders. âYou can and you will, because I told you to jump, Soonyoung. Now ask how high.âÂ
Sunlight warms the back of your neck, humidity clinging to your skin like a second layer. You take a deep breath, though the steamy air offers no relief. You snap open a silk fan, waving it in front of your face in hopes of chasing away some of the sweat, feeling the separation between skin and makeup the longer you sit in the wretched heat of the garden.Â
Itâs not even real sunlight or heat. You canât tell beyond the projection in the room, but you know that there are vents heating up the room and controls that make the air humid and sticky, making it feel like youâre sitting in a real garden outside somewhere lush.Â
Lin drones on and on about something. You tuned her out long ago, eyes flickering back and forth to your watch and the womenâs faces around you. None of them here are really your friend - not in the way Angel is, the way Wonwoo or Jeonghan are.Â
Yet youâre expected to be here, entertaining the upper echelon wives of the Choi and Kim Syndicates, boiling away in an imaginary garden while you sweat to death, dress clinging to your skin and thighs slippery in the seat as you adjust yourself, uncomfortable.Â
âItâs hot as a motherfucker,â a whispered voice comes from next to you. You look up to see the newly engaged heiress of Nexus Capital next to you, glaring behind the dark shade of her sunglasses as Lin continues rambling about something. âCouldnât she have made it less real?â
A smirk twitches on your lips. You havenât spoken to her much, but her recent engagement to Xu Minghao had secured the position the Choi Syndicate had been fighting for in the shipping yards and docks with the Yong family, elevating her family into the favored circle of your father.
Suddenly, you remember who had recommended that marriage in the first place. You remember the party, the pretty dress you wore, Soonyoungâs hand briefly on your waist as he kissed you goodbye for a meeting. You had no idea then that your throwaway comment about an arranged marriage to benefit your family would become your own nightmare under an hour later.
Grief is a funny thing. You never knew that you could feel grief for someone who isnât dead, yet sometimes you feel such an overwhelming amount of grief at the hole that Soonyoung has left behind that you canât breathe.Â
Throat dry, you reach for water, drinking eagerly. You feel a bead of water run down your face, but you ignore it in favor of trying to focus on not panicking.Â
Anxiety attacks are new for you. Though your entire life has been colored with stressful situations unique to growing up in a criminal Syndicate, you could never say that you were anxious before. At least not in the way that made the back of your neck too hot and the tips of your fingers buzz with the threat of a looming meltdown.Â
You ignore it. Itâs all you know how to do. The anxiety medication your therapist gave you doesn't work, and you canât crush a bunch of pills and inhale them anytime you feel like youâre about to get tunnel vision and spiral.Â
Well, you suppose you can, but youâre trying not to get into the habit.Â
Instead of acknowledging the way the panic lurks around your edges like a predator waiting to pounce, you listen to the dull conversation around you. Focus on the gossip that you donât care about, exactly, but know itâs good to have.Â
Since marrying into the Kim family, youâre not sure what your job is. With your family, your role as the face, the legacy and the representation of the Choi Syndicate had always been clear and obvious. Now, your husband sends you to stupid things like this with preening people that you donât like and makes you leave events early when heâs irritable.Â
Gossip is a weapon, though. So you gather it when you can, taking in bits of information and storing it for yourself. Rarely do you offer it to Yijun - not that he would take it - but Jeonghan finds the information you share useful. So does Angel, but thereâs rarely anything you know that she doesnât.Â
Just as your anxiety begins to fade, the source of it materializes.Â
At first, you think youâre seeing things when a door appears in the wall depicting an apple orchard and Soonyoung strolls out into the fake-sun. You blink dumbly, spine tingling as you realize that your mind is not playing tricks on you and it is him.Â
He sees you immediately. His dark eyes burn like embers, pinning you to the spot. His face remains motionless but you see his jaw tick, the only sign that he is immediately on edge when he sees you. Heâs dressed for work in an all black suit, required for the Swords of the Choi family.Â
Giggles breakout around the table as he approaches, the ladies around you all flushed cheeks and demure smiles. You feel the buzzing start in your hands again, this time worse. It goes up your arms, working its way to your chest as the anxiety increases tenfold, heart pounding.
Soonyoung bows. âI beg your pardon, ladies.âÂ
âMy goodness, Soonyoung,â Lin preens. âYou must be horribly hot in that suit, but you do look handsome.â
You fight the urge to snarl at her that the imitation of the garden isnât real and no amount of pretending will make it real. You even imagine reaching across the table and plunging her fish knife into her hand. Instead, you watch Soonyoung, your hummingbird heart fluttering.Â
He gives her a polite smile that doesnât reach his eyes. âIâll be alright. I apologize for interrupting, but the Tower of the Choi family has sent me to escort his daughter home.âÂ
âHome?âÂ
âThe Choi Estate.âÂ
He doesnât say what he means: the Kim Estate is not your home.Â
âAlright,â you say, voice reedy. Your hands are trembling as you slide your chair from the table, the metal legs grinding loudly against concrete. You flinch at the sound, hyper aware of every bead of sweat crawling down your spine, every beat of your heart that is too fast, too hard.
Static fills you as you mumble parting words to the women who watch you in confusion. At least, you think you mumble your goodbyes. Blood rushes in your ears as you take uneven steps toward Soonyoung, who turns on his heel and starts marching toward the apple orchard.Â
It feels like youâre in an echo chamber. Everything suddenly feels hollow and everything sounds as though youâre hearing it through a thin wall. Muted. Dull. He opens the door that you canât quite spot even this close, ushering you inside as your vision starts tunneling to a narrow point, everything else blurry and distorted.Â
No. No no no no no.Â
Lifting your hands, you glance down at them to see them trembling, opening and closing your fists in an attempt to stop the buzzing feeling, as though you could will it away. You think Soonyoung says something but you canât hear him over the roar of panic that grips you and tears you sideways.
Instead of following him down the hall, you lurch toward a different hall, rushing toward the powder room. It feels like the walls are narrowing as you throw open the door, breath coming out in pants. Everything feels tight and compact, crushing smaller still.Â
Stumbling to the sink you try to turn the faucet on. Once. Twice. Cold water spits from the faucet and you gasp, leaning down over the sink to splash freezing water into your face. It doesnât have the desired effect, the water is not cool enough to shock you out of your panic.Â
Soonyoung speaks behind you. You canât hear him, the grip of your anxiety so strong that you grab the edges of the sink to keep you up right. Youâre heaving now, heart rattling so hard you think that maybe youâre having a heart attack instead.Â
A firm grip wretches your attention from the porcelain sink to the mirror, where you see your dripping reflection, eyes blown like saucers. Soonyoung is standing behind you, a hand on your bicep, squeezing. His face is no longer a mask of indifference, but one of confusion.Â
His mouth moves and you shake your head, squeezing your eyes shut. âI canât,â you gasp, ragged. âI donât understand what youâre saying.âÂ
Then, he does something that catches you entirely off guard. You watch in slow motion as he steps back and removes the gun from the holster underneath his suit jacket. You hear the safety on the gun click and the hum as the weapon charges, ready to fire rounds of plasma if he squeezes the trigger.Â
And then he points the gun at your head, the lights on it flipping from blue to red, signaling itâs ready to kill.Â
The world stops. The panic vanishes for a split second, replaced with utter shock as you stare at him in the mirror.Â
âWhat the fuck are you doing?â you demand, voice stronger than you expect.Â
Soonyoung is ten levels of crazy, but heâs never pointed a gun at you before. You stare at him, open-mouthed and wondering if heâll do it. If he could pull the trigger. Heâd told you a hundred times when you were together that he would never let you go and it was always with clarity that you understood what he meant: itâs me or no one.Â
With stark clarity, you realize thereâs no reason for Soonyoung not to pull the trigger. He doesnât care much about the value of his own life from what you can glean over the last two years, and he doesnât really seem to care about yours.Â
Not that he should. You promised to make him feel human and you did. Then you took it away from him, leaving him adrift in a vast ocean of nothing alone and untethered.Â
No, you donât think you inspire Soonyoung to feel human anymore. If anything, you probably make him want to be the worst version of himself.Â
Soonyoungâs voice holds no emotion when he asks, âAre you with me?â
âWhy are you pointing a gun at me?âÂ
âBreathe,â he says instead. He doesnât lower the weapon, stormy eyes focused on yours. âBreathe,â he repeats. âSlowly, maybe.âÂ
âSoonyoung, you are holding a gun at me, what do you mean breathe?âÂ
âWhat do you mean what do I mean? I mean what I fucking said. Breathe normally.â
âLower the gun!â He does. âWhat the fuck?â
He breaks eye contact, sliding the weapon back into his suit jacket. He turns away from you as though he didnât have you at gunpoint a second ago. âYou were having a panic attack. Sometimes a shock to the system stalls it. Your breathing has slowed down now. And youâre not panicking.âÂ
A beat of silence passes. Then, âSo you leveled a gun at my head?âÂ
âIt worked. Letâs go.â
âAre you fucking crazy?â
âYes. Now letâs go. Youâre needed at the Choi Estate.â
âWhy?âÂ
âDo I look like I have all the answers? I just do what Iâm told. When a Choi says jump, remember?â
You visibly flinch as his words land. Soonyoung doesnât wait for you to gather yourself, spinning on his heel and exiting the powder room to stride through the halls. Tightness gathers in your chest, left over from your anxiety attack.Â
Pressing your hands against your dress to wipe the sweat from them, you chase after Soonyoung. Heâs already by the apartmentâs elevator, jamming his finger into the button. He doesnât look at you as he waits, content to stare at the metal door.Â
You donât know where else to look - you want to look anywhere but him. Turning around, you fixate on the floor to ceiling windows. Itâs still morning outside, but itâs hard to tell with the way the clouds block out the view, turning everything to mist.Â
This high up in the city is reserved for the elite. You canât imagine why - thereâs nothing to look at but clouds, clouds, and more clouds. Itâs what makes them have virtual reality rooms in the first place, trying to recreate the experience that they might have if they were wealthy enough to own land.Â
The sound of the elevator arriving makes you flinch. Soonyoung ignores you, getting in and leaning against the wall as he hits a button to go to the parking garage. You scramble in after him, a little breathless as the doors close just behind you.Â
Immediately you start shooting down several floors. He glares at the wall, unseeing and unfeeling. You swallow thickly, watching the numbers decrease until youâre at Linâs private parking garage. Soonyoung is out of the elevator before it finishes opening all the way, storming toward the car heâs left running idle.Â
Normally someone would open a car door for you. Instead, Soonyoung gets in the driverâs seat and slams the door shut. You reach for the handle of the passenger seat and pause. Normally you sit in the back when being driven somewhere, itâs always been like that. But this is Soonyoung and youâve always been beside him in the car, his equal.Â
A muffled get in the fucking car reaches you. Deciding that sitting next to him is too personal, you open the back seat and slide in. Youâve barely shut the door when he punches the gas, slamming you into the back of the seat as he goes.Â
âWould you stop being an asshole?â you seethe, ripping the seatbelt from next to you to buckle in. Your hands are still shaking and it takes a moment for the clasp to click.
Instead of answering, you hear the way the car accelerates under his foot. Scowling, you look out the window. He speeds into the lift that brings the car down to the ground floor. Lights blur by as the lift drops at lurching speed, your stomach in your throat. You hate coming to apartments for this reason, the feeling of having to freefall to leave never growing on you.Â
Itâs raining when the lift opens to the wet street. Soonyoung peels out on the pavement, tires spinning until they gain traction and the car slides onto the road, narrowly missing someone. You slam against the seatbelt, cursing and clinging onto the door as he pushes the gas down, engine roaring.
âAre you trying to kill us?â
Soonyoung doesnât answer you. You think it might be because heâs not explicitly trying to kill the two of you, but he doesnât care if he does. You try not to think about it so much as he powers through the streets of the Upper City, driving past towering businesses, luxury districts with entertainment and bars and apartment buildings.Â
The road starts to incline and you hit a line of trees. The city vanishes behind you as Soonyoung drives the car up the winding road, leaving a world of metal and lights for greenery and earth. The contrast between the cities below and the Estates above is stark, especially as he driveâs higher up the mountain, snatches of the city below visible.Â
âWhy did you come to get me?â you ask, flicking your gaze to the rearview mirror to watch him. Soonyoung keeps his eyes on the road, but you see his mouth tighten. âLast I checked youâre not an errand boy.â
âSo what, you check on me?â
âItâs a figure of speech, you know what I mean.â
âThe Tower personally requested I come get you.âÂ
That gives you pause. Soonyoungâs face reveals nothing as he turns on the street that will inevitably lead to the massive metal wall that blocks off the world from the Choi Estate. There can only be a single reason why Soonyoung was sent to fetch you when usually your husbandâs staff would do so.
âWhatâs happened?âÂ
Soonyoung doesnât answer your question. Instead, he rolls the window down at the guard house to show his face. The security team recognizes him immediately, waving him through as the gate begins to slide open to reveal lush, green jungle.Â
Gravel crunches underneath the car tires as he drives through the winding foliage on Choi grounds. Your great-great-grandfather had built the Choi compound, the first of the few elite houses on the mountain. He thought it was important to keep the plant life and sprawling greenery to conserve, but you knew it was really about power. Symbolism. Greenery didnât really exist in the city, and this much space and plantlife meant wealth.Â
The sprawling estate you grew up in reveals itself. Multiple buildings dot the property, making it more a family compound than an estate. Now that Seungcheol is old enough, heâs moved out of the main house and into one of the smaller homes, occupying the space with his own men and staff. Still, heâs just a brief stroll away from your childhood home.
Home. Even two years under a Kim family banner hasnât erased the feeling of home for you. There is nothing in the house you share with Yijun that makes it feel like you. It is as devoid of love as your marriage, merely a placeholder for you to sleep, eat, and occasionally, try to produce an heir.Â
Soonyoung pulls up to the long building that serves as a garage, hitting a button on the carâs screen to open one of the bays. He pulls in slowly, the outside world fading as the garage door shuts behind the car, dousing it in darkness until the neon lights above flicker on.Â
Without a word, he powers off the vehicle and gets out. Taking a deep breath, you square your shoulders and get out of the car. He doesnât wait for you - even shuts the door as he enters the main house so youâre forced to lug it open.Â
Heâs already opening the door to the main house a few yards away, forcing you again to haphazardly navigate gravel in your heels as you give chase. Youâre sweating and irritated by the time youâre up the steps and pushing through the front door, a nasty quip on your lips ready until you see your aunt coming down the stairs.Â
âOh thank goodness,â she says, seeing you. She looks older than you remember, the lines of her face deep and the hair at her temples gray. âCome along.â
âWhatâs going on?â you ask, uncertain as you step into the foyer and let her take your arm.Â
She scowls. âDid that useless boy not tell you? Your mother suffered a heart attack this morning. Sheâs with Dr. Ymir in the medical wing.â
Your heart thuds to a stop as you wheel around to look over your shoulder at Soonyoung. His gaze is stormy but his face gives away nothing as he turns to leave the way he came, slamming the front door and vanishing down the steps to leave you alone.Â
âNo,â you mumble as your aunt pulls you down the hall. âHe didnât tell me.âÂ
Because thatâs how much Soonyoung hates you. Hate isnât even the right word, you think. It is something far deeper and far more sinister, fueled only by taking away something that he valued more than anything else in the world and forcing him to live with it.Â
I deserve this, you think as the door to one of the private medical rooms opens, a clinical smell hitting you in the face. I deserve everything that happens to me.Â
I deserve this. Itâs all you can think of as you watch the black casket lower into the ground. Seungcheol stands beside you, his hands linked in front of him. You want to reach out and take his hand in yours, but you donât want him to look weak. Donât want others to see him crack like you know he will if you comfort him.Â
Instead, you comfort yourself as best you can, which isnât saying much. Youâve never been good at dealing with your feelings, too much of your motherâs blood running through you. It was your fatherâs least favorite trait of yours and perhaps Soonyoungâs favorite.
Soonyoung, who has always been your emotional tether and outlet. Youâre not accustomed to dealing with grief alone, and the pull of it feels like an undertow threatening to drag you under and drown you.Â
Someone shifts behind you, close enough that you feel Yijun next to you stiffen. You turn to look over your shoulder, blinking in surprise as you tilt your head up to see Soonyoung. He doesnât look at you, dark eyes fixed forward and jaw flexing tightly. Heâs standing closer than is necessary, as shown by your husbandâs scoff.Â
Soonyoung doesnât move, though. He remains nearly pressed against your back, so close that you can smell vanilla and sandalwood. Turning away from him, you feel your shoulders relax. He ignores you, but heâs there, a stoic guardian thatâs just out of reach.
The Tower of the Choi Syndicate is too lost in his grief to notice or care about Soonyoungâs proximity to you. Your brother couldnât care less, barely realizing that his brother by choice is an inch away from him. But you know Soonyoung is there and thatâs all that matters.Â
The grief lessens, turning back from churning waters to gentle, lapping waves.
âYour brother doesnât respect me,â Yijun asserts. You look at him in the bathroom mirror. Heâs standing behind you in the closet, taking out glinting cufflinks to replace them in the countertop in the middle of the aisles of clothes. âYou should work on that.â
âSeungcheol hardly takes what I say to heart.â
Yijun snorts, detecting the lie before you can even get it out. Seungcheol very much values your insight and opinion far more than heâs interested in Yijunâs. Heâs made it clear at multiple parties and events now, often asking you how business is and how the shared Kim-Choi accounts are doing, despite not having anything to do with them.Â
Seungcheol hates your role within the Kim family. On more than one occasion heâs recommended Yijun make use of you somewhere in the family business, to make you the head of operation somewhere so that your schooling and experience werenât going to waste. Yijun asserted that your social skills were being put to perfect use, entertaining the wives of his associates and serving as the perfect host when his business colleagues and friends were over.Â
âHeâs going to be leading the family soon,â Yijun sighs. âIt would be better for us if he saw me as a real ally.â
âHe does see you as an ally. Youâre married to his sister.â
âExactly, so you should remind him that Iâm family.â It doesnât sound like a threat, but it also doesnât sound like a request. Sighing, you shut the drawer in the counter forcefully. It draws his attention, gaze darkening. âDonât you want your brother to respect your husband?â
No, you think. You donât respect your husband, so why should Seungcheol?
Instead, you sigh. âOf course, Yi.â He doesnât soften at the nickname. âIâll talk to him, alright? Heâs got a lot going on. And donât talk about my fatherâs health that way.â
âI didnât say anything about his health.â
âPlease,â you snort. âI know what you meant about Cheol taking over soon.âÂ
Yijun had been talking about Seungcheol more and more. Youâve watched with a sour taste in your mouth as your husband tries to earn your brotherâs attention and trust, flashing what he thinks Seungcheol cares about in his face, telling him about the new car he acquired, or the historical art piece you purchased at an auction, and the new apartment building heâs constructing.Â
Seungcheol doesnât give a fuck about any of that. The Choi family never has. Your ancestors didnât make a name for themselves and carve it on the mountain they built their home on by showing off their wealth and what it could do for them. They did it by earning it, and by remaining steadfast and intelligent. Political.Â
Yijun understands none of that. As the eldest son of his family, itâs a shame. The real world of the Syndicates is lost on him. He has enough business acumen to run companies under his fatherâs careful tutelage and instruction, but he doesnât have the social savvy for it, the right drive.Â
His brother does. You think of Kim Minchan and nearly shiver. The middle child of the Kim family has more than enough understanding of the way that things work, but the ocean of blood behind him is enough for you to prefer Yijun leading the Kim Syndicate any day.Â
âIâm just saying,â Yijun grunts, flicking off the lights in the closet. âYour brother has all the reason in the world to respect me and he doesnât.â He looks at you, face hardening. âDo you tell him not to? Is that what it is? His baby sister tells him how useless her husband is?âÂ
Danger is in the air. Yijun wonât lay a hand on you, but it doesnât make this dance any less stressful. You turn away from the mirror, looking at him fully. Heâs not terrible to look at - he has a sharp jaw and a broad nose and a pleasant shaped mouth. Heâs handsome, even.Â
Heâs not Kwon Soonyoung.Â
Swallowing away the thought, you reach up to put your hands on his chest, placating. âI wouldnât do that,â you assure him, softening your voice. You hate the sound of your voice, hate the way you pitch it low and gentle. âYouâre a reflection of me too. I would never let my brother think any of those things about my husband.âÂ
Yijun swats your hands away, making you grit your teeth. âDonât act like a whore. Just - tell your brother. I should be in his inner circle by now. Make it happen.âÂ
As Yijun leaves the bathroom, the urge to grab him by his collar and yank him back in to smash his head on the counter almost wins. You stare at him until he vanishes in the bedroom, your rage a live, sentient thing. You feel it crawl beneath your skin, slithering and clawing and biting and begging to be let out.Â
Steady is the mountain. You take that fire and shove it down. Years of instinct of reacting with your motherâs temper peter out slowly. Itâs a shame - youâre the last woman left from her side of the family, the only one who can carry the fire of the phoenix.Â
You glare at the bedroom. Somewhere, Yijun lurks, getting into bed. Oh how the shadows of the weak choke out the fire of the strong.Â
If killing Yijun wouldnât risk everything, youâd have done it already. That first month spent with him where you realized this would not only be a loveless marriage, but a hateful one had almost driven you to it. The Choi Syndicate could surely survive a war with the Kim Syndicate - you had better assets, stronger loyalties, and more money.Â
But if the Kim family turned to the Yong familyâŠÂ
Avoiding unification of the Kim and Yong families is why you were married to Kim Yijun in the first place. To murder him now would mean Syndicate war, and despite the fact that every moment with him is hateful and poisonous, youâre too nervous to put your family at risk.Â
Especially with your fatherâs failing health, as Yijun had pointed out.Â
Syndicate war isnât the only thing keeping you from stabbing Kim Yijun until you canât feel anything anymore. Minchanâs shadow of a presence lingers over your thoughts, one of the few threats you truly fear. Any harm to his brother would elevate Minchan to a position where he could only wield his power more.Â
And heâd hunt you like a bloodhound. Youâre unsure if there is any corner of the world he would leave unturned if you killed his brother, no matter how much it would benefit him if Yijun keeled over tomorrow.Â
Inside your bedroom is dark. It doesnât feel like your bedroom at all. Thereâs nothing homey about it, no possession or unique decor, no pictures. You wouldnât sleep in here at all if Yijun didnât make you, insisting that he couldnât trust any of the house staff not to tell your father you werenât sleeping in the same room.Â
Your father doesnât care. He stopped caring about anything the day you put your mother into the dirt. Even if he hadnât, as long as your relationship looked functional to whom it mattered, it mattered little to him if you slept in the same room or if you even liked Kim Yijun.
Heâd made that very clear the day he tore away your future with Soonyoung.Â
Yijun is already snoring when you climb into bed. You grind your teeth, reaching to pull open the nightstand for noise cancelling earbuds and sleep medication. The medication isnât as strong as the crushed up knockout you might have used previously, but it helps take the edge off without making you vulnerable to attack.Â
Which is something you still worry about.Â
Setting your phone on silent, you settle in for sleep. It takes a long time, but you finally drift away to thinking about smothering the man next to you in his sleep.Â
Something wakes you. Blinking sleep from your eyes, you sit up in bed and look around the room. Itâs dark, but you can see the barely-there outlines of the furniture in your bedroom. Next to you, Yijun is gone. You can feel the lack of presence there more than you can see it, reaching your hand over to confirm the bed is cold and that heâs not been there for a while.Â
You reach for the phone on your nightstand but canât find it. Frowning, you press your hand on the cool marble, sweeping back and forth to no avail. You lean further, finger finding the button to the light function on the stand and press down.Â
Dim, lavender light halos the top of the nightstand. Your phone is nowhere in sight. Itâs just your jewelry dish, a decanter for water, and your sleep medication. Youâre pretty sure that you put your phone face down before you went to bed, but you canât be sure.Â
Pulling open the nightstand drawer only makes the back of your neck sweat. Your phone isnât there, but neither is the gun you keep in the top drawer. Both you and Yijun sleep armed, despite having armed guards on the premises at all times.Â
Snapping the drawer shut, you roll to the other side of the bed and pull his open. A book, a watch, some pill bottles and a pack of cigarettes fill the drawer. No gun.Â
The back of your neck tingles. You rip the sheets off of you, heading to the bedroom door. The house is mostly dark when you open it, the entire second floor dim. Leaning over the banister, you can see a shaft of light falling across the room, perhaps coming from the kitchen.Â
Quietly, you stalk toward the top of the stairwell, trying to reduce noise as you creep down. A high pitched whine rings in your ears, heart thundering. You have no idea why youâre so afraid all of the sudden, especially in your own house, but your instincts tell you to be alert and quiet.Â
At the foot of the stairs, you confirm the light is coming from the kitchen. Itâs not uncommon for people to be in the house in the middle of the night. Official Syndicate business happens at any time, and often goes into the early hours of morning.Â
Tonight, itâs not busy. Before youâd gone upstairs to bed, youâd noted that it was a skeleton crew security team for the night, just a few of them at the gate house and walking the premises while you and Yijun returned upstairs for the evening alone.Â
Creeping toward the hallway, you pause when you hear voices. You identify Yijunâs voice right away, holding your breath and straining your hearing as he says, âWhat do you want me to do here?âÂ
âKeep her contained. Make sure no one from her family can reach her.â
âI already took her phone and her gun.â
Your stomach drops. âGood.â Thatâs Minchanâs voice, you realize, dread growing tenfold. âThe second she finds out the Tower has fallen, sheâll try to run or her brother will try to get her.â
âOr that psycho fuck,â Yijun mutters.Â
âYouâd be lucky if it was Seungcheol who came to get her. If Kwon Soonyoung comes looking, call me immediately. Weâll make our move in two hours. Weâve got the biggest team outside the Choi estate ready to go in and weâve got men and women stationed at all the key points.â
âSo Iâm just supposed to sit here and babysit my wife?â
âYes.â Minchanâs tone is nonnegotiable. âWeâll leave the guards at the gatehouse but we canât spare anyone else. This kind of assault requires everyone. The Yong family will take care of the Pearl District and the Salt.âÂ
Yijun hesitates. âWhat about the Yoon family? Are they all accounted for?âÂ
âYes. I have a team on the crazy one - what do they call her?â
âAngel, I think.â
Minchan laughs. âDemon is more fitting. Stay here. Stay by your phone. Weâll call thirty minutes before we give the signal to link everyone on comms. We do this right, and the Choi Syndicate is gone.âÂ
Panic presses in for a moment. Your heart hammers. Your hands shake. Bile churns your stomach. It feels like you canât get enough air, the pieces of what they're talking about falling into place.
The Tower has fallen.
Your father is dead, and in the wake of the crushing blow, the Kim family intends to strike at yours alongside the Yong family. The realization lands like a blow, immediately slapping you out of your panic.Â
Fear turns to rage. Rage turns to ice. You are fire, you are the mountain.Â
Steadfast is the mountain, but the fire does burn.Â
As quietly as you can, you creep up the stairs. You keep turning over your shoulder to ensure Minchan doesnât leave the kitchen and catch you creeping back toward your bedroom. When you hit the second floor landing, you all but sprint to your room, gears turning.Â
Yijun took your phone and intends to keep you locked in the house until they finish their plan. From their discussion, you know they intend to mobilize within two hours, targeting important members of the Choi Syndicate across the city with the help of the Yong family.Â
It means you have only a few minutes to warn your family to respond, to prepare and to fight back or strike first. Which is hard to do without a phone, but your husband doesnât know you nearly as well as he thinks.
Door closed behind you, you flip the lock on the bedroom door and dash for the closet. The lights above come to life, bathing you in ghoulish, grey light. You dive to the floor toward your shelf holding all of your shoes, the carpet burns nothing compared to the pain starting to bloom behind your sternum where your grief builds slowly under your anger.Â
Your father is dead. The Kims are going to turn on you anyway. Your marriage to Kim Yijun to secure alliances against the Yong family was for nothing.
Youâve endured for nothing.Â
Snatching a pair of boots, you swallow down the bile again. You will not break now, not when there are more important things than the time youâve wasted withering away in this cold home. Shoving your hand inside the boot, you come into contact with what you were looking for. Your hand closes around the device, yanking it out and powering it on.Â
The screen flashes to life. You press one and hold, hearing the buzz on the phone as it begins to ring. You cradle the phone against your shoulder and ear, nearly sick with the adrenaline that is pounding through you, your vision blurring, hands shaking.Â
You grab another shoe, this time reaching inside carefully instead of shoving your hand in. The smooth, bone handle of a knife meets your hand and you wrap your fingers around it firmly, pulling it out.Â
Soonyoung answers on the fourth ring. âWhere are you?âÂ
âThe Kim family has turned on the Chois. Theyâre mobilizing for a full scale attack in roughly two hours. The Yong family is helping them. Theyâre at the estate and all over the city - anyone who is important to us regardless of position will need to be warned. The Yong family is handling the Pearl District and the Salt.âÂ
âHow many men are at Yijunâs estate?â You can hear him moving on the other side of the line, something rustling. Perhaps clothes as he gets dressed. âAre you armed?âÂ
âThere are men at the guard house and one walking the perimeter. Itâs just me and Yijun inside, I think Minchan is leaving. Iâve got a knife.âÂ
âWhere are you in the house?âÂ
âBedroom, second landing to the right and all the way at the end of the hall. There are windows but they donât open.âÂ
âListen to me,â Soonyoung says, voice like ice. âThe second we start moving into position to accept the assault, theyâll know something is off. When that happens, Yijun is going to try to kill you, do you understand?â When you say nothing, he asks again, voice louder. âDo you understand?âÂ
âYes.â
âI need you to fight back. Either kill him or hold him off until Iâm there.âÂ
âYou need to warn-â
âDonât worry about the fucking Syndicate! Weâll be fine. Youâve given us more than enough time. I need you to be entirely focused on yourself.â
You take a deep breath, letting it out shakily. âOkay.â
âDo you have frostbyte?â
âMaybe? Yijun might have it in the nightstand.â
âTake some. Not enough to fuck you up, but enough to pump that adrenaline and make your head clear. I will be there in thirty minutes.âÂ
âOkay.âÂ
You squeeze the phone, unwilling to hang up. It doesnât matter that you havenât heard his voice in months. It doesnât matter that he hates you, it doesnât matter that you know whatever used to be between you is broken and itâs entirely your fault. You just⊠donât want to hang up.Â
âHey.â Soonyoungâs voice is soft, drawing you from your trembling spiral. âDo what I said. Do the frostbyte and kill him if you have to. I have to go.â
âOkay.â
âIâll see you in thirty minutes.â Soonyoung pauses, the silence heavy on the line. âI love you.âÂ
Nothing breaks you like those words, whispered but firm, whispered in case you die before he gets there. He doesnât have to say thatâs why heâs saying it - you know. You know the chance of him not getting there fast enough is likely and real. He does too, but instead of telling you, he gives you this.Â
You whisper back, âI love you.âÂ
Soonyoung hangs up the phone and you fight a sob. You bring the knife up to your hand, pressing your pointer finger down on the tip. The sting is immediate, making you his in pain as blood beads on the tip of your finger, red and garish in the closet lighting.Â
The sting grounds you enough to push yourself from the floor, following Soonyoungâs directions to Yijunâs nightstand. You yank it open, rattling around the contents until you find the bag of frostbyte you were hoping was there. Yijun uses it the nights he attempts to put an heir in you, numbing himself the way you never did, taking your punishment for what youâd done to Soonyoung raw.
Not enough to fuck me up, you think, untwisting the bag and shaking. Just enough to make it easier.Â
Dipping the tip of your knife into the bag, you pull out a small lump of the glittering drug. You try not to think about that night at the club all those years ago, when you and Soonyoung were still dancing around one anotherâs feelings, doing anything you could to get a reaction out of one another.Â
You take a sharp breath in. The drug hits your nasal passage and it burns, your eyes smarting as you tilt your head up, cursing and blinking away the tears. It hits the back of your throat, bitter and awful as you cough a little, trying to wait for it to clear your nasal passage.
When the burning subsides a little, you do it again. Itâs less harsh than the first bump but still just as awful, making you wonder how the fuck you did this on the weekend with your friends as a teenager. Tossing the back on the nightstand, you stand waiting, closing your eyes and trying to do deep breathing exercises your therapist taught you to calm down.Â
Frostbyte works fast. It hits your bloodstream and an electric calm comes over you. Everything comes into sharper focus, the adrenaline pumping as your simmering rage turns to a boil, ready to kick the fucking door down and hunt down Yijun yourself.
Nerves fade away to the background of your mind. You walk toward the door, waiting to the side so when Yijun ultimately kicks it down, youâre ready.Â
Ten minutes pass. The entire time your ears are ringing, heart thundering in your chest. You think the frostbyte was a good idea - if you had to wait in silence like this without it, you would have gone crazy by now. Even with the drug, fear nips at your ankles, a hound ever on your tail.Â
Yijunâs footsteps thunder up the stairs. Your heart lurches and you inch away from the door, readying yourself. He storms down the hall, fury in each step until he gets to the door and turns the handle. It doesnât move. He tries a few more times, shaking the door.Â
His roar on the other side of the door is loud and feral, making you grin as he thrashes against the door, cursing and screaming at you. The door holds, rattling in place as he slams what you think is his shoulder into it multiple times.Â
The bombardment pauses for a second and then restarts ten times stronger. This time, you recognize that itâs his foot slamming into the side of the door. You realize heâs kicking where the door is latched, trying to break it open instead of kicking through it.Â
A small crack sounds. You take a breath, readying yourself as you hear another snap go through the door, now rattling loose in its frame. He kicks hard again and the door blows open, nearly smacking you as it does. You roll away from it on the wall, keeping close as Yijun barrels past you, swinging his head from left to right as he looks for you.
Itâs your only chance to get the jump on him. You slide from the dark, heart hammering. Youâve never stabbed anyone before, but youâve practiced. You drive the knife upward, intending to puncture his kidneys. Yijun twists a little to the side, sensing your presence as the knife plunges into his side.Â
Yijun screams. Your satisfaction only lasts a second before he throws his elbow backward, catching you in the nose. Pain explodes in your face, blinding you as your eyes water and you stumble backward hands shooting to your face.Â
Removing the knife from his side, Yijun screams at you, spit flying as he comes at you. Through tears and warm blood rushing from your nose, you reach for anything to use as a weapon. Your hand closes on the ceramic artwork on the dresser and you launch it at him, hitting him hard in the face.Â
The ceramic shatters and he drops the knife. You dive for it but he grabs you by the hair, ripping you upward and backward like a ragdoll. You lose your footing, screaming as he tightens his fist in your hair and drags you toward the bed, tossing you there.Â
With a feral shout, you kick your foot forward, catching him in the lower gut. He grunts but wraps his hand around your ankle, yanking you back off the bed onto the floor, where the knife lays. You reach for it, seething, your hands managing to close around it just as he pivots, foot landing against your ribcage.Â
Again, pain explodes inside of you. With the frostbyte, you barely recognize it, grabbing the knife and stabbing him in the calf. He shrieks and collapses to a knee, reaching for the knife. This time you rip it back out, nearly losing your grip on the bone handle, fingers slippery with blood.Â
You stab him again, this time in the thigh. His knee presses into your stomach, crushing you and forcing air from your lungs. You ignore the pain, stabbing him again and again in the thigh until he falls backward off of you, muscles malfunctioning, tendons give away.Â
Yijun kicks out at you with his good leg but youâre already moving, ignoring the way your body is screaming in utter agony, every part of you throbbing and begging you to give up.Â
You donât. You scramble on top of him. His hands shoot up to your throat but you spit at him, a spray of blood blinding him and making his grip loosen momentarily. Itâs enough to bring the knife down home again, this time directly in the juncture between his neck and shoulder.Â
For a second, he fights back. You hear the wet gasp and he thrashes, but you stab him again. And again and again and again and again -
You think about all of the times that you were forced to submit to him.Â
And again and again and again -Â
The way he heaved himself on top of you, trying to force a child into you so he could be done with you, the way youâd wish it had been Soonyoung instead.Â
And again and again and again -Â
The way Soonyoungâs face broke that morning, begging you not to do this to him.Â
And again and again and again -
All for the Kim family to turn on the Choiâs anyway, wasting the entire time youâve spent under lock and key, doing Yijunâs bidding while Soonyoung hated you. Loathed you. Wish you never happened to him.Â
Again and AGAINANDAGAINANDAGAINAND-Â
Yijun isnât moving under you. Your hand is warm and wet, the knife becoming slippery as you let it go. It clatters to the floor and you sit backward on his knees. Heâs unmoving as you heave, sucking down air that tastes like iron and salt.Â
Sweat slicks the back of your neck and down your spine. Somewhere in the house, thereâs a crashing noise. You leap for the knife, rolling off of Yijunâs mutilated body toward the door, positioning yourself in a defensive position as feet thunder up the stairs.Â
You bare your teeth, knowing this is it. Knowing Soonyoung hasnât come quickly enough but it doesnât matter, because you warned them and they are safe. Your penance for destroying him has been paid in half, though never full, and -
Soonyoung appears in the doorway. He looks like an angel from hell, wreathed in shallow light that comes from the first floor, his silver hair stained with blood. Heâs in black trousers and a short-sleeve shirt with his favorite band on it - one of his sleep shirts.Â
For less than a second, he stares at you. Then, Soonyoung dives at you, dropping the gun in his head and grabbing you. You hadnât realized that youâd sunk to your knees, looking up at him as he grabs your face, turning you this way and that. Heâs asking you a question but you canât understand him, dizzy and confused and in so much pain that the edge of your vision wavers.Â
âBaby,â Soonyoung begs, his voice warped and echoey. âHey, I need you to answer me. Where are you bleeding?âÂ
âSâmostly his,â you answer, feeling how heavy your tongue is. Your thoughts are sticky and slow. Concussed, you think. âMaybe broke my nose.âÂ
Soonyoungâs thumb brushes gently across your cheek, smearing blood. âCan you walk if I help you?â You think about it. Shake your head. âOkay. Iâm going to lift you up, alright? Tell me where it hurts so I donât hurt you, Baby.âÂ
âRibs.âÂ
âLeft or right?âÂ
You pause, breathing in and feeling the pain bloom. âRight.âÂ
âOkay, tell me if I hurt you, okay? Weâre going to take you home.â
âThank you.â Soonyoung hesitates at your tone, looking at you. His eyes are vulnerable and open, more raw than you have seen them since you were kids. âYou didnât have to come get me.âÂ
He stares and stares at you. The world fades a little and Soonyoung lifts you toward him. âOf course I did,â he murmurs, so soft you barely hear what heâs saying. âWhen you say jump, remember?â
âWhere's this?â You mumble, looking out the window at a small home behind high gates.
Soonyoung has been driving for an hour and a half, his silence nearly unbearable as you both left the city. You donât ask about where youâre going or if everyone is okay - you donât think you can stomach the answers right now. Not while in the car.Â
Rain mists through the window as Soonyoung rolls it down to punch in a code in front of the gate. It flashes green and the metal starts to roll open, revealing a large but modest house - at least by Syndicate standards. He drives through, gravel crunching beneath the tires.Â
âSafe House. Very few people know it exists.âÂ
âAre we in Levin?â He nods his head. Youâve never been to the small town, but you know itâs mostly a vacation village on the coast. âWho does this place belong to?âÂ
âMe.â You look at him, surprised. âI bought it when you⊠got engaged.âÂ
Itâs like a stone sinking to the bottom of your stomach. You donât have to ask why. It was his failsafe for you, a way to get you away from Yijun if you had just asked.Â
You should have asked. Should have just thrown it away and called him, should have begged him from your knees-Â
Soonyoung turns the car off and opens the door. You open yours, rain pattering against your red skin. He rushes to help you out of the car, hands hovering around you, unsure where to touch. It makes you want to sob. You want him to touch you anywhere - everywhere.Â
Instead, he leads you to the house, a hand wrapped firmly around your forearm to keep you upright and steady as you walk up the steps.Â
A porch light flickers on. You cringe away from the brightness, squinting through your fingers as the door opens to reveal Vernon standing on the other side. His eyes flicker between the two of you and he nods, stepping to the side to let you in.Â
Warmth blankets you as Soonyoung shuts the door. Youâre standing in a small entryway with a staircase to the right leading to the second floor. Straight on, the lights are on, revealing a sliver of the living room. You can hear voices pause as they hear the door shut.Â
Angel materializes in the doorway, her hair damp. Sheâs dressed down like she recently showered, her eyes on you as she heaves a sigh of relief. âItâs Hoshi and Baby,â she calls over her shoulder, coming forward.Â
Soonyoung nudges you toward Angel gently. âTake her to shower.âÂ
âYeah of course.âÂ
âWhereâs Seungcheol?â You ask, turning to look at Soonyoung, who is already looking at his phone, holoscreen lighting up his face.Â
âOn his way. The main crew is safe.â He hesitates. âWe lost Lan, Old Man Vero and Yoon Minji.âÂ
Your heart seizes, eyes darting to Angel. âAngel, Iâm-â
âJeonghan is taking care of it.â For the first time in years, you hear a note of pain in her voice, raw and real. Angel has - had - a complicated relationship with her step-mother, the matriarch of the Yoong family. âIâve already satiated my vengeance. This is his. Come on.âÂ
You hesitate. Soonyoung nudges you toward the stairs gently by the hip, suddenly looking tired. âGo. Iâm going to find a doctor for that nose.âÂ
âIs it terrible?âÂ
He huffs, trying not to laugh. âNo, but it needs to be fixed. Go. Shower.âÂ
I love you. Itâs on the tip of your tongue, right there. I love you. Itâs all you can think about, thundering in your ribcage. I love you. It consumes you, makes you freeze up, staring at him. I love you.Â
Angel tugs your wrist delicately and breaks the spell. You follow her up the stairs. Sheâs careful with you, making you take one step at a time. You donât think youâve ever seen her so gentle, her eyes softened with worry and her touch on you delicate as butterfly wings.Â
Upstairs, she leads you into a room that smells like vanilla and sandalwood. Soonyoung. This room belongs to Soonyoung. You spot his subtle touches, a gaming computer shoved in the corner and powered off. A closet with a metal door that is under lock and key. A single gun sitting on top of the nightstand.Â
But what makes the room spin is the touches of you. A teakwood candle sitting on the dresser. Weighted blankets folded at the end of the bed. A bookshelf with all your favorite titles. A jar of saltwater taffy in multiple flavors.Â
Angel hesitates by the bathroom door, watching you drink in the room. You turn to her, shaking your head, confused and mouth open. She nods. âI know. I didnât know either.âÂ
âI could live and die a thousand times and never deserve him.âÂ
âIâm not the best judge of character, but I donât think I believe that to be true.âÂ
Angel isnât the best judge of character. But she also doesnât say things she does not mean. Sheâs the last person in the world to offer words of comfort, and yet sheâs standing in the bathroom staring at you like she can see through you, right down to the very core.Â
Maybe she can. Seeing what is rotting people on the inside and sniffing out their weaknesses is what she does best.Â
Instead of pointing out where you hurt, she manages to get you into the bathroom. Itâs spacious but not grand like what youâre used to - itâs small. Safe. She starts the shower and backs away, helping you get out of your bloody clothing.Â
Everything hurts so bad. Your ribs ache, the bruising on them blotchy and horrendous as Angel peels back your shirt. She thankfully doesnât react - sheâs seen worse and done worse. Suddenly, you realize why Soonyoung picked her to help you. Sheâs steady, her fingers sure as she holds your arm while you pull your pants down.
You donât dare look in the mirror. From what you can see without it, itâs already bad enough. Yijun hadnât dealt fatal damage, but you know youâre bruised and covered in dry, flaking blood.Â
Angel leaves you in the shower, shutting the door to go sit on the sink, a guardian willing to give you space but ready to help when you need it. Shaking, you shuffle into the stream of hot water, hissing when it hits your skin.Â
Itâs both heaven and hell. The hot water feels so good on your aching muscles and throbbing pain, but it also hurts when the water taps against your nose, reminding you that it is indeed broken. You suck in sharp air as you slowly begin to work your fingers into your skin, turning the water pink as you wash off the blood.Â
Blood that belongs to you. Blood that belongs to Yijun.
Yijun.Â
Youâre not sorry you killed him. It was satisfying and necessary. But⊠the weight of your grief comes crashing into you. You could have killed him years ago and ran. Could have gone crawling back to Soonyoung and asked for his help. Could have told him that the only reason you ever agreed to marry him in the first place was to protect him.Â
None of it mattered. You bought him a paltry couple years worth of protection and for what? To shackle yourself to a man who thought little of you, who wanted to fuck you until you gave him another version of himself, who wanted to kill you at every moment because he knew you didnât respect him and because he was afraid of you and the way you command respect from your family, but he never did.
All that time youâd made yourself smaller for him. Held back your bite. Hid your teeth. Mourned Soonyoung everyday, knowing that youâd never touch him again, that he would never kiss you again, that youâd never wake up in the morning when he got home from work and crawled into bed with you.
A potential lifetime of happiness, one of your own making, wasted on a promise that they broke anyway.Â
For nothing. It had been for nothing, youâd hurt Soonyoung for nothing, shut him out, promised you would never leave him and threw him away, forced him to jump for you, forced him to leave you when he said he wouldnât all for nothing nothing nothing nothing notHING NOTHINGNOTHINGNOTHINGNOTHING-
Angelâs arms are around you. You startle, looking up to see that she is in the shower fully clothed, holding you to her. You hadnât realized youâd been crying - screaming - in the shower. She presses you closer to her, the only way she knows how to tell you that sheâs got you. Sheâs there. She understands.Â
You crumble, leaning heavily on her as you let it out, sobbing. Your throat is raw, your face throbbing each time you squeeze your eyes shut. Angel says nothing, content to hold you while her clothes soak up the water, weighing her down as you let out your grief in full, ugly waves.Â
Eventually, the water starts to get cold and your tears start to dry up. You sniff and groan, the pain in your face so poignant that it canât be ignored. Lifting your head from her shoulder, you glance at her boots, soaked and murky red around the edges.
âCan I tell you something?â Angel asks, voice low. You nod. She hesitates, putting the words together before she says, âHeâs going to accept you back. Heâs going to do it with no conditions, and ask nothing of you. Youâre going to want to torture yourself and beg for his forgiveness and deny yourself of him because you think you should be punished, that there is not a god powerful enough to hurt you the way you deserve.â
You blink in surprise. Angel isnât religious, despite the nickname. She also isnât overly emotional or wordy. But you see the severity in which she tells you this, see the pain in her eyes. You remember that she has demons far older than yours, ones that have followed her since childhood.Â
And sheâs right. She reads you like a book, seeing the fucking pain radiating inside of you, the desire to be punished and hated and whipped-Â
âLet him take you back.â Her words are firm. âDonât make him punish you. Donât believe for a second that Soonyoung wants to make you pay. He doesnât. He doesnât care what you did or why. Just⊠let him have you. Youâve endured enough.âÂ
You nod. âAlright. Iâll try.â
âGood. Um - can we get out of the shower though? Itâs very cold in here.âÂ
You laugh, immediately followed by a groan. âPlease donât make me laugh. I am in so much pain.âÂ
âYeah, letâs go get you some drugs, dude.âÂ
The three Syndicates of the city are officially at war. Of all the news that has poured in over the last few days, this is the least surprising. When youâd seen Seungcheol that first night after everything went to hell, heâd held you close and promised that he would kill every last Kim in the city.
He had also told you he was proud of you. Not just for surviving Yijun long enough for Soonyoung to come get you, but for being able to warn the family what was coming. Your single warning alone had saved them a great deal and wounded the Kim Syndicate more than you could understand.Â
The days following your fatherâs death are strange. It doesnât feel like heâs dead - at least, you havenât truly processed it yet. There are things that demand your attention like being seen by Dr. Ymir for your fractured nose and bruised ribs, and the accounts and logistics of what being at war with the Kim and Yong family truly means.Â
On the fifth day at the safe house, you go back home. Seungcheol makes you ride with him, unwilling to let you out of his sight these days. Youâre the only two members of the Choi family left, and itâs up to the two of you to rally the troops and remind everyone what the mountain can do.Â
Seungcheol replaces your father as the Tower of the Choi Syndicate. Typically thereâs a small ceremony to pass the torch so to speak, but thereâs no time for that. Seungcheol is buried in problems and trying to maneuver the family into a favorable position, but itâs hard - the Yongs and Kims have been preparing this for a while.Â
Youâre suddenly given a job again. Fresh in his position leading the family, Seungcheol needs those he trusts by his side, immediately appointing you as the Architect of the Syndicate. Thereâs no one he trusts more with the finances and the logistics of the businesses under the Choi banner and who have pledged to his family.Â
With Yoon Minjiâs death, Jeonghanâs takes his rightful side as the Wisdom and second in command to Seungcheol. Itâs like youâd always known it would be as a kid, but it brings you no joy to see the two of them together in an office until the early hours of the morning, worn at the edges and sick with the grief theyâre ignoring to push forward.Â
With no surprise, Seungcheol immediately promotes Soonyoung to the lead military position, rising from Sword to Sentinel in a single night. Itâs the same position his father held under your father, and Soonyoung takes it with steely resolve.Â
It also means you donât see him. You move back into your old room at home. At first, it doesnât feel like your room at all because Soonyoung isn't in it. He had moved into your room when you first started dating, spending two years in that bed with you. Now, heâs taken up residence in his room down the hall, so close and yet the distance feels larger than ever.Â
Of all the problems mounting for you to solve, Soonyoung is the most important. You know he shouldnât be. There are a thousand other things that you need to figure out, like how to assure that the businesses you own in and near the Kim and Yong family territories wonât go under or be attacked, or how to assure that payment to the family wonât increase now that thereâs a fight.Â
Your days are filled with countless meetings, assuring loyal patrons that the Choi Syndicate will not fall and will not fail them, and that the Choiâs protect their own. You can see the fear in peopleâs eyes - the city hasnât had the big three at war in a long time. Already the city officials are cracking down on Syndicate activity to try and establish order.Â
Itâs farcical at best.Â
Squeezing your temples between your fingers, you lean back from the desk in your newly appointed office - which is really just your fatherâs. It feels weird to be in here. It still smells like leather and sweet tobacco, a little bit of smoke hanging in the air.Â
The last time youâd been in this office, youâd fallen to your knees and begged him not to make you marry Kim Yijun. Now you sit at the desk, hanging up the phone as another call ends - not as bad as the first, but not as good as youâd hoped.Â
Quickly, you scribble down a summary of the call to give to Seungcheol. You know heâll read every word you write, determined to hear each concern of those under Choi patronage, whether theyâre valid or not.Â
At the sound of the door opening, you glance up. Soonyoung sticks his head in, surprising you. You straighten in your seat, heart racing when you take him in. His silver hair has grown longer, tapered a bit at the neck. Heâs dressed in all black but heâs clean, indicating that he showered not that long ago. You thought he would be out all day like usual, looking at your watch to see heâs back far earlier than normal.
âIs everything alright?â You start to get up and he rushes to you, hands lifting to help you. âIâm alright. I am well on the mend.â
He chews his lip, nodding before dropping his hands hesitantly. âEverythingâs fine I just.â He hesitates. âDo you want to eat lunch?âÂ
âOh. Sure.â
Soonyoungâs smile is tentative. Shy. You give him one back, following him out of the office while sending a quick note to Jihoon that youâll meet with him later. He sends a thumbs down back, less than pleased that youâve not made time to talk to him about your potential murder charges for Yijun.Â
âAre you busy? We donât have to-â
âItâs just Jihoon.âÂ
âAh. Heâs persistent, are you sure-â
âI want to have lunch with you, Soonyoung.âÂ
He blushes and you grin. âAlright,â he murmurs. âWhen you say jump and all that.âÂ
That makes you pause. âYou donât have to do anything I tell you.âÂ
âWhat?â He stops walking, confused.Â
âYou donât have to ask how high if I tell you to jump... Iâm wrong a lot of the time. I donât⊠want to be that.âÂ
I donât want to repeat my mistakes. You donât say it, but you think Soonyoung senses it when he says, âIâve always wanted to jump for you. That hasnât changed.âÂ
Let him take you back. Donât make him punish you.Â
Angelâs words come back to you so you swallow down your guilt and you nod, giving him a tentative smile that he returns. This time, he holds out his hand to take you in the kitchen. You take it, the feeling of his fingers wrapping around yours both foreign and familiar.Â
The way he holds your hand in his makes you tremble. Itâs something so simple and benign and yet youâre screaming on the inside, looking at where your fingers twine together like itâs everything, like itâs the only thing.Â
Lunch consists of very badly burned grilled cheese. You donât care because Soonyoung makes it, insistent that he wants to and that he can. Heâs good at a lot of things, particularly on the spectrum of murder and weapons, but he is terrible at putting bread, cheese and butter in a pan.Â
You eat it anyway, burnt bread and all. He sits next to you, his stool pulled so close that your thighs touch. You want to reach out and brush your fingers across his face, down his neck, through his hair. You want to touch until youâre grabbing, grab until youâre pulling.Â
Instead, you let him lead this dance, too afraid to initiate.Â
Let him take you back. Donât make him punish you.Â
You donât, but you canât let go of the fear of rejection. Canât bring yourself to toe the line beyond what heâs giving you, which is more than you ever dreamed of. So you accept when he offers to take your plate, fingers brushing over the top of your hand either by design or by accident you donât know. His touch makes you shiver and he notices, pausing.Â
Slowly, you look up at Soonyoung. His eyes are dark and misty as ever, churning with emotion that youâre a little too afraid to read. Instead of taking the plates to the sink, he sets them down and reaches for you, cradling your face in his hands.Â
A sob works its way up your throat but you force it down. You will not cry over this. You will not make him comfort you.Â
âAre you afraid to touch me?â His question is gentle. You nod, eyes fluttering shut as his thumb brushes back and forth across your cheekbone. âWhy?âÂ
âI⊠want to so badly. I just want it to be your choice.âÂ
âI want you to.â You open your eyes. His earnestness is right on the surface of him, rippling for you to see. âIâm dying for it. Please.âÂ
Soonyoungâs please sounds like that morning heâd begged you all that time ago. It freezes you in place, heart beating like a prey animal in fight or flight. He steps closer, his breath on your forehead when he whispers, âPlease.âÂ
Slowly, you bring your hands up to his wrists. Licking your lips, you place your hands on him. His eyes close. His skin is warm to the touch and you feel him tremble as you brush your hands upward, tracing his forearms, his corded biceps. You brush your fingertips over the sleeves of his shirt and toward his neck until youâre cupping his throat, your thumbs resting against his hammering pulse.Â
You close your eyes, remaining still. Both of you remain that way, his hands on your face, yours on his neck. Youâre shaking under his touch, feel his breath against your forehead. His fingers add a little pressure to your face, careful not to hurt you where your bruise is finally fading on your nose as he turns you to look up at him.Â
Soonyoung licks his lips, eyes open. âThere is not a second I didnât love you.â
And there it is. The admission that he never hated you. You bet he tried - you know he tried. You know the inside of Soonyoungâs soul better than you know your own, no part of him hidden to you even with time.Â
âI donât care why you did it,â he continues. âNot anymore. Not after everything. I donât care about any of it. I just⊠want you.â
âSoonyoung-â
âI know youâre sorry. I know you hate yourself. I know there is guilt eating away at you. Get over it, because none of it changes how I feel. I love you. Youâre mine. I donât want to leave you again. You cannot make me.âÂ
âI know. I wonât make you.âÂ
âGood.â Soonyoung presses his forehead to yours gently. Heâs careful not to knock noses with you too hard, aware of the pain itâll cause. âI cannot do any of this without you.âÂ
âI know.â
Soonyoungâs mouth is tentative when it presses against yours. Your grip on him tightens, leaning forward into the kiss. It is everything - the only thing. You feel something wet on your face, thinking that youâve got another nosebleed, but when you pull away, you realize itâs because Soonyoung is crying.
Crying for the first time since his parents died.Â
You stand up from the stool, gripping the back of his neck to pull him toward you. He melts under your touch, letting you meld your mouths together. He tastes like his burnt sandwich and like him, his mouth warm and wet against yours. Vanilla and sandalwood invade your senses, overwhelming as you grip him for dear life, never wanting to let him go.
He doesnât want to let you go either. His grip on your hips is crushing, fingers digging into flesh and bone as though he can force you to become one. The thought makes you dizzy. You slide your fingers in his silk-soft hair, wrapping the strands around them to pull lightly, pull him closer, pull him to you, pull him back.Â
Soonyoung whines against your mouth and you break the kiss, panting. âTake me upstairs,â you whisper between peppering kissing against his mouth, his bottom lip, the corner of his lips. âPlease take me upstairs.âÂ
He does. Soonyoung grabs you by the hands, tugging you toward the stairs that lead to your room - the room you used to share. The room that still smells like him, even if faintly. He takes you to your bed, where youâve spent hundreds of nights with him, and lays you down gently like he has a million times before.Â
Soonyoung touches you like youâre holy. His hands skim over you in worship, they scratch you in penance, they hold you in reverence. He slots himself between your knees, stealing a kiss from you like itâll breathe new life into him, bare him anew, purge him of sin.Â
You love him. You love him you love him you love him you love him you love him -
A moan leaves his mouth when your nails drag down his back. He is quaking under your touch, his mouth hungry but careful against yours, wanting to swallow you whole but knowing youâre hurt. You know he wonât break you but you wish he would.
Thereâs time for that later. Now isnât the time for rough and biting. Now, Soonyoung peels the shirt from your skin, immediately covering your arms, chest, collarbones, shoulders in kisses. You vibrate under his touch, lashes fluttering as he sucks at the sensitive skin of your neck, tongue pressed flat to your pulse as he tastes you.Â
You tug at his shirt and he complies, leaning upward to toss it. Heâs back on you in a second, pressing you close, hip to hip as he tangles his tongue with yours, drinking you in. His touch ignites a fire and youâre burning, a complete inferno as you drag your fingers up the hard contour of his stomach to the firmness of his chest and around to his shoulders.Â
âI love you,â he mutters against your mouth, rolling his hips into you. You let out a breathy sound and he groans. âFuck I love you. I missed you. I love you.âÂ
âPlease,â you beg. He understands, burying his face in your neck and biting down lightly. You feel like youâre going to burn up under him, an out of control blaze while his fingers work the buttons on your pants. âNever let me go.â
âNever.âÂ
Jeans scrape down your legs, his hands following. He drags his blunt nails down your thighs. Your hips twitch upward, loving the scratch, loving the way he touches you, loving him. He returns his mouth to yours, unable to get enough of your kissing.Â
Soonyoungâs hand slips between your thighs, the pads of his fingers pressing against your clit through your underwear. You keen for him, pulling at the long strands of hair at the back of his neck. He moans in tandem, his pleasure driven by yours, loving the way you sound as you start to come apart under the gentle circle of his fingers.Â
He only teases you a little, knowing the friction with the fabric between his fingers and your aching cunt isnât enough. He finally decides that youâve had enough, hooking a finger to pull them aside, the cool air hitting your sticky folds.Â
Before you can complain, Soonyoungâs touch is there. He drags his fingers slow-soft from top to bottom, circling your clit slowly. Heâs not in a hurry, dragging it out as he sucks your tongue into his mouth, sliding his fingers back down to press against your entrance but not breach it.Â
You whine and he grins, pulling your bottom lip with his teeth until he lets go with a pop. âI love those sounds you make.âÂ
âFeels good,â you admit, head falling to the side as you close your eyes, enjoying the pressure he puts on your clit, wiggling his fingers back and forth. Your thighs close around his hand but heâs unbothered, drawing more arousal from you as he plays. âFuck, your fingers.âÂ
His laugh is throaty and he shakes his head, attaching his mouth to your jaw where he sucks at the skin. He makes himself comfortable with nibbling toward your neck, both of his hands reaching for the sides of your underwear to pull them down. You let him, folding your knees toward your for a moment to help.Â
Soonyoungâs hand returns to the wetness between your legs except this time, heâs not teasing. He presses a finger in deep and you whine, hips wiggling. You squeeze down on his finger, pussy spasming as he begins to pump leisurely, like he has all the time in the world.
And he does, doesnât he? The work is far from done and the world is falling apart, but it doesnât matter because heâs here with you. Because Soonyoung is yours again - always has been - and because heâs drawing your mouth toward his to kiss you messily, swallowing down your moans as he presses in another finger.Â
Now you crumble beneath him. You canât stop your hips from coming off the bed. You loop your arms around his neck, keeping him close, breathing the same air. He presses his forehead to yours, eyes impossible dark and half-lidded as he hooks his fingers, dragging them against that sensitive spot.Â
You cry out his name and he grins. Now he knows where it is, pressing repeatedly as he fucks you on his fingers, driving you directly toward an orgasm. Your breathing becomes labored, your legs squeezing his hips, your fingers digging into his shoulders. It is so good that you think you might die, letting him yank you toward release.Â
Soonyoung kisses you again and you come crashing down, cumming around his fingers, body squeezing, ignoring the ache in your ribs and the millions of other places that youâre sore. He doesnât slow down, scissoring his fingers to pry you open, to stretch you more.
âSoonyoung,â you gasp, voice wrecked. âSoonyoung Soonyoung Soonyoung.âÂ
âJust like that,â he agrees. You can tell he loves the way you say his name, knows that on your tongue it means something different. âCome on, one more.âÂ
Youâll give him anything he wants. Never again will you deny him. You let him work you up again, feeling the way your breath gets stuck in your lungs and you shiver, another wave washing through you as you shudder around his fingers.Â
When you start to pant, he pulls his fingers out. You feel the wet schlick as he does, immediately hating the way you feel empty, hating the way he leans away from you. Whining, you reach out toward him, needy. He hushes you with a brief kiss, only standing to rid himself of his jeans and briefs.Â
Using the fingers covered in your arousal, Soonyoung pumps his cock, smearing a mixture of your slick and his precum down his shaft as he kneels on the bed again, taking his place between your thighs again. You watch with hooded eyes as he rubs the head of his cock through your messy folds, a moan dripping from your lips.Â
Soonyoung is beautiful, skin flushed and a sheen of sweat on his arms. His stomach flexes and clenches as he presses the tip of his cock into your entrance, both of you taking a shaky breath together. He slowly slides home, the stretch of him driving you wild, pussy fluttering around him until heâs slotted to the hilt.Â
He hangs his head, panting as he plants his hands on either side of your head. He takes a moment to collect himself, shaking. You turn your head to the side, kissing his wrist, peppering any skin you can reach with your love while your hands drift up his back, feeling the muscles flex.Â
When he begins to move, you nearly die. It feels so good, your breath lodged in your throat. He lowers his face to yours, kissing you as gently as he fucks you. His thrusts are deep and timed, not hard or fast but slow and measured, pressing all the way in as he uses his weight to his advantage.Â
Your fingers turn to talons on his back, nails biting his shoulder blades. Heâs precise, the tip of his cock finding the right angle to make you nearly sob in a matter of a few thrusts. Itâs familiar. Home.Â
Soonyoung lowers himself to his forearms, pressing your chests together. The friction of his skin against your pert nipples makes you squeeze around him, his name a whisper on swollen, kiss-bitten lips. He presses his forehead to yours, breathing shakily as he continues to fuck you.
You feel him everywhere, feel everything that he wants to say. Soonyoung has never needed words to communicate to you and he doesnât now, the way he shakes as he lets out a wispy moan enough, the way he slides one of his arms under your back to cradle you to his chest, closer closer closer.
He wants to be closer and so do you, arms around his neck, drawing him to you. You never want to let him go, never will let him go. Youâve learned your lesson and this, right here with him is the only thing that matters.Â
âShh,â he hushes. You realize youâre crying, tasting salt on your lips when he brushes his mouth against yours. âI know.âÂ
âI love you.â
âI know.âÂ
Soonyoungâs pace picks up only a little bit. Itâs enough, sending you careening toward your third orgasm. He can feel it - needs it. He chases after your high, catching your mouth to brush his tongue against yours, rolling his hips until youâre clenching around him, whining into his mouth, lips buzzing against his.
He hums against you, waiting until your pussy lets go of its vice grip to speed up a little bit, the wet smack of his hips against yours loud and lewd, driving him forward until he comes, your name on his lips, his face buried in your neck. His thrusts slow, both of you trembling like leaves until he finally stops, remaining seated inside of you.Â
âI will love you for a thousand lifetimes,â he mutters against your mouth, with no intention of moving. âYou know that, right Baby?âÂ
You nod, fingers digging into his shoulder blades. âLeave me at your own peril, Kwon Soonyoung,â you rasp, quoting yourself that first night he finally caved, where he finally told you that he couldnât exist without you. âI will never go anywhere ever again.âÂ
TAG LIST
@ddaddunugu @ourkivee @tie-nn @cookiearmy @thesunsfullmoon @stray-bi-kids @ldysmfrst @thepoopdokyeomtouched @avochele @onlywon4u @hopeless-foolery @iamawkwardandshy @gyuguys @codeinebelle @ateez-atiny380 @abibliolife @idubiluranghae @bultaereume @yoongznme @kaitieskidmore97 @coffee-addict-kitten @gyubakeries @archivistworld
If you do not see your tag here, it didn't work.
SYNDICATE ROLES
Tower - title for a Syndicate boss Wisdom - title for the second-in-command to a Sydicate boss Sentinel - title for the main military leader of a Syndicate Riots - title for a member of the Syndicate responsible for sowing discord Swords - title for a member of the Syndicate who is a fighter/military role Chariots - members of the Syndicate who make deals/act as business brokers Rooks - members of the Syndicate who collect debts/lead the extortion practices Justices - members of the Syndicate on the legal counsel Hanged Men - members of the Syndicate who betrayed their Syndicate Watchers - members of a Syndicate who are spies/informants Patrons - citizens who pay homage/have an alliance/are under the protection of a Syndicate Vanguard - official members of the Syndicate who don't have specific roles but do work for the Syndicate
Favorite Student.
WARNINGS: YES THIS IS PROFESSOR AND STUDENT FUCKING IF YOU DON'T LIKE IT DON'T READ IT. both of yall are adults i think like 22 and 28 or something like that so it's not like the worst of the worst but yes. there are power dynamics blah blah, sunghoon is massive pervert, ITS ALL FICTION YALL
um includes....perverted sunghoon, eating out, teasing, pet names, sex in an office, fingering, it's me so ya know
Synopsis: A class you'd hated, but a professor you'd always admired...
A/N: DAISY BACKKKKK
SUNGHOON STANS ARE THE BESTTTTT at writing and giving me anons and feedback and comments and reblogs which is why I will always spoil them bc they treat me the best <333. next fic is a heeseung one sooo if you want more heeseung content make sure to give that one as much love too when it comes out!
_________________________________________
He was the meanest professor around, bar none.
But in your current predicament, he was the only professor left for the class you needed to take, unless you wanted to wait and thus delay your graduation by a whole semester.
That's how you found yourself standing outside his office, swinging back and forth on your heels, trying to get the courage to go in and ask him for help on the chapter that seemed like no one in your class was getting, you included.
"What are you doing standing outside my office?"
At the sound of his voice you jumped and turned around, heart racing in your ears as you tried to give him some eye contact; ultimately failing miserably.
"U-Um, I needed help with chapter 14 in the textbook and no one in my section really got it either so I figured I'd stop by-"
"Did you look at the lecture notes?"
"Y-yes sir."
"The supplemental videos?"
You nodded again.
Dr. Park sighed and moved past you to unlock his office door, letting the door swing shut past you as you walked in. The vibes of his room was austere to say the least and you couldn't tell if anyone had ever sat in the chair across from him given how spotless and un-creased it was.
Well, first time for everything.
"So what are you needing help with? Do you have any notes or something?"
"U-uh yes sir, give me a sec," you stuttered out as you fidgeted with your bag to pull out your laptop, showing him all that you had done.
He leaned on his side of the thick oak desk so he could get a closer look at what you had done, the closer proximity causing cologne you could only surmise to be expensive filling your nose. You fidgeted in your seat and moved some to lower your skirt as it rode up, trying to think of something to fill the awkward silence as he scrolled through what you had done.
Luckily, he beat you to it.
"Well, it's not the worst thing I've seen." He sighed, taking off his glasses and pointing to your screen. "You still aren't understanding the basic concepts of this chapter yet and it's reflecting in your notes. You see this summary outline you wrote here is-"
Your eyes absentmindedly drifted to his alabaster forearms that were shown from the rolled up sleeves of his button up, thick large hands scrolling on your keyboard. His jaw and nose were sharp too and from the closeness you could make out his dark lashes, usually hidden by the thick framed glasses he wore.....
You were jolted out of your thoughts when he snapped his fingers in front of your face, eyebrows knitted in annoyance at you wasting his time by daydreaming.
"If you're going to come to my office I would think you'd listen to what I have to say," Sunghoon said through a clucked tongue.
You looked down and immediately apologized profusely, feeling tears well in your eyes. You weren't the best with scolding you never had been, but to have someone who was already not in the best of moods have it become worse because of you only made you more sensitive.
He looked at you from across the desk, a grown girl with mannerisms like that of a meek fawn.
A prey.
You swallowed thickly as he stood up and leaned over the desk, strands of mahogany hair falling into his eyes as he looked down at you.
"Hey hey, don't cry, we'll work through it together mmkay? You're a smart girl aren't you?"
It was a voice you'd never heard him use on anyone, and it made the hairs on your neck stand up and your legs squirm as he held your chin.
"I'm sorry it's just this is one of my final classes I need to graduate and everything is hard and I don't want to waste your time-"
"Aw, princess don't stress, don't stress," he cooed. The sweet and gentle tone of his voice was causing you to melt into his touch, wondering how someone who usually only spoke in stern curt sentences could produce such sounds.
You couldn't stop bouncing your legs and squirming in your seat as his fingertips stroked the underside of your chin softly, making soft shushes and coos at you to calm your nerves.
Fuck, he wanted to ruin you.
But he had to wait for you to make the move. He was in the precarious position and even though he could see in your gaze that you were begging for it, you were going to have to show him.
A little teasing should do the trick.
"Here, we have some time before the next test don't we? Start coming by my office everyday and we can work through this unit together so you won't have to worry alright" he offered up, sitting back down in his office chair with a soft smile on his face.
You sniffled and nodded at the premise before rushing out a plethora of "thank you"s to him, unable to stop the tingling on your chin from where he had touched you as he left........
_________________________________
"Here sweetheart move your chair over to my side of the desk so you can get a better look at my screen," he offered up, moving his chair over some to make some room.
"O-okay sure," you agreed, the name "sweetheart" ringing throughout your head. Had he always used that nickname for you? Or was he just using it as a coverup for forgetting your name? Whatever the reason, your mind was spinning in circles at the gentle way he said it.
âCmon, you can come a little closer than that, I donât bite ya knowâ, he hummed, pulling your chair closer to his. You nodded because you didnât trust your voice and your mind couldnât stop wandering to how large his hands looked as he pointed out errors in the extra assignments heâd given you, talking you softly through each one.
"Does that make sense?" he inquired gently, placing his head on your thigh and squeezing it. The contact made you jolt in your skin and you gulped before profusely nodding, truly able to grasp just how large his hands were as they sat on your plush thigh.
"Good girl, see you had no reason to be so worried, your work is been improving exponentially".
"T-thank you sir. I have to go to my next class now...." you trailed off awkwardly, fidgeting in your seat.
He smiled and stood up, waiting for you to do the same before escorting you to his door.
"Of course. Same time tomorrow?"
"Mhmm," you hummed, scurrying out of his office. You made a b-line to the bathroom to splash some cold water on your face, wondering if there was anything that gave away just how flustered you truly were in his proximity.
How can someone be so cute? Sunghoon hummed to himself as he sat at his desk, fiddling with his pen. His own hand still buzzed with excitement at how soft and warm your thigh was, and his mind couldn't help but trail further down a rabbit hole.
For the next month it seemed Sunghoon had only gotten friendlier and friendlier: you found out that he had a dog which he adored and would bring to the office if he was allowed to, that he had a younger sister, used to compete in sports (which you could attribute to his frame), and really liked fashion.
All the while, Sungoon used every opportunity to get you used to his touch; the stroking of your ear during one session, the soft touch of your shoulder the next. Every time you'd jolt before absentmindedly melting into it, and before you knew it you find yourself craving his touch.
You didn't dare your friends or anyone around you of your extra tutoring sessions, or that his hands were somehow find themself on yours. Surely you should be disgusted at yourself instead of electrified by the touches he leaves on you right?
But those thoughts would always disappear every time you walked into his office.
"So sorry I'm late!" you rushed out as you stepped into his office, panting from having sprinted up the stairs to get here.
Sunghoon looked up from the papers at his desk and smiled, flickering his head to come sit down.
"It's okay sweetheart don't worry," he hummed, trying to pull his eyes away from the sheen the shone on your neck.
"I've been so frazzled lately I hope you're not too mad at me being late," you rushed out, practically stumbling over to sit down in your chair.
He hummed and stared at your plush thighs that clung to the leather of the chair and watched as you shifted to prevent them sticking, getting flustered when you saw he was watching you.
"Sorry, I'm a bit sticky it's a bit warm outside, s-should I just stand instead?" you offered up quickly, standing up and fixing your sundress.
"Why don't you sit on my desk instead then? Here let me move these papers out of you way-"
"W-won't I get the desk dirty since I'm all sweaty" you interjected, heart racing as he cleared his desk off for you, making space so you'd have no choice but to sit right in front of his chair.
"Don't worry about it, now be a good girl and come sit," he cooed, giving you eyes that almost dared you to disobey him. Quickly you went over and sat on his desk, swallowing thickly when Sunghoon began massaging your calves as he removed your shoes.
"Poor baby rushed over to our tutoring session, your legs must be exhausted and aching," he soothed, tender hands working into the soft flesh of your skin.
"Only s-slightly, it's fine I"m used to it," you excused, squirming as Sunghoon leaned closer to your skin. "Is this something a professor should be um...doing, I mean I know we've gotten close b-but.." you trailed off, yelping when Sunghoon dragged his lips against your knee.
"Then tell me to stop kitten," he taunted, kissing the inner of your thighs as he slid off your other shoe, looking up at you through framed lenses.
"You're not stupid baby, your test grades prove that well enough. Surely you kept coming to our lessons hoping it'd end up like this," he continued, hoisting your legs over his shoulders as he pulled you closer against his face.
"I...I don't know," was all you could muster out, toes curling as he softly kissed your inner thighs. Sunghoon chuckled under his breath and stood up, pushing you down onto his desk as he took of his glasses.
The air was knocked out of you for a second as you lay splayed on the desk, the cool hardwood being a stark contrast to your sticky skin.
âItâs okay baby,â he leaned in, licking the sweat from your neck. âItâs okay to say you like doing perverted things with me. Go on, tell your professor how much you like itâ, he cooed, rubbing your puffy clit with his thumb.
You whined as felt something tightening in your tummy, mustering up the courage to speak.
âI-I like itâ, you choked out, your toes curling in your tube socks as you started to feel how thick his fingers really were.
âAwww, give me more than that yeah? Tell me exactly what you like.â He couldnât help himself. He wanted you to profess all types of profanities through hazy eyes and shaky legs, for you to beg to be ruined and defiled by him.
âI like..doing perverted things with you.â You felt your face burn as you stumbled your way through the sentence, rutting your hips into a feeling that only got tighter.
âAw you do? Well in that case let me teach my princess all the perverted things we can do together..." he trailed off, squeezing the side of your thighs.
"Good girl~, such a good girl~" Sunghoon cooed, lifting up the hem of your sundress. "Cute panties," he drawled as his index finger slid down the slit, pressing against the sticky wet patch. "Mind if I keep them?"
You couldn't help but buck your hips into the feeling as you nodded without a second thought, your nails digging into the gloss furnish of his desk.
"Sweetheart you shouldn't agree to everything I say," he spoke, cupping your heat in his hand and massaging it. You gripped onto his shoulders instead and whimpered into his chest as you felt trickles of wetness soak your cotton underwear, meak "I'm sorry"s leaving you.
"It's okay, it's okay, don't apologize. It's just," he moved the hair covering your ear with his mouth before kissing against it, letting out deep groans as he rutted himself against you.
"there are some bad people out there, waiting to take advantage of pretty young girls like you. Are you going to spread your legs for everyone?"
"No, it's j-just because it's...you," you whimpered against his chest.
Sunghoon sucked air through his teeth as his self control unraveled at the seams.
"Because it's me?" he inquired, kneeling down so he was eye-level with your soaked core, messing with the hem of your panties.
"Wait Ihaven'tshoweredso-" your legs shook around his head as his tongue pressed against the soaked wet patch of your underwear, groaning at the taste that trickled onto his tongue.
"Is that why you taste and smell so sweet princess?" He groaned, pulling your underwear down without a second thought to expose yourself barren to him, his cock twitching in his pants at how sticky you already were.
"Here hold my hand sweetheart, squeeze it as hard as you like," he cooed as he offered up his free hand to you. You obliged immediately and squeezed his digits as his other free hand rubbed softly against your swollen clit, leaving light kisses on the puffy bud.
You let out meek "I'm sorry"s as your nails dug into the alabaster skin of his hand, struggling to keep yourself still as you felt the warmth of his lips wrap around your clit before sucking softly.
"It's okay princess, just sink into the feeling, I'm going to make you feel so so good," he groaned between your legs. You nodded and felt your eyes flutter into the back your head as you felt every ridge of his tongue against your entrance, saliva mixing with arousal as he lapped up everything you gave him.
The pleasure only increased as he wantonly hummed around your bud, Sunghoon drunk off of how sweet and syrupy you tasted on his tongue.
Sunghoon was doing his best to not just pin you to the desk and fuck the daylights of you, not understanding how someone could be so intoxicating. Every thing from your little gasps of air to the whimpers you were trying to hide in your throat were making him dizzy, desperate even.
"Your hole is twitching every time I suck your clit princess," Sunghoon remarked as he came up for air, licking his lips clean. "It must want something in it huh?" he drawled, sliding two thick digits into you. Your back arched off the desk as you felt the tight stretch between your legs, your hands going to squeeze his wrist you whimpered.
"Oh no no baby, don't try to move away from it. Take it like a good girl, like my favorite student would," Sunghoon praised as he scissored his fingers inside of you, chuckling at how droplets of arousal leaked out.
Hearing him say you're his favorite student made your heart thrum in excitement, your thighs tensing up when the pads of his fingers pressed down against the spongy part of your walls.
"Pull your sundress down and play with your chest for me princess," Sunghoon ordered gently as he moved to the skin of your neck, infatuated with how he could feel your heart beating through his kisses. "Do it like how you do it when you're in your bed all alone, fingers between your legs..." he whispered against your ear, unable to hide his grin.
Your body felt unbearably hot as you whimpered and complied, pulling down the straps of your sundress and moving your bra. Your legs inexplicably shook as you tugged the pert buds, biting down on your lip as Sunghoon sped up the pace of his fingers.
Sunghoon made a mental note of your movements so he could replicate them next time, his mouth getting hungry as his mouth encircled a free nipple.
You spasmed slightly at his movements as you felt his coarse tongue suck and lick around the sensitive skin, making a point to hold eye contact with you any time your stare met his. Coupled with the gushing sounds he heard between your legs only got more turned on, leaving deep marks on your chest he was sure would last for days.
He couldn't help it, he was getting impatient, desperate to have you whimpering out his name and begging for him to ruin you in this godforsaken sundress.
"Fuck~ you're gonna get me in so much fucking trouble," Sunghoon groaned as he felt your walls tighten around his fingers. "I'm sorry baby but I can't let you come from just some fingering now can I?" he teased.
The eyes you gave him almost broke him down right there as he pulled out his digits and sucked them clean, unbuckling his belt with the other. On any other occasion he'd love to have you on your knees trying to fit him in your soft mouth, but his patience for that was long gone.
Your eyes enlarged as you watched his member spring free and press against his lower abdomen, Sunghoon hissing through his teeth as he stroked the reddened tip.
"Don't worry princess, we're gonna make it fit okay? Even if you are this tight," he reassured teasingly, kissing your temple as he pinned both your hands in one of his.
"Y-you don't need a condom" you choked out.
Sunghoon raised brows and chuckled at the fact such a statement could come from such a timid mouth of yours, ripping it with his teeth and putting it on regardless.
"Mmm of course I do sweetheart," he cooed, rubbing his length between your folds. Even through the condom you could feel how warm and heavy his member felt between your legs, your mind racing at the fact that you were going to have sex with your professor.
"Besides, if I came inside would you be able to keep my load inside you like a good girl? We can't have a mess in my office now can we?" he drawled in your ear, pushing his thick tip past your walls. You already felt a stretch that was incomparable to his fingers and started struggling against his grip, Sunghoon only laughing at you and tightening his hold even more.
"Shhhh don't run princess, don't run, this is how it feels to be fucked by a real man yeah? No college guy could find my baby's special spot like I could," he soothed, finding it so cute how you sucked on your bottom lip to cope with the stretch.
You raised your head slightly to discover that he was only halfway in, despite how full your lower belly felt. When Sunghoon saw your widened eyes he could only pout at you, finding you absolutely adorable.
And adorable things deserved to be ruined.
"Here princess, kiss me yeah?"
Shakily you reached up some and connected your lips with his, jolting against his mouth as Sunghoon had taken the opportunity to push himself to the hilt.
"P-professor" was all you could whine out as you felt your mind go dazy, Sunghoon using the opportunity to slide his tongue against yours.
"You're doing so good, taking all of me princess, such a good girl," Sunghoon praised softly in between kisses. He knew once he started moving his hips you'd be a goner, already evident by how dazy your eyes looked when he stared into them.
You felt his tip push against the entrance of your cervix and you couldn't help but let out a sharp gasp at the feeling, biting down on Sunghoon's shoulder to cope with the heavy sensation in your tummy.
"Hello? Mr. Park are you in your office?"
Your eyes widened and you went to move to hide, recognizing the voice as your fellow classmate. Sunghoon only laughed at your attempts and pinned your wrists, giving you a "shh" motion as he continued pressing his hips against yours.
"Yeah, I'm here. However if my door is closed that means office hours are also closed correct?" he tsked, sucking a breath between his teeth as you clenched down around him.
Despite his seemingly calm composure you had your mouth squeezed shut feeling a tight knot start to form.
Your legs shook as you tried tapping his wrist with your bound hands, Sunghoon cooing at you softly and kissing your cheek.
"I know you're close baby, I know I know, just hold out for a bit longer mmkay? I'll take care of you, I will."
You could only nod as your face scrunched up from holding back your moans, desperately wondering why this student was so keen on getting into the office of one of the most stubborn people alive.
"I know, but there's this problem I really-"
"Rules are rules" he interjected, taking out his point on you by an extra forceful snap of his hips. Yours nails digged into your own skin as you tried to follow your professors wishes and hold out just a bit longer for him, softly whispering his name to garner his attention.
âJust a bit longer,â he shushed warmly, kissing your temple as he listened to the footsteps outside the door. Sure enough there was a sigh, followed by the sound of sneakers against the tile floor and the student walked away, Sunghoon relinquishing his grip on you and slowly speeding up his hips.
âP-Professor my tummy," was all you could manage out, squirming as you felt the knot get tighter.
"Mmm, you feel the pressure building right here?" Sunghoon couldn't help but tease, firmly pushing down on your lower belly. Your nails left red marks down his back and chest as you gasped at the feeling, mind slowly entering a point of incoherence.
You hazily nodded and felt your toes curl as Sunghoon peppered your neck with open mouth kisses, unable to stop himself from marking you.
"I'm close too princess, hold on just a bit longer for me and we can come together yeah? C'mon, I know you can," Sunghoon purred as his hips only sped up faster, raising your lower back slightly make sure he hit your spot every single time.
You could only hold your breath and scrunch your face as you tried warding off the feeling that was only getting stronger. Sunghoon's own resolve had withered away as he bit down on his bottom lip to suppress the groan that would be heard by the whole hallway, sweat on his entire body as you squeezed down on him like a vice.
"Fuck~ princess, go ahead and let loose for me."
You felt your mind go blank as the knot snapped tighter than you were anticipating, having to suppress your moans by burying yourself into Sunghoon's neck as liquid gushed from between your legs and your walls pulsed around sporadically.
Sunghoon's came shortly thereafter by burying his face in your own neck, his breathing ragged and uneven as he lay shaking on top of you.
There was a moment of silence between the two of you and your mind started swimming at what you'd just done and the mess you'd just made, knowing that if your ancestors were ever to watch you they'd hang their heads in shame.
Yet, that didn't stop you from wanting to do it again.
"Professor," you began, refusing to make eye contact with him after what you'd just done.
"Mmmm yes sweetheart?" Sunghoon cooed as he slowly pulled out, his collarbones and forehead glistening with sweat as he hid the evidence.
"Next time, I-I wanna do it...at your place," you offered up. This was a dangerous and well, a fireable request, you both knew that. However, that didn't stop Sunghoon from bending down to kiss your collarbones and chin, beaming it with happiness.
"I think I'd quite like that arrangement princess."
ìŽíŹìč HEESEUNG đ YOU'RE STILL A VIRGIN? [ MDNI. ]
IN WHICH you realize you never completed your most important new year's resolution: losing your virginity. luckily, your roommate is willing to help you out with that
WARNINGS ⚯ smut, porn with a smidge of plot for context, not proofread cuz who needs that, fingering, orgasm denial (briefly), missionary, very vanilla sex, heeseung's kinda awkward #pathetic_men
WORD COUNT ⚯ 3.1k
AUTHOR'S NOTE . . . first work of the year!! sorry for taking an impromptu break so suddenly, but my works will still be coming out slowly as of now, so thank you for your patience đ«¶
# TAGLIST ! @wonkifangirl @chlorinecake @sunjaywoning @jaeyunthejakesim @deobitifull @notevenheretbh1 @jvngw0nlvr @jongszn @ineedsomezzz @haelahoops @seongslutt @fakeuwus @leeheeheeseung @aheewonenthusiast @lprww @wonsbaer @heeseungssidechick @smisworld @rayofsunshineeee @starrypen @heerated @snwosgf @nycapartmentsworld @sooyeonvida @dear-hoon @nikiiitties
âWe never finished sharing our new yearâs resolutions.â
You stop mid-bite into your pancakes. You and Heeseung had spent all morning making them, finally testing out the new oven you got after the last one broke down during another pancake morning. It survived, luckily. Thereâs only the taste-test left, but Heeseungâs comment catches you so off guard, you put the fork back down.
âNew yearâs resolutions?â you repeat. âYou mean the ones from basically last year?â
He nods, shoving his first bite in. He hums at the taste. Success. âYeah, we made those lists and started sharing but thenââ Heeseung tilts and quirks his brow in thought. ââI canât even remember. We probably got distracted, but either way, we never made sure we both completed our lists.â
Chuckling awkwardly, you keep your eyes on the plate. âI donât even know if I still have mineââ
âI do,â Heeseung interrupts. âWe put them in that box, remember? I found it this morning, thatâs why I thought to bring them up, ha.â
âYou didnât, er, read them, did you?â
Heeseung shakes his head, chewing through another bite. âI thought itâd be fun to go through them and see what weâve done or not.â He lightly taps his fork around his plate. âWeâve got a few days before the new year starts, no plans, I donât knowâŠâ
âNo, no, yeah, I get it,â you assure, nodding quickly. âI just, um, they were stupid. I was stupid. This year changed me, you know?â
Your roommate looks at you with a teasing glint in his eye. âOh yeah?â He watches you nod again. âAll the more reason to get them.â And before you know it, heâs rushing to his room to, you assume, get the box heâd mentioned earlier.
Itâs not long before heâs practically skipping back into the kitchen-dining area bringing the box. Tossing his plate aside, he sets the box in between you two and sits back down. Youâre anxious at how he unfolds the lid and pulls out two sheets of crumpled paper.
âYours was the one with the rip at the top,â you say, reading the questions in his mind. Your face flushes as you realize thatâll only prompt him to take it out the other first.
He smiles at you before hiding his face behind the paper. He begins to read it out loud. âResolution one: Learn how to make (good) pancakesââ Grabbing his fork, he clinks it twice against the porcelain. âCheck. Number two: Make weekly savingsâCheck, right?â
You hum, your leg shaking beneath the table.
âAlright, and thenââ He lowers the paper. Your eyes widen. âLose my virginity?â
âOkay!â you say overenthusiastically. âSee! I was being stupid, such a dumb thing to write on a new yearâs resolution list, right? Haha, so funny, letâs just throw these outââ
âWait, but we can cross this off, though, right? You had that boyfriend?â
âHe wasnât my boyfriend,â you clarify. âHe was⊠gross. I never really liked him like that, so it just never happened. Itâs whatever, Iâm a virgin, okay, letâs move on. Isnât the next thing I put down like eat more saladsââ
âYouâre still a virgin?â
You look at him bewildered. What was up with the intonation? Was it really shocking? Why does he even care? You suppose heâs always been the nosy type, just never assumed it would translate to this, as well.
He seems to realize the second meaning to his words and fumbles to take them back. âOkay, not likeâI didn't mean it in a weird way, Iâm just surprised that youâre... you know?â
âItâs⊠whatever,â you clarify. âItâs fine. Itâll happen at the right moment, right? Thatâs what they all say.â You'd shovel another bite into your mouth and you canât help but taste the bitterness from your words with the sweetness of the syrup. âIâll get over it when itâs done and gone.â
Heeseung clears his throat, paper discarded to the side, his eyes fixed on your plate in deep thought. âDo youâŠâ
You raise a brow.
âDo you want my help?â
-
In your defense, you really hate being a virgin. Not that itâs embarrassing or shameful to be one, but the fact that you swore to yourself that you wouldn't be a virgin anymore since last year makes you want to crumble up inside.
You just donât want to embarrass yourself in front of your past self. Imagine her laughing at you? Thatâs a new low.
Which leads to this moment right now. Laying in Heeseungâs bed, in Heeseungâs room, waiting for Heeseung to come back into said room with the âsuppliesâ he was rushing out to get.
The door slowly swings open as Heeseung pushes it with his back, his hands full. He makes eye contact with you and a pout makes its way across his lips. âYouâre still wearing your clothes?â
Your eyes snap open wider. âYes?!â
âWeâre gonna have sex, Y/N, your clothes arenât supposed to be on.â He smiles at you as he sets down lube and condoms.
A wave of relief washes over you when you realize heâs just teasing. Heeseungâs a gentleman, but itâs not like you've gotten the chance to know the side of him you two swore to never let you meet. He couldâve been a weirdo creep for all you knew, as long as he was paying his half of the rent it never mattered until right now.
âDo you want me to turn around when you take them off?â Yep, just the same old awkwardly sweet Heeseung youâve always known.
You smile, albeit nervously. âYouâll see me naked anyway, might as well put on a strip performance to get you in the mood.â
He laughs at your sarcasm, then points to the lights. âWe could turn those off if you want.â
For a moment, you consider it. If not for the hopes of Heeseung seeing the least possible, but for the ambiance. Do people leave the lights on or off during sex? Not like you know. Ultimately, you shake your head, getting off from the bed and sticking your hands under the hem of your shirt. âReady?â you ask him, though the question is more internalized.
His hum is muffled by his hands reaching at the collar of his shirt.
At once, you two pull your shirts off together.
Standing bare chest to bare chest - with bra - you eye him carefully. âYou take your shirt off from the top?â
âWhat?â
You mirrored his previous action. âYou took your collar and pulled your head through the neck hole firstââ your words muffle as you reenact it sloppily. âNormal people take their arms out first.â
Heeseung stiffles a laugh behind his hand. âArenât you supposed to try to seduce me?â
âIs this not sexy?â
âOh, please, go on, youâre making me hard.â
The two of you laugh and you realize youâre not so nervous anymore. The anxious jitters left your hands and you can feel your muscles relaxing. Itâs just Heeseung. Just Heeseung.
As he recovers from a fit of laughter, you look at him in a way you havenât taken the chance to ever since you met almost two years ago. His arms that flex when he wraps them around himself. His smile which switches to a sly smirk when heâs resisting the urge to laugh louder. His hair that falls neatly into place, over his eyes that glint to the point you canât take your gaze away from them.
Heat rushes to your cheeks.
Heâs attractive. Yeah, thatâs been obvious.
Your type? MaybeâŠ
But this is different. And, oh god, heâs going to have sex with you.
Heeseung clears his throat, snapping you out of your daze.
âPants?â he asks cautiously. His eyes are brimmed with concern, probably sensing your confused thoughts, clearly not understanding what youâre telling yourself.
You respond by tugging at your sweatpant laces, letting them drop down dramatically. Heeseung keeps his eyes glued to your movement, eyes widening at the sight of your bare legs and white panties. He quickly reaches for his belt.
To your surprise, you can see that heâs, at the very least, getting hard. Maybe itâs nerves. You try not to think too much about the possible influence the sight of your almost-bare body has on him.
Still, to test the waters and ease or completely disrupt your mind, you ask, âCan you help me with my bra?â
He fumbles an answer, youâre pretty sure you hear a âyesâ through his blabs, as he kicks out of his pants fully and stumbles to your side of the bed. You turn your back to him, giving him the cue by raising your hair away from the clasp.
Shivers run down your spine at his gentle, warm touch on your skin. You never knew you were sensitive, but with every simple movement, every brush against your back has you feeling goosebumps running up your arms.
Heeseungâs breath is hollow behind you.
When the clasp is finally undone, you pull your arms out of the straps, letting the material drop to the floor with your other discarded clothes.
You turn to face Heeseung, his eyes saying more than any words could mean. Stunned, he asks, âCan I kiss you?â
âYes,â you whisper in return, eyes drifting down to his mouth.
He doesn't hesitate to lean in. His arms naturally slide around your waist, pulling you flush against his body as his lips hungrily crash into yours. You gasp through the initial shock of ferocity, relaxing into his hold with your hands coming up to the nape of his neck.
His fingers squeeze your skin pulling a sound from your mouth, muffled by his lips. You donât even notice the way his knees push you back until youâre laying on the bed, lips still attached to Heeseungâs, but even those pull away eventually. You almost get up onto your elbows to chase after his touch, but stop yourself at the sight of his intense gaze.
Your gazes lock with each other for a moment, before he finally breaks contact to rush to the bedside cabinet where the lube bottle sits. He pours a generous amount on his fingers, rubbing the gel slowly. He eyes the way it reflects the light and this one reaction makes you think heâs never seen it before, but you doubt it â youâve heard his sexual escapades thanks to your graciously thin walls.
âIâm going to finger you first,â Heeseung interrupts your thoughts.
You simply hum in return, letting your legs fall apart for him to get back into place, between them.
Heeseung has one hand on your thigh, the other levitates over your skin with nearly-dripping lube, but his eyes are on yours, waiting for another nod before he can continue.
Giving him the signal, you arenât prepared for the chill that runs down your spine at the cold sensation of the lube on your sensitive skin. Soon enough, though, your gasps turn to gentle hums as Heeseung draws little circles on your bare pussy.
âThis okay?â
You nod needily.
One finger finally intrudes, swimming through your walls and curls to find that certain spot. Your hips roll into itâyou never thought it'd be this different from your own fingers.
âMore,â you whimper.
âAlready?â Heeseung teases, but you can hear partial genuinity in his tone.
Wordlessly, your hand reaches down to his, pulling at it to get another finger inside of you.
Heeseung chuckles in disbelief, but doesn't disobey your request.
Two fingers in and youâre letting soft gasps escape your lips, eyes already threatening to roll back at the rhythmic pattern Heeseungâs keeping up. He pushes in, pulls out, pushes back in and curls into you. You match his pace with your hips, hoping to deepen his touch. Heâs so close, so close to where you need him.
Meanwhile, his thumb rolls gently over your clit to ease the tension of the stretch. It helps, making your head spin and forcing you to focus entirely on the pleasure you feel, rather than the pain.
Heeseung doesn't warn you when he slips in a third, but youâre busy throwing your head back, moaning to tell him off for it.
âFuck,â you whisper to the ceiling. ââIs so good.â
Your back arches as Heeseungâs fingers reach your G-spot, curling and tickling the bundle of nerves, ripping out more muffled moans, your hand thrown to your mouth not to disturb the neighbours.
âRight there!â you moan. âRightâshit, yesâRight there!â When he keeps at it, you can't hold on much longer. âFuck, Iâm so closeââ
And then itâs gone.
All the pleasure is ripped away from you as Heeseung pulls out of you coldly, barely looking your way as he turns to the bedside cabinet.
âHey,â you whine, albeit childishly.
Itâs as if something clicks and he turns back to you. âSorry,â he singsongs out. âI didnât want you to come so soon, I still have to actually fuck you, right?â
You pout, but ultimately heâs right. Thatâs what you're here for. âFine.â
He fumbles with the condom packet, eventually giving up at going at it with his lubed-fingers and rips the package with his teeth.
âI couldâve helped,â you tell him, smiling teasingly.
âI got it. I got it.â He waves his hand at you before he uses that same hand to roll down the condom andâHoly. Shit. Heâs packing.
You never took the time to think about his size, though you probably would've determined it was a decent size from the outline of it when he's chilling on the couch with sweats on.
But now that it's out, hard and flush against his toned abs? You take a deep breath and try not to think too much about how it must taste, how itâd feel to have him down your throatâas if you even know how to give a proper blowjob. Maybe he could guide you, holding your head from the back and pushing it back and forth rhythmically up and down his cock andâ
âY/N?â
âHuh?â
âI asked if youâre sure about this?â
Heâs pumping his cock as he asks. You resist the urge to lick your lips.
âYes,â you say. âIâm ready.â And thereâs no lie in your words.
Heeseung crawls back onto the bed once more, staying on his knees when his body is lined up with yours. He nods to himself and you before lining up his dick with your entrance, one hand falling to the side of your head, the other resting on your lower stomach as he pushes in slowly.
The intrusion is unfamiliar. The stretch hurts more than expected. Yet, your mouth is agape in frozen pleasure â Heeseung let his hand fall lower and is now drawing circles on your clit to ease the tension.
He keeps his thumb on your pussy while slowing his movement to a stop. âTell me when I can move.â
Instead of relaxing into the stretch, preparing yourself for more friction, you focus entirely on Heeseungâs movements on your clit. Rolling the bud of pleasure between his two fingers, your eyes flutter shut in pleasure.
You test the waters by flexing your core muscles, squeezing your walls against Heeseungâs cock.
âFuck,â he groans, snapping his hips forward at once, but he quickly stops himself. Heeseung looks up at you with cutely worried wide eyes. âShit, sorryâAre you okay?â
You giggle. âGo!â you say between laughs, rolling your hips down to get him going.
He doesn't need to be told twice. He quickly resumes his previous thrust, your legs are naturally pushed apart to give him more accessâmoans spill from your lips at the newfound depth he reaches.
Heeseungâs head dips, his hair falling over his face, but does nothing to hide his expressions. You watch him for a moment, reveling in how good your pussy is making him feel. You clench around him again and his mouth falls open. He lets out the most harmonious sound you never expected from him but want to hear again and again.
So, you roll your hips into his, until your lower stomachs are threatening to brush against each other, until Heeseung lowers from his hands to elbows, and your bodies are flushed against each other. Your skins are sticky with sweat, but you canât be bothered. Not with his rhythmic thrusts reaching so deep inside of you. Not with his fingers still playing with your clit, torturing the bud with nonstop pleasure. Not with his lips so close to your mouth, and your head pulling itself upward to capture them in another kiss.
Your hands snake to the back of his head, curling into his messy hair and pulling gently to bring him closer to you. His free hand finds its way into your hair, too, pushing the flyaways back into the rest of the mess, away from your face, before it rests gently on your neck, guiding you in the kiss.
âFuck, baby,â he whispers into your mouth as your walls clench around him again.
Your head spins at his low tone, pleasure bubbling in your stomach in a way it never has before. âIâmâShitâIâm so close!â
Heeseung takes this as a signal to speed up his fingers on your clit, and slows down his thrusts, deepening them with each push in.
âCome on, come for me.â
And you do.
So much, like never before.
Your back arches into him, head thrown back, letting out a sinful string of moans. Youâd curse from the pleasure, but your thoughts aren't coherent enough to form words.
Youâre frozen in place, legs shaking as Heeseung pulls out to finish himself off. He jerks off into the condom on top of your wasted body, coming undone as soon as your dazed eyes meet his hungry gaze.
He doubles over, landing on his hand, face mere inches away from yours. âFuck,â he says.
âFuck,â you repeat, a giggle in your tone.
âCongratulations,â he says, rolling onto his back to be laying beside you. âYouâre no longer a virgin.â
Your weak arms raise in a small celebration. âYay.â
âHow was it?â
You canât even respond, hands coming up to cover your flushed face. You can feel Heeseungâs smirk behind them.
âIâll take that as good.â Then, after a beat. âDoes that mean you'd want to do it again?â
Your hands fall flat to your sides in one quick movement. âWhat?â
âThereâs so much more I can teach you.â
âNo,â you say while shaking your head. He looks defeated, you almost want to reach up and pet him like a dog. âNot until you buy me dinner.â
â· WIP ăŽCHERRYă± : LEE HEESEUNG
pairing : pervert!heeseung x virgin!reader
Warnings : toxic heeseung, manipulation, coercion, morally gray characters, dub con, infidelity, angst, filthy smut, masturbation, voyeurism, exhibitionism, body image issues, body shaming, family issues (it gets heavy), unprotected sex, cum eating, violence, dacryphilia.
â· PREVIEW : Your hands tremble in indignation as you snatch the taunting piece of paper from Sunghoon's grasp. The laughter and jeers coming from the group of boys in front of you ignite a fiery flush upon your cheeks, fueling a desire to strangle each and every one of them.
"Come on y/n, don't be a buzzkill, we're just joking around," Sunghoon cackles as your gaze darts swiftly across the list of names highlighted in various colors and handwritings on the page. Each name is a girl you know or someone you've heard of in passing. Your eyes stop when you come across your name highlighted in red, along with HIS name. Your ears flame red with fury and mortification as the words on the sheet finally start to make sense.
So this is a list of-
Raising your eyes, you ignore Sunghoon and meet his friend's smirk head-on. Heeseung's brow arches in a gesture of smugness as he sprawls arrogantly in his seat, manspreading like he doesn't give a single fuck about what you're holding in your hands. He isn't ashamed. With a sultry pop, he withdraws the lollipop he's been sucking on, his lips glistening with a sheen of scarlet as his tantalizing tongue traces a path over his lower lip, his gaze a dark challenge locked onto yours, sending more heat to your cheeks.
You bite your lower lip to stop it from quivering and crumple the offending sheet of paper, delivering it with a resounding smack to Heeseung's forehead, eliciting a chorus of gasps from the rest of the boys. Without pausing to witness his reaction, you pivot on your heel and stride purposefully out of the classroom, hands shaking as the damning words on the now crumpled piece of paper swirl at the forefront of your mind.
Cherries to pop this semester : Y/N (Heeseung's pick)
wc : 23k
READ HERE
đđđ đđđđđđđđ â SURPRISE ìŽíŹìč
"surprise, slip my panties to the side."
PAIRING. lee heeseung x fem!reader (+17)
WARNINGS. mentions of alcohol, mentions of smoking, drunk hee (for a bit), cursing, bondage (ropes & handcuffs), hee is a bit angry n feral, his mood changes suddenly but itâs ok <3, bj + hj, oral (f & m), face sitting, lots of teasing, edging, overstimulation, fingering, pet names, praising !, multiple rounds (?), bath sex in a way, thigh riding, morning sex, pls tell me if i missed any !
WORD COUNT. 9.3k :0
SYNOPSIS. jaeyun pitched you one of his âgeniusâ plans to celebrate heeseungâs birthdayâ but how will heeseung take it?
A, NOTE. happy new year my loves !! i would greatly appreciate it if we all ignored the fact that this was supposed to be published on heeâs birthday <3 it took me an unnecessarily long time to write, but i hope u enjoy ! + pls check a, note part 2 and the end <3 (this is also proofread at 4 am so đđŒ)
red and blue lights scattered messily across your vision, the smell of intoxicating alcohol, tobacco and sweat infiltrating your senses leaving you slightly light headed, your fingertips grasped at the hem of your dress, situated around your thighs to pull the mini dress lower, eyes roaming desperately for the towering figure of your boyfriend,
your boyfriend, lee heeseungâ the birthday boy who god knows where he is right now.
you took cautious footsteps once you began to surround the approaching mass of people, sweaty bodies dancing restlessly in each and every corner of the house whilst your gaze roamed, hands clammy with sweat from the lack of air, your lungs constricting as it got harder to breathe the longer you stayed among the crowded room,
âthere you are!â a familiar voiced boomed behind you, a feeling of relief washing down once you recognised the loud voice over the deafening music, jaeyun approached you with a large smile gracing his face, brown strands untidily cascading down his features as his arm wrapped around your exposed shoulder, the other hand bringing his drink closer to his mouth,
âenjoying the party?â you questioned next to his ear, taking in the sight of the slightly tipsy man who was busy winking at a random girl across the room, âof course!â he quickly replied, catching your amused gaze with his twinkling one.
âiâm here to tell you about a surprise for heeseung,â he spoke, hand lowering from your shoulder to wrap around your waist as he led you away, âa surprise? i already have a gift for him though.â jakeâs flushed face turned towards yours after he signalled the random girl to a different room, âi have a better idea.â he giggled
and whilst you were being walked out of the room, your eyes caught the sight of heeseungâs wet form out of the window, standing besides the pool as his other friends encouraged him to drink more while other figures jumped into the pool, the view of him being covered by nothing more than his dripping white button up shirt that carved all his chiseled muscles out along with a black tie hanging loosely around his neck made your head reel, thoughts rushed to your head when your gaze dropped lower to his flexing thighs beneath his black pants,
his clothing material all soaked due to his previous jump into the water, as a result of a stupid dare. you could hear his drunken laughter over the music as his face kept getting warmer, a soft blush adorning his sharp features due to the alcohol, his black locks sticking to his forehead contrasting his reddened skin,
âtrust me, heeseungâs going to love it.â jake chuckled besides you, ultimately stealing your attention away as he opened the door to the guest room, the image of a pair of handcuffs along with a large rope was the least expected one in your mind, and once your confusing gaze landed on jaeyunâs smiling face, you began to doubt whatever his idea was,
should you trust jake?
you shouldnât have trusted jake.
as trusting jake lead you to this current predicament, wearing a purple coloured lingerie beneath your feathery robe, "his favourtie colour" jaeyun's voice rang in your ears, the pair of handcuffs situated in your hand while the rope was in the other as you stared at heeseungâs shirtless passed out form with his tie around his neck, in your shared bed,
the party had ended hours ago, leaving you with a drunk, sleeping heeseung that currently seemed to be in a deep dream, lips partially opened as quiet snores left his mouth, evidently exhausted from the events of tonight,
your footsteps light as you stepped deeper into the bedroom, the wood quietly creaking beneath you while your gaze was fixated on heeseungâs form between the satin sheets, chest heaving upwards softly to allow short pants of his breath to escape,
countless thoughts ran through your head as your eyes kept scanning his body in the dim lighting of the room, should you proceed? what if he wakes up in the middle of everything? what if he doesnât enjoy it?
throughout the duration of your dilemma the only thought that circled your mind continuously was the possibility of heeseung enjoying this night, jaeyunâ his best friend, would never set you up for failure would he? never.
and with the prominent thought of this night becoming a memorable one for heeseung, you decided to continue.
opting on inhaling in a deep breath, you inched closer towards the bed till you moved atop his body, legs carefully caging around his waist whilst your shaky hands wrapped around his wrists, thankfully heeseung had his arms behind his head, ultimately making the situation easier for you to mend,
with caution, you wrapped the iron material around his wrists, the soft click of the cuffs increasing the rapid beating pace of your heart, nervousness etched its way throughout your body as heeseung was always the one to guide you in any sort of intimate situation, but now here you were, taking that freedom away from him.
and as your hands grabbed the rope to wrap his cuffed hands against the headboard, the man beneath you slightly moved, your breath hitched as you were only one pull away from completing his knot yet you froze once his eyebrows furrowed, his eyes remained closed as you awaited his awake, breathing out a sigh of relief after taking notice of his continued slumber,
with the final knot in place, heeseung was successfully cuffed and tied up, landing him in a situation where he had absolutely no chances of touching you as he always does and loves to, your eyes remained on the rope decorating his veiny hands, the contrast between his soft, delicate skin and the harsh ropeâ
âbaby?â heeseung raspily called, tone laced with sleep and exhaustion as his bleary eyes searched for yours, he could feel your figure atop his yet his gaze searched for yours in the dim lighting, heeseung attempted to move, confusion cascading his face once he realised the restriction around his hands,
âwhatâs all this?â he questioned, head looking upwards to the unexpected sight of the rope covered handcuffs surrounding his wrists, you stared at his face wide eyed, studying his every expression as your breathes quickened once his frown deepened,
âsurprise?â you responded, heart thumping between your ribs, innumerable thoughts swirled in your mind dizzyingly, heeseung's second tug at the ropes rendering him futile made you become hyper aware of the situation that you hadâ of the power you had over him.
"surprise? baby.. what are you planning?" he repeated, his eyes narrowing down on you, gaze swiftly lowering to widen at the sight of his favourite colour wrapping around your body alluringly, his nervous gulp went unnoticed by you, yet you were able to feel his length twitching beneath all articles of clothing between both of you easily.
breathing in a sharp breathâ "angel.. how about you untie me so we can both enjoy the night? hm?" he spoke out, desperately beginning his negotiation, and there was no way you were giving up your power.
to have lee heeseung tied up, helplessly beneath you was once in a lifetime occurrence, you might have adored all the nights of him taking full and complete control over you, sometimes deciding to be generous enough to allow you to have a small taste of what its like to take control by guiding you to please him,
"how does it feel?" you questioned ignoring his words, eyes avoiding his as it followed the path of your hand slowly brushing down from his shoulder towards his collarbone, the shaky rise of his chest beneath your fingertips heightened your senses as you felt a throbbing sensation from beneath you,
"angel.. what?" he puzzledly asked, attempting his best to control his breathes as your fingertips inched closer towards his nipple, attempting his best to distract himself from the warmth of your cunt seeping through the lingerie directly to his hardening dick, and yet again, all his attempts deemed inaffective.
"how does it feel to be under me?" you paid no mind to the sudden surge in confidence gushing through you, attention captured by the way heeseung's eyes immediately darkened, his mind was reeling from your teasing as he wasn't used to this at all, he was more accustomed to eat up the sight of your writhing, twitching body beneath him, not the sight of your hungry gaze staring down at him as he was tied up, he could see the numerous emotions spiraling in your vision.
a burning sensation expanded throughout his chest, his need and desire for you fueled by the remaining alcohol in his system, the absolute need to have you beneath him as he pleased you was almost blinding, and the constant throbbing around his wrists from the tight ropes was pushing his patience further,
"answer me hee, how does it feel? hm?" you copied his soft tone in persuading you once he remained silent, your hands gently caressing his smooth skin, heeseung began to shift beneath you, his body hot and bothered by your contiunous teasing and warmth surrounding him yet your lack of movement was driving him crazy, his breaths became shorter, eyelids became heavier as he stared at you,
he so desperately wanted to be angry with you, to somehow manage to stir the control to himâ yet your twinkling, curious gaze made him almost play along with your silly game,
"infuriating." he seethed out from between gritted teeth, eyes closing entirely once he felt you press your hips against him, resulting in him tugging against the ropes feebly again, you cooed mockingly at his frown, going further to rile him up by bringing your hand to caress his cheek soothingly, and almost instantly he leaned towards your touch, heeseung's breath hitched as he felt you beginning to slowly roll your hips against his,
opening his eyes to the sight of you looking beneath you both after you quickly discarded your robe, taking notice of his abs flexing, his length's outline steadily becoming more prominent, "just what is going on inside that pretty little head of yours, angel?" he smiled in frustration at you, your needy gaze locked with his own before you shrugged tauntingly,
"i just want to make you feel good." you replied with honesty, slowly lowering yourself towards him, heeseung hissed as he felt your plump lips ghosting kisses against his burning hot skin, his breathes quickened the wetter your kisses got while you went lower, his own lips getting caught hostage between his teeth when he felt you sucking his skin needily,
"baby.. come on," he urged on, the hem of his pants felt like scorching iron rubbing against his skin, his resolve slipping further at the feeling of your hands caressing his abdomen, your tongue swiftly circling his belly button before finally reaching his pants once you were satisfied with his surprised gasp, he breathed out a sigh of relief as you quickly tugged the constricting fabric along with his boxers down,
he was unbelievably hard, heeseungâs head was thrown back at the feeling of you blowing air on him once his large length was freed from his boxers, teeth grinding against one another once your cold fingertips wrapped around his burning skin, âdonât tease me more, angel.â he rasped out, a clear warning in his words as he was close to losing his mind at this point, yet you only smiled at him.
âjust enjoy what iâll give you.â his nails scratched angrily at the ropes from your words, he could feel his frustration leading his body as he thrusted uncontrollably into your hands, in need for any kind of friction, he could taste his blinding climax on the tip of his tongue and yet at the same time it felt so far away, his body felt like it was on fire as for the first timeâ he couldnât get what he wanted instantly.
heeseung was new to this situation, one where nothing was under his control and he was left with nothing but his desperate breathes for your mercy, a small portion of him was more accepting of the drastic change, yet that small voice was nothing in comparison to the warning alarms ringing in his head,
and he knew he was completely fucked the moment you decided to lick up a long stripe starting from his base then trailing upwards to circle his raging tip torturously, a shaky breath involuntarily escaped once you repeated the action once again, countless empty threats died in his throat at the feeling of your warm mouth engulfing him, hot tongue pressing flat against the underside of his cock,
the salty taste of his continuous precum took over your senses, he was leaking a ridiculous amount just from simple teasing, using his precum as a lube substitute you began to jerk your hand up and down his length, the sudden change in pace resulting in his legs spasming around you, then a satisfied hum vibrating around his tip making him close his eyes shut,
his breathes got heavier the longer you moved, suckling on his tip sloppily with the incessant motion of your hand bringing him closer to his release, heeseungâs muffled groans got louder as he attempted his best to silence himself, not used to being the vocal one that much.
you looked up to the sight of his head thrown back, chest and face flushing a pretty pink along with a sheen, thin layer of sweat glistening along his rapidly rising chest, he looked breathtaking under the dim lighting, abs and legs flexing as he felt his abdomen tightening even more,
âd-donât stop angel⊠iâm close,â he whimpered out, the sound of his voice breaking and stuttering out made your brain short circuit, a sound so sweet and addictive that youâve been deprived of for months, you decided to tease him more,
the moment the tip of your tongue licked along his prominent vein beneath the head of his cock was enough to have his eyes roll back into his skull, plump lips agape to let out a quiet shocked gasp, you continued applying pressure, his thighs shaking next to you whilst his biceps flexed around his head, the rope slowly damaging his skin yet all his mind could focus on was your tongue and the unexpected quickened build up of his climax,
his head fell to the side, pleasure overtaking his body as the coil in his abdomen only tightened further, your hands lowered to fondle with his balls whilst your tongue remained teasing his vein, heeseung could swear he began to see stars the longer you continued, chest rising speedily to inhale deep breathes that felt nonexistent for him,
âright there baby.. so c-close iâm cu-â yet he couldnât finish his sentence, the intense build up of pure delight running in his veins abruptly ended, his eyes snapped open in shock when you just pulled away,
âbaby what the fuck are you doing?â he spat out angrily, his head lifted swiftly, irritated gaze landing on the sight of your swollen lips and glistening eyes staring back at him, his breathes quickened in frustration as his cock twitched desperately at the view of you, âi canât have you finish so quickly, whereâs the fun in that?â
and with ease, your words affected him efficiently, his brown pools instantly darkening, pupils reducing in size the longer he felt his release slipping away from his body, âiâm gonna fuck that attitude out of you the moment i break these shits,â he tugged on the ropes again, heeseung has never felt so sexually frustrated before, his throbbing length was aching almost painfully when your hold slightly tightened around him,
âyou talk too much,â was your only response, heeseung couldnât bring himself to respond back in time before you lowered yourself yet again, he was suffering whiplash after whiplash from the âsurpriseâ and your frustrating teasing, his head fell back against the pillow once he felt your warm mouth engulfing his tip again,
âyouâre going to r-regret this so much, pretty.â he choked out, face burning hot once he felt his impending release returning in an embarrassingly quick manner, you started with licking gently at his sensitive, leaking slit while your hands jerked off his cock below slowly, one hand moved to milk his length while the other stayed lower to cradle his balls,
the familiar stars returned to his vision when you only hummed around him at his words, his frustration mixed with the intense pleasure were feelings his body couldnât keep up with, and he was under your control with his twitching body directly beneath your hands.
âplease angel⊠donât stop, iâm so close,â he begged you, voice scratchy and hoarse as he felt his lower half slightly go numb with the continuous build up, his creeping climax approaching in a way his mind couldnât keep up with, one second he was holding back moans while the other he felt mere moments away from his orgasm,
his abdomen tightened, as he could yet again taste his release on the tip of his tongue, so close, so dizzyingly close he was, his mouth fell open at the feeling of his climax moments away from washing over him, hips jerking into your hold once you quickened only for all of it to come crashing down once you pulled back again,
âwhat the fuck-â heeseung growled out, his body searing in anger and pain when all he could feel around his raging length was the cold air, not your wet mouth and warm hands, his mind was reeling with curses as he lifted his head up again, âdid i ruin it?â you questioned as you smiled at him.
âdid i ruin it, again?â and there you sat, dolled up in his favourite colour, lingerie barely covering any part of you while you looked at him, eyes twinkling with mischief as you smirked at him, and his painfully red length right infront of you, he didnât respond,
âcome on hee, is this not fun for you?â you spoke, hands reaching upwards to caress his twitching thighs, finger tips going as high as his hips, torturously close to his length before going down to his knee, heeseung didnât respond, his eyes remained close whilst he breathed heavily from his nose,
you failed to notice the way his veins were bulging at this point all around his arms, specifically his hands, you failed to notice his fingers and wrists turning red around the cuffs as he tugged, busy pushing your teasing further with running your index finger from the base of his length to his tip,
all you could feel was authority and power, your first taste as you wished to prolong the view of a whimpering heeseung under you, âyou could tell me-â you completely failed to notice the small crack! around the headboard that the rope was fastened to,
you were too late, your heart dropped to your stomach at the sudden loud sound of wood breaking, followed by clank of metal, the large scattered piece of wood landed on the floor followed by the ripped ropes and the handcuffs, you sat frozen in your place in shock and attempting to process the fact thatâ heeseung just broke completely free?
he sat there, dark strands falling all over his eyes that were staring at you half lidded, you could see the pent up frustration and anger in them, most importantly the relief now that he was free, the feral glint intensified when he gently moved his hands around his wrists, his hand caressing the slightly damaged skin all while maintaining eye contact with your shocked face,
you really shouldnât have trusted jake.
because jake never brought up the high possibility of the result of his plan to be a feral heeseung staring at you in a predatory gaze with a broken headboard behind him, âyou had your fun didnât you, baby?â he smiled at you, chest remaining to pant heavy breaths,
you only nodded your head, still stuck on attempts to process the fact that jakeâs plan entirely backfired, what now?
ânow itâs my time to have fun, itâs only fair that way isnât it?â he finished your thought for you, he cooed at the sight of your confused gaze, yet you werent completely sure. judging by his sudden attitude change, there was no way he was going to be this nice with you, not after everything you did?
âcome hereâ he pushed himself upwards on the bed before he patted on his lap, his length still standing proud and hard, yet the expectant look in heeseungâs eyes made you obey him completely,
you hastily crawled towards him, his needy hands instantly caressing and fondling every inch of skin he could reach, âlook at you.. all dolled up for me, you look stunning, angel.â he trailed kisses down your shoulder once your back pressed against his chest, his length throbbed by your lower back whilst his hands gripped around the frail fabric around your body, his hands were rough,
god if you only knew what you were in for.
âjust for you, hee.â you whispered to him, turning your head to face his lovesick eyes, the sudden changes in his gaze made your head spin as the heeseung that was glowering at you a mere minute ago, was currently drowning in your eyes with nothing but pure adoration and need for you,
âyeah? all for me, right?â he breathed out against your lips, large hands now finding comfort on your waist, stroking your soft skin gently as he nuzzled his nose in the crook of your neck, you felt his lips curving upwards into a smile when you nodded in confirmation to his words,
âopen your legs for me, darling.â his hands lowered to grip your thighs apart, fingertips brushing soothingly against your supple skin before they inched towards your center, your soiled panties coming in contact with his fingertips made him chuckle, âalready this excited, baby?â he questioned, his smile widening when you turned your blushing face away from him,
his fingers quickly pushed the soaked fabric away, immediately moving towards your sopping hole, your wetness gushed around his finger once he teased the tip of his finger in, his other arm came up to wrap around your waist once your breathes began to get heavier, face flushed whilst he carefully pressed you more against him as he leaned back against the remaining part of the headboard,
âlook at you taking me in so well, angel.â he praised, eyes locked and fascinated on the way his fingers disappeared between your swollen folds only to come out glistening, you looked below you, the sight of your dripping cunt covered by his long fingers never failed to make your heart skip a beat, only increasing the warmth spreading around your body once he dipped back in,
his rough skin caressed along your gummy walls, easily reaching your weakest and sweetest spots to please you in the best ways possible, his priorities seemed to remain unchanged even in his state of pure rage, he still had to make you cum at least once on his fingers or tongue before proceeding with anything else,
it was when he swiftly added his other ring finger to please you along with his middle one, then proceeding to use his other hand to rub slow circles on your puffy clit, steadily dragging your climax closer, you began to see stars,
colourful indecipherable shapes clouded your vision as heeseung fingered your first release out of you with ease, your glazed eyes rolled to the back of your head when he continued, aiding you in riding out your climax with his movements between your twitching legs whilst he whispered unintelligible praises to your ear, ending each word with a gentle kiss that echoed in your mind,
he was so gentle with you as you moaned quietly for him, your noises heard as melodies for him and only him, he studied your every expression while you were coming undone under his touch, though heâs seen you in this state countless times your short gasps, furrowed eyes and closed eyelids that were complimented by your flushed cheeks never failed to leave him mesmerised,
your hand quickly reached out to slow his movements, heeseung was close to beginning overstimulating you, his fingers resumed to thrust into your gushing cunt, knocking your breath out, yet before you could ask him to stop he beat you to it, âyou took all this away from me tonight,â he whispered, tone undergoing an astonishing change as he spoke in anger,
the pleasure and sensitivity was beginning to numb your mind once you felt another impending orgasm building up, your abdomen twisting in tension at your imminent release, âhee please-â you whimpered out before he cut you off, âtake all of it, didnât you want to make me feel good?â he asked, breathes getting harsher against your ear while your heart raced, your legs ached once heeseung moved his own beneath them to keep yours open,
âmake me feel good, angel. cum for me,â he ordered, his hands increasing in pace as he quickly added a third finger making your eyes almost cross, your wetness by now was gliding down his hand and inevitably ruining the sheets beneath you, the force of his fingers pushed back against your convulsing hips, whilst he busied himself with trailing bites down your neck,
âiâm c-close, heeâ you warned, voice cracking with each syllable as your oncoming climax felt more intense, the coil in your stomach twisting and turning once your release was moments away from overtaking your body, âcome on, angel. iâve got you,â his words were the last ones you registered before your ears began to ring as you squirted all over his hands, body trembling in his hold while heeseung continued to fuck you with his fingers, riding out the entirety of your orgasm whilst he basked in your moans and whimpers of his name,
âdid so well for me angel,â he breathed out, his fingers pulled out from your dripping folds, reaching upwards to teasingly press on your puffy clit, eliciting a needy whimper from you, âdoesnât feel that nice when you tease, does it?â he asked with his voice heavy, eyes glued on your face twisted in pleasure and slight overstimulation, âno, iâm sorry, it doesnât feel nice.â you quickly responded, wishing in your head for this to be over as the exhaustion from your mind blowing releases was slowly shutting down your brain,
yet heeseung noticed the prolonged period of your closed eyes, there was no way you thought that the night could possibly end any time soon, right? absolutely not. he hasnât even started yet,
with a particularly unexpected slap to your dripping cunt your eyes shot wide open, a shocked gasp escaped your throat before all the noises in the room were replaced with your mewls that rung out once he began to toy with your overstimulated clit, âwanna go to sleep, baby?â he questioned while his fingers teased around your entrance again,
your body shivered beneath his arms as he pushed the tip of his two fingers in, âcan we sleep, please?â you cried out, a thin veil beginning to form around your eyes once all the nerves in your body sparked, pleasure shooting all throughout your veins when heeseung pushed his fingers knuckles deep again, âour night hasnât even started yet, pretty.â he replied with a chuckle,
your moans broke apart further the more his fingers began to fuck out orgasm after orgasm from you whilst he savoured every pretty noise you made, each sound making him fall deeper into the haze of the lust that was intoxicating the room, the longer you squirmed in his hold, the longer you made the prettiest sounds, the worse he ached beneath you, he relished in all the unintentional movements to his throbbing length behind you, swallowing back every moan of his in every few seconds that you moved just right,
âyou can give me another one, canât you?â his hot breath landed against your ear, by now both of your bodies felt sticky and hot, drenched in sweat atop the steadily soaking sheets, your breath mixed with his whilst his fingers never left your drenched pussy, heeseungâs mind was reeling with pain and pleasure at this point, his body had probably gotten more sensitive than yours yet he knew it was all going to be worth it in the end,
you shook your head in denial, however your body was contradicting all your thoughts once you gushed around his fingers again, heeseung smiled in satisfaction at your spent state, your sweaty chest rising up rapidly in despair for air, he had to fight the urge to bury his face between your legs once his fingers pulled away to reveal multiple, clear spider web like strings that connected his fingers to your cunt, their rightful place.
heeseung was absolutely hypnotised by your weak body above him, twitching legs behind his for when he attempted his best to keep yours open, captivated by the way your hands gripped around his for support as you tried to regulate your breathing,
he gently moved your body towards the bed, laying you down carefully whilst you opened your unfocused, watery eyes to gaze at his love and concern filled ones, âyou alright, baby?â he whispered against your lips, lowering body as close to possible to yours, curious eyes searching your tired ones when you wrapped your arms around his shoulders to lower him for a gentle peck, you nodded your head in reassurance to him, oh how you wish you didnât.
as the moment that you did, his eyes flashed with the same anger they had minutes ago, âyou still have energy, i know you do.â he replied, assuring himself more than you before he flipped your body over in the blink of an eye, the last expression on his face that you saw was of him smiling at you,
his hands brushed against your sides from the bottom to the top, like a predator checking their prey. his hold tightening the more he inched lower before he reached your hips, âso perfect for me,â he whispered his praise more to himself while his eyes took in every inch of your exhausted body,
you whimpered in his hold in surprise when he spread your cheeks apart, revealing your dripping gaping hole to his eyes, the sight alone made an incredibly painful throb to resonate from between his aching legs,
he wasted no time in propping himself on his knees, hips angled towards yours with his raging red tip positioned at your entrance, without a warning he pushed in,
the satisfying burn and tightening made you moan in unison, heeseung by now was completely acting on his own desires, body overtaken in pleasure and absolute need to have himself buried to the deepest point in you, your figure pressed against his while he fucked you till the sunrise, till both of your bodies were so sensitive and unable to handle a single touch,
his thrusts were merciless as he pounded into you, pushing your body further against the bed before pulling you back by your hips, you moaned into the pillow as heeseung took complete control of the situation, ridiculous how you thought tonight he would be under your control.
and as the thought was formed in your head, he pushed harsher against you before he rasped out, âyou tried toâŠâ cut off by his harsh breaths, his hips suddenly slowed down to become more powerful, âtried. to. control. me?â he asked through gritted teeth in an incredulous manner, accentuating and bringing more strength to every word by following it with a harsh thrust, his tip pressing against your cervix with each word making your eyes roll back whilst your jaw went slack,
his cock brushed against all your sweet spots, length perfectly stretching your walls with the tiniest tinge of burn due his large size, you could feel each and every vein bulging along your guts as he pounded into you,
âtried to guide me?â he followed with a laugh, and there he was. the heeseung you were expecting to appear since the moment you tied him up, the wild and vicious side of him that youâve rarely gotten to see as he much preferred showing you his gentler side, however those were in situations that were under his control.
humiliation took over you at his words in the best form possible, his words of mock only resulted in you tightening around him making him groan, he leaned forward, hovering his chest above your back as he completely caged you beneath him, before he brought himself closer to your ear, âyou looked so cute trying to tell me what to do, babyâ he whispered, hips pressing flush against your ass with every syllable,
your throat had gone hoarse by now, as all you could hear were your mewls followed by heeseungâs words, the tears that aligned by your waterline had slid down a long time ago, staining your face in the prettiest way possible, heeseungâs favourite way.
âlooked so cute acting all tough like you donât need me to help you with anything, hm?â he continued, chuckling into your ear as more tears aligned by your jaw before dropping onto the pillow,
âlooked so cute trying to suck me off like you donât need me to push your head down my dick everytime,â his arm came upwards, you had buried your head in your pillow soaked tears as his cock continued moulding you into his size while he spoke to you, unbeknownst to you he expertly pulled off the tie hanging loosely by his neck,
and in a split second, heeseung had wrapped the narrow fabric around your neck, you gasped as heeseung lifted your head upwards, the tie applied perfect pressure to your jugular veins instantly resulting in you becoming lightheaded whilst heeseungâs animalistic eyes bored into yours,
âwhat made you think thatâll work?â he smiled at you, revealing his pearly whites as if he wasnât pounding into you, whines escaped your mouth before you could process any of them, heeseung stared at your every expression with admiration and conceitedness,
âhave i not made you take control enough when you wanted to?â he pressed on, smile widening as he had an unrecognisable expression on his face, you couldnât tell if it was his reddened dark eyes, or his flushed face with his black locks that stuck on his forehead contrasting the light blush, but you could barely recognise him, the unfamiliar expression on his face sent pulses of warmth throughout your body,
âyou could have asked me if you were that interested, instead of putting those pathetic shits around my wrists.â he finished off, tilting his head to the side once you closed your eyes, his thursts never faltered as he brought you closer to your release, abdomen twisting and churning in preparation for your oncoming climax, you felt your ears ringing again when heeseung slightly pulled on the fabric around your neck,
âeyes on me, pretty.â he groaned, his own voice laced with exhaustion and need, the desire to release his climax from hours ago now blinding his senses, you opened your unfocused eyes to land upon his, and while his hips were grinding against yours, every inch of his cock caressing every inch of your walls that swallowed him up entirely, he spoke out,
âopen your mouth, baby.â his grip shakily tightening further around the tie, you breaths getting heavier and more difficult as you opened your mouth, heeseung spat onto your lolled out tongue, eyeing the way the string of saliva landed on your tongue before he pulled the tie more, âswallow.â and you did whilst he studied your every move,
once you showed him your clean tongue to satisfy him, he began to lower himself towards your neck, your head ultimately fell against the pillow again as heeseung began to trail soft bites along your shoulder while his hips moved against yours, both of you ridiculously sensitive from the prolonged edging and overstimulation, holding back desperately to lengthen the period of him inside of you, you moaned his name in need as his tip kept kissing your cervix,
âtaking me in so well, milking my cock so good angel.â he praised, the pleasure finally overtaking his body as your walls only sucked him in further while more slick poured around your legs and onto the sheets, your moans mixed with his needy ones, sweaty bodies rubbing against one another messily as both of you chased your highs in desperation,
âs-seung, iâm so close.â you stuttered out, eyes closing when heeseung softly tugged at the tie, his own eyes shut once he felt his climax mere seconds away from washing down on him, the dizzying feeling of euphoria already running through his veins and intensifying with the build up, he could see stars clouding his vision similar to the ones clouding yours, âiâve got you baby, cum for me.â he sweetly whispered,
and he followed his words with one, two and three delicious thrusts right against your cervix that had you coming undone for him, release washing over you mind numbingly, body weak as your legs shook beneath heeseungâs while his hand caressed your hips in attempts of comforting you, lips never stopping from kissing sweet words into your ear as you shook beneath him, the torturous tightening of your walls easily pushed heeseung over the edge as a few moments later you could feel his warm ropes of cum filling you up completely,
you struggled to return to your senses, body overtaken with exhaustion while heeseung kept peppering open mouthed kisses along your shoulder, his arms moved to wrap around your waist, gently fondling with your breasts as he was still cumming, he filled you up so well,
quiet and loving praises fell against your ear once heeseung was finished, still buried deep inside of you with his tie around your neck, your breathes were nearly shaky as he pressed his body closer to yours, âdid amazing for me, baby.â
âhow about i run both of us a bath then we can go to sleep?â he once again kissed your shoulder, smiling against your skin once you nodded,
you nodded in hopes of returning to clean satin sheets to drift off to slumber in the arms of your only love.
the smell of his favourite lavender bath bomb overwhelmed your nose when heeseung carried you into the warm bathroom after discarding you of your lingerie, gently lowering you into the warmth of the water before quickly taking his place behind you, your back laid against his chest, his hands ran up and down your arms in comfort, heeseungâs chest warmed as he noticed goosebumps aligning all over your skin at his touch the longer you leaned into him, his fingertips ghosted over your skin in a pleasant way.
your head was placed on his shoulder as your face was turned towards his neck, eyes closed in exhaustion from the restless night, heeseung cooed when he noticed all the narrow tear streaks on your cheeks, his hands massaged all your aching muscles whilst his lips kissed away your dried tears,
âyou okay, pretty?â he softly called out, voice quiet and gentle next to your ear, his soft side returning quickly, your gentle and caring heeseung gazed at you with concern and love shimmering in his eyes that filled with relief once you nodded, âiâm sorry if i was a bit rough, angel.â he continued, lips now moving along your neck with each word while his hands lowered to your thighs,
âitâs okay, i liked it.â you replied honestly once your eyes opened to look into his own expectant ones, voice quiet and hoarse as your throat felt sore, âyeah i bet you did, you looked pretty pleased you know.â he smiled before attempting to mimick your expressions that resulted in a pinch to his hand from you,
âthough iâm⊠not that satisfied yet.â heeseung voiced out quietly, his smile widened when your eyebrows furrowed in confusion, not that satisfied?
âwhat do you mean?â you questioned in bewilderment, you could still feel how sore all your muscles were there was no way he still had the energy for another round,
âi mean⊠it is my birthday isnât it?â he began, you nodded along his words which was his cue to continue, his eyes trailed all along your shoulders and neck that were littered with his bites, âand you do want to make me happy on my birthday, right?â of course he was going to use his birthday card to get what he wants, you should have seen it coming from heeseung. âand i can get whatever i want on my birthday.â
âyes you canâ heeseung, what do you want?â you asked, by now you had half your body turned to face him as you were genuinely curious to what he wanted, especially now when heeseung had a soft blush dusting his gorgeous features,
âi want you to ride my thigh, pretty.â he spoke out almost shyly, your heeseung who always surrounded you with his teasing and flirty nature, now was looking at you with twinkling eyes and blushed cheeks as he asked you to ride his thigh.
he cleared his throat before his natural, intimidating expression returned, âyou donât have to, if youâre too tired.â he added, but how could you deny such a request when he was staring at you with his plump lips swollen and red, his lids heavy on his eyes that were begging you to comply to his request, his hands that were ghosting around your waist lovingly only pushed you further,
and instead of answering him, you quickly moved your sore body to face him making the water ripple around you, your leg lifting over his to position yourself where he requested you too, heeseung instantly began to guide you, flexing his muscles beneath you once your overstimulated, puffy clit came in contact with his skin, he relished in your quiet whimper as he rocked your hips against his thigh,
your hands gripped onto his shoulders for support, nails digging sharply into his skin as you felt pleasure shooting from every nerve in your body, heeseung settled his head into the crook of your neck, lips returning to their rightful place of kissing your skin and every inch of it they could reach while his hands never stopped from aiding you in riding him,
your soft moans landed directly on his ear easily sending him into a trance as he felt overstimulated by feeling you everywhere around him, all over him and this was undoubtedly his favourite place to be, you could feel your release steadily building up as heeseung kept altering between relaxing and tensing his thigh, each movement sending jolts of pleasure throughout your whole body,
you could by now feel his length standing proud and poking at your other leg that was placed between his, his own breaths getting heavier against your neck while his nails dug into your hips, âiâm so close, hee.â you mewled out next to his ear, eyes closing once you felt the coil in your abdomen mere seconds from snapping, the water splashed around the tub, some droplets landing against the floor while you continued,
he nodded along to your words, âi know, baby.â he whispered against your skin, your movements quickened the more you felt your release approaching, your climax right around the corner while heeseungâs lips never left your skin, praises falling into your ear as his body practically moulded with yours, he held you closer once he felt your legs twitching besides his, âiâm cumming, heeâ oh my god!â you cried out as your release washed over you headily, your wetness spurting all over his skin once intense waves of pleasure filled your body,
whispers of i got yous were the only thing keeping you grounded when you saw dots littering all across your vision, body spasming in pleasure as heeseung helped you in riding out your orgasm with his praises remaining continuous, if you thought you werenât spent then, you totally are now.
âdid so fucking well for me, baby.â he spoke quietly to you as you nuzzled further into his chest, âbut you didnât finishââ you started off, hand lowering to his abdomen to help him before he gripped your hand, bringing it upwards to place a soft kiss to your knuckles, he held your it close to his lips as he cut you off, âno baby, you already did so well for me, this is something iâll take care, okay?â he replied tenderly, pressing a soft kiss into your cheek after you nodded to his words,
ânow letâs get you out and go to sleep, how does that sound, love?â he asked, smiling adoringly at your tired state, âamazing.â
soft groans reached your ears as the sunlight steadily peeked through into your shared bedroom, the arms that wrapped around you as you fell asleep a few hours prior suddenly had a tighter grip on you, heeseungâs hands moved on your body, caressing and fondling every inch of skin beneath his fingers while his hot breaths landed on your shoulder as your back was turned towards him,
âhee?â you called, voice laced with sleep while your eyes remained closed, heeseungâs movements paused for a second, you could tell he was trying to regulate his breathing behind you before his hands resumed, âi need you angel, i want to please you so bad.â his needy and whiny voice shocked you, knocking away any remaining thought of sleeping out of your head the moment you heard him, inevitably causing a familiar wetness to pool in your panties, did he see a dream or something?
âseung what-â âplease, just let me eat you out.â he cut you off, and if you werenât shocked before you for sure were now, he quickly turned you around to face him to see just how desperate he was at this sudden moment, âi couldnât stop thinking about it yesterday, you were too tired but now that you slept i have to do this,â he rambled out, his body felt ten times hotter than yours as his arms pulled you towards his chest, âsit on my face.â
and you really didnât have to be told twice,
so here you were now, gripping on the headboardâ well what remained of the headboard with your legs placed around heeseungâs shoulders, back arching as he fucked his tongue in and out of your sopping hole,
your body shook with intense pleasure, still weak and aching from a few hours earlier yet still so responsive to every move made by heeseung, the same arms that broke free of the iron cuffs and ripped the ropes from yesterday now had a vice grip on your thighs and hips to keep you in your place, guaranteeing that you have no choice but to take what heâs been dying to give you since the moment your tongue ran along his dick yesterday,
quiet moans left your mouth when heeseung began to switch between fucking his tongue into your cunt only to suck on your sensitive bundle of nerves a second later, and he made sure that when he thrusted his tongue in your gummy walls, his nose pressed against your clit perfectly, his hips were yearningly thrusting into the blanket in hopes of slightest bit of friction, yet his main focus still remained on pleasuring you.
your groans and whimpers increased in volume as you felt the tightening of the coil in your abdomen increase, the pleasure already running through your veins intensely from the mere build up, heeseung mirrored every noise you were making on your cunt, each hum sending a dizzying vibration that pushed you further to the edge,
âhee, babyâ iâm so close.â you moaned out, heeseung could already tell you were moments away from your climax from the way you were gushing on his mouth and he was glad to lick every drop, the pace of his movements surged in speed at your words, âcum for me, angel.â he hummed against your clit and that was enough to have the familiar stars dazzle your sight,
your legs shook uncontrollably around his head whilst heeseung licked and sucked everywhere, he continued eating you out sloppily as your wetness decorated all over the lower half of his face and he couldnât be happier.
heeseung was humming along to your moans of pleasure, feeling just as high on ecstasy as you were, jaw slack while he licked up all what you had to offer before opting to just place soft kisses,
your body was holding on for dear lifeâ the only form of stability was the headboard that you could no longer depend on as your grip got weaker the longer heeseung kept kissing you in a mind numbing manner, your body melted in his hold while your brain felt like it turned into mush, the grip he had on your legs tightening when your convulsing legs attempted to move away once he slowly began to overstimulate you,
your whimpers turned shaky when he pressed one long kiss before he finally allowed you to pull away, his hands instantly moved to hold your body close to his, proudly displaying his smiling face that was glistening with your wetness to you,
âheeseung youâre rock hard,â you stated as your eyes unintentionally lowered to the obvious tent in the middle of the blanket, âbaby, the way you moaned my name was so hot. i would literally cum if you touch me once right now.â he replied, nuzzling his face closer to you while being mindful of keeping you clean,
âthen let me help you,â and before heeseung could protest again, your hand briskly went under the blanket, dipping below his boxers to finally give attention to his throbbing cock,
in an instant, a low moan was drawn out from his chest whilst his eyes immediately closed in pleasure, your fingers ran along his length, his leaking precum aiding in the smooth movement of your hand, jerking your wrist to move up and down before pausing to press your thumb atop his gushing slit,
heeseung hissed in sensitivity, the hold he had on your waist tightening when he inched his mouth closer to your ear, âdonât tease me if you donât want me to repeat yesterday.â he warned quietly, and you had no intentions to do so whatsoever,
âi really just want to please you,â you replied honestly making heeseung smile, âyouâre already doing so well.â he moaned out once your hand picked up the pace, his red tip was covered with his precum as his cock throbbed in your hand, you quickly went closer towards his legs once his thighs began to twitch, leaving heeseung to throw his head back on the pillow while his hands gripped the sheets beneath him,
âso close.. iâm so close,â he babbled out, eyes shut in pleasure with his hips jerking forward uncontrollably, you studied his every twitch and shake as you continued the movement of your hands, studied the flexing of his abs as the coil in his stomach tightened unbearably, studied the way his jaw went slack while moans reverberated from his chest, studied the way his veins were popping from the tight grip he had on the sheets,
you could tell he was moments away from his climax, and with the sudden thought of heightening his pleasure you quickly acted upon itâ the motion of your hands continued with heeseungâs eyes shut and head thrown back and the moment you lowered your head so lick at his tip had him shaking beneath you,
you swiftly began to suck on his pulsing tip, tongue licking along his slit as you hollowed your cheeks before pushing your head lower to his length, the sudden change made heeseungâs head bolt upwards, wide eyes that lined with a thin veil of tears gazed at you, his breaths getting shakier the longer you kept moving your head up and down his cock,
âfuckâ right there baby, just like that. just like that, angel,â he rambled on, head falling back against the pillow as he could feel sweat rolling down his temples, the pleasure in his body flared when you once again began to tease that one pronounced vein that had his eyes rolling back to his skull
âbabyâ oh my godâ he moaned loudly, not having the chance to warn you before his climax flushed over his body, hot spurts of his cum ran down your throat while you continued to suckle on his tip, pressing your tongue against the underside of his cock as your hand continued to jerk off his length, heeseung felt light headed, absolutely delirious when he started to feel himself being pushed into overstimulation, his deep moans echoed through the walls of your room as you kept pleasuring him,
he could feel the continuous sensation of ecstasy and euphoria running through his veins and numbing his head, sparks of pleasure shooting along his spine once you forced yourself lower and deepthroated him, and god he was cumming so fucking much.
you were struggling to keep up with him, tears aligning in your waterline while some escaped from the intense burning in your throat as you struggled to accommodate his length so deep in you, yet you remained with your nose pressed against his pelvis while his body shook, you finally gave him what heâs been waiting for since yesterday and god heeseung has never felt this good.
once his body calmed down to slight twitches you pulled away, the sight of your swollen and glistening lips covered in his cum made heeseungâs sensitive cock twitch, his eyes remained glued on you as you lolled your clean tongue out to show him, and he had to fight the urge to pound into you like yesterday.
he smiled at you in exhaustion before easily pulling your body upwards, he kissed along your face and jaw, relishing in all of your giggles as he held you close to him, tight in between his arms, right where you belong.
âsatisfied now?â you questioned out as you nuzzled closer into his chest, âso satisfied i could marry you tomorrow.â
âhe WHAT?!â jakeâs voice pierced throughout your room, it was currently the evening, the day after heeseungâs birthday where his closest friends came to visit your apartment, and while heeseung was busy gaming with sunghoon in the living room, jaeyun pulled you into your bedroom to question you about how his âgeniusâ plan went.
âhe broke the handcuffs, jake.â you sighed in exasperation, youâve already explained the story three times yet jakeâs mind refused to process the fact that his plan completely backfired,
his widened eyes stared at yours in shock and bewilderment, having difficulty understanding just how heeseung broke freeâ âwhat about the ropes? how did they not-â âhe ripped them in a second, jake.â you cut him off before he started another endless rant,
now jake knew that heeseung and sunghoon (along with jongseong sometimes) went to the gym, building up a consistent routine that took place mainly in the mornings, and yes he was aware that the routine was established a few months agoâ yet he was sure that heeseung would stand no chance against iron handcuffs, and to ease his doubts he added the ropes,
âyou underestimated him terribly, jae.â you spoke out, exhaustion evident in your tone as you hadnât been able to have the best sleep of the night, your mind attempting to process all the events that took place yesterday yet the one that disturbed you the most was how unaffected heeseung was now, as he was helping jongseong in the kitchen a few minutes ago before agreeing on playing a few rounds with sunghoon,
âwell.. iâll have to invest in better handcuffs next time, how are you by the way?â he replied, curious eyes studying your movements, âhm?â you questioned in confusion, uncertain of what he was implying, âare you like⊠sore or anything?â he replied, his gaze now avoidant as he used his hands to aid him in expressing himself, oh.
âwhat do you think?â you looked at him, eyes very clearly indicating that youâve reached your limit, âwell.. he does have a pretty bad temper, i hope it wasnât anything too harsh.â he smiled innocently, nodding his head along to his own words to convince himself
âwho has bad temper?â oh gosh, speak of the devil.
heeseung stood at the doorway of the room, his gaze switching between your figure on the bed and jakeâs standing one, âclearly you.. what even made you break the headboard last night?â jake asked cluelessly attempting his best to switch the topic of conversation,
âwhy are you interested about last night?â heeseung questioned, eyebrows knitting together before his gaze found the bag next to jakeâs leg, it was jakeâs bag, and it had the broken handcuffs and ropes from yesterday, and suddenly a light bulb went off atop heeseungâs head as his eyes widened
âso it was you?!â heeseung practically yelled at jake, an accusatory finger pointing at him when all the dots connected, âme?!â jaeyun pushed his innocent act further, mirroring heeseungâs shocked expression and pointing in confusion at himself while you just stared in anticipation at the two grown men,
âit was your idea, sim jaeyun!â and with that final yell from heeseung, jake ran out of the room.
A, NOTE. pt2: the first part of the whole tying up & handcuff breaking was inspired by a jungkook fic i read on wattpad years ago so credit goes to that author for the inspiration ! i unfortunately canât remember the fic nor the title :(
iâm so sorry for the delay that happened with this fic, itâs crazy to think about how this was supposed to be posted 2.5 months ago yet i just finished it, iâve come to the realisation that i prefer longer fics that have more scenes in them which obviously require a lot of writing so iâve decided to not set release dates for my future fics,
the foreshadow soulmate!jake is one that iâm still working on ! and itâs 100% going to be longer than this one considering that now this âsurpriseâ fic is my longest one :0 a bit shocking for me honestly, anywho next up iâll try my hardest to put out my jake fic but if not & i put out smth different just know that im still working on it bcs i really like soulmate tropes :] anywho happy new year ! wishing everyone happiness & health for this year <3
TANGLED DESIRES- p.sh
PAIRING: enemy!sunghoon x f!reader
SYNOPSIS: At a prestigious private school, you and Park Sunghoon are locked in a constant rivalry. During a party at your friend Karinaâs, a heated argument between you two escalates into an unexpected, passionate encounter. The next morning, you wake up in his arms, forcing both of you to confront the new, complicated tension between you. As you navigate the fallout and shifting feelings, you start to question if your biggest enemy might actually be something much more.
GENRE: enemies to lovers, rich kids au
WARNINGS: smut (unprotected sex, oral sex) rivalry, hurt feelings, angst. ALL ARE OF AGE
wc: 15.4k
You attend the most prestigious school in Korea, where the sky-high tuition fees are only accessible to those born into pure wealth. This elite institution is a playground for the richest families, and your name is synonymous with success. Your family, being the owners of one of Koreaâs top corporations, you seem to have everything at your fingertipsâa glamorous life of luxury, an enviable social circle, and endless opportunities.
To the outside world, youâre the quintessential rich girl: impeccably stylish, effortlessly popular, and seemingly flawless. Yet beneath this polished veneer lies a different reality. Despite your privileged upbringing, youâre kind-hearted, fiercely intelligent, and deeply dedicated to everything you do. Your friend group, including Jake, Jay, Heeseung, Sunoo, Niki, Jungwon, Yuna, and Karina, forms a close-knit circle that navigates the pressures of their world together.
But thereâs always been one glaring exception: Park Sunghoon. The feud between the two of you is infamous, an unspoken tension that pulses beneath the surface of your otherwise harmonious friendships. No one really knows how it started, and no one seems to care enough to unravel it. Instead, everyone just tolerates your constant bickering.
Ëàšà§âïœĄË â
The lunch table is alive with conversation, the usual chatter amplified by the excitement of the latest gossip. Karina sits comfortably beside Heeseung, leaning into him with an easy confidence that only she can pull off. Sheâs in the middle of talking about her parentsâ latest ventureâsomething about opening another resort somewhere exoticâwhen she casually drops the bomb.
âSo, theyâre gone for the whole weekend,â she says, her voice loud enough to catch everyoneâs attention. âAnd you know what that meansâŠâ
Jake perks up immediately, his eyes bright. âParty?â
Karina grins. âObviously. Saturday night, my place. No theme this time, just show up and bring your best energy.â
Yuna claps her hands in excitement. âFinally! Itâs been forever since the last one. I was starting to forget what a real party looks like.â
Jay laughs. âAs if youâd ever forget. You practically live for these things.â
Yuna sticks her tongue out at him, but her smile doesnât waver. âGuilty as charged.â
Heeseung wraps an arm around Karinaâs shoulders, looking amused. âYouâre not worried about your parents finding out?â
She rolls her eyes. âPlease, they wonât even notice. And even if they do, whatâs the worst that could happen? Theyâll just buy me something to make up for being gone.â
âMust be nice,â Niki mutters, leaning back in his chair.
Sunoo nudges him with a grin. âOh, come on, donât act like youâre not excited. You were the first one to ask about the music last time.â
Niki shrugs, but he canât hide his smile. âYeah, well, only if itâs not Sunghoonâs terrible playlist again.â
You glance across the table, catching Sunghoonâs eye. Heâs lounging back in his chair, looking entirely too pleased with himself. âMy playlist was fine, thank you very much,â he retorts. âItâs not my fault you have no taste.â
You snort. âPlease, Sunghoon, your taste in music is as bad as your taste in everything else.â
He looks over at you, eyebrow raised. âAnd whatâs that supposed to mean?â
You shrug, feigning innocence. âNothing, just that your definition of âgoodâ is highly questionable.â
He chuckles, the sound low and irritatingly smug. âComing from you, Iâll take that as a compliment.â
Karina cuts in, sensing the rising tension. âAlright, letâs not turn this into another one of your little spats. Save it for the party, okay?â
Sunghoon smirks, still looking at you. âLooking forward to it already.â
You roll your eyes but canât resist shooting back, âDonât get too excited, I might just ignore you all night.â
âOh, the horror,â he replies, his voice dripping with mock terror. âHow will I ever survive?â
Jay laughs, nudging Jake. âYou know, one day they might actually get along.â
Jake shakes his head, grinning. âNah, whereâs the fun in that?â
Karina steers the conversation back to the party details, running through a list of essentials while Heeseung nods along, offering suggestions. âInvite whoever you want,â she says, âoh except luci, last time I caught her giving mark head in my parents bedroom, I havenât been able to go in there since.â
You laugh and nod in agreement, trying not to notice how Sunghoon is still watching you, his expression unreadable. For a moment, you wonder whatâs going through his head, but then you push the thought away. Whatever it is, itâs probably nothing you need to worry about.
Karina claps her hands, bringing the attention back to her. âSo, everyoneâs in?â
Thereâs a chorus of agreement, and the table erupts into a mix of laughter and excited chatter as plans start to form. You glance over at Sunghoon one more time, catching his eye for a brief second before looking away. This party is already shaping up to be interesting⊠and you have a feeling thatâs an understatement.
Ëàšà§âïœĄË â
The lunch buzz still lingers in your ears as the group makes its way back across the pristine campus grounds. The sunlight reflects off the sleek, modern architecture of the schoolâs main building, and you canât help but admire the way everything here seems to sparkleâlike even the bricks and mortar are aware of the school's prestige.
You find yourself walking beside Karina, whoâs still chatting excitedly about the party, while Heeseung stays close, throwing in a comment or two. Yuna and Sunoo are a few steps ahead, their heads bent together as they giggle over something on Sunooâs phone. You catch Jake and Jay trailing behind, still debating something about sports cars or the best summer destinations.
Just as youâre about to reach the entrance, you feel a presence beside you. You donât need to turn your head to know who it is; Sunghoon always manages to sidle up to you when you least expect it.
âWhat, are you following me now?â you ask, not breaking your stride.
He chuckles. âOh, please. Donât flatter yourself. It just so happens our lockers are in the same direction.â
âRight,â you drawl, rolling your eyes. âLike you donât go out of your way to annoy me.â
He glances at you, smirk still firmly in place. âMaybe I just like seeing you get all riled up. Itâs entertaining.â
You shoot him a glare, but before you can fire back a retort, the group reaches the main hallway. The chatter from the student body fills the air, a mix of excitement and post-lunch drowsiness. The smell of expensive cologne and designer perfumes lingers in the air, an unmistakable signature of the schoolâs elite.
Karina stops at her locker, Heeseung leaning against it with a casual arm draped over her shoulder. She turns to you, her voice dropping conspiratorially. âSo, youâre coming early on Saturday, right? I need a hand setting things up.â
You nod, grateful for the distraction from Sunghoon. âOf course. Iâll be there.â
âGreat!â She beams. âAnd maybe you can help me make sure everything stays under control. You know how things can get with this crowd.â
Heeseung laughs softly. âGood luck with that. I donât think anyoneâs ever managed to keep Sunoo and Niki under control for more than five minutes.â
As if on cue, Sunoo pops up beside you with a grin. âI heard that, Heeseung! Iâm an angel, thank you very much.â
Niki appears at his side, raising an eyebrow. âAn angel of chaos, maybe.â
The group laughs, and you feel the tension in your shoulders ease. Itâs moments like these that make all the bickering and drama feel worth it.
But then, just as youâre about to make another comment, Sunghoonâs voice cuts through the noise. âSo, Y/N,â he says casually, âwhat are you going to wear to the party? Let me guess⊠something that screams âtrying too hardâ?â
You whip your head around, narrowing your eyes at him. âAnd what are you planning on wearing, Sunghoon? Something that screams âI own everything but a personalityâ?â
Thereâs a collective gasp from your friends, followed by a chorus of laughter. Sunghoon raises his eyebrows, feigning a look of hurt. âOuch, that one actually stung a little. Didnât know you had it in you.â
You cross your arms, feeling a triumphant smile tug at your lips. âIâve got plenty more where that came from. Try me.â
He leans in slightly, lowering his voice just enough that only you can hear. âMaybe I will,â he says, his eyes flicking over you in a way that makes your pulse quicken. âBut youâre going to have to do better than that if you want to get under my skin.â
Youâre about to retort when a voice interrupts. âCan we get through one day without you two turning everything into a competition?â Jay sighs, looking exasperated. âSeriously, itâs exhausting just watching you.â
Jake nods in agreement, though heâs grinning. âYou guys need to find a new hobby. Preferably one that doesnât involve verbal sparring in the middle of the hallway.â
You shrug, unable to resist the urge to keep poking at Sunghoon. âIâm open to suggestions, but I doubt Sunghoon has any better ideas.â
Sunghoon leans back, crossing his arms with a playful smile. âOh, Iâve got plenty of ideas. But I think youâd be too scared to try them.â
Before you can respond, the bell rings, signaling the end of lunch. Karina groans. âUgh, saved by the bell. I guess weâll have to pick this up later.â
Ëàšà§âïœĄË â
As everyone starts to disperse to their respective classes, Sunghoon gives you one last look, a challenge in his eyes. âDonât worry, Y/N,â he says smoothly. âIâll be looking forward to it.â
You roll your eyes, but your heart is beating just a little faster. You canât help but wonder what exactly heâs planning⊠and why a part of you is actually looking forward to finding out.
Ëàšà§âïœĄË â
The day of the party arrives with a crisp, clear sky and a hint of excitement that seems to permeate every corner of the city. You wake up early, feeling a mix of anticipation and nervous energy. Karina had texted you the night before, reminding you to come over in the afternoon to help set up for the party. You agreed eagerly, knowing that any opportunity to help would give you something to focus on and take your mind off the strange tension building between you and Sunghoon.
When you arrive at Karinaâs mansion, the house is buzzing with activity. Karinaâs housekeeper greets you at the door with a warm smile, directing you to the large, open-plan living area where Karina is already busy coordinating the decorations with a small army of helpers. The space is being transformed into a glamorous party venue with twinkling lights, elegant table settings, and a dance floor that looks like itâs straight out of a high-end club.
Karina spots you as soon as you walk in, her face lighting up with relief and excitement. âY/N! Perfect timing. Iâm so glad youâre here. We could use an extra pair of hands.â
You smile, rolling up your sleeves. âWhat can I do to help?â
Karina hands you a stack of neatly folded napkins and points towards a table covered with party favors. âStart by setting these up on the tables. I want everything to look perfect tonight.â
You get to work, organizing napkins and arranging snack trays, chatting with Karina about the last-minute details. The hours fly by as you work alongside her, the room gradually coming together into a setting that is unmistakably Karinaâs styleâclassy, sophisticated, and just a bit over the top.
As the afternoon drifts into evening, Karina claps her hands and gathers you for a brief break. âAlright, itâs time for a quick change. Youâve been working so hard, and I want you to look as fabulous as the rest of the evening.â
You raise an eyebrow, half-teasing. âWhatâs wrong with what Iâm wearing?â
Karina waves her hand dismissively. âyou donât want me to answer that. cmon youâre hot, why not show off a little?â
Before you can protest, Karina ushers you into her bedroom and pulls out a sleek, little black dress from her closet. The dress is short and simple with a cut that accentuates your figure without being too revealing.
âPut this on,â Karina insists, handing you the dress. âTrust me, youâll look amazing. And donât worry about the hair and makeup; Iâve got that covered too.â
You change quickly, admiring the way the dress fits and the way it makes you feel more confident and glamorous. When you step out of the room, Karina is waiting with a professional-looking makeup kit and a few hair tools.
As she works on your hair and makeup, she chatters away, filling the room with her usual upbeat energy. âyou look sexyâ
You smile at her reflection in the mirror. âThanks, Karina. You donât think itâs a bit much? Itâs definitely more out there than I usually go forâ.
Karina beams, finishing up with a final touch of lipstick. âbabe thereâs no such thing as too much. And who knows, maybe youâll catch someone eye tonight,â she tells you with a wink.
With a laugh and a final look at yourself in the mirror, you feel a surge of excitement. The dress feels perfect, and the makeup and hair make you look polished and ready for the night. As you head back downstairs, you catch sight of Karinaâs smile of approval, and you canât help but feel a bit more confident about the evening ahead.
Ëàšà§âïœĄË â
The music starts pumping through the walls as you and Karina make your way back downstairs. The final touches have been set, and the room looks like a scene straight out of a teen movie: fairy lights strung up in every corner, a couple of disco balls catching the light just right, and a dance floor that practically begs people to let loose. Karina surveys everything with a grin that stretches from ear to ear.
âSee?â she says, nudging you with her elbow. âThis is why I always go all out.â
You chuckle, glancing around. âOkay, okay, you were right. This does look kind of amazing.â
The doorbell rings, and Karina practically bounces on her toes. âThat must be the first guests! Come on, we have to greet everyone in style.â
The two of you rush to the front door, and soon enough, your friends start streaming in. Sunoo is the first to arrive, with Niki and Jungwon right behind him. They all look ready to have the best night ever, and Sunoo immediately zeroes in on you, his eyes going wide.
âOh. My. God. Y/N!â Sunoo exclaims dramatically, clutching his chest. âLook at you in that little black dress! Who is she?!â
You roll your eyes, fighting back a grin. âAlright, Sunoo, calm down. Itâs just a dress.â
âItâs not just a dress,â Niki interjects with a grin. âItâs the dress. Who are you trying to impress tonight?â
Jungwon nudges Niki. âYeah, spill. Is there someone youâre hoping to catch the eye of?â
You smirk, crossing your arms. âOh, please, like Iâd tell you guys even if there was.â
More of your friends arrive, and soon the room is buzzing with chatter and laughter. Jake and Jay show up not long after, both of them effortlessly cool as always. Jay immediately gets to work DJ-ing from his phone, while Jake heads to the makeshift bar, already concocting a round of mixed drinks.
Then, just as you start to relax, you see himâPark Sunghoon. He steps in, looking annoyingly good in a casual black button-down and jeans. His eyes scan the room until they find you. For a split second, he looks almost surprised, but then his trademark smirk appears.
âWell, well,â Sunghoon says as he strolls over to you, hands casually shoved into his pockets. âLook who decided to play dress-up. You got a hot date tonight or something?â
You scoff, giving him a look. âOh, please, Sunghoon. Unlike you, I donât have to try so hard to impress everyone.â
Sunghoon chuckles, leaning in just slightly. âRight. Because you just show up looking like that for fun?â
Before you can shoot back a retort, Karina swoops in, looping her arm through yours. âHey, Sunghoon, quit being a troll. Y/N looks amazing, and you know it. Now go get a drink and try to be nice for once!â
He holds up his hands, his grin widening. âAlright, alright, Iâll behave... for now.â
You watch as he saunters off to join Jake at the bar, and Karina gives you a knowing look. âDonât let him get under your skin tonight, okay?â
You nod, trying to brush it off, even though youâre still buzzing from his teasing. âYeah, yeah, Iâm good.â
Ëàšà§âïœĄË â
The party is in full swing nowâmusic thumping, people laughing, and the lights twinkling overhead like stars. You find yourself swept up in the fun, moving from one conversation to the next, the earlier tension with Sunghoon momentarily forgotten. Youâre by the snack table, popping a few chips into your mouth when Haechan sidles up next to you with his signature grin.
âHey, Y/N,â he says smoothly, leaning in a little closer than necessary. âLooking good tonight. That dress is seriously working for you.â
You smile at him, amused by his blatant flirting. âThanks, Haechan. Youâre not looking too bad yourself,â you reply, playing along. Heâs always been a harmless flirt, and you donât mind the attention tonight.
He grins wider, clearly pleased. âI try. But seriously, I canât believe Iâm just now noticing how stunning you are. Were you hiding this whole time or just waiting for the perfect moment to make your grand entrance?â
You laugh, shaking your head. âOh, you know me. Always dramatic,â you joke, and he chuckles, leaning in a bit more.
âYouâre full of surprises, Y/N. Makes me want to know you better,â he says, his voice dropping slightly, and you canât help but laugh at his over-the-top delivery.
What you donât notice is that from across the room, Sunghoon has been watching the entire interaction with a growing frown. Heâs leaning against a wall, a drink in hand, his eyes narrowing as he watches Haechan lean closer to you, flashing that charming smile. His jaw tightens, and his grip on the cup becomes visibly tighter.
Heeseung, whoâs been standing beside him, follows his line of sight and notices the tense look on his friendâs face. A knowing grin spreads across Heeseungâs lips as he leans over to Sunghoon, nudging him with his elbow.
âSomeone looks like theyâve got their feathers ruffled,â Heeseung teases, keeping his voice low so only Sunghoon can hear.
Sunghoon scoffs, rolling his eyes. âIâm fine.â
âSure,â Heeseung laughs. âThatâs why youâve been glaring at Haechan like youâre ready to knock that grin off his face.â
Sunghoon doesnât respond right away, but his eyes remain fixed on you and Haechan. Heeseung watches with amusement, clearly enjoying the show.
âJust admit it, man,â Heeseung continues, his tone light. âYouâre jealous.â
Sunghoon finally looks away from you, giving Heeseung a dismissive look. âIâm not jealous. I just donât like seeing him act like a fool.â
Heeseung snorts. âRight. Because youâre so worried about Haechan embarrassing himself.â He claps a hand on Sunghoonâs shoulder. âCome on, dude, just go talk to her. Or are you afraid sheâll turn you down?â
Sunghoon shoots him a glare. âShut up, Heeseung.â
Heeseung just laughs harder, clearly unbothered by Sunghoonâs mood. âAlright, whatever you say. But just so you know, glaring at Haechan isnât going to do anything except make you look more obvious.â
Sunghoon doesnât answer, but Heeseungâs words seem to hit a nerve. He turns his attention back to you, his expression unreadable, though thereâs still a flicker of something in his eyesâsomething more than just casual interest.
Meanwhile, youâre still chatting with Haechan, completely unaware of the little drama unfolding across the room. But you canât shake the feeling that someoneâs watching you, and when you finally glance up, your eyes meet Sunghoonâs for just a second. He quickly looks away, and you canât help but wonder what that was all about.
Ëàšà§âïœĄË â
The party continues to buzz around you, but after a while, the noise and energy start to feel a bit overwhelming. You decide you need a break, a moment to yourself away from the chaos. Without saying anything, you slip out of the crowded living room and head toward the balcony, where the air is cooler and the music is just a muffled hum in the background.
You push open the glass doors and step outside, letting the crisp night air hit your face. Itâs a welcome change from the warmth inside. You lean against the railing, taking a deep breath, trying to clear your mind. The stars are faint above the city lights, and you can hear distant sounds of traffic, a reminder of the world continuing outside this little bubble of a party.
You close your eyes for a moment, just enjoying the quiet. But then, you hear the soft sound of footsteps behind you. You turn, half-expecting to see Karina or maybe Sunoo, but your heart skips a beat when you see Sunghoon stepping out onto the balcony.
âWhat do you want, Sunghoon?â you sigh, not bothering to hide your annoyance.
âI could ask you the same thingâ he replies, his voice closer than you expected. You feel the warmth of his body behind you, jus inches away. âRunning away from the party?â
âHardly.â You glance over your shoulder at him. âJust needed a break from all the fakes and liars inside.â
His lips curl into that familiar, infuriating smirk. âAnd here I thought you thrived on that type of thing. Who knew Y/N had limits?â
You roll tour eyes, turning back to the view. âYeah, well, believe it or not I do. But you wouldnât know anything, would you?â
Sunghoon steps closer, his breath brushing against your ear, sending an unwanted shiver down your spine. You feel a rush of heat flood your cheeks and something else you refuse to acknowledge. âYou donât know anything about me, Sunghoon. And id keep it that way if I were you.â
He laughs, a deep, rich sound that makes your skin prickle. âI think you like it when I get under your skin. Why else do you always react like this?â You scoff, turning to face him, only then realizing how close he actually was. âMaybe iâm just tired of you acting like youâre gods gift to the world. newsflash: youâre not.â
His grin widens, and he takes another step closer, invading youâre space entirely as if he wasnât already to begin with. âAdmit it.â he says, his voice dropping lower. âYou like our little games. You like the way I push your buttons.â
Your heart is pounding now, and you hate that heâs right, that thereâs something about him that gets to you in a way no one else does.But you refuse to five him the satisfaction of knowing it. âIn your dreams,â you snap, though the breathlessness in your voice betrays you.
He reaches out, his fingers brushing your arm, and you feel a jolt of heat at the contact. âIs that so?â he whispers, his lips dangerously close to yours now, his eyes dark with challenge. âBecause I think youâre lying. I think you want this as much as I do.â
Your breath hitches, and for a moment, youâre frozen, caught in his gaze. The intensity in his eyes makes your pulse race, a mix of anger and undeniable attraction. Heâs so close now that you can feel his breath your lips, and before you can stop yourself, you grab his shirt, pulling him the last few inches towards you.
âMaybe I just want to shut you up,â you mutter, your voice barely above a whisper. âThen do it,â he taunts, his lips brushing against yours, almost but not quite a kiss. Itâs all the encouragement you need. You close the distance, your mouth crashing against his. His hands grip your waist, pulling you closer, and you press against him, fueled by a mix of anger and desire.
The kiss is intense, a battle of wills as much as it is anything else. His lips are firm, demanding, and you meet him with equal force, neither of you willing to give an inch. Your hands move up to his hair, tugging slightly and he groans against your mouth, deepening the kiss.
Youâre lost in it. Lost in him, every nerve in your body alight with sensation. His hands slide up your back, his touch sending sparks through you, and you hate how much you crave it, hate how much you want him despite everything.
Youâre breathless when you finally pull back, your heart hammering against your ribs. Sunghoonâs lips are parted, his breaths coming in ragged, and his eyes are dark with something dangerousâsomething you know you shouldnât be entertaining.
His hand is still on your waist, his thumb brushing the exposed skin just beneath the hem of your shirt, and you swear every nerve in your body is on fire. He leans in close, his lips grazing your ear, and his voice comes out in a low, almost pleading murmur. âCome back to my place.â
It isnât a question, but thereâs something in his tone that sends a shiver down your spine, a combination of hunger and desperation that mirrors whatâs coursing through your veins. For a moment, youâre temptedâso, so tempted to just say yes and give in to whatever this is. But logic fights its way to the surface, and you pull back just enough to meet his gaze.
âAre you serious?â you ask, your voice wavering more than youâd like.
His expression doesnât falter, his eyes locked onto yours. âDead serious.â He swallows, his grip on your waist tightening, as if heâs afraid youâll slip away. âI donât want this to end here.â
You hesitate, your mind racing. This is SunghoonâPark Sunghoonâthe guy youâve spent so long arguing with, glaring at across rooms, doing everything in your power to avoid. But thereâs something different about the way heâs looking at you now, something raw and real that makes it hard to think clearly.
âI donât know,â you say, trying to sound firm, though your resolve is crumbling by the second. âI mean⊠this is crazy.â
âMaybe,â he agrees, his voice still low, still laced with that edge of desperation. âBut I think you like crazy.â His lips curl into a half-smile, that familiar cockiness tempered with something else, something softer.
You bite your lip, weighing your options, feeling the tension between you bothâhot, magnetic, impossible to ignore. âThis is a bad idea,â you whisper, though even you can hear the lack of conviction in your words.
Sunghoon steps closer, closing the distance again, his forehead almost touching yours. âProbably the worst,â he says, his breath hot against your skin. âBut if you donât say yes, Iâm going to lose my mind.â
You can feel his heartbeat through his shirt, can feel how fast itâs racing, and you know he means it. Part of you is screaming to walk away, to leave now before you make a mistake, but thereâs another partâa louder, more reckless partâthatâs screaming for you to stay, to see where this goes.
âJust one night,â he murmurs, his lips brushing yours again, barely a kiss, just enough to make you shiver. âNo strings, no expectations. Just⊠us.â
You close your eyes, fighting against every instinct telling you to run. But when you open them again, his gaze is still locked onto yours, and you canât deny the heat pooling in your stomach, the way your skin tingles with every touch.
âFine,â you breathe, barely louder than a whisper. âOne night.â
His grin is immediate, but thereâs relief in it too, and he closes the distance, pressing his lips to yours again, this time harder, more insistent. âLetâs get out of here,â he says against your mouth, his hand sliding to intertwine with yours, and you know thereâs no going back now.
Ëàšà§âïœĄË â
You manage to sneak past your friends to leave Karinaâs mansion, the partygoers and scattered distractions making it all that more simple.
The drive is quiet, both of you caught in your own thoughts. The city passes by in a blur of neon signs and headlights, the streets quieter than they were earlier. You steal a glance at him, watching the way his jaw clenches, the way his fingers tap against the wheel like heâs counting down the seconds.
Sunghoon pulls up to his mansion, its sprawling, modern architecture framed by towering trees and high walls that ensure absolute privacy. The wide driveway curves up to the grand entrance, where soft lights cast a warm glow over the marble steps and tall double doors. You glance around, taking in the sheer size of the placeânot because it surprises you, but because youâve never been here before.
Your own familyâs estate is nothing to scoff at, but thereâs a distinct style to his homeâsomething sleek and almost understated, despite its size. You tilt your head slightly, noticing the details: the way the garden is meticulously maintained, the sharp lines of the building softened by the greenery that surrounds it. Itâs impressive, in a way thatâs different from what youâre used to.
He takes your hand to lead you inside, you follow him down the dimly lit corridor, decorated with family pictures and modern art that costs a fortune. He pauses at his bedroom door, his hand still holding yours, and turns to look at you one more time. âLast chance to change your mind,â he murmurs, though his thumb strokes the back of your hand, a comforting gesture.
You take a deep breath, then shake your head. âIâm not changing my mind.â
A small smile tugs at his lips. âGood,â he whispers, unlocking the door and pushing it open.
You step inside, and he follows, closing the door behind you. The space is dimly lit, warm, and thereâs an unexpected coziness to itâminimalistic but comfortable. The air feels thick with everything unspoken between you.
Sunghoon turns to you, his gaze intense, and he steps closer, his hand moving up to your face, brushing a strand of hair behind your ear. âIâve been thinking about this all night,â he admits quietly, his voice almost a growl.
Your breath catches, and you feel the heat rush to your face. âThen stop talking,â you murmur, your own voice breathless.
His lips are on yours in an instant, capturing your mouth in a kiss thatâs all-consuming, filled with all the tension, the want, the frustration thatâs been building for so long. You kiss him back just as fiercely, hands sliding up his chest, feeling his heartbeat pounding beneath your palms.
Sunghoon's hands roamed over your body, squeezing your tits. You let out a small involuntary moan, a grunt leaving him immediately after. His lips move down to your next, trailing up and down before reaching that sweet spot right behind your ear.
It all feels to fucking good, your panties sticking to your core. He moves to sit on the edge of his bed, pulling you into his lap before catching your lips once again. His growing hardness is poking at you. âYou look so fucking sexy in this little dress,â He tells you in a low tone that makes you clench around nothing, the ache between your legs growing. You start grinding on him, his hands grabbing your ass, encouraging you to keep grinding against his clothed length. âThatâs it baby, grind on me, keep rubbing that pretty pussy over my cock.â
Your head is thrown back, lip in between your teeth, his words encouraging your quickening movements. âNeed you so bad, Hoon,â you manage to get out.
âYeah baby? tell me what you need.â He tells you. Itâs almost embarrassing how much you wanted him. âNeed your cock.â Without another word you feel his hands back on your ass, lifting you up and throwing you down on his bed. He looks up at you with mischievious eyes, hovering over you as his hands roam down the sides of your thighs to them hem of your dress. âCan i take this off?â he asks, caressing the soft, exposed skin there.
Eagerly, you nod quickly, reaching for the hem to help him pull it up and over your head. Luckily you opted for a pair of black lacy panties and opposed to your more comfortable ones. He audibly sighs and your exposed figure, âYouâre so beautiful,â He tells you, his fingers working to slide your panties down your legs and tossing them to the side, revealing just how much you wanted him.
âShit baby youâre so wet.â He leans down, placing soft, wet kisses just below your navel, dangerously close to where you wanted him most. âHoon please,â you murmur out. He straightens out, unbuckling his belt to pull down his pants and boxers all in one go. While he wasnât remarkably long, he made up for it in girth. You lick your lips at the sight, anticipation and heat pooling.
He pumps himself a couple times before heâs lining himself up with your entrance. He takes his time, making sure to smear your slick between your clit and his length. You feel his tip parting your folds, your breath hitching in your throat. âYou ready?â his eyes meet yours for assurance. No words come out your mouth, all you do is nod.
He enters you carefully, a strong contrast from his words earlier in the night. The last thing he wants is to rush, just because of how unpatient and horny he is. You close your eyes, holding in the gasp that threatens to escape your lips. âRelax baby, I got you.â
âI know,â you breathe out. The sudden stretch has your eyes rolling to the back of your head. The burn quickly turning into a delicious one. âThatâs it,â he praises you continuing to slide in until heâs nestled completely between your walls. âYou take me so well,â he grunts, his length twitching inside of you.
âFuck me, Hoonâ you murmur, your walls clench around him, throwing his head back at the feeling. Before you know it heâs pulling out of you, only to smack his hips back against yours. It knocks all the oxygen out your lungs, leaving you breathless as he repeats the same action over and over again. âFuck,â you breathe out, focusing on how good he looks above you.
Youâre in a complete feeling of euphoria. Sunghoonâs skills topping those of the few guys youâve slept with before. In that moment, all the bickering and years of back and forth leave your mind completely. The only thing closing your mind is how good him of all people is making you feel.
âHoon⊠faster,â you let out, his hips snapping in a faster pace on command. Your back arches off the bed, hands grasping the sheets in small fists. He notices and reaches for them to thread his fingers through yours, pinning them above your head. âYou like that baby? love how good you feel⊠fuck youâre so tight. Gonna make you cum so hard.â
âIâm so c-close, fuck,â you breathe out. His thrusts become messier and you know heâs close. âCum on my cock pretty,â he grunts, hands letting go of yours to grip your hips. Clenching around him, it takes a few for pumps before youâre both coming undone. His cock twitching inside you as he fucks his cum into you.
He drops his sweaty forehead against your shoulder, quick, deep breaths meeting your skin and he comes down from his high. It takes you both a while before your breathing steadys. âYou good?,â he asks you, settling on the bed beside you. âmhm,â is all you say in response, unsure as to where this leaves your relationship. It all felt to good to ignore. âAre you good?â you ask him after a moment of silence. âBetter than I have in a long time.â
Youâre not sure when you fall asleep. The exhaustion taking over you all at once.
Ëàšà§âïœĄË â
The morning light filters softly through the heavy curtains, casting a gentle glow across the room. You wake to the sound of birds chirping outside, their songs a peaceful contrast to the intensity of the night before. The bed is warm, and youâre nestled comfortably under the covers, Sunghoonâs arm draped over you.
You shift slightly, the movement causing Sunghoon to stir beside you. He mumbles something incoherent, tightening his hold on you before settling back into a deeper sleep. You take a moment to just lie there, letting yourself absorb the strange, surreal comfort of the situation. Thereâs an odd serenity in the room, a calm that feels almost unreal given the whirlwind of emotions that led you here.
As you slowly become more aware, you gently untangle yourself from his embrace, careful not to wake him. You sit up and stretch, glancing around at the elegant room thatâs now your temporary sanctuary. The soft morning light highlights the sleek lines and modern decor, giving the space an almost ethereal quality.
You slide out of bed and make your way to the bathroom, feeling a little self-conscious but determined to gather yourself. You glance at yourself in the mirror, trying to process the whirlwind of the past night. The evidence of sleep lingers in your eyes, and you smooth your hair, mentally preparing yourself for whatever comes next.
When you return to the bedroom, Sunghoon is still asleep, his chest rising and falling in a steady rhythm. You take a moment to just watch him, the vulnerability in his expression softened by sleep. Thereâs a part of you that feels a pang of somethingâsoftness, maybe even affectionâthough youâre still trying to fully understand what it all means.
Deciding not to linger too long, you quietly gather your things and start to get dressed. Youâre pulling on your clothes when you hear a rustling behind you. You turn to find Sunghoon blinking awake, his gaze immediately locking on you with a sleepy, yet intense look.
âGood morning,â he murmurs, his voice rough with sleep.
You smile softly, trying to keep things light despite the previous night's intensity. âMorning. I didnât want to wake you.â
He stretches lazily, a smirk forming on his lips. âAnd here I was thinking youâd sneak out before I even woke up. Not very considerate of you, you know.â
You raise an eyebrow, crossing your arms. âOh, sorry. I didnât realize I was supposed to tiptoe around your mansion.â
He chuckles, rubbing the sleep from his eyes. âYeah, well, you should be lucky youâre not being kicked out for your unexpected visit.â
You roll your eyes, pulling on your shirt. âOh, please. Itâs not like I forced my way in. You made it pretty clear you wanted me here.â
His smirk widens. âTrue. And now Iâm faced with the charming aftermath of our little escapade. How do you intend to handle that?â
You shrug, trying to keep your tone casual. âI think we both know this doesnât exactly change things. We still donât like each other. This was⊠a one-off.â
Sunghoon raises an eyebrow, clearly amused. âA one-off? Thatâs what weâre calling it now? What happened to all that intense âhateâ from last night?â
You narrow your eyes at him, feeling a bit defensive. âItâs complicated. We both know that. Iâm just here to sort myself out.â
He stands up, stretching with a yawn. âWell, I suppose if youâre done with the morning-after drama, I should at least make you breakfast.â
You look at him skeptically. âBreakfast? Youâre really pulling out the stops now?â
He gives you a mockingly hurt look. âDonât sound so surprised. Even enemies deserve to be fed after a night like that.â
You smirk, shaking your head. âFine. Breakfast it is. But donât think this means Iâm sticking around for a whole lot of chit-chat.â
He grins, clearly pleased with your response. âWouldnât dream of it. Just a quick meal and then you can be on your way.â
As he leads you to the kitchen, you both fall into a familiar rhythm, trading barbs and jabs that feel almost comfortable in their own way. The awkwardness of the night before is still there, but itâs tempered by the humor and banter that defines your relationship.
In the kitchen, Sunghoon starts pulling out ingredients, his movements confident and efficient. You watch him, feeling a strange mix of irritation and appreciation. Despite everything, thereâs something almost endearing about the way heâs trying to play the gracious host.
âSo, whatâs the plan after breakfast?â you ask, grabbing a coffee cup and filling it. âAre we going to pretend like nothing happened, or do you have some other grand gesture in mind?â
He looks over at you with a smirk. âMaybe Iâll just enjoy the novelty of seeing you eat my food. Consider it a small victory.â
You roll your eyes, but thereâs a genuine smile on your lips. âEnjoy it while it lasts. Iâm not here for long.â
He chuckles, placing a plate of food in front of you. âDonât worry, I wonât be offended if you leave right after. Iâm sure weâll find new ways to annoy each other soon enough.â
You take a bite of the breakfast, shaking your head in mock exasperation. âIâll hold you to that.â
As you eat, the tension from the night before begins to ease, replaced by the familiar dynamic of your interactions. Itâs not exactly comfortable, but itâs familiarâa small reminder that despite everything, some things never really change.
Ëàšà§âïœĄË â
The bell rings, signaling the end of the period, you gather your things and stand up, eager to leave the classroom and escape the strange tension thatâs been hanging between you and Sunghoon all day. Youâre heading toward the door when you feel a light tap on your shoulder. You turn around to find Sunghoon standing close, a mischievous glint in his eyes.
âCan I help you?â you ask, trying to keep your tone neutral.
Sunghoon leans in, his face just inches from yours. His breath is warm against your ear, and you can feel his proximity even though you try to back away slightly. âYou look cute today,â he whispers, his voice low and deliberately teasing.
You freeze for a moment, your heart skipping a beat as his words sink in. Youâre taken aback by the unexpected comment, feeling a rush of irritation mixed with something you canât quite define. You quickly compose yourself, narrowing your eyes at him.
âSeriously?â you hiss, trying to keep your voice low so that no one else hears. âNow youâre trying to play nice? How pathetic.â
Sunghoon pulls back slightly, a smirk tugging at his lips. âIâm just making an observation,â he says innocently, though the amusement in his eyes betrays him.
You roll your eyes, your frustration evident. âYeah, well, save it for someone who actually cares. Iâm not in the mood for your games.â
As you turn and walk toward the door, you hear Sunghoonâs laughter behind you, light and mocking. You try to ignore the heat rising in your cheeks as you make your way out of the classroom, determined not to let him get under your skin. Despite your efforts to stay composed, his words linger in your mind, adding to the awkwardness and confusion of the day.
Ëàšà§âïœĄË â
Lunch at school is a lively affair, with the cafeteria buzzing with the chatter of students and the clatter of trays. You and your friendsâYuna, Karina, and the restâsettle into your usual spot at the table. Sunghoon and his group are seated across from you, and you can feel his gaze lingering on you, even as you try to focus on the conversation with your friends.
Karina is mid-sentence, animatedly discussing the latest school gossip when Sunghoon's voice cuts through. âOh, come on, Y/N. You can't actually believe that nonsense.â
You glance up, catching Sunghoonâs eyes. Heâs smirking, clearly enjoying the opportunity to poke at you. âAnd whatâs so ridiculous about it?â you retort, trying to keep your voice steady despite the irritation brewing inside you.
âSeriously?â Sunghoonâs grin widens. âItâs just a bunch of exaggerated stories. Youâve always had a knack for falling for that kind of thing.â
You roll your eyes, feeling a familiar annoyance bubbling up. âSays the guy whoâs always spouting off about how everythingâs ânot worth his time.ââ
Sunghoon leans back in his chair, folding his arms. âAt least I donât get caught up in every little bit of drama that comes my way.â
You scoff, crossing your arms. âIâm not the one who spends half his day looking for ways to pick fights. Maybe if you werenât so obsessed with making everything a competition, youâd see things more clearly.â
Yuna and Karina exchange glances, trying to stifle their laughter as the two of you go back and forth. Karina nudges you playfully. âLooks like you two are back to your old routine.â
You shoot her a sidelong glance, annoyed but unable to hide a small smile. âOh, you have no idea.â
Meanwhile, Sunghoonâs eyes are fixed on you, his smirk never fading. Every time you catch him looking, you feel a mix of frustration and unease. His gaze is unrelenting, and despite your best efforts to ignore it, you canât help but feel self-conscious.
âWhat are you staring at?â you snap, catching him in the act.
Sunghoon raises an eyebrow, his expression innocent. âJust observing. Is that a problem?â
You narrow your eyes, crossing your arms. âMaybe if you had something better to do than harass me, you wouldnât have to be so nosy.â
He chuckles, leaning forward with a teasing glint in his eyes. âMaybe I just enjoy watching you get all riled up. Itâs entertaining.â
You glare at him, feeling your irritation spike. âYeah, well, itâs not exactly a compliment.â
Sunghoon shrugs, still smirking. âSuit yourself.â
Ëàšà§âïœĄË â
After lunch, you head to your next class with a sense of relief, hoping to escape the tension of the cafeteria. As you settle into your seat, the classroom buzzes with the usual pre-class chatter. You glance around, hoping to avoid any more interactions with Sunghoon, but heâs in the same class, sitting a few rows behind you.
The teacher arrives, and the room quiets down as the lesson begins. You try to focus on the lecture, but the lingering effects of the lunchtime bickering keep your thoughts scattered. Every now and then, you can feel Sunghoonâs eyes on you, though you avoid turning around to confirm it.
Halfway through the class, you feel a small piece of paper land softly on your desk. You glance down to find a note with neat handwriting:
*âCan we at least pretend to be civil? I promise Iâm not plotting your demise.â*
You roll your eyes, a small smile tugging at your lips despite yourself. You scribble a quick reply:
âWhy start now? Itâs more fun to keep you on your toes.â
You fold the note and toss it back over your shoulder, hoping it will reach him without drawing too much attention. A few moments later, you see Sunghoonâs hand reach forward to grab it, his expression unreadable.
The rest of the class proceeds in a blur of lectures and notes. The occasional glances you and Sunghoon exchange are filled with unspoken tension, but you both manage to keep your interactions to a minimum.
At the end of your lecture, you pack up your things and make your way out of the classroom. Youâre heading down the hall when you hear Sunghoonâs voice behind you.
âHey, wait up.â
You stop, turning to see him catching up with you. Heâs wearing a casual expression, though thereâs a hint of seriousness in his eyes.
âSeriously? What now?â you ask, trying to keep your tone even.
Sunghoonâs gaze lingers on you, and he seems to consider his next words carefully. âSo, I was thinking⊠why donât you come over to my place later?â
You raise an eyebrow, puzzled. âFor what? We already had our⊠whatever that was.â
Sunghoon gives you a knowing look, his smirk widening. âCome on, you know youâre curious. Besides, you know you want me.â
You feel a rush of heat at his words, and you try to maintain your composure. âAnd what happened to it being a one-night thing? Are you trying to make this a regular thing now?â
Sunghoonâs eyes twinkle with mischief. âMaybe I am. Or maybe I just want to spend more time with you. Either way, I think youâre interested.â
You hesitate, feeling the pull of his words. The desire that was ignited the night before is still burning strong, and you find yourself tempted despite your better judgment.
With a sigh, you give in, unable to resist the allure of what heâs offering. âAlright, fine. Iâll come over. But just to see what you have in mind.â Sunghoonâs smile broadens, clearly pleased with your decision. âGreat. see you later.â
Ëàšà§âïœĄË â
Later that night, you stand outside Sunghoonâs, house, or rather mansion. With a deep breath, you ring the doorbelll, and a moment later, Sunghoon opens the door. His eyes rake over you, and thereâs that cocky familiar smirk on his face. âYoure here,â he says, stepping aside to let you in. Thereâs no hint of surprise, just a kind of smug statisfaction, like he knew youâd come.
âYeah,â you reply, stepping inside âso whatâs this all about?â Sunghoon doesnât answer immediately. He just walks past you, heading into the foyer. You follow, your curiosity piqued, but you donât miss the way his eyes flicker back to you with that same intent look. He turns around suddenly, before you can even process whatâs happening, heâs closing the distance between you, leaning in like heâs about to kiss you.
âWoah wait,â you say quickly, pressing a hand against him firm chest to stop him. âWhat do you think youâre doing?â
Sunghoon pauses, eyebrows raised, but thereâs no real apology in his expression. âWhat do you think in doing?â he counters, his voice low, almost daring him to challenge you. You roll your eyes, trying to ignore the way your heart is racing. âI didnât come here just to⊠you know.â
He smirks, leaning in just enough that you feel the warmth of his breath. âThen why did you come here?â
You hesitate, caught between wanting to play it cool and the undeniable pull you feel toward him. âMaybe I was curious.â Sunghoon chuckles, âYouâre here because you want this, sweetheart,â he murmurs, his hand grazing your hip lightly, testing your boundaries.
You swallow hard, trying to keep your composure. âYou think you know everything, donât you?â
His smirk widens. âI know enough.â He leans in again, and this time, his lips brush against your neck, a bold move that sends a jolt of heat through you. You bite your lip, figuring the urge to melt into his touch. âI didnât say you couldââ
âThen stop me,â he challenges, his voice a whisper against your skin. Your mind races every logical thought battling against the desire thatâs been simmering between you since the other night. You hate how easily he gets under your skin, how is arrogance is both infuriating and strangely alluring. But instead of pushing him away, you find yourself lingering, testing the r limits just like he is.
âYouâre infuriating,â you mutter, half annoyed, half breathless. He pulls back just enough to look you in the eye, his expression smug but hungry. âYet I donât see you walking away.â
You hate that heâs right. Instead of anything else, you meet his gaze head on, feeling that dangerous spark between you flicker into something more. âJust shut up and kiss me,â you say, finally giving in, if only to wipe that smug look off his face. And he doesâwithout hesitation, with the kind of intensity that makes your head spin. Itâs heated, unrestrained, and nothing like you imagined, and yet somehow itâs exactly what you wanted.
With a frustrated sigh, you put a hand on his chest and push him back a step. âOkay, seriously, what is this?â you demand, trying to keep your tone steady. âWe canât just keep⊠doing this whenever we feel like it. Itâs stupid.â
He raises an eyebrow, looking way too amused for your liking. âWhy not? You look like youâre enjoying yourself.â
You shoot him a glare. âDonât flatter yourself. I just⊠I donât want this to get messy.â
He smirks, clearly entertained by your struggle. âMessy? You mean you donât want people to know you like kissing me?â
You scoff, crossing your arms. âI donât like anything about you, Sunghoon. But if weâre being honest, thereâs⊠something here, and I donât see it going away anytime soon.â
His grin widens, and you want to slap it right off his face. âSo, what? Youâre proposing a deal?â
You roll your eyes. âMaybe. Friends with benefits. No strings attached, no drama, no catching feelings.â
Sunghoon chuckles, but thereâs an edge to it. âFriends? I donât think weâre even close to that.â
âFine,â you snap, annoyed that heâs right. âEnemies with benefits then. Just⊠an arrangement. To get this out of our systems.â
His gaze darkens, and for a second, you think you see something flicker there, something unreadable. But then he leans in closer, his breath hot against your ear. âAnd what makes you think Iâd agree to that?â
You raise your chin, meeting his challenge head-on. âBecause you want this just as much as I do. Maybe more.â
He pauses, his lips curling into a slow, wicked smile. âOkay, Iâll bite,â he says, his voice low. âBut hereâs the deal: we do this my way. No whining, no complaining, and you definitely donât get to pretend you donât want it.â
You scowl, hating how cocky he looks, how certain he is that youâll cave. âFine,â you bite back. âBut donât think for a second that this means I like you.â
He laughs, the sound rich and mocking. âTrust me, Iâd hate it if you did.â
You feel your blood boil at his arrogance, but thereâs a thrill in it too, in the way you both seem to enjoy this game. âDeal,â you snap, holding out your hand.
He takes it, but instead of shaking, he pulls you in closer, his lips just inches from yours. âJust remember,â he murmurs, his eyes locked on yours, âthis doesnât change anything. I still canât stand you.â
You smirk, matching his intensity. âRight back at you.â
And before you know it, his lips are crashing against yours again, and all that frustration and anger blurs into something reckless and wild. For now, youâll play his game, but you know this is far from over.
Ëàšà§âïœĄË â
Over the next few weeks, the âarrangementâ with Sunghoon becomes a twisted game of secrecy and tension. You find yourself sneaking glances in class, meeting him in darkened hallways between periods, and exchanging heated looks across crowded lunch tables. The two of you are constantly dancing on the edge of discovery, and itâs becoming harder to hide the intensity simmering between you.
It starts small. The accidental brush of fingers when passing by in the hallway, the way his eyes linger a little too long when youâre speaking. But then, it escalates. The stolen moments between classes turn into late-night texts and spontaneous meetings wherever you can find some privacy. Empty classrooms, deserted stairwells, even the back of the libraryâplaces where no one would think to find the two of you together. The more time passes, the harder it gets to keep up the charade.
Youâre starting to notice the way his friends glance between you two, confused by the sudden silences or the shared looks you forget to hide. Jay catches you one morning when youâre walking out of the library with Sunghoon following a few steps behind, your hair slightly mussed, your lips redder than usual.
âWhatâs going on there?â he asks, a teasing grin spreading across his face. âYou and Sunghoon plotting world domination or something?â
You laugh it off, rolling your eyes. âPlease. Heâs too much of an idiot for that.â
But Jay looks unconvinced, his gaze flicking back to where Sunghoon is standing, leaning against the wall with his arms crossed, watching you with a smirk thatâs all too knowing. âSure,â Jay says, dragging out the word like heâs not buying it.
At lunch, itâs even worse. Sunghoon sits across from you, his foot nudging yours under the table. Itâs subtle, but itâs enough to send a jolt up your spine. You kick him back, hard, and he just chuckles, leaning back in his chair like heâs thoroughly enjoying the game.
âWhat are you two whispering about?â Yuna asks, narrowing her eyes in suspicion. Youâre both quick to cover it up, but itâs obvious that your friends are starting to catch on.
âNothing,â Sunghoon says smoothly, his voice annoyingly casual. âJust telling Y/N that she looks like she needs more sleep. Those dark circles are really showing.â
Your jaw clenches, but you force a sweet smile, playing along. âOh, donât worry about me. Iâll sleep just fine once I stop seeing your face every day.â
He grins, but thereâs a flicker of something more heated in his eyes, something you recognize all too well. âYeah, right.â
Karina frowns, sensing the tension that seems to hang in the air whenever you two are in the same room. âSeriously, what is up with you guys?â she asks, tilting her head.
You wave it off, laughing a little too loudly. âWeâre just being our usual selves. You know how it isâcanât stand each other.â
But your friends are starting to notice the little things. The way Sunghoonâs gaze always seems to drift in your direction, the way you keep sneaking out of group study sessions with flimsy excuses, only to return looking flustered and breathless. Sunoo even catches you and Sunghoon exchanging hushed words in the corner of the hallway, too close for comfort, and he raises an eyebrow, a mischievous grin forming on his lips.
âAre you two planning a secret mission, or is there something else we should know?â he asks, his tone playful but probing.
Sunghoon just shrugs, but you can feel his eyes on you, daring you to say something. âNo mission,â he replies coolly, âunless itâs trying to survive Y/Nâs terrible attitude.â
You force a laugh, but the heat in your cheeks gives you away. âYeah, well, some of us have better things to do than deal with you, Sunghoon.â
But itâs getting harder to pretend, harder to keep the fire between you from spilling over in front of everyone else. Every time heâs near, it feels like the world narrows down to just the two of you, a constant push and pull thatâs impossible to ignore. The stolen kisses, the midnight texts, the moments of heated bickering that seem to blur into something moreâitâs becoming too much to hide.
And itâs only a matter of time before someone figures it out.
Ëàšà§âïœĄË â
You grip the sheets of your bed, lip caught between your teeth as sunghoon is under your duvet, tonguing your wet entrance, heat pooling in your belly, felling the intensity of your orgasm creeping up on you.
Itâs all cut short when your door bursts open without warning, and Karina barges in, her voice already raised. âY/N, I swear Iâm going to lose my mindâ!â
You freeze, your heart stopping in your chest. âKarina!â you squeak, quickly yanking the sheets up to your chin. âWhat happened to knocking?â
Karina stops mid-rant, blinking at you. âOh, come on, like I ever knock?â she scoffs, throwing her hands up in frustration. âAnyway, you will not believe what Heeseung just didââ
Sheâs moving closer to the bed, and you panic, shifting slightly to keep Sunghoon hidden beneath the covers. You can feel him tense up, and his hand slips to your thigh under the sheets, pinching you playfully. You bite your lip to stifle a gasp, kneeing him as a warning.
Karina continues her rant, oblivious. âI mean, he had the nerve to ditch me for practice again, and Iâm justâugh, I needed to vent to someone who understands!â
Your mind races, desperately trying to keep her attention away from the suspicious lump between your legs. âThat sounds⊠really frustrating,â you say, a bit too brightly. âBut maybe just, you know, talk to him?â
Karina flops down on the edge of your bed, dangerously close to Sunghoonâs concealed figure. âOh, Iâll talk to him, alright. Iâm just so sick of his stupid excusesââ
Sunghoonâs fingers press into your clit under the sheets. Heâs grinning, enjoying the situation far too much. You jab him again, your heart racing.
Karina glances at you, finally noticing your tense posture. âAre you okay? Youâre acting weird,â she says, her brows furrowing.
You force a laugh, your voice too high. âIâm fine! Just⊠woke up. Didnât expect you to burst in like that.â
She raises an eyebrow. âSince when do you care if I burst in? And why are you so⊠red?â
You feel the heat creeping up your neck. âUh, just⊠hot in here,â you stammer, shifting to keep Sunghoon completely out of sight.
Karina looks like sheâs about to press further, but then she sighs, clearly more focused on her Heeseung drama. âWhatever, I just needed to get that off my chest. He drives me insane!â
You nod quickly. âYeah, I get it. Heâs⊠Heeseung, you know?â Karina gives you a small smile, her frustration easing. âThanks for listening. And seriously, you look so weird right now.â
You laugh nervously. âYeah, just tired.â
Finally, she stands up, heading toward the door. âAlright, Iâll leave you to⊠whatever you were doing. Iâm gonna go call him and give him a piece of my mind.â
You nod eagerly. âGood luck with that!â
As soon as she leaves, you exhale in relief, lifting the cover to eye Sunghoon, whoâs still grinning like an idiot. âWhat?â he whispers, amused.
âWhat?â you repeat, incredulous. âYou almost got us caught, thatâs what!â
He chuckles, pulling you back down under the sheets. âRelax. She didnât notice a thing.â
You roll your eyes, but your heart is still racing from the close call. âYouâre lucky,â you mutter.
Sunghoon just leans in closer, his lips brushing your cheek. âYou love the thrill,â he murmurs.
And damn it, you hate that heâs right.
Ëàšà§âïœĄË â
It's late, the night air cool against your skin as you lean against the wall outside the school building, waiting for Sunghoon. You don't even know why you agreed to meet him here. Maybe because he seemed so insistent, or maybe because a part of you wanted to see him, even though youâd never admit it.
He arrives moments later, his footsteps heavy as he approaches. Thereâs a different energy about him tonightâsomething serious, something intense. His usual smirk is nowhere to be found, and his hands are shoved deep into his pockets. He stops in front of you, a little too close, and you have to tilt your head up to meet his eyes.
âWhatâs this about?â you ask, trying to sound casual, though your heart is pounding in your chest.
He doesnât answer right away, his gaze boring into yours like heâs searching for something, something he canât quite find. You shift on your feet, uncomfortable under his scrutiny.
âSunghoon?â you prompt, your voice wavering just slightly.
He finally speaks, his tone lower than usual. âIâve been thinking⊠about us,â he says, the words almost hesitant, like heâs testing them out.
You blink, caught off guard. âUs?â
He nods, his expression serious. âYeah, Y/N, us. You and me⊠whatever this is.â
You swallow hard, trying to keep your face neutral. âI thought we agreed itâs nothing,â you reply, but your voice comes out softer than you intended.
Sunghoonâs eyes narrow, frustration flashing in his gaze. âYeah, thatâs what we said,â he agrees, âbut it doesnât feel like nothing to me anymore.â
Your heart skips a beat, and you feel a lump forming in your throat. Youâve never seen him like thisâso open, so exposed. âSunghoon, I donât know what youâre getting at,â you say carefully.
He takes a step closer, his expression more intense. âIâm saying that Iâve caught myself⊠thinking about you. A lot. When youâre not around, Iâm wondering what youâre doing, who youâre with. I hate that it bothers me when I see you talking to other guys, and I canât stand the idea of you being with anyone else.â
You feel a wave of panic rising in your chest. This is too much, too fast. You press your back harder against the wall as if trying to create more distance between you. âSunghoon, this was never supposed to be serious,â you whisper, your voice barely audible.
He exhales sharply, running a hand through his hair. âI know, and I tried to keep it that way. But every time I see you, every time weâre together⊠I canât help it. I donât want to help it.â
You shake your head, refusing to let his words sink in. âYou donât mean that,â you insist, more to yourself than to him. âYouâre just saying this because itâs⊠new or whatever. Itâll pass.â
Sunghoonâs jaw clenches, and he moves even closer, leaving barely any space between you. âNo, Y/N, it wonât. Iâve tried to stop feeling this way, but I canât. And I know you feel something too, even if you wonât admit it.â
Your pulse quickens, and you feel your resolve starting to crumble. âI donâtââ you begin, but he cuts you off.
âStop lying,â he says firmly, his voice carrying a hint of desperation. âYouâre scared, I get it. But donât pretend like this is all just a game to you.â
You feel a flash of anger, your defenses rising. âWhat if it is, Sunghoon? What if I donât want anything more than what we already have?â
His expression falters for a moment, a flicker of hurt crossing his face. âThen I guess Iâve made a mistake,â he murmurs, taking a step back.
You feel a pang in your chest, a sharp, unexpected ache. âSunghoonâŠâ
He shakes his head, cutting you off. âForget it. I shouldnât have said anything.â
For a second, you want to reach out, to say something, anything, to make that look on his face go away. But the fear of letting your guard down, of admitting that he might be right, keeps you silent.
He takes another step back, his expression hardening. âI wonât bother you about it again,â he says, his voice cold. âLetâs just go back to pretending like none of this ever happened.â
You nod, though you feel a tightness in your throat. âYeah, letâs do that,â you say quietly, even though your chest aches with a feeling you donât want to name.
Sunghoon turns and walks away, and youâre left standing there, the cool night air biting at your skin. You watch him go, feeling something inside you break just a little, and you wonder if maybe youâve made a mistake too.
Ëàšà§âïœĄË â
The next morning at school, everything feels heavier. The halls are crowded, but itâs like thereâs a spotlight following you, and you canât shake the feeling that everyone knows. You make your way to your locker, avoiding eye contact with anyone, especially Sunghoon.
You donât see him at first, but you feel himâhis presence looming in the periphery. Itâs like heâs everywhere, watching you, and it makes your skin prickle with nerves. You busy yourself with rearranging your textbooks, trying to calm the storm inside your head.
âHey, Y/N,â Karina chirps, appearing beside you. Her usual bright smile is there, but her eyes are curious, searching your face. âAre you okay? You seemed a little⊠off yesterday.â
You force a smile, gripping your locker door tighter than necessary. âYeah, just tired, I guess.â
She studies you for a second longer, then nods. âWell, you should have come to dinner with us last night. It was a total mess, as always, but fun.â
You nod absently, not really listening. Your eyes flick over Karinaâs shoulder and catch Sunghoonâs gaze across the hallway. Heâs leaning against the wall, arms crossed, watching you with an unreadable expression.
âY/N?â Karina prompts, bringing your attention back to her. âYouâre zoning out again.â
âSorry,â you mumble. âJust a lot on my mind.â
Karina glances over her shoulder, following your line of sight. Her brow furrows slightly. âYouâve been weird around Sunghoon lately,â she remarks. âDid something happen?â
Your heart skips a beat, and you quickly shake your head. âNo, nothing. Why would you think that?â
She shrugs, unconvinced. âI donât know⊠Just a feeling.â
Youâre saved from having to respond when the bell rings. You grab your books and make a beeline for your next class, trying to ignore the heat of Sunghoonâs stare burning into your back.
Ëàšà§âïœĄË â
Class drags on painfully. You canât focus. Your mind is a whirlwind of confusion and annoyance. You thought sneaking around with Sunghoon would be fun, a gameâa way to blow off steam. But now itâs getting messy, and youâre starting to feel the consequences.
When the bell finally rings, you bolt out of the classroom, desperate for fresh air. But as soon as you turn the corner, youâre yanked into an empty hallway.
Sunghoon.
His grip on your arm is firm, and his eyes are intense, searching yours. âWe need to talk,â he says, his voice low.
You pull your arm free, glaring at him. âWhatâs there to talk about, Sunghoon? We agreed this was supposed to be casual. No strings, remember?â
He frowns, clearly irritated by your tone. âYeah, but it doesnât feel like that anymore, does it?â
You cross your arms over your chest, trying to steady your breathing. âThatâs because youâre making it weird. Just⊠back off a little, okay?â
Sunghoonâs jaw clenches, and he takes a step closer. âBack off? Youâre the one acting all paranoid, Y/N.â
âMaybe because you wonât stop staring at me like everyone else canât see it!â you snap back, your voice rising. âThis was supposed to be simple. But youâre turning it into something⊠complicated.â
He scoffs, a humorless smile tugging at his lips. âMaybe because it is complicated. Or have you not noticed?â
You hate the way your chest tightens at his words, the way his closeness makes your heart race. âDonât do this, Sunghoon,â you warn, your voice quieter, more vulnerable than youâd like.
He pauses, his gaze softening just for a second. âDo what?â
âMake this more than it is,â you whisper, feeling a knot form in your throat. âBecause I canât⊠I wonât.â
Sunghoonâs expression hardens again, and he leans back, crossing his arms defensively. âFine,â he mutters. âIf thatâs how you want it.â
You swallow, forcing yourself to stay composed. âYeah. It is.â
He nods curtly, stepping away, his face unreadable. âGood. See you around, then,â he says before turning on his heel and walking away, leaving you standing in the empty hallway with your heart in your throat.
Ëàšà§âïœĄË â
The next few days are torture. Sunghoon keeps his distance, and you tell yourself itâs for the best. But every time you see him, every time you catch his eyes across the cafeteria or in class, thereâs a hollow ache in your chest that you canât ignore.
Your friends notice the tension. They ask questions, but you shrug it off, pretending everythingâs fine. But you canât stop replaying your last conversation with Sunghoon, the way his face looked when you told him to back off. You hate how much you miss him, even if youâd never admit it to anyone, especially not to him.
One afternoon, as youâre walking to your car after school, you spot him leaning against a tree nearby, talking to some girl you donât recognize. Heâs smiling, that same smile that used to be reserved for your private moments. Something sharp twists in your chest, and you quickly look away, anger flaring up.
He catches your glance and, for a moment, his smile falters. But then he leans in closer to the girl, laughing at something she says, and your stomach churns with a mix of jealousy and frustration.
You grip your bag tighter, feeling a sting behind your eyes. This is exactly why you didnât want things to get complicated. You turn away, refusing to look back.
Ëàšà§âïœĄË â
Sunghoon avoids you. Heâs usually the first one to shoot a teasing remark your way, but heâs silent. The hallways feel strangely empty without his usual jabs, and your friends are starting to notice the shift between you two.
âAre you guys fighting again?â Karina asks, as the two of you walk to lunch. Her tone is half-exasperated, half-amused, but you know sheâs genuinely curious. âYou and Sunghoon, I mean. Thereâs definitely more tension than usual.â
You shrug, trying to seem indifferent, but your stomach twists with anxiety. âWhen arenât we fighting?â you mutter.
She gives you a knowing look, but thankfully doesnât push it further. Youâre not sure how much more of this you can take without your feelings bubbling over. Youâre determined to get through lunch without letting Sunghoon get under your skin, but when you enter the cafeteria, you spot him immediately.
Heâs at your usual table, talking to Heeseung, but his gaze is elsewhere. The second you walk in, his eyes find yours, and thereâs a fleeting moment of something unreadable in his expression. A flash of frustration? Longing? You canât be sure.
You take a deep breath and head over, sliding into your usual seat. Karina sits next to you, and for a moment, everything feels normal. But then Sunghoon starts talking.
âSo,â he says, his tone casual but his eyes locked on you, âHeeseung, heard you and Karina had another spat. What was it this time? You didnât say âI love youâ enough?â
Heeseung rolls his eyes, but Karina just laughs, lightly smacking Heeseungâs arm. âDonât listen to him, babe. Heâs just deflecting from his own issues,â she teases.
Sunghoon smirks, but thereâs no real humor in it. âI donât have issues, Karina. Just people who like to make things complicated,â he says, glancing at you.
You feel your face heat up, irritation boiling over. âOh, please,â you snap back. âLike youâre the picture of simplicity.â
He leans back in his chair, his eyes glinting with challenge. âNever said I was. But at least Iâm honest about it.â
Your chest tightens. âHonest?â you scoff. âYouâve been playing games from the start, Sunghoon.â
He shrugs, feigning indifference. âMaybe I have. But at least I know what I want.â
His words send a jolt of electricity through you, and you clench your jaw, trying to keep your composure. âAnd whatâs that, exactly?â
He leans forward, his voice dropping low so only you can hear. âYou. But you already knew that.â
Your heart skips a beat. For a second, youâre frozen, caught between wanting to slap him and⊠something else. Something youâre not ready to face.
âYouâre such aââ you start, but before you can finish, Sunghoonâs foot nudges yours under the table, and your breath hitches.
Youâre hyper-aware of the table between you, the curious glances from your friends, and the heat creeping up your neck. Sunghoonâs gaze is still on you, challenging, waiting for your response.
You canât help the retort that slips out. âYouâre really enjoying this, arenât you?â
He shrugs with a small grin. âMore than you know.â
Before you can shoot back another insult, heeseung cuts in, oblivious to the tension. âOkay, what is happening between you two? I feel like I missed an entire chapter here.â
Sunghoon doesnât even glance at Heeseung. âNothingâs happening. Right, Y/N?â
âRight,â you reply, forcing a smile, but your voice sounds strained, even to your own ears.
Heeseung and Karina exchange a look, clearly unconvinced. âSure, whatever you say,â Karina murmurs with a smirk. âJust remember, denial isnât just a river in Egypt.â
Sunghoonâs lips twitch in amusement, and he finally looks away, leaning back in his chair as if nothing happened. But under the table, his foot is still lightly brushing against yours, sending sparks up your leg.
You bite the inside of your cheek, determined not to let him see how much heâs getting to you.
But you canât help itâthe sensation, the frustration, and the undeniable attraction between you are all mixing into one chaotic storm.
Ëàšà§âïœĄË â
The bell rings, signaling the end of lunch, and everyone begins to gather their things. You stand, trying to shake off the tension still lingering between you and Sunghoon, but Karina has other ideas.
âHey, Y/N,â she calls, grabbing your arm just as youâre about to head out. âCan I talk to you for a second?â
You nod, feeling a knot form in your stomach. She leads you to a quieter corner of the hallway, away from the crowd. You can tell by the look on her face that sheâs not letting this go.
Karina crosses her arms, tilting her head slightly. âOkay, seriously,â she starts, her voice low but pointed. âWhat the fuck was that back there?â
You blink, trying to feign ignorance. âWhat was what?â
She rolls her eyes. âDonât play dumb with me. You and Sunghoon⊠there was some serious tension at lunch. It was like watching a live soap opera, and I feel like Iâve missed a few episodes.â
You sigh, glancing around to make sure no one is listening in. âItâs nothing, Karina,â you insist, but even to your own ears, it sounds unconvincing.
Karina raises an eyebrow. âNothing? Really? Because from where I was sitting, it looked like something. A big something.â
You bite your lip, unsure of how much to tell her. âLook, we⊠we just donât get along. You know that.â
âYeah, but this felt different,â she replies, not letting up. âLike, I donât know, it almost seemed like⊠there was something more there.â
Her words hit a little too close to home, and you feel your cheeks heat up. âYouâre imagining things,â you say quickly, but Karinaâs not buying it.
She leans in closer, her expression turning more serious. âY/N, Iâm your best friend. I know when somethingâs up. And that? That was definitely something.â
You hesitate, torn between the urge to confide in her and the fear of admitting the truth. âItâs complicated,â you finally admit, your voice barely a whisper.
Karinaâs eyes widen with intrigue. âComplicated how?â
You swallow hard, looking away. âI donât even know how to explain it. Weâve just⊠been hanging out a little more lately. And things got⊠weird.â
âWeird how?â she presses, clearly not letting this go.
You take a deep breath, trying to find the right words. âWeâve been⊠hooking up,â you confess, your voice almost inaudible.
Karinaâs mouth falls open in shock. âWait, what? You and Sunghoon?â She looks like she doesnât know whether to laugh or gasp. âSince when?â
âA few weeks,â you admit, feeling a strange mix of relief and anxiety now that the secret is out.
Karina blinks, taking a moment to process. âAnd you didnât think to tell me?â
âI didnât think it would last this long,â you say defensively. âI thought it was just going to be a one-time thing, but then⊠it wasnât.â
Karinaâs expression softens slightly. âAnd how do you feel about it? About him?â
You shrug, trying to appear nonchalant. âI donât know. Itâs confusing. Half the time, I canât stand him. The other half⊠well, you saw how lunch went.â
Karina lets out a small laugh. âYeah, I did. Itâs like you two canât decide whether you want to kill each other or⊠not.â
You groan, leaning back against the wall. âThatâs exactly how it feels.â
Karina nudges you with her elbow. âJust be careful, okay? Sunghoonâs not exactly known for being straightforward with his feelings.â
You nod, appreciating her concern. âI know. Trust me, Iâm not expecting anything⊠much. Itâs just⊠whatever it is.â
Karina gives you a knowing smile. âAlright, but just remember, Iâm here if you need to talk. Or, you know, if you need me to kick his ass.â
You laugh, feeling some of the tension ease. âIâll keep that in mind.â
Ëàšà§âïœĄË â
As you walk back to class, you feel a little lighter, but also more uncertain than ever. Because now that Karina knows, it feels more real. And that scares you more than youâd like to admit.
You pause for a moment, letting your thoughts catch up to your racing heart. Sunghoon had admitted it first, hadn't he? In his own cryptic way, heâd confessed he wanted more than just the back-and-forth, more than just the thrill of the chase. You remember the way he looked at you that day, his eyes full of frustration and something else â something softer, something you werenât ready to face.
Heâd said he wanted you. Heâd practically dared you to deny that you wanted him, too. And ever since, youâve been trying to convince yourself that it didn't matter â that it was just some passing thing, some fling to fill the boredom. But it wasn't. It never was.
You sigh deeply, leaning back against the wall of the building. The memory of his words still lingers like a brand on your skin: "I want you." It had sounded so simple when he said it, so sure. Like he wasnât afraid of the mess that came with it.
Youâve been too afraid to admit it to yourself, but now⊠now it feels like youâve been fighting a battle thatâs already lost.
He confessed his feelings first, but youâve been holding back, afraid to let yourself feel the same. Afraid of what it might mean, of how it could change things between you. You thought you could control it, could manage the situation and keep your distance, but all youâve managed to do is dig yourself deeper into this mess.
Youâre tired. Tired of fighting your own heart, tired of pretending youâre unaffected. Tired of feeling like you're caught in this tug-of-war between desire and denial.
*Heâs already put himself out there,* you remind yourself. *He made the first move.* And that thought alone is enough to push you forward, to make you realize that maybe itâs your turn now. Your turn to decide if you want to keep running or if youâre brave enough to let yourself fall.
Pushing off the wall, you feel a wave of determination settle over you. If youâre going to do this, you need to find him and be honest. Not just with him, but with yourself.
Because you donât want to keep this back-and-forth going, this constant dance of pushing and pulling. You want to know where you stand â with him, and with whatever this thing between you is becoming.
You take a deep breath and start walking, knowing exactly where to find him. And this time, youâre not going to let him get away without an answer.
Ëàšà§âïœĄË â
You find Sunghoon by the lockers, leaning against the metal with that typical nonchalant pose he seems to have perfected. His head is tilted down, focused on his phone, but he looks up as you approach, sensing your presence. His eyes flicker with surprise for just a moment before his usual guarded expression returns.
âWhat do you want?â he asks, his voice laced with that familiar arrogance, but thereâs something else there, tooâan undercurrent of curiosity, maybe even hope.
You donât bother with pleasantries. âWe need to talk,â you say, crossing your arms over your chest. You try to sound firm, but even you can hear the slight waver in your voice. Sunghoon raises an eyebrow, clearly intrigued.
âOh, so now you want to talk?â he retorts, a smirk playing at the corner of his lips. âAfter avoiding me all day?â
You roll your eyes, feeling the tension bubble up again. âI wasnât avoiding you,â you snap, even though you both know itâs a lie. âI just needed⊠time to think.â
He straightens up, slipping his phone into his pocket. âThink about what?â he asks, and his tone is a little softer now, less mocking.
You take a deep breath, feeling the weight of your next words pressing down on you. âAbout this. About us,â you say, your voice steadier now. âIâm tired of all this back and forth, Sunghoon. Iâm tired of pretending like thereâs nothing between us when we both know there is.â
His eyes search yours, and for a moment, his guard slips. âI told you how I felt,â he says quietly, his voice barely above a whisper. âYouâre the one who kept pretending it was just⊠nothing.â
You feel a pang of guilt twist in your stomach. âI know,â you admit, meeting his gaze head-on. âAnd I was wrong. I thought I could just⊠push it away, ignore it. But I canât. Not anymore.â
Sunghoonâs expression softens, just a little. âSo what are you saying?â he asks, his voice careful, as if heâs trying not to hope too much.
You swallow hard, forcing yourself to stay honest. âIâm saying⊠I want to figure this out. I want to try⊠whatever this is between us. But I need you to be real with me, Sunghoon. No more games.â
He takes a step closer, closing the distance between you, and you can feel your heart pounding in your chest. âIâve been real,â he says, his voice low and intense. âIâve been real since that night at Karinaâs party, and Iâve been waiting for you to catch up.â
Youâre taken aback by the sincerity in his words, by the way his eyes seem to bore into yours like heâs trying to see into your very soul. âIâm here now,â you reply, your voice barely a whisper.
Sunghoon takes another step closer, and now heâs right in front of you, his breath warm on your skin. âSo what do you want?â he murmurs, his hand reaching up to brush a strand of hair from your face. âDo you want me, or are you still trying to convince yourself you donât?â
Your breath catches in your throat, and for a moment, youâre not sure what to say. But then you realize youâve known the answer all along. âI want you,â you admit, your voice steady, finally letting the truth slip past your lips. âBut I donât want to keep pretending like itâs nothing. I want to try⊠something real. But I donât want it to be this constant push and pull, Sunghoon. I canât keep doing that.â
Sunghoonâs lips curl into a small, almost relieved smile. âThen letâs stop playing games,â he says softly, leaning in closer. âLetâs see where this goes, no more pretending. Just you and me.â
You feel a strange sense of relief wash over you at his words, a weight lifting from your chest. âOkay,â you whisper, and it feels like the most honest thing youâve said in a long time.
His smile widens just a fraction, and he closes the final distance between you, his lips brushing against yours in a way that feels both familiar and new. Itâs not the frantic, heated kisses youâve shared beforeâitâs slower, deeper, filled with a promise of something more.
And for the first time, you feel like youâre finally on the same page. Finally moving in the same direction.
Ëàšà§âïœĄË â
Over the next few weeks, things between you and Sunghoon change in ways you never could have anticipated. At first, itâs subtle â small shifts that only the two of you notice. You spend more time together between classes, sitting closer at lunch, and texting late into the night. The playful bickering is still there, but itâs softened somehow, more like an inside joke than a battle.
Your friends donât notice at first. Theyâre used to seeing you and Sunghoon together, arguing about this or that, so the extra time you spend with him doesn't raise any immediate red flags. But eventually, the signs become too obvious to ignore.
One day at lunch, youâre sitting next to Sunghoon, your legs brushing under the table. His hand casually rests on the back of your chair, his thumb occasionally grazing your shoulder. Jay, seated across from you, narrows his eyes, a slow smile spreading across his face. âOkay, whatâs going on?â he asks, his tone teasing but his eyes curious.
You glance over at Sunghoon, who just smirks. âWhat do you mean?â you reply, trying to sound nonchalant, but you can feel the flush creeping up your neck.
Jay gestures between the two of you. âThis,â he says, waving his hand. âYou two. Youâre being weird. Weird even for you two.â
Karina, whoâs been listening in, gasps. âOh my god,â she says, her eyes widening with realization. âAre you guys⊠together?â
The table goes silent for a second, everyone turning to look at you. Sunooâs eyebrows shoot up, and Jake leans forward, looking like heâs trying to solve a particularly complicated math problem.
Sunghoon leans back, crossing his arms over his chest with a grin. âDepends,â he says casually. âWhat do you think?â
You elbow him in the side, rolling your eyes at his vague answer. âYes,â you say, looking at your friends. âWeâre⊠together. Kind of.â
âKind of?â Sunghoon echoes, feigning offense, and you shoot him a playful glare.
âYes, kind of!â you insist, turning back to your friends, who are now staring at you like youâve just revealed youâre secretly an alien. âItâs⊠new.â
Heeseung chuckles. âI mean, Iâm not totally surprised,â he says, leaning back in his chair. âYou two have been like a powder keg waiting to explode for years.â
Yuna nods eagerly. âHonestly, it was about time,â she adds, and you canât help but laugh at her bluntness.
Jungwon, however, looks mildly concerned. âSo, youâre serious?â he asks, glancing between you and Sunghoon. âLike, actually serious?â
Sunghoon looks at you, his smile softening just a bit, and he nods. âYeah,â he says, and thereâs a sincerity in his voice that makes your heart skip a beat. âWeâre serious.â
Your friends take a moment to process this. Then Jake grins. âAlright,â he says, raising his glass of soda. âTo Y/N and Sunghoon. The enemies-to-lovers arc we didnât know we needed.â
You laugh, and everyone joins in, raising their glasses. Itâs strange, in a way, seeing everyone so quickly accept what feels like a massive shift in your life. But it also feels⊠right.
Ëàšà§âïœĄË â
Over the next few days, things become more obvious. You and Sunghoon are no longer trying to hide. He reaches for your hand in the hallways, and you let him. He kisses you on the cheek in front of the others, and they pretend to gag but smile knowingly when they think youâre not looking.
You catch Karinaâs eye one afternoon, and she gives you a grin thatâs part smug, part excited. She leans over, whispering, âSo⊠you finally admitted you like him, huh?â
You smile, shrugging a bit. âGuess so,â you say, and she laughs, nudging you with her elbow.
The hardest part, strangely enough, is getting used to the change yourself. Itâs still weird to not have to hide how you feel, to be able to smile at Sunghoon without wondering if anyone is watching. But with each passing day, it gets a little easier.
And itâs not like everything is perfect. You and Sunghoon still argue â of course, you do. Thatâs just how you are. But thereâs something different now, something that feels less like anger and more like⊠passion. Like youâre both on the same side, even when youâre bickering.
There are moments when you catch him looking at you from across the room, a small smile on his lips, and you feel a warmth spread through your chest. And in those moments, you know â this is real. This is right.
Your friends have stopped asking questions. Theyâve accepted that this is your new normal, and honestly, so have you. The only thing left to do is see where it takes you.
taglist: @awqken @hollyoongs @enhastolemyheart @wonnienyang @skzenhalove @slvrnm @lovesangyeon @velvetkisscs @soobieboo @jakeflvrz @woorcve @moonpri @blockbusterhee @yjwsgf @doublebunv @moon4moony @woniebae @moon368 @jakeswifewithtwokids @love4hee @ikeryn @univershoon @indigoez @ramenoil @iilwji @riribell @ilabjungwon @tunafishyfishylike @psh23xie @toodeloosoo @leov3rse @onlyhyunjin @nyxtwixx @mnxnii @whateverhoon @jayrelics @laurradoesloveu @heeswif3y @enhalxvr @yunhoswrldddd @nikiswifiee @aiiselle90210 @lixiebokie @lelsforlino @eneiyri @punchbug9-blog @babystrlla @hee-yunie @hoonics @notevenheretbh1
10 DAYS TO FALL IN LOVE â LEE HEESEUNG SMAU
Pairings: badboy!heeseung x goodgirl!reader
Genre: university!au, mini smau, mature scenes, fluff, angst, pinning
Synopsis: you and heeseung used to be bestfriends as children â he even told you he'd marry you one day. but then you went to highschool and things changed , he dyed his hair and started hanging out with a new group group of friends. through all that his love never changed for you â has yours changed for him? OR in which heeseung swears to make you fall in love with him again in only 10 day; the punishment â he leaves you alone for goodâ can he do it?
Warnings: kms/kys jokes , sexual content , mentions of drugs, drug usage
THE COUNTDOWN STARTS NOW !
(đ€) ... PROFILES !
CHAPTERS:
1.) 10 days ...
2.) the countdown starts today ...
3.) proud of you ...
4.) what really happened ...
5.) thank you ...
6.) dates and apologies ...
7.) you down? ...
8.) jays party ...
9.) aftermath ...
10.) he's missing ...
11.) moving forward ...
12.) got the girl ....
â ( TAGLIST. CLOSED )
©ïžLUVYENI
i â€ïž hot nerds (l.dh, n.jm) â preview
PAIRING. pervert!nerd!haechan, pervert!nerd!jaemin x popular!fem!reader GENRE. smut, slight fluff CONTENTS. explicit smut (kissing, fingering, oral (receiving), titfucking, breast play, lots of drool and spit, overstimulation, snowballing, dirty talk, rimming, anal play, missionary, riding, mating press, breeding/creampies) WORD COUNT. 8.7k; teaser wc: 525 words SUMMARY. when your professor pairs you with the two smartest students in your class for a group project, you find yourself making an interesting deal with them. or, alternatively: the one where you have to help two nerds learn to get girls so you can pass your class. PLAYLIST. n/a NOTES. remember when i said i was up to something with these two? this is it! the full fic is already posted on my patreon here, and iâll be posting it in full to tumblr on september 30th!
âYou donât get itâwe need to be fuckable!â Haechan stresses, and you roll your eyes in exasperation.
âHaechan, youâre already fuckable.â you explain calmly, and he opens his mouth in preparation for some witty remark, but after processing your words, his eyes widen and his mouth hangs open uselessly, his accusingly pointed finger now pointing meekly at the floor at an angle.Â
âIâSoâso you would fuck us?â he stammers, and you nod slowly, looking from him to Jaemin.
âWhy do you think I let you get away with your numerous dorm violations?â you snort in amusement, and he blinks hard.
âI thought you just took pity on us, yâknow? Like you had a soft spot for nerds or something.â
âI donât have a soft spot for nerds.â you answer. âI have a soft spot for hot nerds, though.â
His mouth opens and closes pathetically as his normally quick-witted brain scrambles to process the information youâve just presented to him. Jaemin is quicker to act, sitting forward so suddenly the move could be considered as predatory, and youâre not sure if itâs the lighting reflecting off of his glasses or what, but there is most definitely a glint in his eye as he regards you, his lips gradually stretching into a toothy grin.
âSo you let us get away with stuff? Because you like us? Like what?â he questions, and you tilt your head to the side as you think.Â
âYour candles, for starters. Haechanâs tapestry, your many many noise complaints from your neighbors when you two get too heated as youâre gaming,â you start to list off on your fingers, and you cross one leg over the other, not missing the way both of their eyes shift to your newly exposed skin and howâŠÂ hungry they look. âThe way youââ you point at Haechan, âalways try to get away with looking up my skirt.â
Haechanâs face flushes a pretty shade of red, and you smile, amused, as he scrambles to defend himself. Before he can, you hold up a hand to silence him.Â
âHaechan?â
âYes?â he replies meekly.
âIf I minded, I would have said something by now. I certainly wouldnât have kept wearing skirts and accidentally flashing you.âÂ
His eyes roll back into his head with a whimper and he nods in understanding.Â
âAnd youââ you round on Jaemin, whoâs still perched like a lion about to pounce, and the male just smiles wider, tilting his head to the side curiously.
âWhat about me?â
âYou probably think youâre slick with the little lingering touches on my back and waist when youâre âtrying to get by,â but I only let you do that because I like it.â
His grin widens more than you even thought possible, the glint in his eye now unmistakable. âOh, yeah? Where else do you like being touched?â
âI mean,â you hum, uncrossing your thighs and smiling as both of their gazes hone in on the space between your legs, âI could tell you, but I think youâd rather have me show you.â
âI have a better idea,â Jaemin murmurs, moving towards you slowly. âHow about you let us find out?â
reminder that the full fic is already posted on my patreon if you don't want to wait!
If love was a battlefieldâŠ
pairing: heeseung x afab reader x jake
synopsis: If love was a battlefield, could there be more than one winner? In which Heeseung and Jake work in the same company as you, both of them sharing the same position and the same feelings: their huge crush on you.
my's note: i had so much fun working on this plot honestlyyyy and it was a bit of a challenge (in a good way!!!) since i had to learn a bunch of terms in english to write it and also my first love triangle đ€đ€ THANK YOU SO MUCH ANONIE FOR THE REQUEST!!! also wanna thank mika for helping me brainstorming! a few scenes from here came from our talks đđ€
warnings: office workers heejake, y/n is in a higher position than them (manager), miscommunication to some extent, love triangle (but she does chooses! [spoiler alert] maybe both? hehe), hee and jake doesnât get along too much at first (ps: they DONâT hate each other) but they come around!, quick mention of hee having a tattoo, thereâs fluff, reader blushing/turning red! and SMUT - so minors DO NOT interact!, protected sex đȘđ», unprotected sex (please, don't!!!), oral sex (f. receiving), quick handjob, sex in the office, the smut is jake x reader and heeseung x reader, there's no threesome!, jake has praise kink, hee is lowkey into degradation (receiving). LMK if missed anything!!!
request: an office or work space love triangle of heeseung x reader/oc x jake (you can pick which one the reader leans more towards or notâšor bothâš) either way!!! (request here!)
wc:Â 24k
NOT PROOFREAD.
taglist đ: @yvnempire, @marigold-sunflowers
Of course the printer would select that very specific day to malfunction, jamming the paper with its irritating noise that signaled another reset was needed, despite all your attempts to fix the problem.Â
A wave of frustration washed through your body as you stepped back, taking a deep breath and fluttering your eyes shut in order to find any inner peace that might help you go through a simple routine task.
It wasn't just the clients pushing your buttons with their impossible deadlines, the entire work environment seemed to be against you, targeting you with its devilish plans. Everything that could go wrong, did.
You had little to no hope of getting better until your head rested on your pillow later that day. Unfortunately, there was still a whole six hours waiting for your irreplaceable presence. Being a manager had its perks, nonetheless, the down sides haunted you even in your dreams.
âTough day?â
You startled at the sudden voice beside you, opening your eyes just to catch Jake sending you a curious glance, layered with a hint of comprehension. A ghost of a smile adorned his plump lips, his demeanor showed helpfulness, ready to assist. As usual.
âSome clients make the worst decisions and Iâm the one cleaning their mess.â You began, exhaustion lacing your voice. âAnd some printers just hate me.â And then you shoot Jake an unamused smile.
Jake chuckled, his eyes turning into small crescents as he did so.
âMay I?â He asked, gesturing towards the printer. You nodded, stepping aside to give him space to work. He began with the basics, checking for any simple errors. âItâs not running out of paper,â he pointed out quietly.
âYeahâŠâ You sighed and rested your body on the wall nearby. You had gone through everything Jake was doing.
âIt doesnât seem to be here. The problem.â He remarked, slightly confused.
You took a moment to observe how Jakeâs concentrated frown deepened while he typed something on the computer, searching for the cause of the error. He nonchalantly played with his lips, wetting and biting them as he focused, his sharp eyes glued to the screen, slender fingers dancing across the keyboard.
You never paid close attention to how attractive Jake looked, especially while working â his light blue dress shirt and mandatory tie enhanced his pronounced features, complemented by his everyday black specs.Â
Of course you thought Jake was handsome, any person in their right sense would. And his beauty was accompanied with his remarkable personality. He had a genuine, warm, prestative soul, ready to lend a hand whenever people needed him, and it was clear there was no expectation to receive anything in return as he did so.
Jake had unmatched intelligence and quick senses to discover easily what went wrong, and even his clumsiness, constantly dropping his pile of papers or having his glasses misplaced on the top of his noseâs bridge had its charm.
You never considered the possibility of Jakeâs charming side. Nonetheless, there you were, unprofessionally checking out your colleague while hoping for a miracle.
âThere you go!â Jakeâs cheerful voice brought you back to reality, your heart racing in surprise.
âDid you fix it?â You questioned with a hopeful tone.
âLetâs see.â Jake replied and then pressed a few buttons.
To your surprise, the printer emitted its usual sound instead of the annoying one, smoothly pulling the paper and delivering it back, fully printed with your workâs documents.
âJake! What the hell!â You exclaimed, mouth agape and eyebrows furrowed in bewilderment, a bright and genuine smile started to creep on the corner of your mouth as you looked back and forth between Jake and the printer. âWhat did you do?â You asked under your breath, still astonished with Jakeâs quick and excellent skills. It felt like you could finally breathe again.
And it was just a malfunctioning printer.Â
âI justââ
âYou know what? It doesnât matter.â You waved it off, too relieved to finally continue with your very busy day â the few minutes the printer had stolen from you would certainly be missed. âThank you so much.â You flashed him a sincere smile.
âIt was nothing, really.â He chuckled at your overreaction, in no position to admit out loud he was loving to be the cause of your sudden euphoria. Deep down he was fighting the urge to blush, fluster before you.
âHow can I properly thank you for saving my day?â You joked with a grin, thrilled with the small victory as you took your papers in hand.
Your demeanor had lightened, and you couldn't quite tell if it was due to the relief of the printer working again or Jake's presence beside you. Either way, you felt a pleasant warmth spreading in your chest.
However, to receive Jakeâs silence, widened eyes and cheeks with a faint blush as a response caught you off guard, along with his sudden nervousness as he fidgeted with his fingers, as though he prepared himself during his whole life for that exact moment.Â
âSo, uhâŠâ He began, voice shaky, fingers trailing its way towards his nape to scratch it while his eyes avoided yours.Â
âYeah?â You prompted, curiously waiting for his words.
âI've been waiting to tell you something. IâI know we have a policy about it, and you're the last person Iâd expect to break it, butââ
âOh, hey Y/N!â
You turned to see another colleague of yours approaching with his characteristic bright, enchanting smile, carrying a cup of coffee in his hand, a sharp gaze never leaving yours as he confidently brought his strong aura closer to you both.Â
âHi, Heeseung.â You greeted with a smile, oblivious to the subtle change in the atmosphere between them.
âJake.â
âHeeseung.â Jakeâs voice was dry when he replied and a thick silence lingered for a moment before Heeseung flashed you an adorable smile and walked away without any other words.
You barely noticed Jake's clenched jaw and fists, or how he seemed ready to throw punches right in front of you if Heeseung didnât return to his desk quickly.
âSo you were saying..?â You asked, innocently drawing your attention back to Jakeâs and consequently bringing his own towards you; his puppy eyes softened when they landed on your pretty features.
Jakeâs heart immediately faltered a ton of beats as if he was about to collapse; having you looking at him so attentively was making his circuits crash, sending his brain into overdrive.Â
All the courage he reunited to confess to you vanished in a snap.
âIt was nothing, don't worry about it!â He forced his best cheerful smile. âYou seem to have a lot to do! Fighting, Y/N!â
You giggled at his choice of terms, tapping on his shoulder slightly before you started to head your way back to your office room.Â
âThank you again, Jake.â
You offered him another smile, filled with genuine gratitude since he truly helped your day not to fall in shambles. And apparently, not only by helping your beef with the printer.Â
On the other hand, Jakeâs day just started to collapse.Â
He headed back to his desk in the space he shared with a few co-workers and Lee Heeseung, one of the best employees the company had ever had since they started. The problem solving efficiency increased enormously during his time working there, and Jake had a not-so-soft spot for him in his heart. Jake viewed Heeseung as one of his greatest rivals. Not exactly in a mean way, but as a manner to motivate his improvement and outsmart himself each day, ensuring that his presence was felt just as strongly as Heeseungâs.
In Jakeâs eyes, Heeseung had an annoying vibe, overconfident with his work and himself, although he knew Heeseung wasnât an asshole at all. Deep down, Jake harbored a certain envy of how easily Heeseung seemed to connect with people; his charisma shone within every word, his confidence made others feel secure â and, depending on the context, a bit shy.
On that day, nevertheless, a nagging doubt about his co-worker motives during their earlier interaction was swelling in his chest. If he stayed quiet, not confronting Heeseung about it, he wouldnât be able to focus on doing his job adequately.
âOk, so what was that about?â Jake finally asked with a mild peeved voice.Â
âWhat was what abââ
âDon't.â Jake's fierce eyes shot Heeseung a warning while tilting his head. âDon't mess around. Just spill it out.â
Heeseung quirked an eyebrow in amusement after seeing the so said calm guy acting a bit off.Â
âI was saving your ass.â Heeseung replied, a casual grin on his face as if he had just shared the most mundane, obvious fact.
Jake rolled his eyes, sighing and definitely not buying the nonchalance while turning his rolling chair towards Heeseung.
âAnd how exactly my ass needs to be saved, Heeseung?â he pressed, his voice low and serious with an elbow propped on the edge of his table.
âYou seemed to be in trouble.â Heeseung shot back immediately, shrugging, avoiding Jakeâs intense gaze.
Heeseung wasn't too open about his reasons because, honestly, he was still unsure of what had compelled him to interfere in the conversation, since you seemed to be beaming with happiness and Jake was just his normal, awkward self talking to you.
Something itched at the back of his confused thoughts, so he had to take action.
âI wasnât.â Jake murmured, his jaw clenched as he turned back to his computer, fingers furiously typing on his keyboard. âNext time, ask beforehand if I really need your savior's help.â He said mockingly, voice dripping with sarcasm. âI was just about to confess and you totally screwed up my chances.â
Heeseung blinked a few times, immediately freezing in his seat, utterly flabbergasted. He had a faint, minor suspicion hinting that Jake was onto something he couldn't quite grasp. But this? This was the last thing he expected at all.
Heeseung had to bite back his own sharp and far from nice words in order to maintain a good relationship with Jake â and, consequently, with you.
âI mean, we have policies and rules...â Heeseung managed to say in return, ignoring the bittersweet taste on his tongue going all the way down his throat to sit uncomfortably in his chest, swallowing it whole in a suffocating way.
âI know about them.â Jake smirked, leaning on his chair with a cocky, relaxed demeanor as he side eyed Heeseung. âAnd I found a loophole in it.âÂ
Now Heeseung's curiosity was piqued, heart racing fast as he leaned closer. âOh, really? And how's that?âÂ
Jake chuckled, shooting Heeseung a skeptical look. "No way I'm telling you, man."
Panic filled Heeseungâs vein, a cold feeling spreading within his chest as the realization hit. He could lose the chance of his lifetime; it felt like you were already fading away from his touch without even giving him the chance to make a move. The new information that Jake and he shared a common interest in you and Jake seeming to have an advantage on his game triggered his worst side.Â
For the purpose of keeping on the warâs lead â the war that just got instaurated by his fantasy â, he decided to play dirty.
âIf you don't, I'm gonna snitch on you.â
Now it was time for Jake to paralyze in his tracks, just to let out a soft laugh before saying. âYou would notâŠâ Jake squinted his eyes in disbelief.
After reading Heeseungâs expression, Jake realized he wasnât bluffing. The slight raise of Heeseung's eyebrows, coupled with a hint of challenge and his annoying grin demonstrated it clearly.
âTry me,â Heeseung struggled a bit to maintain his confident facade, the slight tremor in his voice betrayed the underlying tension.Â
But Heeseung had an advantage that outshone Jake's, one that could potentially lead Jake to be in a very unfortunate position, and if that meant Heeseung getting his chances with you, he would do anything to keep the fight.Â
Jake leaned back further, the playful smirk fading as he studied Heeseung with a calculating gaze.
âSeriously, youâd snitch over this?â Jake muttered in disbelief, crossing his arms over his chest. He wasnât entirely convinced Heeseung would go that far, but his colleague's persistence was throwing him off. And for what? To steal his chances with you just for fun? UnlessâŠ
âIf it gives me a fair shot, yeah.â Heeseungâs grin widened, but it didnât quite reach his eyes.
He was pretty chill about it, after all, you always seemed unattainable to anyone around you. With an unmatched beauty, an assertive mindset, and a captivating yet humorous personality â when necessary â, not to mention how understanding you were.Â
Everyone's dream.
And until that day thatâs how Heeseung had you, only in dreams. But now reality had knocked on his door, and it knocked close. He knew there was competition, a strong one. And much to Jake's misfortune, Heeseung was highly competitive.
There was a brief pause for quite long, painful seconds. Jakeâs frown deepened as he finally understood Heeseungâs motives, clarification hitting instantly. They were on the same page.
Although it sent his brain into malfunction, especially because he feared Heeseungâs would be winning â just like he always did, the fucking annoying ace of the company â, Jake kept on the confident behavior, not showing his hesitation right in front of his, now unspokenbly declared, enemy.
He let out a sharp breath, shaking his head. âYou really think you stand a chance?â
Heeseungâs expression faltered for just a second, but he quickly masked it.
âI donât know,â he shrugged. âBut I wonât let you get ahead without a fight. A proper one.â
A heavy silence settled between them again, Jake processing Heeseungâs words, the tension palpable as both of them knew they were walking on dangerous ground. It was the company field with you being the final prize.
And right at that point, neither of them cared that much about their reputation within the workers if it led to having you at the end of the day.
âAlright then, letâs see who wins this.â Jakeâs voice filled the dead air.
Heeseung blinked, momentarily taken aback by Jakeâs sudden shift in tone, overconfident with his decision. However, he nodded and shook Jakeâs hand in a wordless deal.
âLet's see who wins this.â
A gentle knock on the door interrupted your focus as you organized your table for the day, still standing up.
It was common sense within your employees that if you didn't answer right away, they were not supposed to open it until you reached out yourself. However, the chaotic pile of papers that had overtaken your workspace had momentarily distracted you, and you were taking your sweet time organizing it all.
Just as you were about to call out, the door creaked open cautiously, and a familiar pair of eyes peeked inside.
âHey.â Heeseung greeted you with a tender smile. âMind if I come in?â
Without fully drifting your gaze away from the documents on your table, frowning as you found yet another mistakenly placed in between your sheets, you gave a brief nod.
âSure.âÂ
As Heeseung approached, a bit hesitant, you didnât give him time to say a word as you shove the paper on his face. âThatâs definitely not mine.â
Your deadpan expression was enough to make anyone sweat, and you knew it well â sometimes using it to your benefit purely for fun, especially with someone like Heeseung, who was susceptible to falling for it easily.Â
Heeseung momentarily blinked, stunned, before tilting his head to the side, uncertain. âIâm⊠Sorry..?â
You couldnât help the small giggle that escaped, enjoying his reaction far too much; his confused, scared bambi eyes widening with the fear of a reprimand. You shook your head, biting back your smile while lifting one eyebrow.
âRelax. Itâs not your fault.âÂ
You saw Heeseungâs shoulders loosening visibly, and he released a long breath he didnât notice he was holding, relief washing over his body.
Behind his easygoing, self-reliant and confident persona, there was a huge layer of self-doubt blended with the concern of letting the company down â letting you down. He carried the weight of wanting to be perfect at his job, especially for you. He was proud to admit he barely made any mistakes during his years working there, let alone to incorrectly put important papers in wrong places.
âSo, what brings you here?â You finally gave Heeseung your full attention, leaning one hip against the desk, watching him with curious eyes.
Heeseung cleared his throat before setting down a steaming cup on the wooden surface. âThought you could use this.â He offered with an awkward grin. âA coffee for my favorite manager.â
You quirked an eyebrow, suspicious over his sudden decision. Of course you were aware of Heeseungâs kindness towards you, always trying to ease your overall work under his possibilities with his teasing blended with his gentlemanliness. However, something felt strangely off, different, weird even, and you struggled to pinpoint exactly what it was.
Maybe it was the way his two orbs seemed to drown you in a pool of affection and attention, almost expecting something in return.
âOh, yeah?â You picked the coffee nonetheless, taking a sip and almost closing your eyes as the sweetness of it melted in your palatar. âAnd whatâs the catch?â You smirked as you propped your free hand on the table, supporting your weight in it, eyes never leaving Heeseungâs sudden flustered self.
âNo catch!â He urged to say, raising both hands in defense, bambi eyes widened more as if he just got caught in a compromising situation. You tilted your head, not buying it. âI swear,â he chuckled awkwardly, feeling small under your intense staring. âI just thought it could be a good idea. Youâre fighting against demons with this desk today.â He pointed out to the said space and you actually laughed out loud at his words, painfully agreeing with them because it was your reality that day.
You studied Heeseung for a moment longer, trying to read his underlying true intentions. In doing so, you couldnât help but observe his charming features.
His impeccably styled hair revealing a small portion of his forehead, enough to showcase his adorable mole, became a signature aspect of his daily appearance. His clothes were always neat, seamlessly placed and yet stylish. His lips seemed to be constantly nibbled or maybe he had some chapstick on, because it had the color of cherries, giving it an inviting glimmering aspect.Â
He exuded a natural flirty aura that effortlessly drew people in, especially those he had a genuine interest in â you heard some of his stories before, when you werenât in your current position. For some inexplicable reason, you found yourself wondering briefly what it would be like to be on the receiving end of his playful and certainly captivating advances.
âThanks, Heeseung. I appreciate it." Your voice softened, and you gestured to the chaotic desk. "But next time, maybe help me with this instead of just getting me coffee."
Heeseung laughed, rubbing the back of his neck. âNoted.â Then he shifted on his feet, clearly trying to maintain his cool, but the slight fidget in his hand suggested something else. âJust wanted to make sure youâre taken care of. You know? Youâre the head of our department.â He nodded to himself, letting his genuine, but appealing words come out of his mouth spontaneously.Â
âThank you again.â You smiled, feeling his gratitude, still not really accepting it as a normal behavior.Â
You kept on watching him nervously acting out in front of you, so obviously apprehensive, however, fighting the pressure of dropping down his mask. You almost laughed at it, endeared by how entertained it was to be on the viewerâs side.Â
âBut really. Youâre doing fine. And we all need you to keep on being fiâ Doing! Doing fine.â Heeseung fumbled in between his speech, stuttering because he wasnât expecting you to go full silent-mode out of nowhere, leaving him with his messy, and in love, brain, enough to make him act awkward.
You let out a small chuckle, the way Heeseung was being so out of his normal was so funny to your eyes, never in your life you thought of seeing him in such a manner.
Then you stood up only to gently guide Heeseung towards the door, grabbing the handle to signal it was time for him to leave your office. Somehow you had a feeling that if you let him, Heeseung would keep on talking and complimenting you for hours.Â
âOk, now you're just flattering me for no reason. Go back to your work.â You softly pushed his back, still smiling.Â
âYou know me too well,â he smirked and then threw you a cute wink before walking away, now apparently back to his regular demeanor, leaving you alone in the midst of your chaos â both in the room and in your mind.
Before you closed the door, the phantom of your smile lingering on your lips still, you heard someone calling your name.
âOh, Y/N! I was looking for you.âÂ
Jake met Heeseung in the middle of the hallway. His subtle, yet triumphant smile radiated a confidence that triggered Jakeâs desperation, so he had to come up with a quick plan to gain some extra points with you and, maybe, with luck, surpass Heeseung.Â
Your eyes tracked Jakeâs motions as he approached you, looking flustered with papers messily stacked in his grasp, his glasses unevenly on his face as though he had been in a race against time. He had a small pout decorating his plump lips, and his hair was a mess as well, strands poking out everywhere. Even so, he looked cute.
Cute?
âWhat's all that?â You nodded to his papers, sipping on your hot coffee.
Then you locked your gaze with his. Jake gave you a soft smile, as though he saw a cute puppy and you tilted your head with curiosity, waiting for his response.
âUh.. I went over our latest reports,â he started as he clumsily handed you one of the documents, your fingers subtly brushing against the otherâs in the process â while you barely noticed it, Jake winced, a jolt of ecstasy rushing over his body by your simple touch. âAnd there were a bunch of errors. I corrected themâŠâ
You slowly blinked, eyebrows furrowing, utterly surprised by Jake's decision of reviewing the reports, and not enough, giving it the proper adjustment as you meticulously re-read the paragraph he pointed out.
âI'm sorry.â He said quietly after your silence. âYou seem to have a lot to do and I know you'll have to revise it all again.â
âJake.â You called out, a serious, focused expression still settled on your face. Jake straightened his posture, ready for the reprimand he was sure you would give him, already thinking about the hours he would spend overthinking it. However, you were far from being mad, so you softened your eyes after finishing reading, smiling and looking back at him. âCome in.â
Jake had dumbfounded eyes shooting your back when you turned on your heels after inviting him to your office, his foot glued on the ground unabling his movements. Nonetheless, the feeling of a small victory tasted addicting, and now he yearned for more.Â
Just before fully stepping into your workspace after calming down his racing excited heart, he glanced over his shoulder, catching a glimpse of Heeseung giving him a death stare.Â
Jake simply smiled coyly, as if he had won the round of a game he never intended to lose, although his adversary offered a strong amount of threatening.
Heeseung darkened eyes watched Jakeâs fading away after closing the door, poking his inner cheek with his tongue with his breath hitching. Right when he found the perfect opportunity to prove he would be a great boyfriend by looking out for you, Jake stepped in, robbing him of the chance to be the only one in your thoughts.
Inside the room, you now sat on your chair while Jake kept on standing after putting the pile of papers on your desk. He was trying to suppress the adrenaline bubbling inside his heart, the thump-thump almost dizzying echoing inside his head, and the fact that your office was permeated with your scent did nothing to help to decrease the intoxicating, entrancing feeling.Â
âSit down, donât be awkward.â You said nonchalantly, yet comforting, pointing to the chair in front of your desk without necessarily looking away from the words you were reading rigorously.
âSorry.â He chuckled nervously, quickly sitting down as his fingers twitched on his lap, fidgeting out of tension.
The lack of acknowledgment about what your reaction would be was aching in his every pore; biting the sensitive flesh of his lips wasnât enough anymore, so he glanced up at you, stealing a rapid moment to admire the way you were scanning the reports. Your mild concentrated frown and how your hair cascaded down your face almost made him melt on spot.Â
The silence wasnât comfortable at all, not hostile either â even so he was afraid of getting scolded.
âSo, what made you decide to do this?â You finally spoke, your words aiming for one simple answer, nevertheless, your tender and still steady tone made Jake shift on his seat, breath getting caught on his throat.Â
âI just thought I could help you,â he answered, a bit quieter than his regular self. âIâI know you have a lot to do lately, and I always revise our main reports.â He explained, not watching you anymore because you lifted your eyes to give him your full attention; your gaze weightening on him. âAnd I noticed those errors. Didnât think it would hurt to re-make those parts based on your pattern of writing.â
You nodded softly, a smile tugging at the corners of your lips.
Jake was adorable with his cheeks painted in slight blush, fixing his glasses on his noseâs bridge, running away from your staring, unable to sustain eye contact. He was being his normal self, however, just like with Heeseung, something felt off.Â
âThatâs really considerate.â You said, tilting your head slightly to the side as you added. âI really appreciate your effort, Jake. But Iâd like to be aware of the changes before you make them. Okay?âÂ
Jake eagerly agreed, nodding at your soothing words. He was relieved to hear them instead of harsher ones, even though there was no bigger reason to fear, after all, your reputation for handling things with grace and kindness mingled with your astute assertiveness was well-known.
You had a way of giving feedback that felt constructive, always leading with gratitude before addressing something more incisive, and your scoldings were far from being sharp like a retaliation and more striving for lightening the load for everyone involved, without leaving room for big mistakes.
But at that moment Jake held a very intimate, personal secret, and your sharp eyes seemed to read his every thought, so he expected the worst.
âSo, what exactly did you change in the report?â you asked, leaning slightly forward in your chair, genuine curiosity lighting up your eyes.
Jake swallowed, feeling a familiar nervousness creep up, though it was softened by the warmth of your kind eyes. He smiled and tried to quietly shake off the warmth spreading on his cheeks before explaining every line he had modified and the reasoning behind it, his typical clever outstanding trait showing off within every word that flew from his mouth, walking confidently on the ground he built himself in.
As you nodded along, due to the small proximity, you also silently struggled to maintain your focus on what Jake was verbalizing instead of his refreshing perfume and his gorgeous, slender fingers, to which traced the paper as he kept on talking. Not to mention the motion of his lips, how his tongue would wet the flesh of it every once and awhile.
âYou did a good job, Jake.â You said at the end of his analysis, lifting your eyes to meet his. A subtle smile adorned your mouth, and Jake felt a surge of pride bloom in his chest.
He could shamelessly admit â not to you, though â he was devoted to hearing your every praise. There was no aim to his work other than receive your compliments about him doing good. Being good for you was enough to pay his bills, he would even dare to say.
And of course that had nothing to do with his praise kink, buried in the depths of his mind.Â
âThank you.â Jake mumbled shyly, feeling the heat lingering on his cheeks, a light ton of red tinting them. âI really like being noted by you.â As soon as his words blurted out of his mouth, he rushed to backtrack himself with widened eyes. âI meanâ I appreciate being recognized for my hard work. By any superior, of course.â
You leaned back on your chair, crossing your arms as you raised an eyebrow, studying Jakeâs demeanor shamelessly â his nervous stuttering, his choice of words, his sudden overwork. Going through documents already approved for submission was nothing but a hellish task, nevertheless Jake seemed to be willing to give you that break without you asking for it.
Something odd was happening. It was way out of your regular routine, flooded with awkward situations and words that you werenât sure you were supposed to overhear. And coming from two different people.
Another knock on your door interrupted your session of trying to read Jakeâs hidden intentions, just like you did before with Heeseung. And as if your thought had summoned the said man, he appeared at the entrance after you allowed him to enter.
âIâm sorry, am I interrupting?â Heeseung asked innocently, his eyes darting briefly from you to Jake, acknowledging his presence â the thought of you and Jake being alone in a room weighed in his chest since the moment he saw his colleague entering your office, and increased with every heartbeat.
Heeseung couldnât bear the idea of Jake claiming a larger area of their shared battlefield, and his only remaining option was to figure out methods to interfere in Jakeâs progress.
Jake didnât buy Heeseungâs feigned naivety, narrowing his eyes in disbelief without making it noticeable to you. It was a subtle exchange, a fleeting glance that only Heeseung was able to catch as he swallowed hard to suppress the pressing need to spill the truth beneath their actions.
âSeems like my office is the party room today,â you joked lightly, shaking your head. âYou didnât. I just finished with Jake.âÂ
Unaware of the silent tension unfolding between the two men, you draw your attention back to your laptop, quickly logging into your work apps as if the world wasnât burning with unspoken feelings right before you. Yet, the awkward silence persisted, prompting you to glance up at Heeseung again, who seemed to be deep in thought.
He faltered for a second before realizing he was the one in the spotlight, snapping out of torturing thoughts, rapidly regaining his composure.Â
âI, uh⊠I just wanted to remind you that your meeting is in less than an hour,â Heeseungâs voice was steady, but the quickening beat of his heart betrayed his nerves, especially with his brand new makeshift excuse. âI was wondering if you want me to set the room for it. Iâm quite chilling with my work today.â
âI can help!â Jake was quick to interject, almost lifting his hand as if he was a middle schooler, looking at you with gleaming orbs filled with expectation.
Your inquisitive eyes flickered between Jake and Heeseung, your serious facade sharpening as you sensed the shift in the air. It made them both shiver in place, sharing a secret wordless connection.Â
It was almost undeniable that the whole situation was affecting you in an unknown way.
You were aware of your position and fought hard for it â being assertive and resolving conflicts was your greatest work quality. Separating work from personal matters was also a point you vigorously defended and explained to many of your colleagues, especially since being the target of their flirtations was on your list as well.
Despite your efforts to maintain those things rewinding on your mind as a reminder, the way both Heeseung and Jake were acting sounded more than just strange to you â it was intriguing.
You felt an almost unbearable desire to investigate further what was the motive behind their sudden offers for help and the respective compliments that came with it.
At the same time, you wondered if there were layers of the situation you werenât quite seeing correctly, having just one piece of the ongoing puzzle so far. So you decided to let it be for now.
âWhat about you both help each other?â You offered a solution while smiling, indirectly using it as a method to gather more explicit information. âIâm sure you can work well together, right?â You tilted your head with a challenging voice, to which didnât go unnoticed by either of them.
âSure.â Heeseung smiled in agreement, and you straightaway noticed he was masking his real reaction.
âSounds amazing,â Jake, on the other hand, was obvious with his discontent, sounding explicitly unhappy and sarcastic.Â
Either way, you opted to ignore it and move on with your work as soon as they left your office. It was just the morning and you had a lot to catch up with.
And besides your efforts, you failed to catch the palpable tension between Heeseung and Jake.Â
Your following days seemed ordinary enough, until Jake or Heeseung â eventually, both â crossed your path.
They shared a constant odd behavior around you, whether proposing countless solutions to existent and mostly nonexistent problems, demonstrating an exaggerated level of proactivity, or complimenting your appearance, emphasizing details that surely hadnât changed overnight â like the time when Heeseung asked if you had trimmed the ends of your hair, as if he was trying to impress you with his incredible observation skills.
At times, you were astonished by their creative ability to come up with lame excuses just to approach you, many of which were completely inconvenient and more of a distraction than a help.
You couldnât help but wonder what triggered this new shift in their attitudes. What has switched inside their brains to overwork themselves just to make their presence noticeable?
Even your superior questioned about the employees' demeanors under your management, overdoing tasks and spending more time in the company than normal. You struggled to wash it off, because you also had no proper answer to that question.
Besides the chaos they implemented within their constant battle for something you quite couldnât pinpoint precisely, it was somewhat adorable their attempts to get your attention. Also, you wouldnât deny that the small perks they provided â like free coffee and lunch nearly every day â were more than welcome, allowing you to buy new decorations to your house, for instance.
Your first theory was that both Heeseung and Jake were working together to get a raise. But you quickly discharged it when you realized they were fighting against each other, not for each other. So for now, your main theory was they were still trying to win a raise, flattering you personally as a way to get it as if you held the key for their promotion as their manager.
Although excessive, they always respected your personal boundaries, giving your space when you demanded it. They quickly understood your disapproving looks whenever they crossed the professional line as well, avoiding furthermore conflicting situations in the workspace.Â
However, even with their sweet personalities and kind, heartfelt gestures, the constant tension, battelish vibe they carried alongside each other was getting on your nerves to some extent. Especially because you were growing attached to some of their behaviors and constant presence.
While Jake would quietly offer assistance with your workload, subtly proving his reliability and cleverness to found solutions with ease, following you around like a lost puppy, Heeseung would choose a different approach, very likely to his personality, showering you with compliments and attempting to charm you with smaller favors, focusing more on your overall health and in making you a bit flustered.
You got caught in a dilemma.Â
Jake and Heeseung began to build a soft spot in your heart, making it hard to ignore your pulse quickening in certain moments, like when Heeseung bought you some snacks because you skipped your lunch hour, showing his concern within a flatter â âA beautiful woman like you canât go too longer without some proper foodâ. Or how Jakeâs eyes brightened while you explained a new easy method to do spreadsheets, giving you his full attention, hyping you and adding to your idea â âYouâre brilliant! And if we add this other option as well⊠Wow. How do you manage to be amazing like this?â
How Heeseung would rush over the entire floor just because you requested, jokingly, a coffee, even with him being loaded with work â âCanât never let my favorite manager down, yeah?â. Or when Jake's fierce senses quickly noticed your struggle with a presentation and leaned over to offer you support and an alternative suggestion â âYouâre doing great, Y/N. If you donât feel like it, you can try explaining the third part, the one we talked about before.âÂ
And the bolder, touchy ones; when Heeseung wiped the corner of your mouth because it was stained with sauce, when Jake fixed a strand of your hair that was misplaced, when Heeseungâs arms involved your shoulders in a subtle, comforting hug after a meeting with an inconvenient client, when Jake scooched closer while sitting next to you during a workshop-lecture, his lips almost touching your ear as he whispered something about the topic.Â
Other than all of that, you came to notice how Heeseungâs eyes radiated with a brighter glow and how his lips curved into a gentle, gorgeous smile every time you were speaking, as if he was daydreaming. And also how often Jake would turn into a fumbling mess, blushing and biting back a grin every time you complimented him, and eventually just the fleet meeting of your eyes became enough to send him into that flustered and adorable demeanor, your heart faltering some beats with the sight.
You were feeling over appreciated, and it was concerning, mainly because you were enjoying it.Â
Your eyes started to drift briefly, but frequently to their lips when they were the ones talking instead of listening to their words. A knot on your stomach would form as you anticipated their presence in your office every day, sometimes even placing internal bets on who would be the first to knock on your door. And there were times where you found yourself nervously adjusting your hair or smoothing out your clothes before they walked in, hoping they would notice.
You expected your workflow to feel enjoyable not because you liked your job, but because at the end of the day, Heeseung and Jakeâs frequent proximity would ignite a brand new nuance of sentiments inside your chest towards them â an excitement, the usual anticipation, some eagerness.Â
Nonetheless, despite their courteous behavior and the subtle change in the air whenever they were near, there was something tingling, lingering in the back of your mind.
It became increasingly obvious with every interaction that Jake and Heeseung shared an unspoken rivalry, and if you had to guess, you were the prize they were competing for â the idea itself was enough to send shivers down your spine, especially since it left you facing an impossible choice, one you couldn't imagine yourself ever having to make.
Whenever Jake came into your office to discuss work, Heeseung would conveniently show up moments later, knocking on your door with an offer of assistance.
If Heeseung sat with you during lunch, Jake would immediately find a seat at the same table, causing the air to grow thick with tension.
They were constantly interrupting any moment that had the potential to evolve into something deeper, leaving you frustrated, as if you were only getting fleeting glimpses of who they truly were when the other wasnât around.
To think like that â hoping that your interactions with them would develop into something more â wasnât professional. It didnât fit right to fantasize about the possibilities beyond a simple work dynamic, no matter how much the tension made you feel otherwise.
You were a manager, their manager. With a lot of responsibilities; Heeseung and Jake being one of them. Still you were already far intrigued and involved with your feelings in this triangle, and to just forget it and act like nothing was happening slowly became an impossible mission.
âThis isnât right.â You murmured, frowning at the vending machine that decided not to give you your snacks. Your phrase, however, wasn't only about it. âCome onâŠâ You rolled your eyes, impatience swelling in you.
âSometimes you just have to punch it.âÂ
You almost jumped in shock with the sudden presence of your fellow manager and friend, Sunghoon, carrying his usual cup of steaming coffee, wearing his typical full suit and showing you an adorable smile.
You chuckled at his solution, âI donât feel like punching a vending machine today.â
âYou look angry, though.â He quirked an eyebrow at you, casually sipping on his coffee. âIt could help.â
You wetted your lips before answering. âYeah, kinda,â you shrugged. âBut I donât think punching a vending machine would help my angryness at all.â You shot back with a cynical smile.
Sunghoon laughed with you before approaching the machine and analyzing it. âLet me help you then.âÂ
He did two or three taps on the side of it and within seconds it threw out the snacks you had selected before. You glanced in disbelief at him, mouth agape as you tilted your head and grabbed your food.
âWhat are you? A charmer of vending machines?â You asked with amused eyes, smiling bright before ripping open the cookie package, eating one and offering it to your friend.
âDefinitely not,â Sunghoon also curved his lips into a grin, taking one of the cookies and then leaning closer while fauxing a flirty gaze. âBut I would love to charm you into a project of mine.â His eyes were glazed on yours, taking in how bright they shone as the excitement bubbled inside your chest when you heard his proposition. âNot all of you, because I know you already have a lot to do.â He added, offering comfort and understandment. âBut I think your method could help my supervisors and their respectives team leaders to do a better job.â
âAnd by my method you say my incredible way of dealing with people or just the new thing I developed with my incredible, amazing, wonderful supervisors?â You wiggled your eyebrows, teasingly, with a mischievous smile and nudging his shoulder playfully.
Sunghoon rolled his eyes and put on a smirk on his lips as he straightened his posture. âWhatever.â He chuckled. âSend me a text if youâre down for our date,â he said, his tone teasing as he lifted his cup of coffee and an eyebrow, starting to slowly walk backwards toward the elevator.
You widened your eyes, glancing around to see if anyone overheard your conversation, embarrassment washing over you and going straight to your cheeks, especially after the last remark.
You slapped Sunghoonâs chest as you contained a laugh, giving a last feigned disapproving look while shaking your head in disbelief. A quiet snort came out of your throat before you made your way back to your office.
Your relationship with Sunghoon was anything but new. You both entered the company at the same month, and you practically leveled up together â on your last promotion, you became a manager just days before him.
So far, you had shared a solid friendship that extended beyond the office, even if your growing responsibilities had limited the hangouts you used to enjoy between spreadsheets and meetings. Those carefree moments had become rare as the workload piled up, so the opportunity to work together with Sunghoon thrilled you.
Just the thought of the brainstorming sessions filled with laughter and playful jokes, a perfect blend of professionalism and friendship, sparked your excitement at most.
Many assumed that your relationship was more than a simple friendship, and Sunghoon's shameless flirting while using working terms didn't help at all. In fact, he had a boyfriend, and the reason you two constantly flirted was purely for fun and to stir up others' curiosity and laugh about it afterwards.Â
On the other side of the floor, meticulously dodging from your sharpened gaze, Heeseung watched the bold interaction between you and Sunghoon unfolding. He had narrowed eyes and head slightly tilted as he tried to eavesdrop on your conversation. He got himself wondering why were you laughing and smiling so much, with an excessive amount of unnecessary touches and flirty eyes.Â
âWe should unite forces.âÂ
Heeseung nearly jumped or had a heart attack â or both â as Jake appeared out of nowhere beside him, whispering closely in his ear. He looked like a deer that had just been caught doing something wrong, with widened eyes and lips parted.
âFuck off, Jake.â Heeseung dramatically placed a hand on his chest, as though to calm down his racing pulse, eliciting a genuine chuckle from Jake in response. âAnd what do you mean by that, huh?â Heeseung frowned, eyes flicking between Jake and you as you walked away.
âI donât know.â Jake sighed deeply, shoving his hands into the pockets of his slacks while watching you disappear behind your office door, his head angling to the side to keep track of your movements until you were out of sight.
âSo you have an idea, but not a plan?â Heeseung asked while side eyeing Jake, who was now biting his lip, clearly trying to swallow down the bittersweet taste on his tongue.Â
And Heeseung wasnât too different; when he heard people saying jealousy is a disease, he didn't think it would make his heart shrink and ache that much.Â
âPretty much, yeah.â Jake nodded with a pout, starting to walk towards his desk, with Heeseung trailing behind him. âI just donât think Sunghoon is a good match, yâknow?â He remarked, trying to sound casual about it, but his words felt like a bullet going straight to Heeseungâs gut, curving its way back to hit Jakeâs chest.
âYeah,â Heeseung agreed, his tongue poking the inside of his cheek. âHe lacks a lot of things.â He added with a dry, nearly mean tone.
âNot in looks though.â Jake pinpointed, earning another judgmental side eye from Heeseung. âWhat? Heâs good looking.â He said nonchalantly with a shrug. âI have eyes. I can notice when a guy looks good.â
âWhatever you say, nerd,â Heeseung voiced with an unfazed chuckle.
Jake rolled his eyes in annoyance, and even with them glued on the screen in front of him, numbers and words on display for him to analyze, his mind was long gone far away from the office.
âBut listen,â he continued after seconds in silence seeking for the right way to verbalize his thoughts. âDonât you feel that sometimes weâre kinda⊠Pushing her away instead of the other way around?â
Jakeâs question hung in the air for brief seconds as Heeseung tilted his head, carefully contemplating it. Jake watched his colleague's face falter in realization.Â
You seemed mad and somehow frustrated whenever they interrupted you, massaging your temples while closing your eyes, taking deep and long breaths, playing with your lips using your tongue and teeth⊠As if you were trying to contain yourself.
Not to mention that he started to draw disapproving stares from you during meetings or at times when he interfered with your workflow attempting to help. And Jake's side wasnât different either.
âYeah.â Heeseung finally nodded after concluding his chain of thoughts. âNone of this would be an issue if you stepped aside, you know? I could take care of it.â He teased, gazing at Jake with a cocky expression.
âNo way in hell, man.â Jake scoffed with a laugh, but then his facade softened, his feelings for you overwhelming his chest. âI only want what's best for her.â
Heeseung flashed Jake with an understanding glance, blended with seriousness and a hint of affection, as if the new reminder of his real main objective littered his whole world.
You littered his whole world.
And after all, to make you happy was the final goal.
âAgreed.âÂ
While in a brief pause, Jake and Heeseung reflected how deeply involved with their feelings for you they were, an unexpected, yet genuine connection maturing as they did so.
Work had become fun and enjoyable simply because you were there, being an important part of their routine. Your nuance of smiles â the bright ones, the skeptical ones, the awkward ones â, your subtle jokes and lowkey acid humor that eased the atmosphere, your serious and confident decisions, your confused grimaces whenever someone said something absurd, your habit of biting your lip and furrowing your eyebrows while absorbed in concentration.
They drank in every single detail of you, falling more and more in love, as if you were the sun, and they were mere planets gravitating in your orbit, waiting, fighting for your attention, for your decision.
Jake sighed, lowering his eyes while remembering all the moments he made you laugh with his silly and awkward jokes due to his nervousness, stumbling into his own words before your beautiful presence.
Heeseung pursed his lips together, nearly feeling the phantom of the slight bumps of your shoulders when you both sat next to each other, your body leaning just enough to whisper something important in his ear.
âWe both want whatâs the best for herâŠâ Jake muttered under his breath. Heeseung glanced quickly at him, who immediately reciprocated â a silent dialogue being transmitted in their gaze.
Then they both said simultaneously, a shared realization hanging in the air.
âThatâs why you should leave her to me.â
âAnd I am the best for her."
Apparently their alliance would take longer than anticipated.
After everyone settled into their chairs, you took a deep breath and stood at the head of the table, commanding attention. Your gaze swept across the room before you spoke, your voice firm and steady.
âSo, our meeting today is crucial. These clients are incredibly high maintenance, and they chose our company to lead their main projects. I need everyone to be extra focused and serious, no slip-ups,â you emphasized, keeping on drifting your eyes through your colleagues, pausing for effect. âI expect nothing but professionalism.â
Your words hung in the air, and while the room nodded in agreement, both Heeseung and Jake had their minds far from there.
They were seated across from each other, however, both sets of eyes softly and attentively tracked your every move, as if the project was about you and you only.
Jakeâs focus wasnât on the blueprint details, let alone on the company's reputation; it was on the way your hair cascaded over your shoulder as you turned your head slightly, or the confidence you radiated as you spoke, so naturally drawing people in. Your voice was as soft as a cloud, and still precise with your every word.Â
It was hard to remember the last time he had paid that much attention to a meeting, and there he was, mesmerized not by the content, but solely and exclusively by you. His heartbeat raced with every second, almost echoing louder than anything in the room.
Across the table, Heeseung was no different.
His usual composed demeanor during meetings faltered just enough to make his hands sweat nervously. He was sure your makeup looked extra perfectly placed that day. Every time you said something, his gaze flickered to the slight upward curl of your plump, soft colored lips, or how your jaw clenched with seriousness, together with your sharp, incisive eyes and slight frown, adding to your charm. You were shining on your element, controlling the whole room with your assertiveness and, for him personally, attractive demeanor.Â
Both of them were caught in similar states â wondering what it would be like if your eyes were solely on them. Would they light up? Would your lips curve into an adorable smile? Would your head cock to the side as you paid deep attention to them?
The silly battle between Heeseung and Jake only grew stronger as the minutes passed; the previous talk had no purpose at all, besides light oneâs own weight of being misinterpreted, proving their worthiness to you.Â
As Heeseung leaned slightly forward, crossing his hands on the tableâs surface, the shifting in his seat made his presence briefly more evident. Your eyes instantly darted towards his direction, catching his bambi-eyes fixed on you, wide and attentive. An almost instinctive smile crossed your lips after reading his expression that showed a perfect blend of genuine pride and a layer of lovestruck admiration.
For some reason, Heeseung quietly showing you support made your heartbeat steady, filling you with a warm sense of reassurance.
Jake clenched his fists under the table, his competitive side sparkling up after noticing your wordless interaction with his rival, flickering his gaze between the two of you. He pondered how he could stand out, and his whole body was stiff before he leaned back on his chair, relaxing, as he cleverly remembered the times you complained about the lack of sincere reactions or motions during meetings like those.
Again, just the movement was enough to catch your attention, since the rest of the room was completely still, deeply concentrated on your presentation.
As you approached your computer to pass the slide, you flashed Jake a quick recognition glance about his unspokenly intentions as well, smirking smally in gratitude before continuing with your script, feeling your breathing getting a little better, lighter.Â
One thing you absolutely hated about those kinds of meetings was the participantsâ rigid presence, the high level of responsibility tensed your nerves â unnecessarily, in your opinion.
You utterly understood the scenarioâs nature, requiring a certain posture from you that you very much knew how to offer. But nothing stopped you from protesting every once and a while about the tension on your shoulders whenever you had to wear that facade.Â
So you appreciated Heeseung and Jakeâs effort in making your body loosen momentarily, carrying through with your words, and unfortunately oblivious to their real reasons.Â
Of course Heeseungâs eyes registered the subtle exchange between you and Jake, automatically igniting his desire to reclaim your attention, as if your work was just an excuse, a battlefield to their competition.
His jaw clenched and his gaze sharpened when Jake shot a small scornful smirk at him, almost like he was showing off his brand new victory, taunting.
That simple gesture fueled Heeseungâs instinct to jump into action without much thinking, so he blurted out, intending exclusively to demonstrate to you how involved in the topic he was.
"And what about the user experience data? Thatâs going to be key for the next steps, right?"
You paused on your tracks, momentarily thrown off by Heeseungâs sudden, unexpected voice interrupting your thought process. Your eyes faltered in confusion for a brief moment before you opened your mouth to say something that didnât come out right away, because in your mental script, that was the latest part of your presentation.Â
Jake threw a shocked glance at Heeseung after noticing your slightly baffled and hesitant face, then he added, trying to settle down the ambiance to something less chaotic â his attempt failing as much as Heeseungâs, since it sounded like he was over-explaining your tactics into that project.Â
âRight, but letâs not forget how crucial the user feedback is for improving our mechanics.â
Your eyes darted between the two men fighting against each other and then to your client, who had a disapproving grimace.Â
As you took a deep breath to collect your thoughts, you could feel the tension in the air between them and the rest of your colleagues, including your client. The underlying competition became far from obvious at that point, you could practically hear them both thinking âWho would win your attention this time?â, and it was so annoying.
You hollowed your cheeks in order to calm down your frustration and angriness, sipping on your water before concentrating back on your presentation, determined to deliver your ideas without letting their stupidity get in your way.Â
And a single serious glance was enough to shut Heeseung and Jake up for the rest of the meeting.
âClose the door when you leave.â You instructed, gesturing to a colleague that was heading out the meeting room. You focused back on organizing the papers sprawled across the table. âHeeseung and Jake, you two stay.â
Your words filled the space as sharp as a dagger, leaving no room for argumentation â and neither of them would dare to challenge you in this moment, so they sat in silence, a palpable tension hanging in the air.
Half expecting your own anger to diminish and half aiming to toy with their overwhelming emotions, you didn't lift your gaze until you had quietly finished your notes, feeling the atmosphere shift as the door clicked shut. The silence was loud, you could almost hear the rapid beat of their hearts as they anxiously waited for your next move.Â
Finally, you looked up, intercalating eye contact with both men. You wetted your lips before standing, placing your hands firmly on the table and leaning slightly forward, radiating an air of superiority. Your gaze deepened in reprimand, your jaw clenched and your breath was feeling heavier each second.
Jake avoided keeping looking at you for too long, distracting himself with a cup placed on the table instead. The room seemed to shrank around him, his air ways seemed to close little by little and breathing became a hard task. The weight of your piercing stare and your painful silence made him feel small, ashamed, inadequate. His chest tightened with a growing sense of nervousness and self-doubt.
Jake hated being scolded, it triggered a wave of reflections about his abilities and intelligence, intensifying some of his insecurities, and mostly, it amplified his longing for validation that only praises could fulfill.Â
What Jake cherished most about you was that you never reprimanded without eventually offering a compliment, skillfully highlighting a personâs strengths while still putting them in their place; your words healed wounds instead of opening them.
But right now, that reassurance felt impossibly distant, leaving him to accept the weight of his fate resting in your hands.
Heeseung, on the other hand, harbored a hidden secret that was significantly distracting him at that moment. He was lowkey into receiving degradation to some extent, so he shifted uncomfortably on his chair as he watched you look down at him, because there was no way he could allow himself to get hard right at the moment.Â
He swallowed hard, casually placing his trembling hands on his lap in order to try covering up any possible bulge surging on his crotch area, attempting to seem indifferent or just the normal amount of being affected by you.
âI think you both are intelligent enough to realize that your behavior today is inadmissible.â You started to say, voice laced with disappointment, firm. âThis is not a playground. This is a workplace. A serious one.â You paused, straightening your posture before starting to walk slowly towards them. They choose to sit at the end of the table as if they were avoiding your close presence. âAnd I wonât, under any circumstance, accept this happening again in my leadership. Not again.â
As you passed by them, your perfume traveling along within each step, you analyzed how Jake and Heeseung were reacting extremely differently from each other.
Jake looked like a child being scolded by their parents, sinking into the chair with a small pout, his puppy eyes lowered in pure guilt. Whereas Heeseung was agitated, legs bouncing anxiously beneath the table, his fingers fidgeting his rings while his eyes seemed to be in an internal battle between whether to glaze on you or not.
âAm I making myself clear?â you asked, your voice cutting through the silence with authority, your hands now grabbing the back of Heeseungâs chair. He shivered.
Jake nodded quickly, still avoiding your sharp eyes.
Heeseung, however, didnât respond. His chest rose and fell slowly, his breath visibly heavy as he tried to maintain composure. He wanted to act indifferent, to pretend that your words werenât having such an intense effect on him, struggling to halter his mind from drifting far away from that context, but the tension in his body was far too obvious to ignore, especially when you positioned yourself behind him, noticing his shoulders stiffening.
His whole body has heated up.
You arched an eyebrow, leaning your body enough to scan his side profile with your head slightly tilted, your curiosity piquing stronger with the lack of response.
âHeeseung?â you prompted, voice dropping an octave.
For a split second, he hesitated before nodding as well, afraid of his voice coming out as a moan.
âYes, I understand,â he finally said, voice soft, nearly wavering as he did so.
You straightened up again, now walking back to your initial position.
Jake and Heeseung shared a common and painful thought; you held the weight of their fate in your hands, having the power to release them from your management at any moment if that sounded right to you. Given their trail of missteps they had, it felt almost inevitable that your final word would be anything similar to that.Â
The idea alone made their hearts ache in despair.
âI expected better from both of you. And I know you are capable of doing better.â
You casted a last warning stare and Jake fluttered his eyes shut instantly, waiting for the harshful words, the one that would tighten the knot in his stomach. Heeseung clenched his fists, gulping. You noticed both right away.
âBesides, I donât have time to babysit your egos,â you paused again, this time just for an extra drama, because you would never dismiss their incredible skills due to simple and solvable mistakes like that.
Knowing your workers' behaviors, you had faith they would find a way out of their messy situation â and you expected yourself to do as well. Also, you couldnât deny the sinking feeling in your chest of giving up on them, the flashing red lights screaming in your head about how deeply invested you grew into their beings, surrounding you like magnets.
No matter how tangled it appeared, your fondness for them remained. For both of them.
Yet, occupying a higher rank in the workplace meant you had to keep up the appearance of superiority and remind them of their positions, of their responsibilities.Â
âLet alone time for your silly little games.â
Jake's face flushed an even deeper shade as the realization hit him. You were, now, fully aware of their competition.
However, a hint of relief began to wash over him as you wrapped up your speech, signaling that you weren't dismissing them away from your management.
âThatâs all.â
Heeseung, on the other hand, couldnât stop fidgeting.Â
Although his heart raced now comfortably with your unspokenly reassurance about their destinations in the company, it was so fucking hard to concentrate in anything other than how hot you were right at that moment with your dominant stance.
Your sharp words and bossy demeanor talked down on him and all he could think was how desperately he needed you.
He shifted in his seat again, the discomfort in his pants growing with each agonizing second.
âYouâre not kicking us out?â Jake was the one bold enough to voice out a nuance of their river of anxious thoughts, his slightly trembling voice filling the room.
Heeseung glanced briefly at his colleague and then to you, waiting for your answer.
âNo, Iâm not.â
âThank you.â Jake urged, almost desperate as his shoulders loosened visibly.Â
Even with your heart pounding in your chest at the thought of their main concern being only that, you maintained your firm demeanor.
âDonât see it as a favor, â you said.Â
Your gaze was unwavering, challenging them to meet your seriousness. Heeseung swallowed hard, because he felt his dick literally pulsing as you glanced at him; his blushed cheeks intriguing your curiosity once again, since that kind of reaction was unusual from him.
Jake opened his mouth to respond, but the words caught in his throat.
âSorry,â he finally managed, his eyes darting between you and Heeseung, who seemed to be struggling with his own internal conflict; his forehead was pure sweat at that point, and he questioned himself when the room turned into hell.Â
âYouâre good to go,â you concluded, watching as both men relaxed just a bit, the tension easing, but the air remained thick with unspoken feelings.
Your eyes tracked their steps until they reached the door, both sharing a glance before darting their eyes back to you. You offered a little nod of reassurance and they flashed back a small smile before closing the door behind them.
"Oh my god, you're nasty.â Jake whispered a little too loud as soon as they left the room, shooting Heeseung a look of mock mixed with repulse. âDid you really get turned on just because she got mad at us?"
Heeseung smirked, amusement dancing in his eyes. "Why? You didn't?"Â
âNo!â Jake shook his head, acting like Heeseung said the wrongest thing in the world. âThatâs gross. Youâre disgusting.â
âPlease, donât act like you donât run to the bathroom every time she gives you a compliment.â Heeseung rolled his eyes, a cocky grin creeping onto his lips. Jake widened his eyes, stopping in his tracks.
âYouâre seriously saying that?!â Jake exclaimed, incredulous, fixing his glasses on his noseâs bridge.Â
âYouâre always wagging your tail around Y/N, waiting for some praise like a little puppy, Jake,â Heeseung said, still smiling teasingly.
âShut up, Heeseung.â Jake quickly glanced around to check if anyone was eavesdropping, shoving his colleague's shoulder. âYouâre still disgusting, kiss-ass.â
Heeseung chuckled, unfazed. âWhatever.â
And then he headed to the bathroom, because this time, he was the one with some other problems to deal with.Â
The next day felt a bit odd. In every nuance possible.
Jake couldn't shake the weird sensation that you were actively avoiding him, as if his proximity was a reminder of his disappointment. He never wanted you to feel frustrated with his work, let alone with him personally. Yet, there was little he could do to change the situation except offer his support.
So, he made his way to your office, hesitantly pushing the slightly opened door. You were seated at your desk, frowning in concentration as you poured over stacks of paper, your lips pursed in a little pout â a cute habit he cherished heartfully.
A soft knock at the wooden surface was enough to bring your attention to Jake. You barely smiled, your expression was neutral, facing Jake as if he was a regular co-worker. He couldnât help the shiver running all the way down his spine remembering about the times you greeted with a bright grin as your face lit up.Â
He cleared his throat before saying, voice low, close to a whisper; there were layers of hesitation and fear.Â
âDo you need any help, Y/N?âÂ
You blinked a few times and looked down at your papers before you shook your head, denying. âNo, Iâm fine. Thanks.âÂ
Maybe it was the manner Jake was reading the world throughout that very specific day, after the whole scolding situation, after how mad you seemed to genuinely be with him and Heeseung⊠But you sounded way more dry than he expected. Not even his name being voiced out, not even a smile. Just a simple, mere discard.Â
âOhâŠâ He faltered, his puppy eyes casting downward, trailing to the floor as he fidgeted with his fingers. âSo⊠Iâll be at my desk if you need anything.â
âSure. Thank you.â
After Jake closed the door, granting the privacy you needed and valued, he walked back to his desk, unaware of how affected with his visit you were behind the closed door.Â
âWhat happened?â Heeseung was quick to notice his colleagueâs mood after he sat beside him â his pout was ridiculously big.
âI think Y/N hates me,â Jake mumbled, his voice laced with defeat.
âOh, thatâs great. More chances for me,â Heeseung replied, a scornful smirk on his lips as he leaned back, relaxing on his chair.
However, Jake didnât respond to his teasing the way he expected; he let out a deep breath and gave a small shrug, a reaction to which piqued Heeseungâs curiosity further.
Heeseung approached closer, narrowed eyes searching for a hint of humor or anything similar. When he only found a melancholic scowl, he sighed.Â
Was Jake really believing in that? If so, he was damned as well. Not to mention that Jakeâs sad frown was heartbreaking.
âListen,â he began, wetting his lips as he reluctantly placed a comforting hand on Jake's shoulder. âSheâs probably just busy. Remember how important this client is for the company and for her?â Jake nodded, still avoiding Heeseung's gaze. âSo donât worry, she doesnât hate you. Sheâs just focused.â He reassured. âYesterday we kinda⊠crossed the line. But we did it together, right? If she hates you, then she hates me.â
Jake finally lifted his head, meeting an unexpected comfort in Heeseungâs eyes, something rare, considering he was used to Heeseungâs overconfident mannerism â his constant arrogant charm effortlessly got under his skin.
Yet, on that day, and despite Heeseungâs choice of words not being ideal, he had a gentle presence that softened the weight of Jake's feelings.
âYou donât want me winning so easily, do you?â Heeseung nudged Jake's side with playful familiarity, proving that his teasing nature hadnât entirely vanished. Jake squirmed, a small smile breaking through his previous sorrowness.
âFuck off.â
And how odd it was finding friendship with someone who had once been your rival?
Jake and Heeseung's camaraderie has bloomed in unexpected ways ever since. They began to explore new parts of their â now â friendship, discovering some sharing interests and even trading work tips, constantly being seen lunching together or just laughing with each other.
Jake now would chuckle at Heeseung's silly jokes, and Heeseung came to appreciate Jake's instincts for insights, something that often surprised him.
You were still the center of their conversations, but instead of competing to prove themselves worthy of you, they chose a different route, one where admiring you from a distance became their shared priority.
âDid you see how she looked today?â Jake asked once, his voice soft and almost awestruck. âMy god, my heart actually hurts,â he dramatically placed one hand on his chest, closing his eyes, feigning the aching feeling.
Heeseung nodded with a small smile, leaning back in his chair. âI know, right? And that smile?â He sighed theatrically, also clutching his chest. âI swear, itâs dangerous.â
Jake chuckled, shaking his head. âSheâs gonna be the death of us.â
Heeseung glanced at him, smirking. âWorth it.â
âDefinitely worth it,â Jake agreed with a dreamy sigh.
Sadly, you missed out this big chapter of their lives, stuck with loads of paperwork that no one else could do, besides you.Â
But, ultimately, it was your own fault, as you chose to ignore them, believing it was the most sensible way to handle your feelings.
After the day of the reprimand, instead of carrying on with your usual routine, you felt a heavy weight in your chest. You were upset about the scold and how they seemed downcast, almost disappointed in themselves after hearing your words.
Unlike other times when you had to call out others to get them back on track, this time you couldnât shake the feeling that you had done something wrong, even if your intentions were justified.
You struggled to find the right place to be, overworking yourself as an excuse to spend some time alone, going over and over your thoughts in order to find somewhere to be, and with every second you just found yourself missing them more and more.
Heeseungâs playful teasing, always with an undertone of flirtation. Jakeâs natural ease in helping you solve problems. The brief touches during Heeseungâs coffee runs, when your skin would brush against his just so. Jakeâs clumsiness, which often led to scattered papers and the soft, accidental graze of fingers as you both reached down to pick them up.
Not to add the brand new fact that everything resembled them. The mug on your desk, your coffees, the knocks on your door â you eagerly expected to be them â, even when going home and seeing their parking spot empty.
Neither Heeseung nor Jake had openly discussed their feelings with you, but their recent behavior and your last encounter only served to reinforce your theory.
They both liked you.
Ironically, you felt the same way about both of them and so far, had no intention of choosing one over the other â that being your primary reason for your reclusion, as it became clear that they wouldnât easily get along, so distancing yourself seemed like the best way to suppress your feelings for them.
Your internal conflict wasnât about picking Heeseung or Jake, but between choosing Heeseung and Jake or none.Â
Still, this choice also depended on their openness to share, and their constant friction wasnât exactly helpful.
When you started to catch small glimpses of Heeseung and Jake wandering around your office floor, talking with each other with an odd enthusiasm and bright smiles, it piqued your curiosity as much as your mind relaxed, because those single actions seemed as a possible way out, as though it built a softened spot to your offer.Â
At the end of two intense weeks, you finally felt like breathing again. And apparently your mind seemed to be in the right place. So after finishing the last part from your project, you called Jake and Heeseung into your office, feeling a mix of apprehension and relief as you waited.Â
Your legs bounced impatiently, counting the agonizing seconds. In the back of your mind, you had carefully architected the words you wanted to say, such as how much you missed them, how happy you were to work with them again, and maybe even a question or two about their random, unexpected friendship.
You hoped they had sorted things out to some extent, because during your time alone, you yourself had been reflecting on your own feelings and was sure about your decision.
The knock on the door startled you, snapping you back into reality. Your heartbeats raced as you allowed their entrance and the door clicked.Â
You took a moment to study the way they exchanged curious glances before focusing on you. They seemed to be the same, handsome as ever, Jake with his usual flustered cheeks and uneven positioned glasses and Heeseung with his gentle, flirty smile.
âHi,â you greeted, pointing to the chairs in front of your desk. They sat.
âHi,â Jake answered, mimicking your soft tone.
âHello,â Heeseung, on the other hand, said confidently, relaxed. âLong time no see, huh?âÂ
You smiled shyly, after all it was your decision not to be with them for those busy days.Â
âYeah⊠And I think I owe you an apology,â you began without hesitation, your voice steady, yet, layered with comfort and genuine happiness for seeing them after what felt like ages. âI might have gone too harsh on you two the other day.âÂ
You were referring to the day you scolded them, the same day Heeseung left your room with a strange behavior, to say the least, if not interesting, and Jake with his tail between his legs. But internally, you also felt sorry for avidly avoiding them.Â
âNo, itâs fine,â Heeseung brushed it off with a casual wave of his hand, his characteristic smirk on the corner of his lips brightening the whole room. âWe deserved it.â He admitted with a tender tone, then he looked at Jake. âBesides, weâre good now, right, Jakey?â
âOh, are we?â You asked, crossing your arms, a hint of playful skepticism and shock in your tone as you leaned on your chair, eyes flickering in between the two men.
âYeah, we definitely are,â Jake replied, his sincere smile making it clear that he meant it.
You couldnât help but also smile at their interaction, the familiar warmth returning to the atmosphere, replacing the tense, weightened previous one.Â
âThank you for figuring it out.â Your voice was sweet as honey as you leaned forward over the desk, causing Heeseung and Jake to almost melt at how endearing you sounded. âIâve been drowning with work lately. Couldnât reach out to you sooner.â You gave your excuse and they both gave you an understanding nod, to which ached your heart a little. They seemed so genuine. âBut I missed you, if Iâm being honest. I really lovâ like having you in my team. Having you by my side.â
If your sudden call wasnât strange enough, that was strange.
Not only did you stumble over your words, but you also showed embarrassment, with your cheeks turning a subtle shade of red and your eyes faltering, almost like you were confessing to a crush.Â
And honestly? To Heeseung and Jake, it felt like a confession.
At least, their reaction was as if they had just heard a confession, because not even in their wildest dreams could they have imagined you admitting that you missed them, let alone hearing you saying the words âhaving you by my sideâ all together.Â
Heeseungâs heart was racing, his brain doing a 360 enough to leave him dizzy, his eyes slightly widened and he shifted on his seat, straightening his posture.
Jakeâs hands were sweating since you called, but now they also trembled. An electrifying wave filled his chest, making the simple act of breathing feel difficult.Â
âAnd again, Iâm sorry if I was too hard on you both. And I really am glad youâre getting along, as well,â you rushed to add before either of them could respond, though the way they were looking at you made your heart race. It was clear they had noticed your nervous self. âThough... this does make things a bit more complicated. Or maybe not.â You mumbled to yourself when your eyes parted ways from them, furrowing your brow as you tilted your head slightly.
In the past few days, you had developed the habit of talking to yourself to sort something out through the chaotic thoughts and tangled feelings spinning in your mind â Jake and Heeseung being in each of them, without a doubt. But this time you werenât alone.Â
When you saw Heeseung narrowing his eyes with mouth slightly agape and Jake glancing at you with curiosity as the corner of his lips turned upwards, you froze.
Then they exchanged a brief, quiet glance before looking back at you.
âWhat do you mean by that?â Heeseung was the first one to ask, leaning forward just enough to express how interested he was in your slip-up. His pulse raced with the thoughts that flowed through his head.
âYeah, what makes what complicated?â Jake added to the question, arching an eyebrow, stepping in the same field as Heeseung.
You blinked, their expectant stares making you want to shrink into your chair.Â
Your office window was open and let in a cold, long breeze that indicated the weather was about to change. You shivered, however, you couldnât pinpoint if it was due to the air brushing your exposed skin or because of your current situation.
âOh, um,â you stammered, running a hand through your hair nervously â a habit Jake and Heeseung were pretty aware of. âI didnât mean to say that! Iâ I was gonna say itâs good to know youâre⊠closer now.â You squinted, struggling a lot to find a way out for yourself. âIt makes things easier and more interesting, actually, I guess,â you let out an awkward chuckle, biting your lower lip as you quickly grabbed your bottle of water and took a long sip, avidly avoiding their eyes.Â
Jakeâs smile widened, his eyes twinkling with a newfound spark of emotions. âEasier and interesting, huh?â
âYeah!â You nodded immediately. âEasier for our dynamic. And interesting⊠Because itâs us three, working together, everybody getting along and stuffâŠâ You explained, with an exaggerated amount of gestures. âIf Iâm being honest, I had some things to figure out as well.â You confessed for some random reason you werenât able to identify right away.
After your hard work of days going through the same page, you were losing your composure, you were losing your inner battle, and mainly, you were losing yourself amidst your feelings.
âLike what?â Jake questioned again, his voice soft, sweet as his smile.
Heeseung, on the other hand, was too flabbergasted with the scenario developing in front of him to think straight, so he just watched and prayed for the best outcome, engraving in his mind your every reaction.
You analyzed the two pairs of eyes shooting you the tendernest look, dripping in affection, filled with what you dared to call love. They showed comfort blended with care and a layer of curiosity, afterall, it has to do directly with them and they had a mild good feeling about it.
So you sighed, accepting not your defeat, but your vulnerable state.Â
âI felt like I was in the middle of a storm whenever we were in the same room,â you muttered, still maintaining discretion over the topic. âIt was frustrating, and I had to figure out why I felt like this.â
âOh, you still are right in the middle, Y/N.â Heeseung this time rushed to confess and you couldnât hold back your slightly shocked expression.Â
âBut I think the storm isnât happening anymore.â Jake added with a gentle smile, fixing his glasses on his face and placing his hand on the table, your eyes briefly flickering to catch a look of his slender fingers. You swallowed hard.Â
âWhy were you frustrated, though?â Heeseung asked, cocking his head to the side.
To say he was agitated was an euphemism; he found himself having trouble breathing because not only did you wear the prettiest and hottest clothing that day â a mildly tight dress shirt that emphasized the curves of your boobs â, but the whole situation was out of this word.Â
Jake wasnât different, expecting your reply with his heart aching in despair. He needed to know about what was happening, otherwise he was going to collapse overthinking.
A strong part of either Heeseung and Jake was struggling to maintain the focus in any other possibility, especially because you didnât demonstrate you liked them back so far, since your natural demeanor to your colleagues was the same â bossy but playful, always reiterating through actions and decisions your superior position over them during work.
However, you seemed to be extra nervous, your face had a faint fluster and you didnât sound like a manager at all, it was near to a friend type of conversation. It ignited the spark of hope inside their chest.
Once again, without wording it out, they shared a connection.Â
As you were about to speak, you felt the fabric of your blouse loosen across your chest, and before you could react, Heeseung and Jakeâs eyes instinctively snapped to the same spot, widening.
In sync, you glanced down and realized what had happened. One of your shirt's buttons had popped, revealing a glimpse of your lace bra.Â
Your cheeks warmed immediately, a wave of embarrassment washed over you as you damned yourself for choosing such a tight outfit that day, clumsily looking around to find anything that could help cover it.
âLet me justââ Heeseung muttered awkwardly, taking off his jacket and draping it over you in one smooth motion, his fingers lightly brushing your covered shoulders.
Jake's eyes followed his friendâs movements and decided to help as well, as he said âYou look good still, donât worry,â with a small smile, trying to ease the situation and ignoring how he, himself, got affected with just a glimpse of your body.
This is wrong, Jake chanted to himself, trying to shake the thoughts away.
âIâm sorry,â you mumbled, gripping Heeseungâs jacket tightly around you, your face still flushed. âAnd thanks.â You nodded toward him in gratitude.
Heeseung caught Jake's flustered expression out of the corner of his eye and couldn't resist shooting him a playful glance. Then, leaning closer to you, he whispered near your ear, âMaybe the button couldnât handle how stunning you look today.â
His hands lingered on your shoulders for just a moment before he walked back to his previous spot, a mischievous smirk playing on his lips.Â
You fought back the urge of literally clenching around nothing due to his touch, his low voice and his warmth surrounding you.
âRight,â you chuckled softly, rolling your eyes to lighten the mood, though your heart raced rapidly. âAnyway, I just wanted to say Iâm sorry about that day, and... Iâm really happy that weâre figuring it out.â
The word âweâ hung in the air like a delicate sound, and you felt the tension dissipate as a silence enveloped the room, being replaced for another type of weight. Something more affectual, more right.
Heeseung and Jake exchanged a quick, knowing glance before standing up simultaneously, their movements almost in sync.
âIâm glad too,â Heeseung said, his voice a bit softer, offering a small, genuine smile as he adjusted his dress shirt, now without his jacket.
Jake stepped closer to you, meeting your gaze for a second longer than usual before adding, âAnd just so you know... we missed you too.â His voice was sincere, his eyes filled with something deeper than just friendship.
The confirmation you needed.
And with that, they both left your office, leaving you alone with your thoughts, the lingering warmth of Heeseung's jacket around your shoulders and Jakeâs sweet, meaningful words.
The same storm happening inside your mind seemed to mirror the one unfolding outside, rain cascading down in heavy sheets in front of you as you watched from afar. The sound of water splashing against the pavement might have been poetic in another circumstance.
âHey.â
The soft voice startled you from your thoughts, and you spun around on your heels to see Heeseung approaching, a curious yet gentle smile on his face. His presence felt warm amidst the cold drizzle sprinkling through the wind on you.
âOh, Heeseung!â You greeted, trying to match his energy with a bright smile, though your mind quickly jumped to why he was there. âYour jacketâ Right.â You began slipping it off your shoulders, ready to return it to him.
But Heeseung quickly reached out, stopping your movement and pulling the jacket back over you. âNo, noâ Donât worry about it,â he interrupted smoothly, his hand lingering for a second longer on the fabric as he gave you a reassuring look. Then his expression shifted, brows furrowing slightly in confusion. âBut, uh, what are you doing out here?â
âOh,â you glanced back out at the rain, pulling the jacket a little tighter around yourself, âIâm just waiting for the rain to ease up a bit so I can call an Uber.â
Heeseung frowned deeply, his gaze flicking toward the street and back to you. âWait, donât you have a car?â
You sighed, shaking your head slightly. âI do, or I did until this morning when it decided to break down.â
âAh,â he nodded, processing your words before falling quiet for a moment. He shifted on his feet, as if trying to decide his next move, as if a strong battle was happening between his brain and heart. The rain wasnât easing at all, and something sparkled in him â a protective instinct, perhaps. Or maybe a justification to keep you closer.
Heeseung cleared his throat. âI could take you home,â he suggested casually, though he felt a small rush of nerves rise. He wasnât sure if he was overstepping. âHow does that sound?â
You smiled at him, grateful for the offer but quick to shake your head.
âI wouldnât want to put you through that. You live way too far from my place,â you chuckled softly, nearly teasing. âBesides, Iâm already stealing your jacket. I canât steal your time, too.â
Heeseungâs lips curved into a small grin, but there was something deeper behind his eyes as he shrugged.
âItâs really nothing,â he said softly, his voice calm and sincere. âThe jacket and the time â it doesnât matter. Iâve got all the time in the world for you, Y/N.â He stepped just a little closer, the warmth of his presence cutting through the coldness of the rain. âAnd, you know⊠the rain doesnât seem to be stopping anytime soon.â
You looked back at him, feeling a flutter in your chest at his words. The idea of being in a closed space with him for too long seemed wrong. The feeling of being his superior, being in a higher position in a company you both worked, stirred your conflict.
However, you had already clocked out. It was not about working anymore.
It was about your fear of losing your control when being in a space where there were no rules preventing you from kissing his oh, so tempting lips.Â
Heeseung seemed to be in the middle of a fight as well, and it somehow helped you in your decision, as you smiled kindly, mimicking his same expression â soft, lovingly.Â
âOkay.â
The drive was smooth, calm and with some words being exchanged on the way; you instructed the directions every once and a while, and Heeseung glanced at you within the excuse to listen to them correctly, but the real reason was to capture the image of you being so close.
As Heeseung pulled into the underground parking lot of your apartment building, the rain still pounded on the outside ground, seeming no close from ending.
You both sat for a moment, the quiet hum of the car serving as a background for the intriguing silence, as well as the sound of the relentless storm.Â
Heeseung looked over at you, a soft smile tugging at the corners of his lips as you waited for your courage to build up completely with the thought that crossed your mind in a flicker of seconds.Â
âSafe and sound.â His voice was sweet and low, a perfect blend to fuel your core into responding immediately, your throat feeling dry, your body temperature increasing.Â
You chuckled lightly. âYeah.â
Your eyes searched for his and invisible strings connected them for what felt like hours, your skin tingling, aching to touch him in any possible way, just a taste, just a crumb of him.Â
âThank you,â you whispered, noticing that Heeseungâs gleaming orbs followed the motion of your lips before coming back to your eyes, then it seemed to trace your features, taking in sweetly, tenderly.Â
Heeseung was so fucking in love.Â
You had your hair messy due to the humidity frizz, your makeup was a little smeared and your face showed a mix of tiredness and something he read as hesitation. Still, you were absolutely stunning.
He gulped down nothing, his eyelids slowly blinking as he engraved your perfect features.Â
Unexpectedly or not, you were no different. You really appreciated every bit of Heeseungâs traits, how he would be smiling with the right amount of affection and flirtiness, his touches always tender and respectful, his words aiming and hitting right into your heart.
Heeseung was gentle as a lullaby, soothing and embracing. He was warm, comforting.Â
âDo you want to come up and wait it out? No point in driving back through this rain.â You asked, voice barely above a whisper.Â
A faint shocking expression washed over Heeseungâs face before he relaxed.Â
âYou sure? I donât wanna bother you.â
You were quick to deny it with a head shake. âYouâd never. Besides, I owe you a proper thank you for the jacket and the ride.â
There was some tension in the air as you both took the elevator quietly and walked towards your apartment. A different kind, almost tempting of tension. The same one that appeared when Heeseung and Jake stood in the same room as you after all of you sorted out things a bit.
It triggered your eagerness, fueled your desire, taunted your urge to kiss Heeseung and remove his clothes if he let you do it.
You mastered the art of detaching work from home and vice versa, and for that reason you hesitated before inviting Heeseung over, because you were aware your apartment was your safe space to feel everything you suppressed during the day.
With Heeseungâs scent enveloping you, the phantom of his touch lingering on your skin and the memories of his eyes lighting up when he saw you after so long, you feared to surrender to your deep, intense desires and screw up what just got resolved.Â
You fought to keep that flame contained, reminding yourself not to seem desperate or to scare Heeseung out. The two weeks being apart didnât help at all, each day had stretched on, filled with an aching longing for some closeness, not only with Heeseung but with Jake too.
Both men stirred something deep within you, igniting feelings of passion and affection that were dangerously intoxicating. And right at that moment, you shared an intimate setting with one of them.
You felt your heart race as you caught glimpses of Heeseung's shy smirk and those captivating eyes that always made you melt, never leaving yours, reading you like his favorite book.
As you opened the door, Heeseung excused himself while entering your living room, following your trail.
âDo you accept anything? Water? A drink, maybe?â You asked politely.
âNo, Iâm fine. Thanks.â
âAlright,â you smiled. âYou can sit on the sofa, donât be shy.â You said playfully before heading to the kitchen to get yourself something and to avoid being too close, your last view being Heeseung with flustered cheeks sitting on your couch.
Heeseung was a mess, and thanked you internally when you left him alone so he could breathe properly. He fluttered his eyes close, a movie of his day happening on the big screen of his mind, reminding him that you showed awareness of his situation with Jake, and somehow, it felt like you were open to trying something with both of them.
God, he genuinely hoped that was the case. Otherwise, he would be in deep trouble, his expectations shattered into fragments, and he would have to pick up the pieces alone â without Jake, with whom he had constructed such a personal and intense friendship during the recent days.
The possibility of you choosing Jake over him overtook a big place in his mind.
He had enough confidence in a confrontation, but the moment he recognized Jake's unique personality, he began to question whether the best choice for you was, in fact, Jake.
He still wanted you â desperately â, but nothing stopped him from believing that you deserved the very best. You had always deserved the best.
And how disgusted would you be to know that he got aroused just thinking about being in your apartment, close to your intimacy? Or that your fierce, assertive side made him go hard? Disgusting.
Ironically, the thought of you feeling repulsed by him only fueled his desire to have you in ways that went beyond a mere working friendship. He was acting like a pervert.Â
He worked hard to get into your heart, and when you finally let him in, he was lost, he didnât know what to do. It was pure chaos.
And now, he found himself getting turned on, caught in the mix of emotions and desires he couldnât contain anymore.Â
âI should get going,â he whispered to himself, unaware that you had returned from the kitchen and were watching him from behind.
âShould you?â
He nearly jumped in his seat at your bold, sudden question, turning his head just enough to catch a look of you now without his jacket, yet, with the same shirt. The exact same shirt that had the fucking button popped open and gave him a sneak peek of your cleavage and part of your boobs.
There was a smile dancing on the corner of your lips, an feigned air of innocence accompanying your features, yet you still seemed devilish.Â
âItâs still raining, Heeseung,â you pointed out the obvious, using it as an excuse to keep him there. âStay for a while. Iâm sure we can entertain each other, yeah?â
Heeseung was speechless.Â
He had a knot on his throat preventing words from coming out of his mouth, and he panicked when noticed your expression faltering before his silence.
You blinked out of your sudden courageous trance, your whole body shifting into something more restrained as you broke eye contact.Â
âI mean, we can order something to eat andââ
âNo,â he urged to interrupt you, leaving his briefcase on your couch as he stood up. His steps were light, but confident as he reached closer. âIâm sure we can enjoy each otherâs presence for a little longer.â
The moment those words hung in the air, something snapped within you as if it was everything you needed to get your control back. Not the workplace, manager type of control, but control over him.
You closed the distance in an instant, capturing his lips with yours eagerly. Heeseung reacted instinctively, returning the kiss with equal desperation and desire, his hands roaming across your body as if trying to memorize every inch of you, squeezing your ass, your thighs, your waist, anything that put him closer to you.
The kiss deepened in seconds, a wild mix of urgency and need lingering on your tongues as they danced together, desperate for more.
What you had longed for just a few weeks, Heeseung had yearned for months.
He tasted as lustful as he seemed to be, touching the right places, pulling you near as he pressed you against him intensely. Your hands gripped on his shoulders trying to balance yourself as he guided you both towards a wall, your back hitting it softly although the shared touch was intense.
As your bodies moved in sync, you could feel the hardness of his dick pressing against you, especially when he started to involuntarily grind on you. A mischievous smirk tugged on the corner of your lips as you parted the heated kiss, searching for his beautiful eyes â now filled with craving.
âOh, look at you,â you cooed, trailing down your hands just enough to graze his crotch area. âAlready like this?â You gave it a small squeeze, eliciting a moan from him. âAnd I havenât even done anything yet, huh?â
There was a clear amusement in your whole expression as you glazed your eyes with Heeseungâs deepened ones. His breath hitched at your words, a mix of embarrassment and excitement flooding his cheeks, sending a pulse straight to his cock. Your acknowledgment of his premature and humiliating state of arousal and how your eyes sparkled with mischief sent a thrill wave through him.
âYou have no idea what youâre doing to me,â he admitted, his voice low and broken, desire dripping off it as he held you tightly and tried to kiss you again.Â
You swerve to the side, teasingly. âMaybe I do,â you replied, your voice sultry as you leaned in closer, brushing your lips on his, tempting a kiss that you didnât let happen.
Your hands maintained a mild friction against his hardness, giving just enough stimulation to drive him wild. You watched with delight as his hooded eyes struggled to stay open, his mouth slightly agape, letting out the prettiest sounds just for you.
Heeseung was already falling apart, and the mere thought of it excited you even more.
You chuckled softly before pressing a playful kiss to his cheek. âWhat should I do with you, hmm?â you murmured, kissing the other cheek. âSo needy, arenât you?â
His breathing quickened, and the flush on his cheeks deepened. âPleaseâŠâ he begged, desperation lacing his tone as he once again tried to capture your lips. He wanted you so badly he was becoming impatient.Â
You arched an eyebrow and smirked, your eyes catching every single reaction of him.
âPlease what? Youâll have to be more specific than that, Hee.â You feigned innocent eyes, batting your eyelashes as if you weren't touching his clothed cock, his hips continuing to press forward searching for more.Â
You placed another kiss, this time, on the corner of his lips, taunting.Â
âKiss me, please.â Heeseung whispered, and as his mouth tracked yours, you let him in with his attempt, his tongue immediately finding its pleasure in yours.
Heeseung moaned with how good you tasted, growing addicted within every second; he could spend hours kissing you, he came to realize. Nonetheless, his painful and neglected length was screaming for some more attention, especially because the fabric of his boxers and pants prevented a bolder, bare touch, and making out with you would do nothing except make it hurt more.
âWhereâs your bedroom?â He questioned not really giving you space to answer, his mouth busy sucking your lower lip and tongue.
You let go of his erection to start to remove his dress shirt as you mumbled the direction to him before he grabbed you by your thighs, lifting your body with an unexpected ease as he led you two towards the said room. The opened door made it easier for Heeseung to enter, placing you on the soft mattress of your bed, hovering over your heated body, craving for more.
âYouâre so hot,â he whispered against the flesh of your neck and then started to nibble the area, sucking and kissing as if his life depended on it. His hands found their way everywhere, all of his movements expressed how desperate he was for you.
âSo are you,â you were able to respond, catching a glimpse of his tanned torso.
Heeseung had a tattoo that covered part of his left rib and you took a mental note to give it the due attention later.
Your fingers threaded through his hair, grabbing it with a mild strength, enough to guide him, so he could put his lips where you wanted. Heeseung let you control, going down to your exposed cleavage and distracting you as he started to unbutton your shirt so he had your laced bra holding your breasts in full display.
âSo fucking beautiful,â he marveled in a whisper as he straightened his posture enough to drink from the view â you seemed so dreamy under him with your heavy breathing, swollen kiss parted with a hint of a smile and eyes filled with lust.Â
It took seconds for Heeseung to return to his mission to dive into you after removing your bra with your assistance. His mouth toyed with each of your nipples, warm tongue making wonders as you squirmed a little, making no effort to hold back your sounds as you moaned, your panties long gone ruined with your wetness.
There was a feeling haunting the corners of Heeseungâs mind that defocused him a fraction from his actions, though. A fear of losing this proximity, losing the possibility of kissing you, losing his chances, losing you.
The more his tongue danced on your smooth skin, the more it felt bittersweet.
He figured his chances hovered around 50%, from what he had interpreted your intentions â maybe you would test what he had to give, comparing to Jake afterwards, then deciding on one of them?
The idea of sharing you never crossed his mind, not from jealousy; a little, sure, but it wasnât just that. Sharing felt unrealistic, because he couldnât see you making such a bold choice.
You sensed his sudden hesitation, how his fingers paused momentarily before resuming their exploration of your body, how his breath was irregular and not from arousal, but from something deeper, as if an inner conflict held him back.
âI donât know whatâs going through your mind right now, but Iâm pretty sure you donât need to worry about it,â you murmured softly, your voice cutting through the haze in his head and bringing him back to you.
He blinked, his eyes searched for yours and found tranquility on it, even behind the intensity of the momentum. You offered a delicate and unique space that allowed him to be free with himself, that being one of the reasons he started to have his feelings for you.Â
You had an approachable aura, an adorable soothing voice and a way to play with words that anyone felt easy to open up with you.
âWhat if Iâm thinking aboutâ" He started, his voice small, but the fear of ruining the mood, of disappointing you, stopped him quickly. He shook his head, leaning in closer. âForget it.â
âYouâre safe here, Heeseung,â you said, your hand caressing his face with a tenderness that calmed him instantly. A reassuring smile appeared on your lips and the atmosphere shifted into something serene amidst its intensity. âNo judgments. Iâm not going anywhere.â
His lips pressed against the palm of your hand, and he placed his own over it, slowly moving it away from his cheek as he began trailing kisses up your arm, deliberate, heated kisses from your wrist to your shoulder, from your neck to your jaw, until it finally met your mouth.
It was slow, purposeful, filled with a restrained intensity that sent a shiver through your body and left you breathless. Heeseung wanted to show just a quarter of how much he needed you, afraid of overwhelming you with how his love for you felt, but equally terrified of losing you mid-battlefield.
In the midst of chaos, you became the only compass that guided him back home. You were the soul that gave meaning to everything, the calm after a relentless storm, the strength that kept him sane. Each passing day, he yearned for your presence, as if the mere thought of having you near made the world brighter â and it did.Â
Your smile healed wounds he didnât even know he had. You were always there for him, helping, listening, playing along with his jokes.
It was absurd, painful, and intense, and he was ridiculously in love with that feeling, and most of all, he was deeply in love with you.
âI want you so badly,â he whispered in a confessing tone when the kiss finally broke. âI want you every day, every second.â He kissed you again, his hands sneaking into your hair to grip your nape, pulling you closer. It felt like walking in quicksand. âIt hurts to think I might lose you.â
In different circumstances, you would interpret that statement as a common fear of a lover regarding their passion. However, the context was more intricate, more delicate; there was a third person â Jake â who would also receive a similar treatment, and it struck you deep in your chest to recognize that Heeseungâs fear of being replaced felt constant and was becoming more vivid in that moment, as he realized he was having a piece of you.
Taking a deep breath, you met his hesitant gaze, your heart racing as you tried to articulate your thoughts.
âHeeseung,â you began softly, your voice barely above a whisper. His bambi eyes sparkled with a mix of fear and affection. âYou donât have to worry about this now, ok?â You reassured once again, his chest loosening the tight feeling, because you would always have that effect on him. âI have things figured out. Kind of.â You giggled timidly and Heeseung just realized he had a new favorite sound.
Your fingers gently tangled in his hair, your body warmth reminding you just how eager you were, the phantom of his mouth working on your body serving as a lascivious reminiscence.
âBut let me have you tonight first, please?â
Heeseungâs breath hitched, reading your deep, lustful eyes.Â
How could he refuse such a sweet plea?
âYes,â he breathed, urgency coloring his voice, caring little for how desperate he sounded â because he was. âYes, please.â
Almost like a snap of fingers, the atmosphere around you ignited once more, your room seeming to close in around the two of you as his eyes darkened with desire. Heeseung sounded so deliciously desperate that your only response was to gently turn him until his back hit the bed, positioning yourself above him.
Your hands caressed the bare flesh of his chest, fingertips grazing softly on his nipples and ribs, where they stopped for a while. Heeseung winced with the amazing feeling of you admiring him, your light-feather touch enough to send a wave of arousal straight to his dick.
âYou are one of the most gorgeous men I have ever seen, Heeseung,â it was your time to marvel him, smiling lovingly as you used the tip of your nail to draw along his dragon tattoo. âAnd Iâm so fucking lucky to have you like this right now.â
Your voice was filled with sultriness, velvety as ever as you lowered yourself to press your lips on his low stomach, eyes never breaking contact. Heeseung shivered once more under your intense gaze, watching you sneak one your hands on his pantsâ waistband, unbuttoning it just to remove it completely and toss it somewhere else on your roomâs floor.Â
You stood up just to remove your pants as well, keeping on your laced panties, savoring the view of Heeseungâs chest rising and falling deeply, eyes dripping honey and desire as he also devoured your body. Â
âYou know, I have a feeling that you like somethingâŠâ You started to say with a thoughtful voice as you leaned closer, placing yourself back on top of him.
âYou?âÂ
You let out a genuine chuckle, shaking your head. Heeseung had a small smile on his lips and looked at you with curiosity.Â
âNo,â you answered, voice smooth as your hand trailed slowly up and down on his chest. âI think you like being⊠put in your place,â you smirked, watching his expression shifting into a mild shocking, then darkening at your words as his breath caught in his throat. âI noticed how you reacted when I was scolding you and JakeâŠâ You kept on talking, now playing with the waistband of his boxers, teasingly; his prominent Adamâs apple bobbed as he gulped nervously. âGetting hard just because I was mad, huh?âÂ
Heeseung had blushed cheeks while failing to keep on looking at you, running away from your sly gaze, before he muttered, embarrassed, âI donât know what you are talking aboââ
âOh, you do know,â you purred, your voice lowering an octave. âDonât act all shy now, Lee Heeseung,â you forced your tone to sound close to a reprimand, flashing a sharp look at him as you freed his throbbing dick from his last clothing piece.Â
Heeseung groaned quietly in between his heavy breath as you admired his lengthâs flushed appearance, how hard and wet with precum it was, dripping for you. Your mouth watered and your hands itched, aching to give that man some more relief.
âJust give me the green signal and Iâll make you feel so good, Hee,â you voiced out as you glazed your eyes on his, your own body reacting to his state of desperation sending pulsing waves straight to your cunt.
His legs squirmed under you as you lowered your face, closing the distance between his cock and your mouth. Your breath brushed against its skin and Heeseung winced. âPleaseâŠâ He whispered, nodding. âItâs hurting.â
You smirked. âThere you goâŠâ And tilted your head slightly, slowly grabbing his hardness with one hand.
Just the touch of your soft and warm hand enveloping his shaft had him closing his eyes and biting his lip, holding back an embarrassing moan that threatened to escape.
âYouâre so needy,â you cooed teasingly with a quirked eyebrow, eyeing Heeseung with a faux disdain as he opened his eyelids just to catch a glimpse of it, his dick twitching under your fingers.Â
âYes, please,â his hips buckled forward as he whimpered, searching for more. âI am needy, please, keep touching me, Y/Nââ
âYeah?â A devilish smile tugged on the corner of your lips as you started stroking faster. âA little pathetic, Heeseung. Donât you think so? All of this just for some handjobâŠâ You clicked your tongue without halting your movements, neither letting your grin disappear. âLucky to you, youâre just how I like it.â
Heeseung's breath hitched at your words, his chest heaving as he tried to keep himself grounded, but the teasing was overwhelmingly delicious. The way you handled him, every squeeze of your hand making him feel both humiliated and completely at your mercy. His mind fogged with pleasure, and it became harder to think, to hold back, to stay composed, his own body and voice betraying his attempts of holding back.Â
When you started to give his tip more attention by cupping your hand on it and your tongue flattering against it, as if you taunted a full blowjob, he found himself near to the edge already.
Not only was he living his wettest dream, but your expertise on knowing exactly what and how to get him going eased his release to get closer and closer.
You noticed Heeseung's moans intensifying and his body squirming more than before. Although it was your first time with him, you easily deduced that he was close to reaching his climax.
But you had other plans.
Without any warning, you stopped everything â your hands, your mouth â retreating from his body, and eliciting a sound from Heeseung that landed somewhere between a cry and a whimper. His wide, desperate bambi eyes gleamed in confusion and frustration.
âNâNoâ Whyââ
âI donât want you to cum on my hands,â you said feigning innocence, blinking sweetly as if you werenât ruining his release.Â
Reaching over to your nightstand, you grabbed a condom, smoothly rolling it onto Heeseungâs painfully hard cock before positioning yourself over him. As you hovered above his length, you glanced at him, searching for confirmation.
Heeseung had propped himself up on his elbows, his eyes wide, flickering between your sultry expression and the sight of his cock pressing against your slick entrance. He understood your unspoken question and gave a quick, eager nod. His gaze was immediately drawn back to his dick disappearing inside of you as your walls enveloped him completely.
âFâFuck,â Heeseung breathed, his voice trembling, almost strained, his abs flexing as he instinctively thrusted slightly forward before collapsing back onto the bed.
The sensation of your wet heat gripping him tightly was overwhelming. He rolled his eyes back and let his head fall against the pillow, biting his lip to keep from moaning too loudly.
âIâm not gonna last longââ he muttered through heavy breaths, his strong hands gripping your hips, holding on like you were the only thing keeping him grounded, forgetting that, in fact, you were the one leading his lustful ruin.
âOh, you will,â you murmured, rolling your hips back and forth in a painful slow pace while you adjusted. âYouâre not that pathetic, are you?â You teased, voice thick with challenge.Â
However, to your surprise and delight, Heeseungâs response was unexpectedly better than your imagination.
âI amââ He interrupted himself with a deep moan as you purposefully clenched around his dick. âI am that pathetic,â he whispered, hands tightening on your hips. âI am pathetic for you, for you only.â
You instinctively reacted to his vulnerable, desperate words. You could feel the raw intensity behind it, his complete surrender to you, and it fueled your own desire.Â
âYeah?â You cocked your head to the side with a smug smile, supporting yourself with your palms planted on his chest as he started to thrust up into you, seeking for more of your addicting squeeze around his dick. âShow me, then.â
Heeseungâs entire body shuddered beneath you while he forced your hips down to meet his own buckling up; you, yourself barely helping, letting him do all the work just for a little teasing.
However, Heeseung hit a certain spot in you that had your dominant facade faltering, a choking moan slipping from your throat while you frowned with pure pleasure as your arms wavered briefly to hold you still.
âYou feel that?â His voice cracked, eyes fluttering open to catch a glimpse of your lascivious expression. âIâm yoursââ
You bit your lip, a rush of adrenaline waving through your body, tingling at his words, your mind spinning with the intoxicating pleasure of having Heeseung so completely at your mercy.
You leaned forward, your mouth grazing his ear as you whispered, âSuch a good boy...â
The simple praise sent a visible shiver through his spine, his grip on you faltering momentarily as a desperate groan escaped his lips, eyes rolling as he threw his head back, letting his perfect neck in all display for you.
It became clear â he was close, teetering right on the edge, just waiting for your command, nonetheless you weren't quite ready to let him have it, especially because the knot in your stomach just started to tighten.Â
"Not yet," you said breathlessly against his jawline, a wicked grin spreading across your face as you lightly bit and kissed the area. "You'll have to wait just a little longer, Heeseung."
You could feel his cock twitching inside you, his body trembling with the effort of holding back.Â
In no universe could Heesung have imagined that this would be how his day ended, with you dominating him so effortlessly, and most importantly, him letting it happen and savoring every single delightful second.
âPâPleaseâŠâ Heeseung whimpered, his voice cracking into a soft cry, his fingers trembling against your skin, kneading it as a way to regain his control. One of his fingers slipped to your clit, rubbing it the way he could due to the position.
You kept on riding Heeseung with all you had, your thighs burning in the process but you couldnât care less. The way he was whining in your ear, panting and pleading, together with his touch on your sensitive spot and his fingers doing circles on your clit brought you close to the edge as well. With each clench around his dick, you could feel his restrain slipping away.
âIâmâ PleaseââÂ
âLet go, Hee. Cum for me, yeah?â You purred against his lips, sloppily kissing it as you drank his guttural moan, feeling the condom filling up inside you.Â
Your core bubbled and the knot tightened, and you coated the condom with your juices while a whimper came out from your lips. Heeseungâs grip tightened as you rode you both through your highs.
Your mouths slowly found a comfortable pace as you also fully decreased your movements, savoring the aftershocks of your release and feeling Heeseungâs beneath you. Â
Heeseungâs breaths came in heavy pants as you parted the kiss by sucking his lower lip. You lifted yourself enough to search for his eyes, filled with happiness and satisfaction.Â
âDid that feel good?â you asked softly, brushing a stray hair from his sweaty forehead, your fingers lingering on his warm skin.
âMore than I could ever imagine,â he admitted, a shy smile breaking through his panting breaths. âYouâre incredible.â
âSo are you,â you whispered, kissing him again.
This time, deliberate and loaded with emotion. All the feelings that once carried an air of doubt while hovering in your mind now felt certain, and the warmth in your heart only confirmed that as your body relaxed and you emerged from the lustful bliss, leaving you and Heeseung in a sweet, loving bubble.Â
Heeseung helped clean you and himself, even taking a shower since you offered some of your brotherâs never used clothes, you caught yourself mingling on his warm embrace, now resting your cheek on his bare chest that rose and fell softly.
âI really like you, Y/N,â Heeseung's voice was dripping in honey, kind and sweet as his fingers trailed a gentle path on your arm. âLike, really like you.â
âI know,â you whispered with a smile, struggling to contain the sting in your heart. âBut youâre not the only one, right?â You asked and lifted your head just enough to capture his tender eyes focusing on you.
He shook his head, biting his lips nervously.
âNo,â he finally confessed with a sigh, holding you closer as if you would slip away from his grip at any moment, without a warning. âIâm not.â
You both shared a silence filled with unspokenly delicate words.Â
âGive Jake a chance as well.âÂ
Heeseungâs phrase lingered on your brain for longer than you expected, filled with sincerity. He was willing to offer you the option, the possibility to choose between him and Jake. And somehow that made the scenario even easier.
âGot your message. You called me in?â
You were slightly startled by Jakeâs sudden entrance into your office, even though you had already allowed it through text. You took a moment to admire him â he seemed a bit out of breath, his disheveled hair and wide, puppy eyes making his adorable charm stand out even more.
âClose the door,â you said firmly. âAnd lock it.â Jake's trembling hands did as you instructed.
âWhatâs going on?â he asked, wincing under your intense gaze.
You had clenched your jaw, your fingers fidgeting casually as you leaned your hips against your desk, exuding an air of something he read as severity.
Despite the tension palpable in the air, he couldnât help but take notice of how stunning you looked, with your clothing choice for the day accentuating your curves and your hair in a high ponytail. He shamelessly checked you out, mesmerized with your figure and oblivious of the fact you were playing with him with all bossy that posture.Â
The topic was sensitive, but nothing stopped you from playing a little.
âDid Heeseung tell you he visited me yesterday?â You broke the silence
Jake blinked, gaze flickering immediately from your thighs to your eyes, completely thrown off by your words, confusion clear on his face.
âWâwhat?â
âYeah.â You smirked, placing your palms against the desk behind you and leaning back, relaxed. âDid he?â You blinked innocently, as though you genuinely cared about his answer. âBecause if he didnât, heâs playing a much dirtier game than I expected,â you feigned disappointment, clicking your tongue and pouting after.
âWhat are you talking about, Y/N?â
For a brief moment, you hesitated. Jake seemed genuinely clueless, but you knew better. You had all the evidence â the little game between them, the silent competition that had gone unspoken for too long.
Heeseung had told you his side of the story and indirectly a quarter of Jakeâs.
Even though Heeseung and Jake had grown closer and eased some of the tension between them, there was an underlying feeling that occasionally surfaced, standing out from the rest: beneath it all, there was the undeniable desire to have you. Despite the mutual understanding of the connection they both shared, the notion of a single winner still lingered in the background, subtly driving their everyday actions.
âYou know exactly what I'm talking about,â you answered, voice still steady, but now with a layer of seduction laced in between your words. Your eyes never left Jakeâs face, even when he drifted them away due to his shyness before you. âYou are falling behind, Jakey.â
Jake stood there with a small frown, processing your words; he would be lying if he didnât think at some point that, behind all his friendship with Heeseung, there was you, occupying almost every corner of his head with your beautiful smile and charming personality.Â
You were his main objective, his goal, after all.
âCome on, Jake,â you pressed, your tone dripping with challenge. âAre you really just going to sit back and let Heeseung win this?â
Internally you prayed for any green light from Jake. Otherwise, your decision and respective demeanor could ruin everything â your job, your friendship. It was unethical, unprofessional, against every guideline you fought to uphold at the company.
But watching Jake with his jaw tightening, fist clenched and eyes widening in confusion and anger, was far too tempting to stop.
Your words sparked something deep inside Jake, awakening his competitive side that had been lying dormant despite the constant swirl of emotions in his mind. The need to win, to prove himself, came back to life. More than anything, he wanted to be the best, especially for you.
So a war happened inside him: on one side, the resentful acceptance that if he lost to Heeseung, at least you would be with someone who would treat you right; but on the other, a fierce, burning desire.
Jake couldnât shake the intoxicating rush that came from your approval, the way your praise felt after his every effort, after every achievement; your cute smile and shining eyes showed him a galaxy of happiness.Â
And now, the thought of losing that, of watching someone else receive what he craved from you, wasnât something he could tolerate. He wanted to be the one to make you proud, to make you feel the way you made him feel â and that competitive fire was about to consume him entirely.
Since apparently Heeseung had his chance to prove his side, now it was his time.
The room was thick with anticipation as he slowly stepped closer, the space between you shrinking, the office boundaries blurring.
âCome closerâŠâ you purred, eyes gleaming with amusement as you watched him move towards you, desire growing clear in his eyes.
The second he was in front of you, his hands traveled instantly to your waist, the heated touch making you nearly gasp. His fingers pressed into the soft fabric of your clothing, pulling you closer as his breathing grew heavier.Â
For a brief moment, you felt drunk in Jakeâs scent and firm grip, his eyes behind the glasses lingering longer on your lips before he bit his own, as if he was restraining himself. However, he easily lost his own battle, leaning in intending to kiss you, but you gently pushed against his chest, smirking.
âNo, mm-mm,â you tutted, shaking your head as he hesitated, your teasing smile driving him mad; the proximity, the chances, everything taunting his desire to give up on his principles and pleasure you. âWe cannot do anything while working, Jake. You know that.â You playfully reminded him, nodding along like it was an innocent rule, all while your eyes glinted with mischief. âIâm your manager.âÂ
Jake groaned softly, clearly torn between desire and duty, but then you leaned in closer, your voice dropping into a soft whisper. âHoweverâŠâ You cupped his jaw, thumb grazing his lip with agonizing slowness, and you could feel him melt under your touch.
His lips parted slightly, his warm tongue just brushing your thumb, causing a wave of arousal to surge through your body. You swallowed hard, suppressing a moan.
You continued, your voice barely audible but dripping with sensuality, being the only one filling the room as Jake just stood there, in need of you, âWe canât just ignore that Heeseung made his move, can we? Supposedly, you're next, right?â Your eyes sparkled as you cocked your head, taking in Jakeâs hooded, desperate gaze. You licked your lips and grabbed his tie, pulling him even closer, lips now brushing against each other while you savored the delicious tension.
âSo⊠whatâs it gonna be?â you whispered the words, your breath mingling with him as you pulled even closer by his tie. âHm?â
His eyes darkened before fluttering shut, and you knew he was near to the edge of letting go from whatever internal struggle holding him back. Yet, you didn't expect Jake to eagerly kiss you, throwing aside any thoughts about being at work.
It would be a euphemism to say you werenât as desperate as he was, your arousal guiding your decisions the moment that attractive man showed up in your office with his usual clumsy state, all messy and unnecessarily hot as he demonstrated confusion from your sudden call.Â
Jakeâs taste melting on your tongue made the task of remembering your responsibilities harder, and you pathetically tossed your ethics aside as you devoured Jakeâs plush, soft lips.
Fingers threading through his silky hair, you pulled him closer, as if the mere contact of your mouths and the warmth of his body pressing against yours wasn't enough. A fire ignited within you, threatening to consume you both, fueled by the ragged breaths escaping his lips mingled with groans of delight.
Jake felt like dying, and he was loving every second.Â
There was an annoying itch at the back of his mind, reminding him that you were both in a workplace and that the risk of being caught was large. But instead of pushing him away, it drew him even closer.
In no universe he would let the opportunity of his life slip away easily like that.
Suddenly, your phone buzzed behind you, breaking the intoxicating moment for some seconds. Jakeâs lips trailed down to your neck to give you the chance to reach for it. Your breath was heavy as you read the notification: meeting in an hour.
You quickly typed a message to Heeseung, asking him to come up with an excuse for anyone who might approach your door. You kept it vague, knowing he would totally understand the situation, especially since he had seen Jake enter your office.
With your heart racing you threw your phone at some random place before turning your attention to Jake, to dive back into the moment before the outside world interrupted your brand new little secret.
Jake gave you no chance to react when he suddenly lifted your hips and sat you on the wooden surface of your desk, forcing your legs open so he could place himself between them. His sneaky fingers found the hem of your shirt, invading the area shamelessly, the warm touch together with his lips sucking the flesh of your neck made you shiver, the bubbling desire in your core intensifying each painful second.
âDâDonât leave any marks,â you warned breathlessly, loving how fast Jake found your sensitive spot and started to give it some proper attention, but afraid of being too obvious with the after.Â
You could feel his hardness brushing against your legs from time to time, and you noticed at some point he began to slightly thrust forward, seeking for friction. You werenât much different, though â your hands tugged his hair gently to give you some support as you waved your hips towards Jake, searching for a similar relief, moaning softly.
Impatience was growing as much as your desire, so you clumsily slipped down from your desk and pushed Jakeâs torso back without saying a word. His instant reaction was to retract himself in a confused state, hands faltering on keeping squeezing you; his glasses were uneven as ever and a bit foggy, hair was sticking up all over and chest visibly raising and falling with each deep breath.Â
âWe donât have much time,â you purred, your voice dripping with sultry seduction as your eyes roamed over Jakeâs disheveled state. âAnd Iâm pretty sure a dedicated employee like you doesnât want to get caught, right?â
A playful smirk tugged at your lips as you began to unbutton your pants in a slow, deliberate, teasing show. Jakeâs breath hitched with the view and your words, the aching reminder he unfortunately couldnât do everything he dreamed of with you.Â
His gaze fixated on every inch of your skin, shamelessly moaning when you lowered your pants just enough to reveal your white panties, completely soaked with arousal. You toyed with the waistband, your smile widening as he dropped to his knees before you, desperation written all over his face.
âLet me eat you out. We donât need to do anything more. Just let me taste you,â Jake pleaded, his eyes filled with longing and urgency, his composure long gone completely out of reach.
Goosebumps sprawled over your skin before you commanded, âEat me out, and then fuck me, Jake.â
Your tone was thick with confidence and lust as you turned on your back, bending over the polished wooden surface in a way of presenting yourself to him.
Jake groaned as he carefully removed your panties, revealing your ass and your cunt to him; Jake groaned, barely able to contain himself as he slid your panties down, exposing your ass and glistening cunt. His mouth watered instinctively as he leaned forward, positioning himself to take a long, delicious lick of your wet folds. His plump lips enveloped you, sucking gently as though he were savoring a delicate dessert, each flick of his tongue igniting a fire deep within you.
Jake envisioned purpose as being to please you, in every possible way. He would come up with alternative solutions to your problems, make you proud by delivering incredible results at work, and relieve the pressure and burden of your job by dealing with the part he could.Â
But what he craved the most was to explore the depths of your satisfaction, discover and learn every inch of you that sparkled your thrilling emotions and give you what you deserved.
Jake was devoted to you, sweet as honey and affectionate as a teddy bear in an agonizingly delightful way. Because in the end, you would always praise him, leaving him flustered as you highlighted his positive attributes and unmatched skills.
He pleasured you for his own pleasure.Â
And he knew that he might not be the only one in your life now, but nothing would stop him from trying to be the best.
As Jakeâs tongue danced across your folds, each flicker ignited a wave of ecstasy that coursed through you, your body trembling as you struggled to keep it as quiet as possible, your knuckles turning white as you held on tight on the deskâs edge.
You could feel the heat radiating off him, littening you up with raw desire as you lost your ability to think straight. You found yourself surrendering completely to the bliss Jake offered, unable to control your sounds, let alone your own body from seeking for more as you pushed your hips back.
âGod, JakeâŠâ you gasped, your breath hitching as he licked and sucked with a fervor that made your knees weak. âJust like that. Donât stop. Youâre so fucking goodââ
Encouraged by your moans and your praise, Jake increased the pressure of his mouth, groaning against your cunt as his hands gripped your hips to hold you steady, letting himself get lost in the taste of you.
The voice inside his read evoked the thought you werenât fully his yet, so with every flick of his tongue Jake memorized your responses and reactions, the little sounds that escaped your lips and your skin prickled under his precise touch fueling his desire to give you more and more.
He wished for your taste to linger longer on his tongue, keeping vivid the feeling of having you in such intimacy, but it was undeniable that reality would eventually knock.
On the other hand, your mind was blank and could feel the tension building within you, your core tightening as you realized you were teetering near to the edge already. It was a delicious struggle between desire and restraint, your body begging for release, but your mind reminding you Jake was right behind you, probably eager for his own climax as well.
âJake,â you breathed, your voice a mix of desperation and longing. For seconds you wondered where the innocent, clumsy and nerd-look-alike Jake you knew was at that moment, as the lewd slurping sounds filled your ears. âI need you. Now.â
Jake didnât stop, though, diving deeper, keeping on forcing you to step near the verge of your climax. He wanted you to cum all over his mouth. He needed to taste you.
âJake,â you called again within a loud moan that got you covering your lips right away. âPleaseââ You pleaded, rolling your eyes, finding it difficult to keep steady, your knees faltering, your pussy clenching around his tongue.
Your hands made a mess with the papers sprawled on your desk, knocking down some random things in the process.
âI want your dick, Jake,â you whimpered, trying to sound as firm as you could, âI wanna you to fuck me, pleaseââ You whispered, almost sounding like a whine and a cry.
Just then Jake finally snapped out of his bliss and gave a last kiss on your glistening cunt before standing up. He paused for a brief moment, eyes dark with lust as he pulled back slightly to take in the sight of you; your body trembling from his efforts, part of your juices dripping on your exposed legs, your whole back in full display for him.
âYouâre so beautiful like this,â Jake murmured, his voice husky and thick with desire. âI want to make you feel this good, all the time,â he said, determination and passion blended perfectly together as his hands caressed your sides with a softness that contradicted the abuse he was doing on your pussy.
âMake me feel better now, Jake,â you waved your hips a little, provoking. âJust fuck me, yeah?âÂ
During agonizing seconds, all you heard was the noises of Jake unbuckling his belt and his zipper going down, mingled with the sound of his ragged breath. You controlled the urge of looking back, too weak to do anything other than support yourself on the table and wait.
âCan I?â He asked softly, pulling you by the waist with one hand while the other held his own dick, until it pressed against your wet entrance.
âNo need to ask,â you answered, mirroring his tone, although the anticipation grew within your chest.
Jakeâs hand grabbed your hip to maintain your steadiness as he forced himself inside, your head dropped forward and your mouth fell open with the raw feeling of Jake entering you.Â
âDamn, you feel incredible,â he whispered in amusement. It felt way better than any dream he ever had.Â
With your warm walls tightened around him, Jakeâs composure slipped away and he began to move, each thrust deliberate and deep, designed to send you into a haze of ecstasy. He had one palm still holding you in order to pull you by the waist while pushing deep, and the other slightly pressed on your back, either to support himself and also to keep you in position.
You rolled your eyes, your hands crumpling the papers on your desk trying to ground yourself, giving no care about its importance.
The world outside faded away, you nearly forgot you were fucking during working time and, mainly, under the companyâs rules and ceiling as Jakeâs thrusts grew faster, more frantic; he chased his own pleasure while desperately trying to push you over the edge, the slap noises filled the room together with your heavy breaths and moans.
âFâfuckâ Youâre hittingâ deepâ So deepââ Your voice was being cut by each hard slam of Jakeâs hip against yours. âSo fucking good,â you whimpered and arched your back when he hit your spot straight.
âYou like that?â Jake asked, proud of being the one who received such praises from you. âPlease, tell me you want me,â he pleaded, feeling his abdomen flexing with his orgasm getting near.
âI want youââ You urged to say, your climax building up on your core and your pussy clenching involuntary. Jake groaned. âI want you, Jake, pleaseââÂ
Jake kept on hitting you with a constancy that felt unbearably good. In that moment, everything else fell away â the meetings, the deadlines, the moral dilemmas. All you felt was the strong wave of pleasure rushing over every inch of your body, as you trembled and nearly cried in a last moan, coming all over Jakeâs length.
âFuckââ You hissed when Jake kept on going, driving your through your high before pulling out and jerking himself off. You were panting when you turned to shameless watch his hand speeding on his dick covered with your cum, the lascivious, wet sounds making you quiver, his armâs popped veins making the view way too devilish.Â
You bit your lip, knees failing to keep you correctly straightened up but you sustained yourself in the desk behind you.
âYouâre so good, Jake. Always so good, always making me proud,â you said between heavy breaths, eliciting a guttural groan from Jake that you feared someone heard, his head throwing back, exposing his perfect neck to you.
Jake was unable to describe properly the jolt of electricity that ran through his body after hearing your words, spilling his cum forward, hitting your arm and part of your table.Â
âShitâŠâ He whispered, eyes fluttering open while he struggled to breath. His gaze drifted to your desk. âIâm sorry,â he murmured as he got closer, using his clean hand to hold your waist as he placed a soft kiss on your mouth.
You didnât understand at first what he meant, too lost in your bliss, but after you both cleaned up, you realized how messy in many, too many nuances â your desk was and understood why Jake was sorry for.
You had made your decision even before your night with Heeseung and your wild time with Jake.Â
With Heeseung, it felt like it just naturally happened â and you didnât regret any second. For Jake, it was something similar to an equality, giving them both the same treatment and chance. And again, you didnât regret it.Â
Your feelings for them were as clear as crystal water, each reflecting a different and unique facet of your heart. Each moment you shared together was filled with affection, desire, passion, and it drew you stronger into connecting yourself with Heeseung and Jake.
You spent days in deep contemplation, analyzing how your body reacted during every interaction â the way your pulse quickened with each lingering glance, how your cheeks warmed from the softest, lightest brush of hands, and how your inner core felt electrified after every encounter.
You tried to measure, but it was so obvious â and at no moment you tried to fight against it.
Consequently, it was relatively easy to invite them into your office for a personal conversation, where you felt no fear regarding your feelings, but were uncertain about how Jake and Heeseung would react to your decision.
âThis is not the appropriate setting, but I feel like itâs our setting,â you began, your voice steady to express your certainty. This time, you held a sweet, softened gaze that darted between Heeseung and Jake, lingering not long enough in each of their tensed faces.
They were completely aware about the reason behind your gathering, their breaths coming heavy, throat dry, fingers fidgeting⊠You noticed each anxious demeanor. Your heart tightened, because you would never intend to make them feel bad.Â
âI called you both here becauseâŠâÂ
You took a moment to find the right words, the same you sculpted during days in the back of your mind, now running away from your mouth.
But there was no doubt, because at some point, you questioned yourself.
If love was a battlefieldâŠ
âIâm not choosing.â
Could there be more than one winner?Â
âNot between you two.â
[BONUS SCENE]
âHeeseung, please, stop chasing after Layla,â Jake rolled his eyes, a hint of exasperation in his voice while you chuckled, taking a bite of your ice cream. âYouâre scaring her.â
It was a sunny Sunday afternoon and you had decided to take a peaceful walk with your, now, two boyfriends and Layla, Jakeâs adorable dog. At some point you started to feel a bit tired, and opted to sit down on a bench with Jake while Heeseung continued to expend Laylaâs energy, playing with her nearby.
âSheâs literally smiling, Jake,â Heeseung shot back with a glance, though his smile betrayed his faux annoyed facade. He knelt next to Layla, gently stroking her fluffy fur and murmuring sweet nothings with a baby voice while nodding. âIsnât that right, girl?â
âYouâre just jealous because she likes Heeseung more than she likes you,â you teased Jake, trying to contain your laughter at his instant reaction. Jake blinked flabbergasted at your words before he pouted.
âDonât ever say that again,â he muttered in a whine, feigning an anger that never really matched his energy. His facade quickly fell as he pulled you closer to kiss your cheek.
You giggled, melting into a shy mess when Jake began planting kisses along your neck too, the sound drawing Heeseungâs attention.
He stood up, holding Laylaâs leash with a playful tilt of his head. The ghost of a smile lingered on his lips before he pouted dramatically. âI canât believe Iâm witnessing my girlfriend and my friend enjoying themselves without considering my presence,â Heeseung said as he slid into the empty seat on your left, planting a sweet kiss on your other cheek.
Just like that, it started a playful competition between the two of them, each trying to elicit a laugh or a shout of âstopâ from you first. All you could do was giggle and squirm, drowning in the warm sensation blooming in your chest and the delightful tingling on each side of your neck as Heeseung and Jake silently agreed to tease you mercilessly.
You couldnât help but be amused at how effortlessly Heeseung and Jake had adapted to this unconventional relationship. Everything had fallen into place, and you finally had an answer to the question that had lingered in your mind when you decided to take a step further.
Yes, two people can definitely win a love battle.
Business Proposal: Yang Jungwon
pairing: Jungwon x fem! reader
synopsis: You donât know what to begin with Yang Jungwon. He is your co-worker in a company you are in and you despise that cat-looking man. And he despises you. Itâs been going on ever since the beginning. You swear you had enough of him. But it seems like the world is not on your side because as much as you respect the Ceo, you just want to leave the company almost immediately. Why? Because he decided to partner you up with Jungwon on a project together. This seems like a recipe for disaster. Oh goodness⊠what to doâŠwhat to do...
genre: Enemies/ Co-workers to lovers, forced proximity, angst, fluff
warnings: suggestive (mdni) WHOLE LOT OF ARGUING, BULLYING, CUSSING, AND GOSSIPING, You just hate each other honestly, Mentions of crying, strangling. Let me know if there is more!
note: Thank you to đŠ anonie for requesting this!! Iâm really sorry that it took me a lot of time to make this. It was a great idea and Iâm just a sucker for this trope đ. I deeply apologize if it wasnât on your expectations and Iâll do my best to keep improving. I had fun making this and I appreciate your patience. Happy reading darlingss!!
permanent taglist: @sol3chu @chlorinecake @13tter @jung1w0n
Caution: IâM SURE YAâLL WILL BE GIGGLING AND SQUEALING IN THIS DHWHBXJWHS WRITING THIS WAS SO OUT OF MY COMFORT ZONE. Reading discretion is advised đœ
You and Jungwon have always been at each otherâs throats ever since you both started working at the company. From your perspective, heâs arrogant and dismissive, constantly interrupting your ideas and making you feel undervalued. From Jungwonâs perspective, youâre overly controlling and unwilling to listen.
Your mutual disdain is well-known around the office. Despite your talents and contributions, your inability to see eye to eye has created a rift that seems impossible to bridge.
Today, you receive a message to report to the CEOâs officeâor Mr. Jeon, as you and your colleagues call him. You feel both anxious and curious, wondering what this could be about. As you approach the office, you take a deep breath, trying to steady yourself.
âWhat could this be about? I hope itâs not more bad news.â
You open the door to the CEOâs office and immediately see that shitface. No, not Mr. Jeon, but that bitch who's already seated, looking equally puzzled.
Jungwonâs eyes looked over to you as you entered the office. Both surprise and annoyance flash across his face, his lips pursing slightly.
âYou too, huh?â he remarks, his voice tinged with irritation.
Mr. Jeon, who is sitting behind his desk, smiles at both of you. âAh, youâre both here. Good. Have a seat, Y/n.â You sit in the chair beside Jungwon.
Mr. Jeon laces his fingers together, his gaze moving between you and Jungwon. âIâm sure both of you are wondering why I called you here today.â
Jungwon remains silent, but inside, heâs bracing for a reprimand. Meanwhile, you nod, genuinely curious about the reason behind the summoning. Is he tired of the constant fighting between you and that idiot?
âAs you know, the company has been facing some challenges lately, and weâve been looking for ways to streamline our operations and increase efficiency.â He leans forward, his eyes fixing on both of you. âThatâs why weâve decided to assign you two to work on a project together.â
âWith all due respect, sir, weâve had ourâŠdifferences. Are you sure this is the best idea?â you say with disbelief. No offense, but is Mr. Jeon alright?
The CEO nods, clearly having anticipated this objection. âI understand your concerns, but allow me to explain. The project we have in mind will require both of your unique skill sets and perspectives. We believe that working together will not only make the project more successful but will also help the two of you learn to collaborate effectively.â
He looks at both you and Jungwon. âThis is an opportunity to put aside your differences and focus on the task at hand. Can I count on both of you to give this your best shot?â
You glance at Jungwon with slight disgust, which he meets with a momentary glare before looking back at Mr. Jeon. Thereâs obvious hesitation in his eyes, but he eventually nods, knowing he has no other choice. âIf thatâs what the company needs, Iâll do my part.â
âAnd how about you, Y/n?â Mr. Jeon looks at you.
You look down, fiddling with your fingers. You donât want to disappoint him, even if it means working alongside that cat-looking man. You look up and nod. âIâll do my part as well.â
Mr. Jeon smiles, clearly pleased with your responses. âExcellent. I have every confidence that the two of you will make an outstanding team. I want daily updates on your progress. Youâre to work closely together and keep me informed about anything that may arise.â
He stands up, signaling the end of the meeting. âThatâs all for now. Youâre both dismissed.â
You stand up, bowing slightly at Mr. Jeon before quickly walking away from his office, your frustration simmering just beneath the surface.
Jungwon follows suit, falling in step behind you as you exit the CEOâs office. The silence between you is deafening, both of you still processing the fact that youâve been thrown into this situation together.
You then glare at him, which he returns with equal intensity. âDonât look at me like that. This isnât my idea,â he says, his tone dripping with annoyance.
You roll your eyes, crossing your arms defensively. âWhatever.â
Jungwon huffs in frustration, his patience already wearing thin. âCan you just cut the attitude for a second? Weâre stuck working together, whether we like it or not. So can we just find a way to make this bearable?â
He then adds, throwing his hands up in exasperation, âWe need to set some ground rules if this is going to work.â
You narrow your eyes at him, lips curling into a slight sneer. âFine. What do you propose?â
Jungwon crosses his arms over his chest as if to mimic you. âFor starters, no more eye rolls or backhanded comments every time something doesnât go your way. Weâre adults, not teenagers.â
âAnd two, we need to be open to each otherâs ideas. That means no shutting down suggestions without hearing the other person out.â
Hearing that makes you snicker. âYou always shut down my ideas.â
Jungwon rolls his eyes, clearly irritated by the accusation. âThatâs not true. I just think your ideas are unrealistic and impractical, thatâs all. And Iâm not the only one who thinks so. Itâs not all about you.â
You take a step closer to him, jabbing a finger in his direction. âMaybe if you listened, youâd see the potential instead of dismissing everything outright,â you say with a sarcastic tone.
He scoffs, his irritation growing with every word. âOh, please. Itâs not like your ideas are groundbreaking. Theyâre half-baked and lack any real substance. Why should I waste time listening to something that has no chance of working?â
You step even closer, eyes blazing with defiance. âBecause sometimes taking risks and thinking outside the box is what leads to real innovation, something you clearly donât understand.â
Jungwonâs voice lowers, his anger barely contained. âI understand plenty. Donât assume you know more than I do. Your so-called âinnovationsâ are nothing more than pipe dreams. You need to learn to be more realistic and grounded in the world we live in.â
You raise your voice a little, practically spitting the words. âYou know what? Iâll add another ruleâif weâre going to work together, we need to communicate clearly.â
Jungwon lets out a humorless laugh. âYou want communication? Thatâs rich coming from you. Any time I try to communicate with you, you immediately get defensive and start attacking. Itâs impossible to have a rational conversation with you.â
You cross your arms, narrowing your eyes. âMaybe if you stopped being so condescending, Iâd be more inclined to listen and have a rational conversation.â
Jungwon bristles visibly at being called condescending. âHow am I supposed to talk to you when youâre so stubborn that you wonât listen to reason? Youâre always convinced that you know best, even when youâre clearly wrong.â
Youâre about to snap back when your co-worker, Dae, approaches the both of you. âI know you two have your disagreements, but some of usâŠwell, all of us are focusing on our work, so you two need to stop,â he says gently.
Jungwon and you are both startled by Daeâs sudden appearance.
Jungwon sighs, rubbing his temples. âYeah, yeah. Weâll keep it down.â
Dae smiles a little and mutters, âThank you,â before walking back to his cubicle.
You exhale sharply, turning back to Jungwon. âWell, how are we supposed to do the project? Where?â
Jungwon glances around, thinking for a moment. âWe need to find a place where we can work on the project without distractions. How about the empty meeting room on the third floor?â
You cross your arms, nodding slowly as if testing the idea. âFine, weâll do our project there.â
Jungwon nods, already mentally preparing himself to work closely with you. Heâs begrudgingly accepting the reality that heâs going to have to spend a lot of time in your presence over the next few weeks. âLetâs head over there now so we can start getting things set up.â
You take a deep breath, steeling yourself for the inevitable clashes to come. âLead the way,â you say, your voice with resignation.
đ
You follow Jungwon into the empty meeting room and take a seat across from him. The tension is evident as both of you sit in silence for a few moments, neither knowing how to break the ice.
Finally, Jungwon sighs and opens his laptop, breaking the silence. âAlright, letâs get to work. We need to come up with a plan for the project.â
You bring out your laptop, placing it on the table before opening it. The hum of the machines fills the room as you both start to settle into the task at hand.
Jungwon scrolls through a few documents on his screen before speaking again. âHereâs what I was thinking we could do⊠But first, I want to hear your thoughts on the matter.â He looks at you, genuinely curious to hear your opinion, albeit begrudgingly.
You look at him, âGladly. I think we should focus on an interactive online campaign that uses social media influencers to create buzz. Itâs effective and has a wide reach.â
Jungwon considers your suggestion for a moment, his expression remaining neutral. âI disagree. I think a more traditional approach, like a series of high-profile events and trade shows, would give the product the prestige it needs. Face-to-face interactions create a stronger impact.â
You lean forward, your hands resting on the table. âEvents are important, but they take time to organize and can be expensive. We need quick and impactful results.â
Jungwonâs eyes narrow slightly as he counters your argument. âAnd social media campaigns can be hit or miss. We need something reliable and established.â
You groan frustration is evident in your voice. âUgh, itâs only been minutes and we are already breaking our rules.â
Jungwon lets out a scoff. âYouâre the one who started it by offering up your unrealistic ideas.â
You glare at him, your tone sharp. âAnd youâre the one who shot them down without even giving them a chance.â
Jungwon throws his hands up in frustration, rolling his eyes. âBecause they wouldnât work! You need to accept reality and stop living in your fantasyland!â
Taking a deep breath, you try to find a compromise. Arguing wonât get the project started, and you know you need to approach this with an open mind. âFine. What if we combine both approaches? Start with a high-profile launch event to get the initial attention, and then follow up with an aggressive online campaign to maintain the momentum?â
Jungwon considers your suggestion for a moment, his irritation gradually giving way to contemplation. After a few seconds, he nods, begrudgingly accepting the compromise. âThat⊠might just work. The event will generate buzz, and the online campaign will keep the momentum going. I can see your idea being viable in this context.â
You nod with a neutral expression, though a hint of satisfaction creeps into your eyes. âGlad to hear it.â
He lets out a sigh, his tone slightly more civil than before. âAlright, so weâve agreed on the approach, at least in theory. Letâs start drafting the plans for both the event and the online campaign. We need to set timelines and assign responsibilities.â
You type a few notes into your laptop, feeling a tentative sense of progress. âSounds good to me.â
đ
The weeks have been both of tension and resentful cooperation. The process has not been smooth sailing, with numerous disagreements and clashes between you and Jungwon. However, the progress of the project has kept both of you from completely succumbing to your differences. Youâve managed to finalize the plans for the event and the online campaign, although not without a few heated discussions.
As you review the progress the two of you have made, you canât help but wonder how the project will turn out despite the constant clashes between you and Jungwon.
Itâs very late at night, and it seems like itâs just the two of you left in the building. You close your laptop with a sigh. âAlright, weâll continue this tomorrow.â
Jungwon yawns and rubs his eyes, exhaustion setting in. The hours of working non-stop and being in close proximity to you have taken their toll on him.
He glances at his watch, realizing how late it is. âYeah, I guess thatâs all we can get done tonight. We should both get some rest and pick this up fresh tomorrow.â
You look at him in quiet disgust. âYou look like shit, by the way.â
He shoots you a withering glare, not appreciating the insult. He looks exhausted, with dark circles under his eyes and his usually meticulously styled hair now sticking up at odd angles. âYeah, well, you donât look so picture-perfect yourself.â
You roll your eyes, not even bothering to respond. He watches as you leave without another word. He runs a hand through his messy hair, trying to fix it. Despite his annoyance with you, he canât help but notice that even late at night, you still manage to look composed and elegant. It irks him, adding to his already simmering resentment.
đ
The next day, you and Jungwon are taking a break near the empty meeting room. The atmosphere is tense as usual, and neither of you seem eager to break the silence.
Then you hear your colleagues Hwan and Jihoâs voices coming from around the corner.
âI canât believe Mr. Jeon paired them up. Theyâre both such a mess. This project is doomed,â Jiho said.
Jungwonâs face tightens, his scowl deepening as he listens to the dismissive assessment. He has always prided himself on his capability and work ethic, and this kind of criticism stings.
He glances at you, noticing the flicker of discomfort in your eyes. Youâre silent, but itâs clear that the comments have affected you as well.
Hwan adds, âI know, right? I donât know what Mr. Jeon was thinking. Those two bicker more than they get any actual work done.â
As Hwan and Jiho continue their gossip, Jiho suddenly notices something over Hwanâs shoulder and widens his eyes. Hwan turned around to see...
One with very sharp eyes and the other whose expression are unreadable.
The air grows thick with tension as Hwan and Jiho fall silent, their faces flushing with embarrassment.
âYou know, if you have something to say, you could at least say it to our faces,â Jungwon says, his voice cool but edged with irritation. His eyes lock onto theirs, clearly displeased with being the subject of their gossip.
Your expression remains deadpan as you add, âAnd if you have any doubts about our abilities, youâll see the results soon enough. Weâre not here to entertain your gossip.â
Jiho shifts nervously, stammering as they try to offer a weak apology. âI-Iâm sorry. I didnât mean to doubt you. I just... uh, I just heard people talking...â
Their voice trails off as they struggle to find a way to excuse their behavior. You roll your eyes, unimpressed.
âThis is why Mr. Jeon never gave you two such an important task,â you say, your tone dripping with subtle disdain.
Both Hwan and Jiho blush furiously, their egos bruised by your comment. Hwan stutters awkwardly before blurting out, âThatâs not true! Iâve done plenty of important projects beforeâŠâ
Jungwon lets out a sarcastic huff, smirking. âYeah, sure. Running errands and fetching coffee.â
Hwanâs face reddens further at Jungwonâs dismissive retort. He glances at you and then back at Jungwon, struggling to come up with a response but failing miserably.
The two men exchange nervous glances, clearly intimidated. They mumble apologetically, their heads ducked in embarrassment, before hastily retreating down the hallway.
"Looks like we scared them off," Jungwon says, glancing at you with a satisfied smirk.
You nod and return his gaze. "That felt good."
Jungwon snorts, a rare smile tugging at his lips. "Yeah, it did. Itâs about time someone put those gossip-hounds in their place."
He meets your eyes, his expression growing more serious. "But, honestly, Iâm surprised we managed to agree on something for once."
You tilt your head, "That theyâre pieces of shit?"
Jungwon laughs, genuinely and unexpectedly, as he shoves his hands into his pockets. "Yeah, that part. At least we can agree on that."
He pauses, then adds, "Well, enough about them. I havenât even finished eating my curry."
You nod, "Yeah, me neither."
Jungwon gestures towards the break room where he left his lunch. "Come on then, no point in letting our meals get cold while we stand around gossiping."
"Weâre not gossiping. Those assholes are," you reply.
He grins, "Alright, maybe 'gossiping' isnât the right word. Letâs call it 'expressing our dislike for annoying coworkers' instead."
"Definitely. Come on," you say, heading towards the break room.
He follows you into the break room, where his lunch waits on the table. Jungwon sits down and picks up his curry, giving it a quick stir with his spoon. "Hope you donât mind me eating while we talk. I get cranky when Iâm hungry."
You tease, "You still look like shit even if you do something."
Jungwon rolls his eyes and shoots you a mock glare. "Wow, thanks for the vote of confidence. Iâll be sure to consider that constructive feedback."
đ
The project continues to slowly progress, albeit with the usual tension bubbling up here and there.
Despite the occasional setbacks and clashes, the two of you manage to find a sort of grudging respect for each other's skills and work ethic. It's not necessarily friendly respect, as you still find each other quite annoying. But there's an acknowledgment of the fact that the other isn't completely useless.
But today wasnât your day.
You were struggling with menstruation but decided to come to work anyway, taking some pain relievers to get through the day. As you were picking up some items to bring to the meeting room, you overheard a familiar voiceâAraâsâgossiping about you. She dislikes you for being partners with Jungwon.
âSheâs always so high and mighty, acting like sheâs better than everyone else. This is why Jungwon hates her. Mr. Jeon should have partnered me with him. I just know the project would be done in no time.â
Usually, you would confront anyone talking badly about you, but today, the words cut deeper than usual, leaving you stunned and hurt.
Trying to compose yourself, you headed to the empty meeting room where Jungwon was typing away at his laptop. You kept your head down, hoping he wouldnât notice the tears forming in your eyes.
Jungwon glanced up from his laptop and immediately sensed something was off. He could tell you were fighting back tears and visibly upset.
He pushed away from the table and approached you.
âWho did this to you?â
ââItâs nothing.ââ You wiped your tears and avoided his gaze.
He frowns, not buying your dismissive reply. He stops in front of you, forcing you to look at him. âItâs not nothing. Youâre clearly upset about something. And if someone has hurt you, I need to know.â
Thereâs genuine concern in his voice. Despite your ongoing animosity, he canât ignore the fact that youâre visibly distressed.
He watches as you struggle to find the words, his frown deepening. He reaches out, gently placing a hand on your cheek to tilt your head up. "Hey, look at me. Tell me what happened. Who made you cry like this? Was it Hwan? Or Jiho?"
âââŠItâs AraâŠI overheard her..she said some things about me and reasons why you hated me.ââ
He scowls at the mention of Ara's name, his expression darkening. He can easily picture her making such comments. She's been a source of tension and conflict within the office, constantly stirring up drama and gossip.
"And you believe her?" He said while caressing your cheek.
ââYeah?ââ You said while sniffing.
He shakes his head, clearly annoyed at both you and Ara. "Why would you believe the words of someone as petty and envious as her? You should know by now that her opinions are not worth the air they waste."
He continued, "You might be a headache and pain in the ass most of the time, but you're not conceited. You've worked hard to earn everything you have. You're talented and capable, and you know it. Don't let her convince you otherwise.â
He releases his hand from your cheek, âAnd next time you hear her talking about you, you tell me. Iâll deal with her before she spreads more of her bullshit around.â
He gently wipes your tears. âYou know what? Iâll be right back.â
Jungwon left the meeting room and made his way to Araâs cubicle, his eyes fixed on her with a steely glare. Araâs face brightened at his approach.
âOh, hi Jungwon. Is there anything I can help you with?â she asked, tucking her hair behind her ear.
âFollow me,â he said, his sharp eyes making Ara frown slightly.
He shut the door behind them, ensuring privacy. Araâs nervousness was felt.
âJungwon, I-â
âShut up.â He cut her off sharply. âI heard what you said about Y/n. Care to explain why youâre spreading lies about her?â
âI was just saying what others were thinking,â Ara stuttered, her eyes darting fearfully.
Jungwon scoffed, his patience wearing thin. âBullshit. Youâre just jealous because sheâs more talented and ambitious than you.â
He continued, âAnd Iâm warning you. If I hear you talking trash about her again, Iâll make sure you regret it. I can get you kicked out of here with just a word to Mr. Jeon.â
Ara swallowed nervously, clearly intimidated. âI-Iâm sorry, Jungwon. I wonât do it again, I swear.â
Jungwon scowled, unsatisfied with her apology. âYouâll be apologizing to Y/n, too. And if you know whatâs good for you, youâll make damn sure itâs sincere. Now come with me, youâll be apologizing to her. Now.â
He led her back to the meeting room where you were waiting. Jungwon gestured to Ara. âGo on. Say what you need to say.â
Ara approached you, her voice trembling. âUm, Y/n, I-I just wanted to sayââ
She faltered under Jungwonâs glare. âI⊠Iâm sorry. I shouldnât have said those things about you. I didnât mean it.â
Jungwon watched the scene closely, his expression unreadable. Once Ara finished her apology, he released her. âYou can go now.â
Ara nodded quickly, clearly relieved, and scurried out of the room. Jungwon turned to you.
âYou didnât have to,â you said softly, your voice tinged with residual emotion.
He scoffed, shaking his head. âOf course, I had to. You just sat there and took her bullshit without defending yourself.â
His expression softened unexpectedly. âWhy didnât you say anything? You usually stand up for yourself.â You looked down, feeling embarrassed. He then continued, âNo offense, but youâve dealt with worse and come out stronger.â
Jungwon reached out and gently wiped a tear from your cheek. âSo why did it affect you so much? Why did it make you cry?â
You closed your eyes, your voice barely a whisper. âI just⊠I feel sensitive today becauseâŠâ
Jungwon raised an eyebrow, waiting. âBecauseâŠ?â
You hesitated before admitting, âIâm on my period.â
Jungwon blinked in surprise, then nodded in understanding. âAh, I see. That would make sense.â He smirked, a playful glint in his eye. âExplains why youâre so emotional today.â
âBut still, her words shouldnât have gotten to you. Youâre too talented and capable to let petty remarks affect you.â
You shook your head. âYouâre just saying that to make me feel better.â
He snorted, rolling his eyes. âIâm not the kind to sugarcoat things. You know that.â
He looked at you directly. âIâm serious. Youâre a pain in the ass and a constant headache, but thatâs because youâre ambitious and talented. Her words are just petty bullshit. Donât let them get to you.â
He patted your hair gently, a surprisingly affectionate gesture. âAnd next time someone talks trash about you, tell me. Iâll take care of it.â
You were touched by his words and, despite your attempts to hold it together, started crying harder. Your shoulders shook as you tried to suppress your sobs.
Jungwon looked alarmed, clearly unsure how to handle your emotional outburst. He awkwardly patted your back. âHey, calm down. Youâre gonna give yourself a headache with all that crying. Take a deep breath.â
You managed to choke out between sniffles, âWhy are you being so kind today?â
Jungwon looked taken aback by your question. âWhat do you mean? Iâm always kind.â
âBullshit,â you muttered, wiping your tears with the back of your hands.
He smirked at your bluntness. âCareful now. Youâre the one crying your eyes out.â
His smirk softened slightly. âBut seriously, stop crying. Youâre making me get all emotional.â
âYou too?â you asked, your eyes widening in surprise.
Jungwon scowled, though his tone was softer. âYeah, yeah. Make fun of me all you want. Youâre the one blubbering like a baby.â
You continued to sniffle and then let out a small, amused laugh. âI want to see you cry so I can take a picture and post it on Instagram.â
He scoffed, raising an eyebrow. âFat chance. Iâm not crying just to satisfy your twisted sense of humor. Plus, Iâd look even more handsome than you if I was crying, so youâd be jealous.â
You laughed a little more, feeling somewhat better. âYou know what? We should get back to the project. Mr. Jeon might kick our asses.â
He shook his head, a hint of a smile tugging at his lips. âYou go from crying to work mode in no time. Damn, youâre back to being a pain in the ass.â
âFirst, do you have a napkin? I have a snotâŠâ you said, holding up the empty tissue box.
He winced, clearly disgusted at your tear-stained, snot-filled face, but still reached into his pocket, pulling out a small pack of tissues. âHere. Clean yourself up already. Youâre a mess.â
You took the tissue gratefully, wiping your nose. âThank you. Letâs get back to work.â
He watched as you blew your nose and tried to compose yourself. âYeah, the sooner we finish this, the sooner Iâll be rid of your snot-filled face.â
âIt only happened today!â you protested.
He scoffed, a smug expression on his face. âYeah, I know. Iâm being extra generous today, dealing with your hormonal, leaky self.â
âStop!â you said, swatting his arm.
He exaggeratedly winced, his hand on his arm. âOuch! Watch it, I almost lost a limb.â
You glared at him but couldnât help the small smile that tugged at your lips. You moved to sit down at your desk, opening your laptop, with tissues at the side.
Jungwon settled next to you, opening his laptop. âAlright, time to get back to business. Letâs finish this project ASAP so I can get a break from your whining.â
đ
The two have been working closely and starting to get along better, but the stress of the approaching deadline and their differences lead to friction. Theyâve been working late nights, and exhaustion is wearing on both of them, making tempers shorter.
They have a disagreement over a critical aspect of the project, such as the direction of the campaign. The argument escalates quickly, with both raising their voices, airing out frustrations not just about the project but also about each otherâs working styles and personal issues.
âYouâre always so stubborn, never willing to see anyone elseâs perspective!â you shout at him, frustration boiling over.
He snaps back, his temper flaring up further. "And you're always so bossy, expecting everyone to follow your lead without question! You act like you're the only one who knows what's best. Maybe if you'd listen to other people for once, we wouldnât be in this mess!"
âAnd maybe if you werenât so stubborn and dismissive, weâd make progress instead of constantly arguing!â you retort, your voice rising.
He glares at you, his patience wearing thin. "Dismissive? I'm not the one who thinks they know everything. You're so set on dominating every decision that you can't even see when you're wrong."
He crosses his arms, a look of defiance on his face. "Maybe if you'd learn to compromise once in a while, we wouldn't be stuck in this damn cycle of arguing and getting nowhere!"
âCompromise works both ways, Jungwon. Maybe if you stopped acting like you always have the right answer, weâd actually find a solution that works for both of us!â you fire back, your eyes blazing with anger.
He scoffs, his defenses automatically going up even further. "You're one to talk! Youâre just as guilty of stubbornly sticking to your position as I am. You never listen to anyone elseâs perspectives, and then you get all defensive when someone challenges your ideas."
He runs a hand through his hair, clearly frustrated by the situation. "Maybe if you stopped being so confident in your infallibility, weâd actually be able to find a middle ground."
The argument reaches a peak, with both of you standing close, faces flushed with anger.
His eyes blaze with irritation as he glares at you, âYou never give an inch, do you? Itâs always your way or no way with you, isnât it? You canât even admit when youâre wrong.â
âYouâre so quick to point fingers and place the blame, never considering that maybe, just maybe, youâre part of the problem too,â you say, your voice shaking with frustration.
As the words hang in the air, the tension between you becomes almost unbearable.
âFuck this.â
He pulls you in for a kiss.
The kiss is intense and passionate. âShut up. Just shut up for a goddamn second,â he mutters in between kisses. His hands move to cradle your face, holding you tightly as he devours your lips.
The kiss breaks abruptly at the sound of the door opening. Jungwon steps back quickly, trying to act as if nothing had just happened, but his flushed face and the rapid rise and fall of his chest betray the intensity of the moment.
Dae raises an eyebrow at the scene before him, clearly having walked in on an interesting moment. âItâs getting late. I suggest you two go home and continue the project tomorrow.â
Jungwon shoots a sharp glare at Dae but forces himself to calm down. âYeah, alright. We were about to leave anyway." He picks up his laptop and shoves it into his bag, his movements a bit rushed and restless.
You pack your things, your heart still racing from the kiss. Jungwon watches you, his gaze never leaving you. He feels different kinds of emotionsâfrustration, confusion, and a whole lot more.
After you finish packing, he clears his throat softly. âLetâs go. Iâll walk you to your car.â He leads the way out of the office, his footsteps a little faster than usual. As you walk side by side in silence, he steals glances at you from the corner of his eye, clearly still affected by the earlier kiss.
Finally, as you reach your car, he pauses and turns to face you. âListen, about⊠that back thereââ He trails off, clearly struggling to find the right words. âI donât know why I did that. I just got so frustrated with that whole argument, and I guess I just... lost it. Iâm sorry.â
You take a deep breath, trying to steady your racing heart. âIâm sorry too.â
He lets out a deep exhale, his shoulders sagging slightly. âWe need to find a way to work together without constantly arguing and⊠making things more complicated.â
He gives a light, self-deprecating chuckle. âMaybe we should start by not screaming at each other and then kissing each other senseless.â
You look up at him, trying to process everything. âDefinitely,â you agree softly, a hint of a smile playing on your lips despite the tension.
He runs a hand through his hair again, a nervous habit youâve noticed. âI⊠I just canât figure you out sometimes, you know? One minute youâre driving me insane by being so stubborn, and the next youâre looking at me with those eyes, all innocent and⊠damn it.â He drags a hand over his face, frustration evident in every line of his body.
He continued. âAnd I canât decide if I want to rip your clothes off or wring your neck. Hell, maybe both.â
You glare at him, surprised at his words. âPervert!â you exclaim, pushing him back with a firm hand on his chest.
He laughs a low, gravelly sound. âI never claimed to be anything else. But admit it, you donât exactly hate it.â
You keep your hand on his chest, feeling the rapid beat of his heart. âStop it,â you insist, your voice softer now, almost pleading.
He looks down at your hands on his chest, a small smirk forming. He lifts his own hands and covers yours with his, holding them against his chest. âStop what? Saying what Iâm thinking? Iâve never been good at hiding my thoughts, you should know that by now.â
You sigh, frustration evident in your voice. âIâm confused. Why the hell did you kiss me?â
âBecause⊠I donât know, okay? I donât know why I did it, or why it felt so good, or why I want to kiss you again right now. I just... canât think straight around you sometimes. You make me feel all twisted up inside.â He pauses, his eyes searching your face for understanding.
âYou drive me crazy in the most frustrating and arousing way possible. I donât know how else to explain it.â
âDo you like me or what?â you ask, your voice trembling slightly.
He hesitates for just a moment, his expression torn. Then he gives a half-smile. âI⊠donât know. Maybe. Probably. Yes. I definitely want you, thatâs for sure.â
âBut Iâm also frustrated as hell by you, and confused as hell by you. Itâs a complicated mix of emotions, I can tell you that.â
You shake your head, feeling just as confused. âYouâre confused, Iâm fucking confused, bro.â
He laughs a little at your outburst. âWell, at least weâre both confused. Great way to start a... whatever this would be.â
He continues, his tone softening. âYouâre really cute when you cuss. It doesnât fit your whole innocent angel persona you usually have going on.â
You raise your eyebrows, looking at him as if he was insane. âInnocent? You have seen me fight, right?â
He rolls his eyes, but his expression is lighthearted. âYeah, I know youâre fierce. But you also give off this innocent, angelic vibe, with your long lashes and cute little pouts. Itâs confusing as hell if you want me to be honest.â
âWell, whatever this is, you and I better finish the project. So we can have that goddamn paycheck,â you say, trying to steer the conversation back to work.
âYeah, youâre right. We can figure this other stuff out later, I guess.â He takes a small step back, creating a bit of space between you. âWeâll finish the project. Just⊠try not to drive me insane in the process, okay?â
âAnd how am I supposed to do that?â you ask, tilting your head.
He gives you an exasperated look. âHow the hell should I know? Stop being so stubborn, maybe. Stop being so damn cute and looking at me like that. Thatâd be a good start.â
âI donât know what youâre talking about. Maybe you should stop being an asshole then,â you say, crossing your arms.
He laughs, shaking his head. âAnd thereâs that sharp tongue that drives me insane. Canât go two minutes without calling me an ass, can you?â
You groan, âCanât you just let me go? I really have to go home.â
âYeah, alright. I donât want to keep you from your beauty sleep any longer.â He nods at you. âHave a good night. And donât work too hard on the project tonight. Weâll continue tomorrow.â
You offer a small smile, feeling the tension ease slightly. âYou bet,â you reply, then you open the car door and slide into the driverâs seat.
He watches as you get into your car, a small smile playing on his lips. As much as the two of you butted heads and drove each other crazy, he couldnât deny the attraction that was slowly building between you.
âThat woman honestly⊠my woman,â he mutters to himself as he walks away.
đ
You and Jungwon continued to work together, and with the projectâs success, there was a sense of accomplishment that was hard to ignore. Despite all the tension, the team had pulled off something impressive.
Heâs sitting at his desk, reviewing the projectâs metrics, when he looks up and catches your eye from across the office. A half-smile quirks, and he gives a slight nod, acknowledging your shared accomplishment. For now, the projectâs success took precedence over your differences.
He watches as you return his nod. The tension between you has lessened somewhat, an unspoken truce having formed as you both focus on the successful outcome of the project.
He looks back down at his computer screen, the numbers, and figures a welcome distraction from the thoughts of you that were still on his mind.
He wonders if the peace between you will last, or if things will return to the bickering and arguing once the high of success wears off.
đ
Mr. Jeon, has decided to celebrate in the company building to acknowledge the hard work and success of the project. The office is decorated, and a small party is in full swing. Colleagues are mingling, enjoying drinks and snacks, while music plays softly in the background.
Jungwon stands off to the side of the room, nursing a drink and watching the party unfold. His eyes occasionally scan the room, searching for the one person he both wants to see and dreads seeing - you.
When he finally spots you, he feels a jolt of something in his chest - a mix of attraction and irritation. You look as effortless and beautiful as ever.
Out of hesitation, he decides to approach you. He reaches your side, clearing his throat softly to get your attention. âNeed a minute?â
You look up, meeting his gaze. âOf course.â
He leads you away from the noise and bustle of the party, finding a quieter spot in another office far away. Once there, he turns to face you. âFirst of all, I just wanted to say... that we did good. The project was a success, and we managed to put aside our differences for the sake of the company. I guess we actually make a halfway decent team.â
You nod, a small smile tugging at your lips. âI guess we do. Itâs surprising how well we managed to pull it off despite all the arguing.â
He lets out a small chuckle, a genuine smile spreading across his face. âWho would have thought, huh? The companyâs most vocal enemies actually working together and pulling off something amazing.â
âBut I guess I have to ask... how are we going to keep this truce up? You're still a headache, you know?â
You shrug, trying to keep the mood light. âI donât know. Weâll figure it out. Maybe we need to communicate better or add some ground rules.â
Jungwon's smile fades slightly, replaced by a look of frustration. âDamn it, youâre so frustrating. Iâm trying to have a serious conversation here, and you just... never give a straight answer.â
Youâre standing so close to each other that he has to tilt his head down slightly to maintain eye contact. âDo you have any idea how confusing you are? One minute I want to strangle you, and the next minute I want toââ
He cuts himself off abruptly, looking away. âNever mind, it doesn't matter.â
Youâve had enough of his mixed signals.
You roll your eyes, exasperated. âIâve had enough. Do you like me or not? I canât keep doing this if youâre just going to keep me guessing.â
He lets out a gruff laugh, shaking his head. âYouâre always so straightforward, arenât you? Canât even give me a momentâs peace to figure out what Iâm feeling.â
He looks back down at you, his expression softening. âYeah, I⊠I think I do. Love you, I mean. I know itâs insane, and itâs probably the worst idea Iâve ever had, but I canât seem to help it.â
A mixture of relief and joy floods through you. âI know because I love you too, asshole. Itâs been driving me crazy, trying to figure out how you feel. But I need to know where we stand. Are we going to keep pretending like this isnât happening?â
He's startled for a moment, not expecting your sudden admission. But as your lips meet him, he loses all self-control. He wraps his arms around you, pulling you closer as the kiss deepens.
You pull back slightly, breathless. âWe canât keep doing this. One minute weâre fighting, the next weâre kissing. We need to figure out what we really want.â
He nods, his forehead resting against yours. âI know. But right now, all I want is you.â
As the intensity of the moment takes over, he reaches for a hand behind him to lock the door.
đ
The next day,
Jungwon was walking down the hallway when he saw you. He immediately noticed something was off - you were walking a little slower than usual, and there was a slight limp in your steps.
He frowns, walking over to you with concern on his face. "Are you alright? You look like you're walking a little... stiffly."
You glare at him. "Your fault."
He raises an eyebrow at your accusation, his mind flashing back to the previous nightâs... activities. He notes the slight flush still evident on your cheeks and the subtle limp in your gait. "Yeah, well, you didnât seem to mind last night," he teases, tilting his head.
"Good thing no one caught us," you mutter, trying to keep your voice down.
He chuckles as he backs you into the wall behind you. "Iâll admit, you were pretty loud last night." He braces one hand against the wall beside your head, leaning in closer. "If someone had walked by, they definitely would have heard you. I might have had a hard time explaining⊠things."
"Let's say we were fighting," you suggest, rolling your eyes. "At least itâs a believable excuse."
He laughs, fully amused at the thought. "A fight? At 1 am? They would never believe that. Not with the sounds you were making. But for the record, I think it was worth the risk."
"Whatever. Come on," you grumble, embracing him for support as you start to walk. "I just hope I can make it through the day without collapsing."
"You know, we could always skip work and spend the day at my place. Give your legs some rest," he whispers to you.
"You think Mr. Jeon would allow us?" you ask skeptically, raising an eyebrow. "He's pretty strict about attendance, especially after big projects."
"Probably not. But I can be... persuasive when I want to be. If I tell him we need some time to discuss important project-related matters, he might just sign off on it." He squeezes your arm gently. "Itâs only the responsible thing to do, after all."
"You do know that the project is finished, right? What project-related matters could we possibly discuss?" you remind him.
"I know. But we have to keep up appearances, donât we? And who knows, we might find something... new to work on," he says with a playful grin. "And I can think of several things that need my immediate attention."
"I'm too sore, Jungwon!" you scold him, trying to keep your tone serious. "I can barely walk, let alone... do anything else."
"I bet you are. I might have gotten a little carried away last night." He pulls back slightly to look at your face, his expression softening. "We donât have to do anything too strenuous, I promise. We can just relax, watch a movie, order some food."
"We did work really hard on that project. Maybe we do deserve a break," you admit, a small smile tugging at your lips. "But what if Mr. Jeon finds out weâre just slacking off?"
He shrugs, a sly grin on his face. "Who cares what the CEO would allow? Weâre both senior team members, and weâve done a damn good job with the project. Iâm sure weâve earned a little break. And honestly, Iâd much rather spend the day with you in my bed than stuck here in the office."
"Fine," you finally relent, unable to resist his charm. "But only because I really need a break."
A satisfied smile spreads across his face as you cave in. He reluctantly releases his hold on you. "Great. Iâll go talk to Mr. Jeon real quick, then we can get out of here."
He glances down at your legs, frowning slightly. "Can you even walk comfortably in those heels? You look like youâre about to fall over!"
"I gotta look hot, alright?" you retort, lifting your chin defiantly. "Canât have everyone thinking Iâm slacking off just because Iâm sore."
He looks at you, taking in the tight pencil skirt and stiletto heels youâre wearing. Heâs having a hard time disagreeing with your statement. "You look hot, alright, but you shouldâve worn something more comfortable if you knew your legs would be this sore."
"I didnât plan on being sore, genius. Just tell Mr. Jeon," you say, exasperated. "And hurry up. I donât want to be standing here all day."
He rolls his eyes, but heâs still smiling. "Alright, alright. Iâm going."
đ
Jungwon has his arm wrapped around your shoulders while lying on his bed as you both watch the movie. His fingers absently stroke your arm as he watches the screen.
He glances down at you, noticing how you look in his oversized t-shirt. There was something domestic and endearing about it that made him feel butterflies in his stomach.
He smiles, "You look better in my clothes than you do in your work clothes."
"You are kidding," you say, giving him a playful nudge. "Your clothes are so baggy on me. I look like I'm drowning in them."
He laughs and kisses the top of your head. "I'm serious. You should just start wearing my stuff and call it a day. It suits you better." He nuzzles his face into your hair. "And I have to admit, I like seeing you in my clothes and the way you smell like me."
You roll your eyes playfully. "You're just saying that because you like the idea of me being marked by you. Territorial much?"
He reaches over for a piece of food from the tray on the nightstand, holding it up to your lips. "Here, have some food. You must be hungry. Then maybe we can finish the movie and see if we can find something else to do."
You open your mouth, and he feeds you the food, watching as you chew, his eyes full of adoration. "Thanks. I was starving," you admit after swallowing. "This movie night idea was perfect."
Once you've swallowed, he sets the food aside and shifts on the bed. "You know, I never actually asked you out properly even though we already said 'I love you' to each other."
"I was waiting for you to say that," you reply, smiling up at him. "I mean, we've been acting like a couple, but I was starting to wonder if you were ever going to make it official."
He laughs again, but his eyes never leave your face. He reaches up and brushes a strand of hair away from your forehead. "Well, I guess Iâm saying it now, huh? I still canât believe we went from hating each other to this. Itâs crazy."
"I know, right?" you say with a soft laugh. "I thought you were the most insufferable person Iâve ever met. But now, I can't imagine my life without you."
"I guess what they say is true. Thereâs a fine line between love and hate." Then he continued. "Although, Iâm starting to think it was more of a âlustâ rather than a âloveâ for a while there."
"Maybe," you say thoughtfully. "But I think there was always something more. We just didn't realize it."
"Well, now itâs definitely both. I think I went from âdespisingâ you to âdesiringâ you to âlovingâ you in record time." He said chuckling.
"Arenât you gonna ask me out properly?" you say bluntly, raising an eyebrow at him.
"What, this isnât formal enough? Maybe I should get on one knee and ask you properly then," he teases, pausing to look at you seriously. ââAlright..ââ
"Will you officially be my girlfriend, even though we basically are already? Pretty please?"
"Yes, of course," you say with a grin. "But you better make it up to me with a proper date soon."
He then presses his lips against yours in a deep, passionate kiss. After a moment, he reluctantly pulls back, breaking the kiss but still keeping his face near yours. "Thank god. I was afraid you were going to say no."
"Bitch, are you serious right now?" you say, looking at him as if he was crazy. "You know I couldn't say no to you."
"No, I know you couldnât resist me even if you tried, babe." He leans in to plant soft kisses on your cheek. "I love you. Mwah. Mwah."
"I love you too," you whisper, snuggling closer to him. "And for the record, I think this whole thing is pretty amazing. I never thought I'd say this, but I'm glad we were forced to work together."
"Me too," he says softly. "It's been a wild ride, but I wouldn't trade it for anything."
Yeah, it was clear that things did take a turn after that first kiss. It was a hectic rollercoaster of a ride, but I guess being forced to work on a project with the person you despise can turn it into either the best or worst experience ever.
But for you? It sure as hell was the best.
king of kings | kim mingyu (schedule)
King of Kings à©âĄËł part of the 13 Gods of Olympus collab by @beomcoups and @wooahaeproductions
synopsis: If youâd known all those years ago that you would have to compete for his heart, you would have never torn it to pieces. [angst, organized crime au, arranged marriage, childhood enemies to lovers, mystery, supernatural, smut, loosely inspired by the story of King Thrushbeard]
schedule:
â official teaser - 10.16.24 â taglist opens - 10.16.24 â visual teaser and playlist - 10.23.24 â taglist closes - 11.01.24 â fic drop - 11.02.24
note: boy oh boy.. this is going to be interesting. i hope you all are ready hehe. // banner credit: @94ugh
endpoint
Pairing: Jeon Wonwoo x f!reader
Genre: fluff, smut, angst, FWB to idiots to lovers
warnings: Â cumshot/facial, unprotected sex, multiple sex scenes, oral sex (m & f receiving), rough sex, breath play (choking), mentions of exhibitionism, face fucking, virgin wonwoo mentions, idiots in love, edging (emotionally), impact play, sir kink (brief), alcohol consumption
Length: ~19.5k
Note: thank you to @gyuswhore my love, my life, for suffering through this with me. this fic is set in the same universe as her gyu fic for this collab so check it out (threat). also thank u @haologram and everyone else who beta'd this for me bc im sensitive. follow @camandemstudios for more fics!!! i will come back later and tag the people who commented on the teaser but rn im getting day drunk hehehe
summary: Senior year of college is meant to be full of celebration and smooth sailing. Years of work culminating in the final semesters that will send you off into the real world where clubs, sports, and weekends packed with hungover volunteering to pad your resume no longer mattered. Itâd be a piece of cake if it wasnât for your fuck buddy turned coworker having the same plan. But only one of you can get the departmentâs most coveted recommendation that all but guarantees your acceptance. Tension rises and the nearly four year thing youâve had with Wonwoo approaches its endpoint.
collab m.list || m.list
This blog is intended for 18+ only! Minors/blank blogs will be blocked.
âWhatâs the difference between a proton and an electron again?â
âShoot me in the fucking head,â Wonwoo whispers harshly.
Heâs a seat over, a laptop covered in gaming stickers and a coffee cup containing a lethal amount of caffeine occupying the space atop the narrow lecture desk. Itâs a feign to productivity. His screen is split between thesis notes and a countdown to a new video game release that unfortunately hits 0 in the middle of lecture.Â
Dr. Wagnerâs intro to chemistry course isnât difficult â freshman aside â which is why you and Wonwoo agreed to be her teaching assistants. Easy money and a way to get in her good graces come grad school application season. Youâve TAâed the same course since sophomore year for different professors but itâs all the same; the metaphorical killing field before hopeful freshmen become cannon fodder in the real trial of will: O Chem.Â
âMe first,â you whisper back.Â
Wonwoo slumps in his chair, opening the shared drive keeping track of problem areas to touch on in lab hours, and typing âcheck for basic brain activityâ under the class To-Do list.Â
Fair enough. If they canât understand the basics this far into the semester then you two are in for a world of hurt for the next practical. You're in for a world of hurt come next study hall when half of them will complain about failing their quiz this morning despite having the answers spoon fed straight from the notes.
[09:48] You:Â be nice
[09:48] wonwoo: if they were smarter, id be nicer
[09:48] You: maybe theyâre scared stupid
It wouldnât be too far off. One time a freshman burst into tears while asking Wonwoo to check their practice work during lab hours. Wonwoo swears he didnât say anything and the kid looked on the verge of a mental breakdown if the wind blew the wrong way.
[09:48] wonwoo: from what?
[09:48] You: the fact ur trying to kill them with your mind
[09:49 ]wonwoo : i wouldnât kill them
[09:49] wonwoo: just maim or seriously injure so they dont come to class and say dumb shit
Dr. Wagner fields more questions in front of the powerpoint. More âdumb shitâ Wonwoo rolls his eyes at with such obvious disgust even you feel chastised. Luckily, no one can see his face from the front row besides you.
[09:49] You: you wonder why they like me more
[09:50] wonwoo: i know why they like you more
[09:50] You: oh?
Stifling an eye roll of your own you throw a glance his way as the next message comes through,
[09:50] wonwoo: nice ass
âAlright, Y/N and Wonwoo will be passing out the study guide for the next exam. We still have a few weeks so donât worry about the back half but try and review the modules weâve done so far and bring questions for them during study hours,â Dr. Wagner prattles off.
The gigantic stack of printouts is split in half for you and Wonwoo to disperse around the massive lecture hall. Over one hundred students sit in this lecture; the unfortunate ones who were forced to take a 9 AM course three days a week. Half look like their brain is melting out of their ears, otherâs clearly havenât paid attention at all, and a few are sound asleep. Itâs Friday after all. They probably didnât get back from their Thirsty Thursday night out until a few hours ago.
You wouldnât even be here if Wonwoo wasnât a built in insurance policy.
Dr. Wagner collects her things and heads towards the front exit with a cheery, âHave a good weekend!â
âThere's a party at Sigma tonight,â Wonwoo shares as you both pack your own bags. The next class is already shuffling through the doors to claim their seats.
âI have work until eleven.â
âAfter?â
Shouldering your bag, you head towards the door where the next class is already trickling in to find their seats. âDonât you have a tournament tomorrow?â
âI only have to be at the party for like an hour. I can come and walk you home.â
âFine,â you nod. âBut bring your laptop. I think Chan fucked up the last set of results and we need to fix them.â
Itâs not unusual for Wonwoo to spend his Friday nights with you; or another night for that matter. He lives in a dingy frat house on the edge of campus with twenty other guys. Itâs an act of mercy. A long standing tradition from the week before freshman year when you two were the only chemistry majors in your orientation group and that turned into a clumsy hook up at an upperclassmanâs party. You didnât know heâd be a virgin and he didnât know your high school boyfriend dumped you less than twenty four hours before you left for college (but not before you lost your own virginity in the backseat of his car).Â
Itâd beenâŠnot good.Â
Wonwoo was awkward and you were unsure. But he was sweet under the bravado; walked you home that night, pretended he wasnât interested in the fact your roommate never moved in, leaving the suite empty. But he wasnât a good enough actor to feign nonchalance when you invited him upstairs. Turns out sex was a lot better the second time around, in a bed that didnât belong to an unknown upperclassman who couldâve burst in any minute.Â
Wonwoo isnât your boyfriend. Youâre too busy piecing together the ten year plan concocted since junior year of highschool to even think about such frilly ideas. Thereâs barely enough time as it is; youâve got work, a full class schedule, TAing, and all the random clubs youâve wiggled your way into to pad your resume.Â
And heâs busy too. Navigating a sports scholarship and one of the hardest majors left barely enough time for him to wipe his own ass, let alone date. Then came research hours and TAing and the fact volleyball, apparently, wasnât just a one semester sport, there were scrimmages, workouts, and tournaments out of season.Â
Itâs been over three years of your arrangement which works best because you donât have to spend precious brain power deciphering if some random guy you went out with once is playing hard to get or just straight up not interested. You have Wonwoo. Heâs simple.Â
So what you have now, friends. Who hook up. And work together. Who also happens to be applying for the same PhD program for next year. Not together but at the same time.
The application website stares back from your laptop with horror.Â
Itâs still too early to submit any materials but itâs been highlighted in bold red in your calendar since two years ago. Everything is ready to go the second it opensâexcept Dr. Wagnerâs recommendation. Itâs the sole reason you (and Wonwoo) agreed to be her TAs this semester; sheâs one of the programâs most notorious alum, her words as good as gold in securing a spot.Â
Someone hacks a cough and shatters the eerie silence of the library. The backtrack of sparse typing and the custodian shuffling around to have been the only company throughout your shift. No one would choose to rot at any of the weathered study tables late on a Friday night so early in the semester.Â
With the abundance of free time, you fixed Chanâs mistakes in his set of trials easily, no thanks to Wonwoo who still hasnât shown up. Itâs good though. Your stoichiometry homework is submitted three days before the deadline and the mountain of emails clogging your inbox from hopeless undergrads is in the single digits. Half the labs from last week are graded for Dr. Wagnerâs approval, the other half can wait until Sunday night. A long weekend of sleep awaits once the clock hits eleven and youâre free to run home.
Wonwoo stumbless in five minutes before the clock runs out. His duffle for tomorrow is slung over his shoulder and heâs already dressed for bed, rumpled sweats and a hat he definitely wore to the party with high hopes to cut out early.Â
âYouâre late,â you acknowledge, cramming your belongings back into your bag. Heâs close enough to get a whiff of. âAnd youâre drunk.â
âI am not drunk,â he argues.
The lazy smile tugging at the corner of his lips says otherwise but it isnât an argument worth having. All you want to do is get home and pass out.
He shoulders you bag, presenting his hand when you insist you can carry it on your own. The dry warm of his palm against your cold is pleasant enough you donât argue as you tug him towards the automatic doors.
âHave a goodnight, Mr. Lee,â you call towards the security desk.
The guard, old enough to be your grandfather, calls back, âYou too, sweetheart.â
Out in the balmy night, you tug Wonwoo down the street in the direction of your apartment. Two blocks and then a right turn leaving you outside the dowdy building with hallways that constantly reek of weed and new paint smell.
A pack of freshmen girls heading somewhere, marked by their matching uniform of jeans and black tops of various coverage, crowd the sidewalk straight ahead. Someone is crying, one is on the phone, and a few others stand dumbly waiting for their next movie like zombies â all incredibly wasted. You barrel through them without acknowledgement. A few drunken bitter âbitchâs hit your back but you ignore them to focus on the man struggling to push through the crowd without accidentally shoulder checking any of them.
On the other side, you ask, âHave fun at the party?â
âSome pledge puked on Jihoonâs stuff,â he huffs, nose scrunching.
âMay he rest in peace.â
Wonwoo sways from side to side from the weight of your bag but also whatever radioactive mix was served at the party. The stairs provide an extra challenge since the elevator has been broken for weeks but thankfully itâs a short trip to the second floor.
He presents your belongings with routine ease once the front door of your apartment looms ahead. Music from the floor above shakes the walls; hopefully you can make up for the lack of sleep tomorrow morning.
There isnât much space inside the four walls you call home â the âkitchenâ which is a single counter with a stove and fridge youâre barely around to use, fifteen feet away your bed in the corner, bordered by your desk at the foot cramped with a spray of errant papers and books youâve been too busy to deal with. The monitor doubles as a TV and finally a tiny loveseat with a broken leg replaced by a stack of hard covers completes the room.
You beeline for the bathroom to wash away the filth of a long day and Wonwoo, keeping on trend, follows into the cramped space.
âCan I help you?â you ask, shirt tossed into the bin in the corner.
Wonwooâs shirt goes the same and then his pants after a brief struggle. âYou know I sleep better when I shower.âÂ
True.
âAnd I doubt you're gonna let me in your bed if Iâm dirty.â
Even truer.
The water is still cold when you step in but the man glued to your back fights the worst of the chill away. Goosebumps prickle along your skin but have nothing to do with the vent that points directly into the stall (whoever designed the apartments must have had a sick sense of humor) and everything to do with Wonwooâs mouth tracing the curve of your shoulder.
Forcing the heat blooming between your legs down to a simmer, you focus on washing up and getting into bed before it rolls into a boil and you do something stupid thatâll only leave you and Wonwoo struggling for balance.Â
Shower sex is a dangerous sport. Shower sex with Wonwoo has left you both with bruises. Drunken shower sex with Wonwoo will get you both killed.
Soft hums tickle your neck as you clean up. There isnât enough room for two people to stand in the spray at once so you take turns hogging the steamy water and braving the frigid cold until the last bits of soap swirl the drain.
Even when drying off you stay in each otherâs orbit until the need for clothes and sleep drive you both out of the bathroom and back into the equally cramped space of your room.
Itâs not until youâre laying on the mattress, darkness snug on all sides, that you feel Wonwoo roll atop you with purpose.
âWhat are you doing?â
âNothing,â Wonwoo hums into your stomach, fingers crawling up your bare legs.
âThat,â you inhale at the nip of his teeth on the curve of your thigh, âdoesnât feel like nothing to me.â
Wonwoo doesnât answer but gives you plenty of time to brush him off while bruising your skin. You donât. Instead you sink deeper into the blankets and let him push your shirt up until you're bare once more.
The fuzziness of alcohol lingers in his veins â just enough that he smiles into the strip of skin above your panties as you sigh and arch under the delicious weight of wandering hands and mouth at your nipple.
âWonwoo,â you sigh and heâs up and kissing you with eager clumsiness.
A familiar prod at your core through his boxers crashes bubbles through your veins. You felt it in the bathroom but now is when you finally get to indulge with subtle grinds Wonwoo meets in his own search for friction.Â
âDonât you need to be upâughâearly tomorrow?â
He kisses you slowly, tongue dragging along your bottom lip until your mouth opens under his. It burns you from the inside out. Mindlessly you shift your legs to frame his hips better but Wonwoo kisses deeper and all you can think about is giving in to whatever scheme heâs working up to have you both naked and panting.
He leans back a fraction to speak, giving in when you chase his lips before ducking to nip at your ear and mumbling a response. âDonât worry about it.â
âI will worry about it when you snooze twenty alarms and your team hunts me down because I smothered their star player with a pillow,â you snort but heat under a squeeze of his fingers at your sides.
âSleep when Iâm done with this.â
âAnd what is âthisâ exactly?â
A harsh suck at your jaw has your stomach tight. heavy and thick until need drips down your spine to coil in your gut and the emptiness between your thighs becomes unignorable. He hides pleased groans in the curve of your neck until you force a hand under the band of his underwear. Eyes opening, you watch the muscles of his back tense and flex as he rocks against you, fucking your fist greedily.
It doesnât last long. Wonwoo gets antsy under the taunting pressure of your thumb and descends back down your body with burning lips. âTake your shirt off.â
âItâs cold,â you complain but do as he asks.Â
He traces your figure clad in nothing but your glasses and a soiled pair of panties; damp at the crotch from his attention and Wonwoo slips a finger under the hem to tease you that inch closure to depravity.
Wonwoo laves against the hickey on the inside of your thigh from a week ago, itâs yellowed and perfectly shaped like his mouth. Itâs tender under his attention, even the gentle tracing on his nose forcing you to wince in discomfort.Â
He coos, kissing it before skating back to the hem of your panties, lips vibrating against your skin. âSorry I didnât come earlier.â
Why he brings it up now is a mystery. Or the fact he brings it up at all. Life happens. Youâve blown him off more than once for a late night in the library; no hard feelings.
âItâs fine,â you sigh as he tugs the last scrap of fabric off your body and pushes your knees up to display you like a meal.
Spreading you apart, he lands a wet kiss at your entrance before teasing with the heat of his tongue.Â
In a beg for sanity you twist a tight grip in his hair; a tangled mess from his drunk endeavors. Wonwoo pushes harder, drowns in your taste with enthusiasm as you moan and sigh.Â
âF-fuck.â
He wonât ask if itâs good. He knows it is. Nearly four years of hook ups attunes him to your pleasure, a well rehearsed routine that has you both ache in the best way.Â
You lose yourself in shaking breaths, feet planted to drive up into his mouth for more. He sucks your clit and nearly gets his head crushed by your thighs. It doesnât take much and he knows it.Â
You chant âgonna cumâ in choked groans that almost die at the edge of your teeth but Wonwoo hears and takes it as permission to pull out the stops, hand at your thing with a harsh grip and fingers sinking home.
Heâs memorized all the signs of your want; the wrecked echo of your throat and the sounds he pulls from you a clear tell. He flattens his tongue, holding steady as grind straight into mindless bliss. Spit pools and drips and slips down onto the sheets. Wonwoo hums praise, unintelligible but you vaguely know itâs something thatâd make you blush you could hear it over the pounding in your ears.
Back arching, your vision flares white at the edges and when Wonwoo realizes what's happening he makes it last until your fist ball up and youâre floating.
Wonwoo backs down as you twitch through the tail end, sloppy kisses to your clit that could knock into another fit if he isnât careful. But even as you tremble the only thing you want is the weight of his cock in your mouth, or inside you. You arenât picky as long as you get to feel him cum too.
You finally manage to pry Wonwoo from between your legs with an ankle to his ribs. Youâre not done with him despite the fatigue hanging around your shoulders like dead weight. He angles over top of you for a kiss that tastes too much like pussy for your liking but itâs hot knowing heâs covered in you so you push until his shoulders meet the sheets and you can claim his lap.
His dick strains through his underwear, preening when you rock back into the heat. His nostrils flare when you grab for it, stiff enough to sink onto easily.Â
âOh god,â he groans, head digging back into the pillows to watch you like a goddess.
His fingers web across the tops of your thighs, a harsh grip keeping you flat as he grinds up into the wet heat of your pussy. You whimper and sigh for him; all the sounds he loves to hear. You squeeze your chest, taut nipples framed between the slants of your fingers to entice him until he reaches around and knocks you forward for the sole purpose of taking one in his mouth.
Your eyes roll back, jaw locked open, drowning in the stretch and the bite of his mouth and the hands squeezing your ass so hard it hurts. Wonwoo groans, throaty and desperate. âGonna cum. Wanna cum in you. Holy shit.â
He gets you on your back. Too absorbed in his own end, heâs dead weight with his tongue between your lips and harsh thrusts that take him right to the edge. It gives that grit against your clit that means youâll come too, soaked in cum and spit and sweat.
You wish heâd flip you on your front and fuck you with a hand between you shoulder blades and the other tangled in your hair. Thatâs the kind of fuck thatâd leave you satisfied the entire weekend heâs busy but heâs running out of steam just doing this, picking up speed in his thrust, the clap of bodies filling the room.
Chanting his name like a broken record, âWonwoo, Wonwoo, Wonwooâ breathy but loud enough your neighbors will leave another passive aggressive note on your door come morning, all you can think about is his cum. On you, in you. A sick part wants him to pull out and cum on your face â he hasnât, not in a long time because priorities and responsibilities and you're usually lucky to have even five minutes alone before someone needs either of you. But you want it. God do you want it.
âCum on my face,â you whimper. Thereâs drool on your lips and sweat in your hairline. Even if he doesn't, you'll need another shower anyway.
A strangled noise escapes from between his teeth at your neck. Then heâs driving forward so hard you burn; painfully so, mouth locked in a silent choke. Your orgasm rips through your insides, jagged at the edges where Wonwoo fucks himself into your guts.Â
âFuck yeah,â he grunts, pulling away and replacing the grip of your pussy with a tight fist as he straddles your chest.Â
The taste of cock floods your tongue, heady and intoxicating. You get one, two drags against the stiff head and then heâs cumming, dripping his spend over your lips, then your cheek, then your glasses because heâs a sick freak. Even in the dim light from the window he twitches at the sight. You open your mouth and replace his hold, moaning as more comes to the surface. You swallow down as far as heâll go which isnât much in this position but itâs the thought that counts.
Wonwoo grinds to halt with an occasional kick of his hips that leaves you choking â rigid limbs locking in place until he melts with sticky satisfaction.Â
Heâs up and off, your glasses in hand for a thorough cleaning, not even bothering to flick on any of the lights but you hear the sink running in the bathroom before he comes padding back.
âGod,â you whimper in disgust. âThatâs so gross.â
âYouâre the one who asked for it,â Wonwoo snorts, soft passes of a damp cloth on your skin focused on getting you clean enough to sleep.
âBecause itâs hot but you aim for shit.â
Wonwoo tosses the rag somewhere, flopping down and pulling you close as possible with a kiss on your forehead. âNext time Iâll aim for your hair.â
âBitch.â
The sound of music from upstairs pulses through your head as you drift off, Wonwoo asleep on your chest, fingers laced together on the sheets beside your indecipherably intertwined bodies.
Your week is divided into a simple pattern. Mondays, Wednesdays, and Fridays you wake bright and early to attend Dr. Wagnerâs chem lecture and then stay on campus attending every other class you could find to fill the gap between your evening shift at the library. Tuesdays and Thursdays are void of responsibility until your afternoon lab with the freshman near tears while learning basic titration for four hours, followed by office hours where said freshman finally come to actually cry about their grades. Those are the nights you, Chan, Wonwoo and a handful of other lab techs work on research that carries the same threat of waterworks.Â
Itâs there Dr. Wagner pulls you and Wonwoo aside.
âI know you both are applying to Dr. Collins lab for your PhD studies,â she starts.Â
Her office reflects the same disarray as her personality; warm and lived in. Papers and exams are organized in chaos, thick stacks lining her desk waiting for you and Wonwoo to enter them into the online grade book. Books, some leather, some paperback, some the glossy cover of a textbook with cracked spines and yellowing pages are crammed into the bookshelves lining the walls until they threaten to collapse from the weight. It smells like coffee, plants, and the candle she always has burning. Itâs a cozy hovel overlooking the rear courtyard of the science building that resembles the sterility of a hospital.Â
Wonwoo occupies the other barrel chair with worn upholstery. Youâve barely seen him in the past three weeks, too busy with volunteering and working and classes while his own responsibilities keep him so exhausted itâs truly a miracle heâs even here. Dark stains ring his eyes beneath his glasses and he looks paler than usual. Youâll ask about it tonight when he comes over to work on your most recent stoichiometry project (which will be forgotten in favor of passing out during a movie while you play with his hair if history is anything to go by).
âI donât think Iâve ever met two students who belong more in his lab,â she continues.
You try not to preen, but academic validation is a hell of a drug to caffeine addicted undergrads. Wonwoo perks up too. Three and a half years of barely being people for this moment and itâs finally in reach.
âHowever,â Dr. Wagner clasps her hands atop the dark wooden desk. âIâm writing only one recommendation this semester. It might seem unfair but I want to commit to the student that deserves it the most since my schedule doesnât allow me much free time.â
Itâs like being underwater. You hear her words but nothing registers, blinking rapidly in case this is a hallucination from falling asleep in the lab again.
âI know it might not be the news you hoped for but I know senior year is a lot, especially for students as involved as you all, and I thought this could alleviate some of the stress. You two are the only students Iâm considering. So please, keep up the incredible work and we can talk again at the end of the semester when I have a more holistic evaluation of your progress.â
She stands to leave, snagging her purse and blowing out the candle with finality before abandoning the shit storm in your lap for whatever else she has to do on a Thursday night. Probably retell the events of the last five minutes to other professors in the department, laughing at the way youâve turned purple from holding your breath.
âHave a good night you two! See you tomorrow!â
The office, once warm, feels hollow. You feel hollow.Â
âWhat the fuck?â Wonwoo hasnât moved either, glued to his seat as he stares at Dr. Wagnerâs now vacant chair with his mouth wide in shock.
âDid that just happen?â you scoff in disbelief. âIs she serious?â
Wonwoo collapses over his knees with his hands scrubbing at his face like he also might be hallucinating. âI needed that recommendation.â
âWell, so do I,â you argue.
âI know. This is bullshit.â
âDid Changkyun say anything like this happened last year when she wrote one for him?â
âNo, all three people who asked her got one.â
âOh, so itâs just us she hates. Great!â you throw your hands up, sinking deeper in the chair. Maybe itâll swallow you whole and the entire ordeal will cease to exist.
âSheâs probably just trying to get in our heads so we donât slack off this semester.â
âHave we ever slacked off any semester? Iâve been on the Presidentâs Honor List since freshman year. Youâve been on the Presidentâs Honor List since freshman year. Weâre those people.â
Since starting college, since that one night during orientation where you and Wonwoo became a âweâ. Not in the relationship sense, but in the way two lines merge. Same path, same goals, same classes, same PhD program prospects. There was plenty you two did separately but more you did together. Neither competing, but working together.Â
But now thatâs over.
Because only one of you can get into Dr. Collins lab, only one of you can get the recommendation, and only one of you can have what you both worked tirelessly for over the past three years.
âListenââ you stand up and scrub at your own face. âItâll be fine. Weâll figure it out.â
âWe? Only one of us can get her recommendation. Whatâs there to figure out?â
Your face goes hot. Heâs right. âWell, I need that recommendation.â
âSo do I,â Wonwoo argues, eyes cold.
âFine.â
That recommendation is mine.
âFine!â
Weâll see about that.
Wonwoo stays in her office, flinching as you slam the door and flee.
The issue with fighting with Wonwoo is that as mad as both of you are, there are a million responsibilities you share that require close proximity.
Presently, itâs grading the last batch of exams. Seventy eight packets. And because Dr. Wagner doesnât believe in convenience, it all has to be graded by the hand of two TAs running on nothing but caffeine and spite.
Which means itâs past midnight and the couch has a permanent impression of Wonwooâs ass while you both silently fume and scratch through wrong answers with a heavy hand in red ink.
The weather reflects the atmosphere; pouring rain and thunder loud enough to shake the windows. The power has flickered in and out since the rain started but you're both too stubborn to call it quits â if there is nothing to keep you occupied then you might rip his throat out.
Wonwoo doesnât even ask if you want more coffee before he snags your empty mug and moves to the kitchenette. You donât look up when he sets it back down, and only grab it and take the first sip of perfectly steaming hot sweetness when he flops back on the couch without another word.Â
Then the power goes out again, and doesnât come back.
âAre you fucking kidding me?â
Using the flashlight on your phone, you search the drawers of your desk for candles. There nowhere to be found amongst the stacks of unopened sticky notes and tangled cords.Â
Wonwoo shuffles behind you, papers landing on the coffee table completely abandoned. âWeâve been at this for hours. Letâs just go to sleep.â
âI have them in here somewhere,â you bite, another handful of chargers and a stapled youâve never used and other things you didnât even realize you own fill the drawer. You move to the second. âThereâs only a few tests left.â
âWe can do them tomorrow. It can wait.â
âNo,â you spit like a curse.
Whatever Wonwoo was planning to say dies on his lips. âFine.âÂ
His shirt lands over your head, you rip it off only to find him half naked in the dark, huddling under one of the throw blankets you keep on the back of the couch. âWhat are you doing?â
âIâm sleeping.â
âOn the couch?âÂ
âYep.â
âYouâre too tall.â
âWell,â he draws like a pouty kid. âI donât feel like sharing the bed with you.â
In a way itâs safer to argue about something trivial like this versus the entire reason youâve iced each other out since that day in her office. Because at least like this, you wonât lose him. Itâs stupid and petty but at least youâre speaking to each other; breaking through that wall of silence thatâs been steadily growing more and more unnavigable as the inevitable draws nearer.
âFine, then Iâll sleep on the couch and you take the bed.â
âNo.â
âNo?â
âNo. N. O.â
Fine.
Itâs difficult to navigate in the dark. Your knees end up a victim to the edge of the coffee table and you trip over the edge of the rug, but you find the couch. Reaching down, you find his chest, then his shoulder. And once youâre sufficiently oriented you sit on him.
âOw,â Wonwoo grunts as you flop down, elbow in his gut and his chin hitting your forehead. âWhat are you doing?â
You wedge in closer, slipping between his body and the cushions, bracing to kick him off by force if needed. âSleeping.â
âHere?â he asks. Too aware of your plan, he turns as well, grabbing the back of the couch overhead to stay put.
âYouâre too tall to sleep here.â
âAnd weâre both too big to sleep here together. Take the bed.â
âNo,â you huff.
âNo?â
âNo. N.O. I believe youâre familiar with the word,â you spit.
âYouâre being ridiculous.â
âIf you keep talking then neither of us will sleep.â
âNeither of us are gonna sleep anyway. You move too much to be comfortable like this.â
Heâs right of course. Your hips already ache but if you move then heâll find some way to pull you off. âIâm fine.â
âYouâre being ridiculous.â
You do the mature thing and bite him.Â
The muscles corded around his pec twitch under your mouth as he flinches. âWhat the hell was that for?âÂ
You do it again.
âStop.â
âOr what?â you ask, muffled in his skin as you move to leave another bite.
Wonwoo also does the mature thing and pins your wrists in one hand, maneuvering until you're sandwiched between the couch with his chest flat to your back.
âI canât breathe like this,â you muffle into the cushions.
âOh, how tragic.â You feel his words tickle the back of your neck rather than hear them.Â
Wonwoo releases your wrists pinned to your stomach. His hand finds its way under your shirt, his shirt from some stupid frat fundraiser youâd been coerced into attending, flat to your belly with soothing circles. His calf hooks over your own to tangle your bodies together. He kisses the back of your neck, a simple brush of his lips that lingers.
Itâs easier to feel everything in the dark. Your annoyance and frustration forged over the past weeks melts away and all thatâs left is the need to have Wonwoo close. Just like this. Where there are no deadlines, or responsibilities. Where you both can drown in each othersâ presence and everything else is washed away in the heavy drops pounding the windows outside.
Here, everything is uncomplicated.
The next rumble of thunder is loud enough to send you both in the air. Unfortunately, Wonwoo drags you backwards off the couch and to the floor. You land relatively unscathed but he knocks his elbow into the coffee table.
âAre you okay?â
Wonwoo groans and curses, cradling his elbow.
âAw, tell the doctor where it hurts,â you coo, prodding his side.
He snatches your hand and pins it to his chest but not before lacing his fingers through your own. The gentle rise of and fall of breathing and the thud of his heart reverberates down your arm and straight into your own chest where something frozen softens. âHas anyone told you youâre annoying when youâre tired?â
âYes. You. Lots of times.â
âGood. Wanna make sure youâre aware.â
Lighting turns everything white, a quick flash highlighting the room. There and gone and leaving you more disoriented than before. Rolling over, you hook a thigh over his lap which he welcomes, tugging you closer and absorbing the proximity like second nature. Youâre a glutton for warmth â Wonwooâs warmth specifically â even in his sweater and his sweat shorts and his shirt, you still want more of him.
âWe canât sleep like this.â
You donât want to move â laying like this, in the dark, nose dug into his chest as you twisting your fingers in his, squeezing and glowing pathetically when he squeezes back â all you want is to drown in him a little longer. Until you're forced to come up for breath.
But the sore spot between you two is still raw like a fresh bruise.
âThen sleep in the bed,â his lips drags over your knuckles as he speaks.
âNo. You sleep in the bed, youâre too tall to sleep on the couch.â
âFine.â Wonwoo jumps up from his place on the floor, grabbing your hands once again before dragging you around the coffee table towards the opposite side of the room. Itâs ridiculously childish, especially in the dark where he bounces off the desk and the rug roughens the back of your legs.
He shimmies you around a corner and a cloud of laughter puffs between your lips. âWhat are you doing?â
âIâm sleeping in the bed, and youâre sleeping in the bed with me.â
âWhat if I donât want to sleep next to you?â
âThen Iâll cry. Like that time we watched Steel Magnolias.â
âHave mercy,â you whimper.
âThen get your ass in bed.â
Deflating like a balloon, you stand. Wonwoo keeps his hands on you the entire time, guiding you down to the mattress and covering your body with his own just in case of an escape. He bunkers down in the safety of your neck, dragging your hands to his hair, mimicking the motions he craves until you take up the action and gently comb through the tangles.
A part of you wants to cry. Preemptively mourn the end of this â whatever this is. Late nights with Wonwoo, whispering in the dark about clueless underclassmen and annoying professors. Taking turns scrolling through adoptable cats at the local rescue. Cooing over them, rolling your eyes when Wonwoo finds Pixel still listed as available for adoption, a sign to him that heâs meant to have her except he lives in a frat house. Or the nights neither of you can sleep and take a trip to the local diner and tuck yourselves away in a corner booth to watch drunk people cling to consciousness over waffles and hash browns.Â
There will be no more of that. Not by the time winter break comes. One of you is getting the gold ticket and the other will be up in the air with the hundreds of other people competing for the same handful of slots. And if one of you doesn't get in?Â
âWas that so hard?â he whispers into your collar.
When you donât answer, he looks up at. In the cast of lighting coming through the window heâs the same Wonwoo. The one youâve been best friends with for years now. The one who is practically glued to your side whenever possible.Â
The one who youâll have to say goodbye to.
He meets your kiss lazily. Like he still thinks you have all the time in the world.
It makes the urge to cry that much worse.
The rain is gone by morning.Â
The room glows from the orange light of the first minutes of sunrise. Sometime in the night you rolled to your side and Wonwoo pressed tight to your back. Heâs awake, drawing shapes on your hip beneath the fabric of your shirt.
âMorning.âÂ
You hum and roll over to burrow in his chest, the crown of your head digging into his neck and away from the sun. âMorning.â
The warmth of his hands trace the curve of your back, pulling you closer; hiding his own discontent with such an early break in the tentative truce that only seems to exist in the late hours of night and earliest minutes of dawn. Days of sleep deprivation with nothing but sterile lighting in the lab leaves you both needy and vulnerable. So he hugs you tighter and sighs when you do the same.
Heâs hard against your thigh. Clearly a result of biology more than need because heâs snoring against your hairline. Flashes of dreams rush forward â him beneath you, on top of you, behind you. Itâs been weeks since you two last fucked. When you called him an idiot and he called you stubborn and next thing you were on the table with your legs spread for Wonwooâs hand in a clumsy bump and grind while arguing about which one of you fucked up the biosensor callibration through gritted teeth and needy whimpers.
Youâre wet. With his thigh pressed between your own the fact becomes more evident as the urge to curl into it nags.
Taking advantage of the exposed curve of skin beneath your mouth, you kiss and suck with lax intent until Wonwoo tips his chin up and gives a silent green light.
A heavy hand drags down his front, nails scratching bluntly through the fabric until it can slip beneath the waistband of his sweats and the curve of his cock sits pretty in your palm. Commando for convenience and comfort. More the latter because thereâs no shot in hell heâs been getting laid lately.
His breath is sticky in his throat, vibrating beneath your teeth from thin pants as you work him through a loose fist. âCan I?â
âYeah,â he huffs. âYes.â
Slouching down, your head rests on his stomach, sweatpants bunched around his thighs. The first lick sends his hips up in search of more and you eagerly supply the soft suction of your mouth; lips catching around the flared head. A hand on the back of your skull keeps your hair from interfering as he plumps against your tongue.Â
Eagerness fails to penetrate this moment slowed down by the greater need to drag this out. To savor every second because who knows when youâll both stop being petty enough to just enjoy one anotherâs presence again.
âMight cumâfuckâ donât stop,â he grunts.
With the sun filling the room even more youâre running out of time, the warmth growing to leave sweat at the small of your back. He pushes harder into the curve of your throat and you let him, gagging wet with a lewd mix of spit and pre-cum that has you both moaning at the choked sound. Jaw slack, Wonwoo fucks your mouth with slow ruts; stomach tightening and the hand in your hair fisting tight enough you moan.
âShit, babeâc-cumming,â he whines with a pathetic groan youâd make fun of him for later but all you can think about is the thick taste of cum and if thereâs enough time for some attention between your own legs before life becomes unignorable. Not enough time for a real fuck but Wonwoo has a few tricks up his sleeve that promise satisfaction.
You bounce back down next to him and Wonwoo pounces, rolling on top of you, thing between your spread legs. He doesnât shy away from your tongue against his teeth, dips a thumb beneath your chin and slips his tongue right along with it, sucks your lips until the swell, backing off only to bunch your shirt up. Lazy drags of his mouth on yours â not the âI need youâ kisses after a late night but the âI miss youâ ones after weeks of passive aggressive silence.
He licks down your front, goosebumps blooming from the draft as he sucks a nipple until you arch and twist a hand in his hair. You give a lax stretch and sigh while his hand slips beneath the edge of your panties.
Taking the morning for what it is, you fall into the motions until the blare of the alarm clock signals the beginning of the end.
You push away and swipe blindly at the night stand to make it stop but Wonwoo has other plans.Â
He pins your hips down, tongue flat to the crotch of your underwear with a pant. âIgnore it.â
âWhat?â You look at him and find tired eyes watching back from over the edge of your wrinkled shirt. His hair is a mess, stuck to the side of his head from sleep and your eager hands and all you want to do is comb the tangles out while he pulls your strings like a puppet master.
But you canât.
âWeâve got class,â you gasp through a hot kiss on your clit.
A groggy groan of, âskip,â vibrates on your skin.
Fingers curling in the sheets, you grasp for disagreement only to find a moan as he pulls your hips closer and works a finger where you need it most.
âWe canât.â
âWe can,â Wonwoo grunts, focusing on peppering greedy kisses to the sensitive insides of your thighs. âWeâve been early every time this semester.â
The hand not curling in your guts runs down the back of your calf, bending until it hooks over his shoulder.
âFuck, Wonu,â you whine over the crude sounds of his mouth. You want to. God, do you want to. But you open your eyes again and they land on the stack of exams on your desk. Ungraded. Because Wonwoo said you could do them this morning. And now he wants you to skip class despite how important it is.Â
You close your legs only for Wonwoo to take it as a challenge, pinning your hips in place and celebrating his perceived victory with a throaty moan as he rocks against the bed.
âStop.â
He pulls back, mouth wet and brows furrowed. âHuh?â
The alarm on your phone pings again. Swiftly silenced this time as you roll out from beneath him and land beside the mattress on unsteady feet. âWe canât skip. We have to give exams back.â
âItâs not that big of a deal,â he argues, flopping down into the warmth you left vacant.
The room is too bright, a clear sign your morning routine is behind. âYou think now is the time to start slacking off?â
âItâs not slacking off.â Wonwoo snags his glasses. He looks more annoyed with them. âItâs a break. You clearly need one.â
âWhat the hell is that supposed to mean?â
âJust forget it. Iâm not arguing with you about stupid shit.â
âAnd what's stupid shit? The job we signed up for? With the professor who controls our futures?â
Wonwoo fixes his pants and rolls out of bed. On the opposite side. As far away from you as possible. âWhatever.â
âFine.â
âFine!â
âGood!â
âGood!â
You slam the bathroom door shut with finality. When you come back out, any trace of Wonwoo is long gone.
There arenât many people in class. A benefit of Halloweekend is the partying starts Wednesday and doesnât stop until the following week. Even with last night's rain plenty of students are battling hangovers which leaves a third of the usual lecture attendance to witness you and Wonwoo go head to head while Dr. Wagner sits at home with a mysterious illness she announced in an email three minutes after nine AM.
The few that are there snag their papers, lips curled in disgust at the plethora of red ink spilled on white pages. Their own faults for not paying attention during lecture but maybe the scarlet gashes were a little dramatic. Wonwooâs jaw is tight, pointedly ignoring you except to hand exams over that someone is waiting for with dread in their eyes.Â
You couldâve skipped. It wouldnât even count as skipping because class is canceled and thereâs no award for hauling ass at the crack of dawn when your advisor isnât even here to see it. You could be tucked away in your apartment with him under your skin; firmly in the place between dreams and waking where you liked him best, nothing but warm skin and rough hands with his lips on your hairline and your head burrowed in his chest.Â
There are too many witnesses to just drop the act and wrap your arms around him from behind until he gives in. Apologize for the stupid shit he rightfully called you out on. But as your courage grows with each studentâs exit, Wonwoo makes to leave before you can make use of it.Â
Barely an hour of fighting and it already feels like an eternity.
âHey,â you call.
He freezes by one of the desks near the back of the room, like heâs shocked youâre even there in the first place. But he doesnât turn around; just tilts his head so you know heâs listening even if he doesnât want to.
âSorry about this morning. I-I think the stress is getting to me.â
And the fact that I canât be mad at anyone besides the universe for this incredibly shitty situation. And I miss you. Even when youâre right next to me.
âOkay.â
âThatâs it?â you fidget with the strap of your bag; a million pounds heavier even without the weight of ungraded tests that Wonwoo snatched before you could divide the remaining work.
He turns around, eying you with an exasperated look. âWhat else should I say? You called me a slack off and implied I donât do my job.â
âI didnât,â you argue but itâs salt in the wound becauseâ
âYou did.â
âButââ
âItâs fine. Iâll finish grading the exams over the weekend.â
And then you're alone.
Youâre alone in the study room you both usually occupy to work on the Nanochemistry project due at the end of term. The shared document has updates, the blink of his cursor mocking your from wherever he hunkered down. Away from you. The temptation to type âIâm sorryâ over and over again disappears once he logs out barely a minute after you logged on.
Youâre alone at the circulation desk of the library through your shift, head whipping around to every squeak and cough only to find someone who isnât Wonwoo. Thereâs an email from him, to Dr. Wagner with you CCâed, about class averages and exam questions that should be thrown out.
You walk home alone. Other students in various states of dress and intoxication crowd the sidewalks, a few you recognize but they feel a million miles away.
Alone in your apartment, the two mugs from last night clean in the sink.
The good part of being alone is when you start crying, no one is there to see.
Itâs near midnight and the chill of the breeze whipping down the street bites at your exposed skin. Already the should-be-condemned frat house pulses with life, the promise of a long night ahead thrumming through the symphony of drunk screams and music.
Itâs not unusual for you to attend frat parties. Wonwooâs favor guarantees free booze and a perch at the top of the staircase where underclassmen are barred from entering. But youâll settle for watching drunk underclassman stumbling over the front lawn from one of the couches on the front porch (which are so broken in, no one sinks into the cushions â they just fall straight down until the worn springs catch them) because the inside of the house is too hot, and too crowded, and far too loud.Â
A hail Mary apology is the only thing on your mind. Yesterday had been the nastiest spat in recent history between you two; notwithstanding sophomore year when Jeonghan asked you for tutoring and Wonwoo insisted on helping. âHelpingâ meant cutting off every question Jeonghan dared ask with a series of snorts and huffs until you left and refused to talk to him for a week.
Heâd apologized in the most Wonwoo fashion â completing your Thermodynamics assignments for the rest of the semester and before going down on you until you threatened to kick him in the head through sensitive sobs.
Wonwoo is here â somewhere. Shuffling up the past, past the line of eager party goers looking for a way in, you scan the front porch, heâs not in his usual waiting spot to whisk you upstairs where the older members hang out with better drinks and better music. Not that he would be. He doesnât even know you considered coming to this.
Instead, poor Chan, dressed in yellow and black stripes, mans the door with pilot Jihoon by his side.
âJihoon,â you greet, before looking at the younger man. âSpeed bump.â
Chan mumbles something under his breath but lays on the ground regardless. When Wonwoo went through the same hazing you only got a few chances to enjoy the ridiculousness before he dragged you upstairs and shut you up himself.
âCan you not torment the kids?â Jihoon grunts.
âI could. But, whereâs the fun in that?âÂ
âYour boyfriend is inside. If you see Jun, tell him itâs his turn to watch the door.â
âGot it.â
Stepping over the underclassman still laying on the ground, you head inside and straight for the packed kitchen to get a drink. Thereâs barely any space between the hoard of bodies, forcing you to shuffle forward everytime there's a gap in the crowd; but itâs more like swimming against a rip tide.Â
Itâs difficult to see with nothing but a few strobe lights and some strings of Christmas lights to clear the dark. One glance up towards the upper landing of the staircase is all it takes to find him right next to Mingyu. Matching costume, two bean poles standing out from the crowd of shorter men. Mingyu makes a brief nod in your direction but before you can see Wonwoo turn youâre off into the kitchen.
Itâs an even tighter fit in here. A pledge pours drinks from a cooler, for a brief second youâre tempted to indulge. The last time you did, freshman year, you ended up crying in Wonwooâs room mid-hookup. You scan the slim pickings and settle on an unopened beer. The shots you took while getting ready are already catching up.
Forced between anxious isolation and drinking, a few of your friends come up and briefly make conversation. You feign interest, eying over their heads for a familiar mop of dark hair without success.
A few guys stop to compliment your costume. They give themselves away in glazed heavily lidded stares, single minded focus on your legs. They ask what your major is, boast their status as pledges to your disinterested grimace, and move on when you finally put them out of their misery and fib about your âboyfriendâ being âpresident or somethingâ but âI donât pay attention to those things,â and they all disappear significantly paler than when they first appeared.
You bite the bullet of your pride and turn to leave, only to find Wonwoo barely an inch away.
His eyes burn over your figure, the short toga covering just enough for you to avoid public indecency. Good. Itâs the entire reason you wore this stupid costume in the first place. Heâs a horny loser for nerdy shit and this is the best thing you couldâve worn other than one of those video game character costumes forcing your boobs in your throat and leaving you at serious risk for public indecency.
Itâs not the first time youâve wrapped yourself in barely enough fabric to constitute an outfit for the sake of his forgiveness and it probably wonât be the last.
Wonwoo pins you to the counter with his hips, hands bracketing your figure on either side. The green hat with an âLâ is lopsided on his head but at least he didnât wear the fake mustache. âSo, what is your costume?â he hums into the space just below your ear with a kiss.
âGuess.â You tilt your chin, cocky.
âAnd if I get it right?â he asks, lips at your ear.
Heart pound, you ditch the beer and reach for his hips with purpose. âWhatever you want.â
âDangerous words.â
âThink of it as my apology for being a huge bitch yesterday.âÂ
He sighs into your neck, arms tight around your waist in a loose semblance of a hug. Itâs a farce. Your ass meets the counter with minor effort and Wonwoo claims the space between your legs before you can pretend to object.
He still hasnât kissed you.
You want more than kisses. You want to feel him, all of him. Want to drag him to the living room serving as a makeshift dance floor and sink into the heat of his body pressed flat against your own for everyone to see. You want to pull him into that closet off the main hall, familiar from that hot night of freshman year when a drunk make out turned into a timid fingering and eventually Wonwoo handing over his first time on a silver platter. Or even run back to your apartment, pluck through the leftover Halloween candy you bought on discount and watch whatever horror movie has become his recent obsession. You just want him.
âMingyu thought you were Socrates.â
Pressed this close on the sticky counter, his body is the only thing protecting what little of your dignity is left. Even then, there's enough of the slippery warmth of alcohol to tempt you into rutting against him right here for those stupid pledges to see. âMingyu is an idiot.â
âClearly,â he chuckles. âThe rubber chicken gave it away.â
You shake it at eye level. âBehold, man.â
âLame,â his kissing gets bold down the shaft of your neck, teeth scraping your collarbone.
âOh please, I feel your boner.â
He doesnât resist you when you nuzzle along the bare parts of his neck, a tease of soft kissing usually reserved for quiet moments tucked away in your apartment. Even in the chaos of the party, body heat turning the air uncomfortably warm, you crave more of his closeness.Â
His hands feel nice on your legs. None of the timid gentleness of years prior when heâd touch you like itâd burn if he wanted it too much; trailing higher and higher but never under the short hem of the bedsheet turned dress. His fingers flex into the muscle at the outside of your thigh, hook behind your knees and drag you to the edge of the counter.Â
You're sweating through your own skin when he kisses you.Â
The need in your gut blooms at full force. Your mouth loosens, welcoming his tongue and teeth and whatever else heâs generous enough to give while you tug at the loose fabric around his hips to force more close proximity; the zipper of his pants is hot against your core and if you fucked him right here it wouldnât look that different than the PG-13 make out happening right now.Â
âWanna show me your room?â You blink like some moony eyed freshman, glassy, pupils blown from vivid images of all the possibilities in the solitude upstairs. Wonwoo is fine with the game of whatever your apology entails even if it means you throw cheesy lines like that.
He ushers you off the counter, flat to your back as he pushes through the crowd with you ahead. Even in a drunken haze people part out of his way because of the mastery of resting bitch face only he seems to have despite the complaint putty that lies behind it. A private smile splits your lips. He canât be that mad. Not with how he pulls you closer, in the protective way he so often does in the buzz of a single minded crowd with more alcohol in their veins than blood.Â
Mingyu is standing on the landing. Girls in scraps of fabric eye him up and down, even in his stupid costume with the mustache but he ignores them in favor of pouting straight into a red cup.
âWhy is your boyfriend moping?âÂ
âFuck if I know.â Wonwoo focuses on sucking another bruise on your neck like no one's watching.Â
Youâre loose enough not to care about Mingyuâs annoyance as Wonwoo ushers you by. âCheer up buttercup, Iâm sure thereâs a Peach here into charity fucks!âÂ
Itâs meant to be encouraging, but Mingyu looks like heâs torn between strangling you and throwing himself over the banister.
Maybe you did lie about being Wonwooâs girlfriend, but he is president and his room is the biggest and furthest away from chaos. Up on the top floor where the music isnât as loud and the only people on this floor are other members and their guests for the night.
Wonwoo pushes you inside, kicking the door shut loud enough you wince before crowding you against the wood. You throw his hat away somewhere into the darkness, hand twisted in his hair as he kisses you. Sloppy and gross until he rocks into the softness of your stomach, gasoline on the flame.
âTurn around.â
He barely gives you enough space to do so, pressing you flat once again, cheek squished to the door and a rough pull at your waist.Â
âIf youâre thinking about touching my asshole, donât. I have shit to do tomorrow,â you warn.Â
On the other side of the door you hear footsteps but they pass by without stopping.
âNoted, but not what Iâm going for,â he jokes.Â
Your skirt flips up and a draft against the damp crotch of your panties sends a tremor straight through your core. âShare with the class.â
âItâs a surprise.â
âIâm shaking in my toga.â
âAnd you call me a loser.â
âI can call you some other things,â you grit, pushing back into the heat of his covered cock. âThey arenât as nice though.â
âYeah, yeah. Take your panties off.âÂ
Heâs a little bit of a freak. Sometimes he enjoys fucking you in nothing but your underwear and others he wants you in everything but. Maybe because of how this entire thing started; when you wouldnât even take your bra off and he survived on the barest flash of nipple.
The flimsy soiled fabric barely passes your knees before heâs on you again, easily tempted by the arch of your spine. You hum content as he presses a finger into your cunt, then two. His other hand forces the neckline of your dress down and lo-and-behold your lack of bra delights like you knew it would.
Whatever bright idea that fluttered in Wonwooâs brain is forgotten as he spins you back around for an eyeful of naked skin; a mouthful of your chest and your leg hooked around his hip for a pathetic dry hump into the heel of his hand.
âOh, fuck,â you moan with extra emphasis and a caved stomach because thereâs teeth and he makes it hurt. âKiss me.â
Another rut into your thigh and his teeth are back at your bottom lip. Itâs not exactly what you anticipated when you showed up tonight but there are far worse places than having a doorknob in your back while Wonwoo leaves a hickey below your ear; a perfectly good bed ten feet away but neither of you can be bothered to move much more than forcing Wonwooâs pants down enough his cock leaks in your grip, head nestled at your entrance.
You surprise him by sinking to your knees. Head tipped back against the door, you tilt your mouth open to welcome him on your tongue. Wonwoo stares down at you; tits out, hand between your legs as you suck his cock in quick motions until he takes over and fucks into the curve of your throat.Â
âHoly s-shit,â he hisses and you flatten your tongue to help him along. It feels good; seeing him reduced to so little just from the wet suck of your mouth on him.Â
A choked gag forces Wonwoo back into his body, hips curving away so you can swallow air before leaving a sloppy kiss on the tip. Seizing him in a tight grip, you use the spit to jerk him off until he cringes with another pathetic moan.Â
Someone giggles in the hallway, close enough you both hear. Theyâre far enough away you can still whisper to Wonwoo. âRemember that time we fucked in here last year?âÂ
âWhen you almost got us killed?â
Last year, at the same party, when you showed up in a skin tight Shego costume, Wonwoo pulled you to the only available room: Seungcheolâs. Itâd been hot. Fucking when you arenât supposed to, having Seungcheol pound at the door while Wonwoo came down your throat (no condoms and no hope to clean up).
âDo it again.â
His hand creeps into a loose collar around the base of your throat. You keep rubbing between your legs, working up a slick slide until your nails dig into the skin of his thighs.
âReally?â Thereâs no need for muffling the noise when it's his room and the only people at risk of hearing anything have done far worse. He pulls you to your feet, forces your cheek against the door and slides right behind you. Like he was made for you.
âChoke me,â you gasp before digging into the sick part of your brain that likes seeing him strung out, extra breathy just to see his eyes go wide. âSir.â
Your skin sticks to the door, shamefully squeezed as he drags his cock through the mess of your pussy. âYou canât just say that.â
âWhy not?â
âBecauseââ
âBecause what?â you goad. âGonna punish me?â
âYouâd like that wouldnât you? Show up wearing this,â he grits, tugging at the white fabric bunched around your waist, using the hand on your throat to squeeze your cheeks tight with authority you drool for. âAsking to be choked and now you probably want me to spank you and call you a good girl.â
You grunt through the raw thrust at your gut, sending your head back from sheer enthusiasm. âNânot my fault you fuck me so good.âÂ
Wonwoo almost canât control himself, hearing nothing but praise fall from your mouth as he fucks you limp against the door. âGod.â
Someone screams, âLeave room for Jesus!â from the other side of the door and you almost rip it open to kill them if Wonwoo wasnât dragging you to the bed.Â
He folds you onto your front, both standing at the foot of the bed. A deep roll of his hips and youâre filled completely.Â
âO-oh, fuck me,â you moan, uncaring if the idiot outside the door is still listening. Wonwoo has a hell of a hand and puts it to use against the curve of your ass. The coil in your gut pulls taunt as he delivers one after another.
He fucks deeper, a the hand not burn against your bottom between your shoulders. âYou look so goodâ ah âtaking my cock like this.â His voice waivers with the same stunted rhythm of his hips.Â
âW-want,â you choke on spit, drooling into the comforter. âWanna taste you.â
The animalist need to suck both your flavors off his cock nearly sends you into a fit but Wonwooâs there, hooking his hand back around the front of your neck with a subtle squeeze. You want the stupid dress off, you want Wonwooâs clothes off, you want to fuck him where thereâs no one around to catcall in the hallway like twelve year old boys. Want. Want. Want.
What you get is enough pressure from his fingers that your mind blanks. Wonwoo gets a tight enough squeeze on his cock that heâs forced to a grinding halt.Â
Then his rhythm goes deeper, harder. Course curls against the resistance of your ass until you almost collapse against the edge of the bed. His cock hits that spot like it was made for your body. âTouch yourself.â
You comply without further command. Youâre wet, soaked, arousal smeared down your thighs from Wonwooâs treatment. Your fingers bump against his length as you match the pace of his strokes. âFuck, Wonwoo â hmmm.âÂ
âTell me how it feels,â he gasps like itâs his first breath in hours.
âWet, so wet,â you croon, arching harder, joints locking. âGonna cum. Oh my god.â
He reaches low, grabbing your hand from between your thighs and pulling it to his mouth for a taste. His tongue slides between your digits, liquid slick with a soft suction your crave on your clit.Â
âBeg for it.â Wonwoo bites your shoulder hard enough you cry.Â
Stuffing your hand back between your legs, you play with your clit clumsily. Until pink crowds the edge of your vision and it hurts. âPlease, please! I needâWant it. Wanna come for you. Please, sir.â
Wonwoo strains to hear your pleas over the clap of bodies. Heâs worked you near the middle of the bed, practically laying on top of you as he fucks in quick succession.Â
âHarder, fuck me,â you demand. âYes, yes, yâyes!â
If you were on top youâd fall straight off, jerking tightly under Wonwooâs weight, turning your face to greet his tongue between your teeth and mewling sensitivity. He doesnât show mercy, continuing to fuck you through the worst of it.
âHoly shit,â you whimper, head throbbing. Wonwoo forces you back on your knees and you fight through sore muscles and sensitivity to preen under the weight behind his hips.Â
âCan I come in you?â he asks in a shivery breath.
You nod with closed eyes, tugging the hand around your throat to your lips and sucking his fingers like itâs a cock. He finishes with a choked breath, flooding your insides with sticky warmth youâve never gotten used to in all the months youâve fucked without condoms.Â
His breath fans against the nape of your neck, another swivel of his hips from the sensitivity. Your walls squeeze as Wonwoo pulls away.Â
You roll onto your back with a bounce, Wonwoo jostling you when he joins. Shoulder to shoulder, you stare up at the ceiling while catching your breath. âDo you think youâll pop a boner when your students call you a sir next year?â
Wonwoo heaves a long breath, amusement in his voice. âI come inside you and that's the first thing you think of?â
Immediately you regret the joke. Since Dr. Wagnerâs announcement weeks ago neither of you had broached on the topic of what happens after graduation. Mostly from fear. But also because itâs a long discussion youâre not exactly sure what you want out of.
âAnswer the question.â
âI hope not.â
The bed shifts beneath your knees as you crowd over Wonwoo, laying with his arms behind him to keep from sinking flat. The tired lines of his face look deeper in the lamp light. Heâs nothing more than a big softie that wants to cuddle half naked in his bed while you play with his hair until sleep finds its place.
âItâs our last Halloween party.â
âWow, just like old times,â you snort. âShould I start crying? Then itâll be just like freshman year all over.â
Wonwoo laughs, his hand snatching yours and lacing your fingers together. âYou wore a bra and bunny ears freshman year so if youâre gonna whip that out too â by all means.â
âGod, we were so lame,â you announce matter of factly. Crying in lingerie and animal ears in one of the supply closets downstairs all becauseâ
âDonât rope me into that, miss âcrying-because-she-didnât-know-how-to-suck-dickâ.â Wonwoo rolls on top of you, hoping to silence whatever argument bubbling in response with a teasing press of his lips. You're still sticky with sweat and spit and cum, nipples and pussy out and the thought of his dick, limp against your thigh, makes you sensitive all over.
âThatâs former miss âcrying-because-she-didnât-know-how-to-suck-dickâ,â you trail off into his mouth. âAnd youâre one to talk. Remember the time you cried about how happy you were that we were friends.â
He bites your lip in retaliation. âI didnât.â
âYou did. I have the video from Mingyu.â
âI thought he was an idiot.â
âHe is but heâs good for blackmail.â
You might consider staying the night if he keeps tracing his nose along the arch of your collarbone. But a shrill giggle and some pornographic moans ring through the walls of the neighboring room. Not the side Seungkwan occupies. Hoshiâs. And itâs only the start.
âWe canât sleep here.â
Wonwoo collapses, tugging you with him. âI canât ditch again, Iâm on pledge duty.â
âYouâre hiding in your room with me.â
âOkay, technically Iâm on pledge duty.â
He wouldnât stay here if he wasnât required. Wonwoo hates party nights, especially Halloween. Too many variables requiring all hands on deck; too many needy people demanding his presence for some issue that couldâve been handled if they used their brain to think farther than the tip of their nose. Rarely, if ever, does he sleep in his own bed when you have a perfectly good one tucked away in a private apartment without thirty other men tripping over each other.Â
âWell, Iâm not sleeping with that.â On cue, another whimper, clearly a manâs, breaks through the tentative silence. Are they fuck against the shared wall?
Wonwoo sighs, scrubbing his face before moving for his phone. âIâll send one of the kids to walk you.â
âWow, a pledge escort. How thoughtful,â you sneer.
He huffs again, unwilling to start a fight thatâll leave neither of you satisfied. âText me when you get home.â
You donât.
There is an unspoken habit between you and Wonwoo that Sunday mornings are spent at the only reasonably priced coffee shop just near your apartment. A charming hole in the wall, with hanging shelves displaying layers of tchotchkes, paintings lining whatever free space between them, and wobbly tables with equally unbalanced chairs. Itâs always packed because the coffee is decent and they have outlets. After last night, you hope heâs too exhausted to even think about showing up.
Mugs click against dark lacquered tables, the dull murmur of conversation churns over the music swelling softly through the speakers. The smell of pastries and espresso wake you enough to slide into a vacant table in the corner and set to work.Â
Or you wouldâve if someone didnât sit down first.
âOh.â
Wonwoo already has a mug and a little brown bag as he looks up at where you stand dumbly.
âI can just goâŠsit somewhere elseâŠâ You turn to leave, except there are no other tables. Couples and groups claim every single seat except the one across from Wonwoo.
âWhy would you do that?â
âI donât know, probably because Iâm mad at you.â
He unpacks his laptop, shaking his head. âYouâre not mad at me.â
âYes, I am,â you emphasize.Â
âYouâre a bad liar.â
Neither of you are good at lying. Even worse at fighting. Incapable of committing to real anger when it takes all your energy to stand up straight and not fall asleep in a pile of ungraded papers and half finished assignments. Besides, you're only pouting because he passed up a night at your place to clean up pledge vomit.Â
You canât tame the annoyed grin cracking your face. âFine, Iâm not that mad at you. Buy my forgiveness in the form of coffee.â
âToo much caffeine will kill you.â
âI can only hope,â you sigh, arms cradling your head against the hard wood of the table while he joins the queue at the register.
Wonwoo orders your drink and a cheesy pastry the size of your head, the smell of greasy carbs first thing in the morning softening the ice in your veins. He knows your weaknesses too well.Â
âIs this penance?âÂ
âSomething like that.â He tears the crispiest corner off and pops it into his mouth.
âDid you look at the study guide for Calc yet?â
Two hours later you approach the counter for a second round of coffee and snag one of the jammy tarts Wonwoo likes but rarely buys for himself. Whatever chaffs between you two melts under the constant stream of note checking; Wonwooâs hand on your knee under the table helps too.Â
âIf I look at this anymore, Iâll run into traffic.â
âWeâve got the Nano project that needs some work,â you suggest.Â
He stretches wide, a sliver of skin visible between the hem of his sweater and the band of sweat pants. âIâve got practice in an hour. We can do it tonight when Iâm done.â
You try not to stare and instead return to focusing on the screen of your laptop burning your retinas.âIâm tutoring Seungkwan.â
âAfter?â
âHeâs gonna be a bitch and the last thing I wanna do is look at more school stuff.â
âThen no school stuff,â he decrees with finality. âIâll bring mushroom pad thai from that place on Market.â
âAre you trying to bribe your way in?â
âIs it working?â
You hum a dismissal but watch him through your lashes. He looks good â washed in late afternoon glow, hair a mess with glasses and a sweater that hangs off his shoulders. It all screams âdrag me to bed and nap the rest of the dayâ which is trouble for you because you still want to be mad at him if only to see how fair heâs willing to go for your forgiveness.
âWe can watch Yellowjackets,â he barters, packing his bag.
Another group eyes your table with hope to claim it the second itâs available. Sadly, your ass is firmly planted for the rest of the afternoon. With or without Wonwoo.
âYouâre really trying to butter me up, arenât you?â
âI cannot sleep in that house,â he deadpans. âPlease take mercy.â
âOh, so youâre just using me for a place to sleep. Even after I wore that stupid Halloween costume?â
He pauses, eyes glazing like itâs a distant memory and not less than twenty four hours ago. âYou looked hot.â
âYou made that pretty clear.â
âAnyway, Iâll come over after practice. You can bitch about Seungkwan until you pass out.â
âFine, but if there is no pad thai then donât come.â
âWhatever my woman demands,â he snorts, dropping a kiss to your lips before turning towards the door.
Two hours and another coffee later, Seungkwan occupies Wonwooâs abandoned chair. Thereâs no reason for him to be taking an intro chem class as a Creative Writing major other than the fact heâs a bit of a masochist. Heâs not half bad at it and doesnât really need any tutoring but you get paid for showing up even if itâs complete silence as you pick your nails until he needs something.
Youâre marking through his latest attempt when he finally speaks up, âYou're dating Wonwoo, right?â
Red pen scratches through the edge of the paper. âWhat?â
âYou and Wonwoo.â
What is the absolute configuration of the two carbon atoms in this compound? More red ink.
âWhat about me and Wonwoo?â
Seungkwan rolls his eyes with exasperation, like youâre on the outs of some obvious joke. âDating.â
If an alkene has 24 hydrogen atoms, how many carbon atoms does it contain? Another X.
âNo.â
âOh, I thoughtââ
âWeâre just friends.â
When 10 g of 90% pure lime stone is heated completely, the volume (in litres) of is liberated at STP is⊠Wrong, again. Which makes no sense because Seungkwan is good at this level. Heâs fucking with you on purpose.
âHuh,â he comments, grabbing the worksheet back from your claws.
ââHuhâ what?â
âI heard a rumor he had a girlfriend last night, thatâs all.â
It's not the first time someone assumed there's more between you and Wonwoo then there actually is, your fib last night clearly fanned the flames of even more speculation. But neither of you date; not enough time, willpower, or patience to entertain someone around packed schedules. If you and Wonwoo didnât have the same life within the chemistry department then youâd never see each other. Itâs convenient as it can possibly be.Â
Maybe at one point there was. Summer of sophomore year when he studied abroad in Spain and the usual substance of correspondence morphed from memes and jokes to something softer; I miss youâs and youâd like it hereâs. Late night phone calls that lasted hours, refusing to hang up first until one of you fell asleep and the other finally canceled the call.Â
But the opportunity to tip over the edge came and went without coalescing into whatever was on the other side.Â
Seungkwan can pretend itâs an innocent suggestion but he stares you down until you crack with your own curiosity. âWho told you that?â
âSome pledges said they accidentally hit on his girlfriend. I don't even think he knows another girl beside you. Plus you were at the party last night.â
Stupid fuckers, you mutter under your breath. âWeâre not dating.â
âBut you guys are always together.â
âWe work together. You and Vernon are always together, are you two fucking?â
âMy room is next to his and it doesnât sound like work to me.â
âHow does me failing you sound?â you spit.Â
Seungkwan doesn't so much as flinch at the threat but returns to the practice sheet with a smile nonetheless.Â
Typically, fall break is spent hidden away in a pile of blankets with you and Wonwoo alternating movie choices throughout the weekend. Dead Poets Society (him), When Harry Met Sally (you), Over the Garden Wall (him), Fantastic Mr Fox (you), and so on and so on.
This year, you have a strong feeling Dr. Wagnerâs favorite pastime is seeing her TAs squirm. Itâs the only explanation for the unique brand of humiliation she subjects you and Wonwoo to. Tonight, Friday and technically your first night off for the long weekend, she decides to engage in a new sort of torture. A fancy dinner that neither of you could ever hope to afford, and even as her treat, you still eye the menu prices nervously.Â
But Dr. Collins sits across the table, in the flesh, so you pull out the skills you learned in the ridiculous theater class you took freshman year to âdiversifyâ your transcript and smile through the anxiety.Â
Wonwoo does a little better; in a button up youâve only seen him wear a handful of times when his usual wardrobe is sweatshirts and free shirts from campus events, he looks more comfortable than you feel.
âJill, tells me you both work on Epitranscriptomic mapping in her lab?â Dr. Collins asks after another sip of his drink. Two whiskeys at dinner.Â
Itâs not an official interview. Not anything close to it, according to your advisor. Nothing is set in stone, even if Dr. Collins laughs at Wonwooâs awkward jokes and nods enthusiastically to your stories about working in the library (he also worked in the library in undergrad, but used it to nap more than actually work). But it feels like a step in the right direction.Â
âYes, sir.â Wonwoo and you nod in tandem.
Dr. Wagnerâs research focuses on how different RNA modifications vary across various cell types and states. Itâs high level stuff that no one but Wonwoo understands when you rant about the broken Cellraft machine. And his complaints about NovaSecâs constant crashes that leave him without work fall on deaf ears except when theyâre directed at you.Â
Half the reason you two started speaking during orientation is because the overly enthusiastic intern asked what people were looking forward to the most during school. You and Wonwoo were the only ones who seemed to think she meant school-related and not where to buy a fake ID. Apparently, the best person to get a fake ID from was a junior in Dr. Wagnerâs lab that year. Go figure.
âIâve seen you two listed down the line as co-authors,â he nods.Â
The waiter brings dessert, spiced toffee cakes and ice cream. Youâre starving but the knot in your stomach from when you sat down is even tighter and all you can do is pick at the plate.
âWell, Y/N does a lot of the troubleshooting for the RNA degradation issues,â Wonwoo shares.Â
Your face heats at the unexpected but not undeserved compliment. Dr. Wagnerâs work isnât cheap and the thought of wasting valuable money, money that could line the pocket of an extra set of hands, forced you to run a tight ship. The other researchers in her lab could say what they wanted behind your back but Dr. Wagner nods with fondness and you try not to preen.
âWeâd be a mess if it wasnât for her,â Dr. Wagner agrees. âThe lab techs should write her a card.â
Not wanting to leave him out, you shoot a look to your left where Wonwoo pulls at the napkin in his lap. âWonwoo is the one that made sure the parameters made sense for the last publication.â
âAlso true.â Dr. Wagner smiles. âI told you, Harry, theyâre my best students. Excel a mile past my TAs last year. They work together exceptionally well. If I could keep them both for next year, I would.â She says it with finality. There might very well be an opportunity to stay here and continue in her lab, even if your ambition has outgrown the place youâve called home for four years.
The table is cleared, your plate full of mashed cake and melted ice cream with not a single bite missing. Youâre exhausted. Mentally, emotionally; physically from the three all nighters youâve pulled this week. Thereâd be an earful from Wonwoo about the dangers of sleep deprivation (hypocrite) but he looks like heâs seen a ghost tonight and wonât sleep himself.
Dr. Collins glances at his watch with a muffled yawn, âMy, my! Look at the time! My apologies I didn't mean to keep us all out so late. I know you two probably have far more interesting things to be doing than spending the evening with a couple old timers like us.â He winks at Dr. Wagner, who rolls her eyes and hands the check back to the waiter who canât be more than nineteen. âIt looks like Iâll have some tough decisions to make in the upcoming weeks. Best of luck to the both of you.â
Hands shakes all around, and an awkward shuffle at the door and Dr. Collins and Dr. Wagner disappear into the night, leaving you and Wonwoo alone on the long walk back to campus.
You donât beeline to your apartment for a debrief. Or even to ignore the obvious awkwardness cracking between. A bench to the side of the campus green is where you find yourselves, across from the fountain that upholds the tradition of drunken seniors taking a dip during finals when theyâve given up.Â
You want to drown in it.
âWonwoo,â you whisper. âWhat happens if one of us doesn't get in?â
âIâI donât know.â He peers down at you with what you think is grief and the white noise that follows his quiet admission chokes painfully. Thereâs no plan B for something like this
If you got in, then Wonwoo did too. An unfounded assumption that wherever you went heâd be there too, based on almost four years of something between you. Too much to be friendship but too scared to call it something else. Something more. All the stereotypical college firsts had been with him or witnessed by him, you assumed grad school would be the same.
But it canât be.
âThen we should end this.â
The words are out like shaken champagne, a dramatic explosion you canât take back; a mess in the slimmest inches of space between your bodies on the bench in the freezing air.
âWhat?â he says.
You canât swallow back down the idea. Wonwoo wonât let you. Maybe you donât want to. You stare at the fountain across the green with a twitch in your jaw.Â
âOne of us is gonna move to Boston and the other is gonna have to figure it out and Iâd rather not hate you or you hate me when it happens.â
You wonât take it back but you wonât look at him either.Â
âYou think Iâd hate you?âÂ
Heâs staring at you. You can feel the burn of his gaze on your cheek where embarrassment heats as well.
âI would.â You ignore the break in your voice at the complete lie. âIâd hate it if you got in and I didnât. Even though you deserve it and I couldnât be mad about it. Iâd hate it. All Iâve wanted since freshman year is to go there, and I wonât ruin it for you just because I canât have it.â
For a painstaking moment, he doesnât say anything. His shoulders are still rigid and he props his weight into his knees, head bowed so you canât even see his face in the stark street light. He doesnât do anything until you do, until you slump with utter defeat.
âFine.â
âFine?â Your voice pinches in your throat.
âWhat else is there? Youâve already decided for the both of us. That stupid fucking program matters more to you thanââ
You heat close to explosion.âItâs not stuââ
Wonwoo rushes off the bench. âIt is! It is because weâve been dating for the past three years but you wonât even fucking admit it! Youâll tell some stupid pledge Iâm your boyfriend but everytime I think weâve worked it out â that youâre finally ready to talk about it â you pretend nothing is happening.â
âThat wasnâtââ you shake your head.
âItâs fine. Iâll get over it.âÂ
You move quicker than he does and find his hand, but he doesnât want to stay and you canât stop him from leaving. âWonwoo.âÂ
âStop.â His voice is stoic, whatever emotions previously controlling him locked up tight behind faux dismissal. âJustâŠstop.âÂ
If youâre going to lie then the smallest favor you can do is obey his command. You hide your face in your hands, cheeks hot and eyes stinging. Because if you look at him then youâll break into a million pieces. Youâd admit to lying to his face; that you could so much as entertain the idea of hating him.
Wonwoo waits but you say nothing. No argument, no final comment.Â
When you finally look up heâs far enough down the sidewalk that the pathetic croak of his name is unheard.
Endpoint: a critical moment in a chemical process where a specific change indicates that the reaction is complete.Â
Two days later, when you finally get the balls to call Wonwoo and apologize, to tell him heâs right and that youâre an absolute idiot, heâs already blocked your number.
In a game of passive aggressive pettiness, Wonwoo takes gold.
He wonât talk to you outside of class and lab hours. Even then, he refuses to look at you; talks straight around you. Any form of correspondence you receive has Dr. Wagnerâs name attached and anything you send without it is loudly ignored.Â
Other people notice too.
In study hours, the students notice, whisper to each other when Wonwoo snubs your attempt to discuss a batch of graded homework in favor of focusing his attention on a cowering freshman who looks like he might piss himself when Wonwoo calls him by name. All the others bury their heads in their textbooks in fear heâll pick them next.
In Nano, when he shows up just in the nick of time to leave his self-assigned seat next to you empty, and instead sitting next to the door. You feel the eyes on you, hair standing on end at the back of your neck when Dr. Lim stutters through his intro with wide eyes at the scene.
Seungkwan shows up to tutoring significantly less interested in your love life. Or he pretends he isnât. He doesnât ask outright and thereâs pity in his eyes, thick enough you want to burst into the tears youâve waited to come for the past two weeks. Instead you feel hollow.Â
Even Mr. Lee, the night guard at the library, eyes your solitary exit with something like concern. Even going so far as to call campus public safety to escort you the short walk home.
Your other friends try to take you out, get your mind off the tilt in your world axis. You go. Sit at bar tables and laugh when you're supposed to, make empty conversations with strangers but you donât care. You want to go home and curl up in your own misery like a blanket and cry until your eyes swell shut and pass out from exhaustion. Eventually, they stop asking if you want to come and just leave ice cream and bottles of wine on your doormat as support.
Your grades donât suffer, and thatâs the only thing you can cling to right now.
In Dr. Wagnerâs office, an impromptu meeting under the guise of setting final exam expectations and tinkering the schedule, Wonwoo continues the harsh coldness of silence; content to pretend you donât even exist.Â
You work through it easily enough. You and Wonwoo have the same finals so there's only two schedules (Dr. Wagnerâs and your shared one) to coordinate for extra study hours. The entire ordeal takes ten minutes to complete the shared calendar, pack it full of final lab meetings and deadlines for grading.
And when itâs over, you move to rise but Dr. Wagner stops you short.
She looks sheepish which is an odd sight. Immediately, you go to the worst. You grit and swallow and sit back down in the same upholstered chair from the last time she dropped a bomb in your lap.Â
This is the bandaid rip youâve waited for all semester. Whatever is at the end of this meeting means you finally know if youâre good enough or not. If karma does justice and gives Wonwoo the spot in Dr. Collins lab next year because you committed the sin of wanting it too much, sacrificed too much.
âIt seems my attempt at friendly competition had someâŠunintended consequences.â
Where sizzling anger would once flourish and bloom, nothing but empty exhaust stutters to life. âWhat?â
âLast year, the second my TAs found out Iâd recommended them, they slacked off. Missing class, incorrect results in the lab. Now I know you two are hard workers but I was afraid senioritis might set in and Iâd have to lay down the law. I donât like being harsh with my students, not directly anyway. I want the best out of them, and I knew I could anticipate the best from you two. I was always planning to recommend both of you to Dr. Collins. I told him he would regret it if he even thought about not making space for you both next year.â
âWhat?â you repeat again.
Thereâs a weight on your knee. You donât even need to look to know itâs Wonwooâs hand. He doesnât look before flipping it over when you place yours on top, fingers knotting together; holds it tight like heâs afraid youâll vanish if he lets go. You unconsciously squeeze and he mimics without thought.
âSo what does this mean?â
âDr. Collins canât outright say it but heâs on the admissions board and decides who gets to join his lab. He was adamant that both of you join him in Boston.â
âBut we havenât evenââ
âI know, but the application is a formality at this point.â She waves a dismissive hand. âYour work speaks for itself.â
Wonwoo is still there, clenching your hand for dear life. Waiting for the other shoe to drop because there is no way â no way â itâs this easy. Months at each other's throat from the tension and for nothing. Youâre sweaty, heart thumping loud enough it might break from your chest and skitter on Dr. Wagnerâs desk. She keeps talking and you still havenât looked at Wonwoo.
âIâm so proud of you both!â she beams. âAnd Iâm sorry if IâveâŠcomplicated thingsâŠfor the two of you. It was never my intention. Now, go! Rest! Take the day off and celebrate. Send me the links to your applications and Iâll do my part so you can finally relax before finals.â
The pair of you shuffle outside like zombies. In broad daylight, the world keeps spinning and someone drops their coffee a little further down the street and curses a storm; a car honks at a biker, there's packs of students shuffling around where you stand dumbfounded. Your sweater does little to block the chill of late November wind.
Wonwoo still hasnât let go of your hand.
âDid that just happen?â he asks.
âWhat the fuck.â
âWhat the fuck.â
Your laughing, deranged and fatigued cackles that earn several looks but on the cusps of finals itâs not uncommon enough to stop anyone out of concern. âWhat the fuck!â
Youâre not sure what to do. Celebrate? Cry?Â
Itâs a little bit of both as Wonwoo swoops in, wrapping his arms around you tight enough to squeeze a surprised scream from your lungs. Heâs not done, lifting and spinning you around in a quick circle before crying, âWhat the fuck!â
You laugh, snorting ugly cackles as he almost drops you with both of you gasping for breath. Completely deranged but what just happened that the rift between you momentarily heals.
Wonwoo sets you down gently but keeps close, his hands your waist like heâs afraid to let go. Like heâs missed you just as much as youâve missed him. You finally look at him, and itâs the first breath of air after drowning for hours. The creases around his eye, the happy wrinkles around his nose. His hair is long enough it brushes your skin where your foreheads almost touch. His hold is like a cocoon of warmth.
âIâm sorry!â you blurt. âIâm so fucking sorry. Iâm stupid and stubborn and Iâve been so caught up in this program that Iââ
âNo,â he shakes his head, arms tightening as you squirm in his hold.
âLet me finish.â
âNo,â he says. âI like that you're stubborn and a pain in the ass. And it wasnât fair that I expected you to just push aside something like grad school for me. I was being selfish andââ
âI love you.â
You might say it again just to see the way he chokes and turns purple; pulls you closer. Heâs at a loss for words and you capitalize on the moment.
âIâve thought about what would happen if I didnât get in, like a million different possibilities and never once were you not there. I felt likeâŠI donât know, honestly. Like I was losing you and it was easier to be upset about the program than admit that. It was stupid and Iâm stupid, and Iâm really bad at speeches soâŠfeel free to shut me up or whatever.â
You wait for him to process what youâve said â a million emotions swiping across his face. Ridiculous some people act like heâs the embodiment of stoicism because if you know what to look for then theyâd realize heâs terrible at hiding the way he feels.
âYou love me?â
All that crying you did in the past few weeks means nothing because you could cry right now. But you donât look away, you donât ever want to look away from him again because youâd miss the way his face softens.
âWell, weâve been dating for the past three years. Itâs about time I told you.â
Wonwoo doesnât speak, facing morphing into confusion before he scoffs with disbelief. âYouâre so annoying.â
âHey!â you stomp but Wonwoo pulls you closer, buries his face in your neck and squeezes so tight something feels on the verge of popping in your spine. His ears burn red as he whispers those three words back quietly enough you strain to hear them. He bites your shoulder just to be an asshole.
âWhat the hell was that for?âÂ
He does it again.
âStop biting me you freak, weâre in public.â You pinch his side for good measure and only then does he smash the side of his face to yours and begin walking you backwards, in the direction of your apartment.
âWhatever, you love me.â
He lets you walk normally at the cross walk, your hand in his, both tangled in the warmth of the pocket of his sweatshirt because itâs fucking cold and the wind isnât helping. Wonwoo drags you straight home, up the stairs, and crowds you against the door and kisses you until you canât breathe.
âWhy are you crying?â
You are. You donât even realize it had started until you reach up and feel the dampness on your cheeks.
âProbably because I havenât slept in two days and I missed you, idiot.â Wonwoo kisses you flat on the mouth again at the confession, smiling big enough itâs less of a kiss and more of teeth pressed together. But itâs good. You like it. You speak into his mouth, âI promise I would have really âsloppy I love you sexâ but Iâm so tired I think I might throw up.â
âYou missed me.â he hums, more of a statement than a question.
âYeah, big head, I missed you. Now letâs sleep.â
âGod,â he moans, biting his lip in mock pleasure. Maybe even real pleasure at the idea of a Friday afternoon full of nothing but hazy dreams in silence rarely found in a frat house. âI love you too.â
You undress straight down to your underwear. Cotton with a conservative cut because in no universe did you think youâd end the day with Wonwoo back in your orbit. Wonwoo who loves you, Wonwoo who you love back. But he eyes you like youâre a grand prize and all he wants is to touch you. But the rush of adrenaline keeping you conscious is burning out quickly.
He strips too, nothing but boxers and circles under his eyes but heâs happy. It radiates off him in waves and if you werenât part of it, youâd throw something at him because itâd be annoying. You might just be glowing too.
You slip under the covers and Wonwoo snuggles up behind you, a second skin with his hand flat to your stomach to keep you from going anywhere. Not that you would. You donât even remember falling asleep.Â
When you wake up, itâs dark outside; which could mean itâs been minutes or hours since the winter sun likes to deep beneath the horizon early in the afternoon. Itâs the best sleep youâve had in weeks.
Everything is warm; your body beneath the comforter, where sweat sticks at your back, the lips dragging across the curve of your neck, Wonwooâs crotch firm between your legs.
âGood morning to me,â you sigh.
He hums in happy agreement, tongue traces the shell of your ear before kissing across your cheek and chin and finally landing on your mouth with a kiss that can only be described as sappy.
âGot started without me?â Your hands press under his underwear, two palms full of his ass holding him still enough to grind up into. Something about a sleepy make out has you hungry to lay there and take whatever heâll offer.
âIâll catch you up, donât worry.âÂ
You snicker, âNo wonder those freshmen have crushes on you.â
âWhat do you mean?â He traces your naked sides with his fingers.
âIâll catch you up,â you mock, then wince from a razor of his teeth as he shifts down your chest. âIf you were my TA, Iâd try to fuck you.â
âIâm trying to haveâ sloppy I love you sexâ and youâre trying to goad me into some student teacher shit?â
He bites your side, just a nip but you flare and blush anyway. âOoooo, tell me Iâm bad.â
âYouâre annoying.â
âYou love me.â
âAs I was saying,â he whispers into your stomach, fingers tugging your panties off. âSloppy I love you sex.â
âOkay, okay.â You sink a hand in his hair only for him to tug it away, fingers laced together over your sternum as he strokes you to life. âO-oh, thatâsâfuck.â
He hikes a leg up over his shoulder, out of the way for the fingers that satisfy the empty squeeze in your gut. Your tongue prickles with another goad but Wonwoo senses it first and swiftly works to silence you with a hot kiss to your clit that makes your vision bleed red.
The cold of the room works in his favor, pinching your nipples tight until you cave to the need to touch yourself. If the light was on then heâd watch and you get the urge to pause the action just for the chance to watch him watch you.
âDonât stop,â you grunt.Â
He eats it filthy, spit and arousal forming a wet mess slipping down your ass. The way his tongue lashes is nothing short of despicable and you know youâre the one that taught him that and you canât help but flare with pride. âIâm gonna cum, Iâm gonna cum, Iâmââ you chant blindly.
The warmth between your legs surrounds, suffocates until your thighs go numb and your shoulders pull away from the mattress with a groan rivaling porn; but you mean it. Wonwoo means it too.Â
You clench harder, revitalized in the stretch of another finger and a clip of teeth on your clit. You tug at your still clasped hands on your chest, bite into the meat of his palm and let the flood consume you with stiff legs and tears in your eyes. âOh, Wonwoo â u-ugh. Fuck. Fuck.â
Wonwoo takes it, mouth waiting for every eager roll of your hips; completely unphased until you melt back in the sheets with a pathetic mewl.
He kisses up your body, mouth and cheeks wet and warm. When he reaches your mouth you resist the urge to lick him clean. Something about that feels decidedly unlike sloppy I love you sex. So you slip your tongue between his lips instead and spread your legs until his crotch is level with the raw sensitivity of your own.
âRoll over,â you pant.
Like an asshole, he laughs. And then he drops his weight behind his hips and you actually see stars. âWanna do it like this.â
âMake love to me,â you croon.
He doesnât even pretend to stifle the obnoxious snort. âDonât ever say that again.â
âWhat happened to sloppy I love you sex?âÂ
âGetting to it. You like it when I come inside you?â Now heâs the one goading and youâre blushing like youâve never fucked him before. To be fair, you havenât fucked him as the man youâre in love with so itâs a first time for the both of you. Wonwooâs drunk on the power of having you stutter through something so familiar yet new.
âLove it.âÂ
âGood,â he agrees with a saccharine peck to your nose that makes you feel like a doe eyed virgin again. âI love you.â
Your need for games and pretense dissolves. You just want Wonwoo, all of him, until you canât take it any more.Â
Wonwoo senses the change, noses against your cheek before kissing you. Heâs still holding your hand, the other cupping your jaw, thumb tracing the curve of flesh. Itâs vulnerable and soft and something you probably couldâve experienced years ago if you werenât willfully blind.
âI love you, too.â
You whisper the confession so quietly it doesnât even make a sound but Wonwoo figures it out because he surges into action, pulling you to the center of the mattress in all your naked glory. The flood light from the side of the building reflects back in through the slats in the blinds and Wonwoo sits up to soak in what he can see in the limited light.
Twisting a hand in his hair, you pull him down for a kiss; forcing all the emotions you have to the surface. He doesnât make you wait. Instead, he drops flat, flat together from head to toe as he slips inside. Youâre still tight and sensitive, squirming at the feeling of being stretched so thin with Wonwoo wrapped tight in your arms.
âW-wonwoo,â you mewl. You know he loves the sound of his name, any time, in desperate moans and sleepy coos. Youâll say it as much as he wants to hear if he kisses you like he is now â with something new at the edge. Something needy. âMore.â
He wraps your legs around his hips, folding you clean in half with a heavy rut into your pussy youâll feel for days. You both want to drag this out â take hours to come apart and come together again and again â but Wonwoo is already working a hand between your bodies; stroking you over hot coals just to hear you moan his name again.
In record speed, you feel that familiar burn creeping along your spine. He fucks you into a wet mess and itâs all you can do to hold on and claw up his back. Breaks you into something limp and pliant, hands twisted together over head; tugs at that loose thread over and over until you unravel beneath him and Wonwoo watches like itâs magic.
âOh- oh, Wonwooââ you cry. Actually cry. Tears he swipes away with a thumb before pressing his mouth to yours.
Youâre swollen and stiff, muscles taunt while they twitch from a rush of complete bliss.
âM cumming, baby â oh my god.â Wonwoo bucks into the tight squeeze of your legs, deeper, harder, more. âLove youâfuck.â
He hides with soft sighs in your neck, skin sticky where you both slide together. You cradle him to your chest, fingers rushing through the sweaty tangles on his hair gently. A kiss to his head, his brow, his nose that wrinkles from pure content.
But youâre not done yet.
You wiggle from beneath him, peeling yourself off the pillows, lower half still numb from one hell of an orgasm. But you want more, insatiable and doped on years of repressed fondness. âCan you go again?âÂ
Wonwoo looks like you asked him to run a marathon. âYou want me to die?â
âWorse ways to go,â you coo, sinking low enough to take his cock in your mouth. It tastes like you and him and it makes your eyes roll.
âGod. I didnât know sappy sex meant youâd try to kill me,â he moans airly under your ministrations, a hand at the back of your head when you show off with a nose to his crotch before sliding off. âYouâre evil.â
âIâm in love with a sexy nerd and I'm horny,â you sigh dreamily, thrilled with the way he pulses in your hold.
âYeah, wellâŠâ he gives up on whatever rebuttal under the weight of your body on top of his. Nothing he can argue with in that statement anyway so you tease him with a kiss, smile when he chases your mouth, roll when you realize he can taste the mix of you both off your tongue.
âYou knowâŠIâll need a roommate in Boston.â
âHuh,â Wonwoo feigns. His focus is on the way your tug at his cock, spit and cum webbed between your fingers. This isnât the best way to have this conversation but youâre both high on sleep deprivation, love, and orgasms and it encourages loose lips.
âKnow anyone interested?â
He shudders back into the pillow, leaving his neck open for your teeth with a choked, âYeah.â
âWho?â
âMe.âÂ
âYeah?â
âYeah âfuckâwanna wake up to you every morning.â
âEven if Iâm a cranky bitch?â Your knees bracket his hips, cunt split on his cock as you grind against the underside.
His stomach caves as he responds with a thin voice, âyeah.â
You like waking up to him too. Falling asleep with him tangled in your body, listening to him hum in the shower when he thinks you arenât listening. Sometimes he even sings with a little encouragement like those times you were sick and the only thing that got your mind from exploding like thunderclaps was the lullabies from his childhood that he cooed into your hairline.
Starting and ending everyday with Wonwoo sounds nothing short of blissful.
âOkay.â You tangle his fingers with your own, rising on your knees to distract from the sheepish smile splitting your face in two.
âReally?â
âI like having you around,â you admit, sinking down on his cock. âMakes me feel better.â
Weird conversation over the back track of slapping skin and pathetic muffled sobs but you like it. Feels well overdue.
âA-about?â
Everything.
He gives a tender squeeze to your thigh, cradles your face in both hands, eye contact that you fight not shutter away from because itâs terrifying he can see you clearly.Â
Heâs lost; completely mesmerized by the way you bounce on the length of him, grind back into his lap like youâre possessed.
âCanât lastââ he chokes.
âSâokay,â you press the words into his cheek, his jaw, the bones jutting from around his collar. âJust wanna feel you.â
You bend and strain for his pleasure, to watch it dance across his brow as he cums inside you again, his hands heavy on your ass, your thighs, whatever he reflexively grips in a bid for grounding, nails leaving streaks of color. Twitching and jerking in sensitive painful bliss, his eyes roll back with a quick exhale. âFuck-k.â
You're sticky and used between the legs but you take comfort in the feeling and bask in the glow on top of him. Nothing but a pile of satisfied boneless goo where you lay with sweaty skin and heat you feel from the top of your head to your toes. âGood?â
âGreat,â he hums, pulling into one last toe numbing kiss.Â
When feeling returns to your bodies, you spend the rest of the night eating greasy pizza on the couch in nothing but his shirt, drinking wine straight from the bottle in celebration. You kiss Wonwoo whenever you want, which, admittedly, is a lot; a flurry of sappy pecks over his face leaves him blushing and dewy. When you fall asleep after making love once again, the last thing you hear is him saying he loves you too.
Epilogue
4 months laterâŠ
Thereâs a certain level of comfort that comes with receiving an official acceptance email. The words youâve been waiting to hear since Dr. Wagner all but confirmed your future in a fifteen minute meeting last semester.
On behalf of the Chemistry department, we are pleased to inform you that you have been accepted as a part ofâŠ
The big envelope in the mail today helped too.
Wonwoo sends a photo of his, unopened, because you promised to open them together tonight. On your date; which is nothing more than grading assignments and eating leftover take out on the couch like so many nights have been spent already. But this time heâs your boyfriend. And after all the worksheets are graded, and you get to cuddle deep into the worn couch cushions, you get to tell him you love him and heâll say it back and the flutter in your veins at the thought is nothing short of magical.Â
And this time you have a surprise waiting for him and he might just cry. Or you hope so. Youâve got $50 riding on the possibility.
Youâre sweating through your shirt from putting the new piece of furniture together for the past three hours by the time he shows up with a bag of takeout, Thai food from the place on Market where they know you by order, and a kiss youâve been missing since the morning when he left for one of his stupid workouts.Â
Wonwoo sets the bag on the counter, immediately pulling you into his arms before sagging like a deflated balloon. âPixel got adopted today.â
âReally?â
âYeah.â Heâs moping. He accepts your placating kiss with a pout, and starts unpacking the food.
You feel the smallest flutter of guilt but it's worth it. âThat sucks.âÂ
âShe needed a good home.â Wonwoo confirms and that's the end of the conversation.
Even in your final semester, your schedules are still packed. Crammed full with meetings, exams, work, Wonwooâs volleyball stuff that you attend with posters and sit near the other girlfriends. Itâs weird but not because its the same stuff you two were doing for years. But itâs exhausting.
So you donât blame Wonwoo for not noticing the newest addition to your apartment until heâs inhaled his food and the last third of yours.
âBabe.â
âWhat?â you ask, focusing on cutting another red slash into the white paper.
âWhatâs that?â
He points at the gigantic cat tower in the corner next to the couch. Itâs cramped in tight but in two months youâll both be in Boston with a bigger apartment with real bedrooms so itâs only temporary.
You shrug and make another mark. âOh, just something I picked up.â
âYou donât have a cat.â
âHuh. Weird.â Your eyebrows furrow in mock confusion but you keep grading papers or else itâs game over and the need to watch him puzzle together your plans is all you want. âThen whatâs the thing in the bathroom?â
âYou didnât.â
âI did,â you confirm.
Wonwoo stares open mouthed, between you and the bathroom door and back to you. He might pinch himself but he flies off the couch with childlike eagerness and your face hurts from smiling already.
Pixel spends the rest of the night curled up asleep on her new dadâs lap and youâre $50 richer. Mingyuâs girlfriend is already offering to catsit despite Mingyuâs pouts about losing money.
Taglist: @tomodachiii @cvpidyunho @miniseokminnies @ddaengpotate @arycutie
@gaebestie @primoppang @gyuguys @mine-gyu @doremifasire
@missminhoe @toplinehyunjin @crvs4vldtn @prettygyuuu @sliceofwoozi
@writingbarnes @dokyeomkyeom @christinewithluv @minwonfairy @idkjustlovingbts
@wobblewobble822 @futuristicenemychaos @seungkw1 @horanghaezone @jespecially
@scoupsjin @isabellah29 @luvseungcheol @crisle19 @iamawkwardandshy
@lukeys-giggle @aaa-sia @tinkerbell460
HER | part six (m).
â§â synopsis:Â wonwoo, a heartbroken and burnt out writer nearing the end of his math degree, wants nothing to do with the seemingly perfect, intimidating girl who has everyone under her thumb. you. unfortunately, his literary talent has got him shoved him between a rock and a hard place when you want to write a book and require his expertise. you two are the furthest from compatible. wonwoo canât see this going well. at all.
pairing: wonwoo x fem!reader word count: 22.6k genres/tropes:Â writer!wonwoo, university!au, plug!vernon + boyfriend!mingyu as prominent side characters, SLOWBURN (i am not fucking around this is my slowest burn yet), relationship drama, soul searching, strong angst/hurt (iâm coming for the jugular), comfort, romance, smut, a smoothie of every emotion on earth.
(!) warnings: drug use (weed, cocaine, ecstasy), wonwoo has anxiety + anxiety attacks + fairly dark thoughts, prescribed medication, gambling, intense language, infidelity, throwing up.
â§â a/n: just some quick things i want to make apparent!
the fic is told from wonwooâs pov, not the readerâs!Â
all major timeline events are organized through chronological dates
any smut or potentially triggering scenes are NOT MARKED bc the content is already quite mature, so just plz be aware of that!Â
bolded and italicized text implies the characters are conversing in korean, tho it doesnât happen often!
the fic in its entirety is 140k, so it has been split into 6 parts.
here it is... the FINAL part đ it seemed that a number of you were quite worried as to how i'd wrap this up, and i can finally give you the answer! :3 this has been an epic journey. thank yew for ur time đ
more rambling continues at the very end. as per usual. again, a little bit more of an early upload! as a treat <3
âąÂ part one | part two | part three | part four | part five âą soundtrack for those curious! âąÂ read at ur own pace! :)
âSEPTEMBER 30TH.
The morning after was strange.
Early sunlight permeated through the living roomâs white cloth curtains, dappling in water-like speckles against the glasses still held on his nose. For a moment, Wonwoo was frozen, as his mind made the shift from deep sleep to consciousness, though when he finally did awaken to find his blanket half-pushed off the recliner and the remnants of Chinese takeout left scattered across the coffee table, his lethargy started fading.
Vernon was gone.
Judging from the text on Wonwooâs phone, the boy had quietly made his way out at around seven in the morning. It surprised Wonwoo to no end that Vernon could manage to sleep so little yet remain fully functional all the time. He seemed magicâor maybe it was something else that Wonwoo would be concerned to know about.
He spent some time cleaning off the coffee table.
Down the hall, his bedroom door remained closed.
When you finally did emerge, it was with the olive-green dress draped over your arm and the ivory heels in hand, which you proceeded to arrange on the small dining table by the kitchen.
Notably, however, there was something off about you, something that Wonwoo interpreted as nerves with an underlying awkwardness you didnât typically, if at all, demonstrate. When he asked if you wanted breakfast and tea, your response was a tiny head shake and a poorly fit smile. Though, Wonwoo wasnât going to paw at you.
He found that mornings always tended to be quite sobering, even if he hadnât exactly drunk enough to make the room spin or swallowed some colourfully disguised pill on his tongue. Just the air was enough to rewire his headâthat cooler, crisp air that he either loved or hated.
Undoubtedly, you had much to think about.
Wonwoo helped you get a hold of Princess using his phone, and the two of you watched television in silence while waiting for her to pick you up. He escorted you down through the pottery shop when it was time, and you sported very little shame, walking out onto the bright city sidewalk in just his t-shirt, clothes and shoes wrapped in your arms. Princess had this awfully perplexed look slapped onto her face while leaning over to nudge the car door open for you, and in that moment, Wonwoo was scared of how it all appeared and what might transpire now that the giddiness and frivolity from the night before had ebbed away. He didnât regret anything, though. Not at all.
But, in truth, what the fuck even were you two?
And what was supposed to happen now?
âOCTOBER 3RD. Â
Since you had left his apartment in a daze that Saturday morning, Wonwoo hadnât seen or heard from you. It was concerning him as time passed, he couldnât deny it, but he also trusted you and wanted not to make you feel pressured into explaining yourself.
He was caught in a brisk walk along campus after leaving his early lecture, a warm coffee cup pressed against his lip that he had grabbed from the ground floor of SRXâthey had been giving hot drinks away for free, and, consequently, it tasted like it. Nonetheless, the air was chillier by the day as autumn pushed its way in and decorated the walkway with dry leaves that rustled and crunched under his shoes. It was nice to have something hot in his hand.
He took a second to glance down at his phone.
Still, no messages from you, Wonwoo realized with a suckling sip of the very watery coffee, nearly tempted to text you himselfânot anything pushyâjust a simple reassurance that he was there for you if things werenât going well.
Suddenly, however, Wonwoo had smacked into someone.
âFuckâsorry,â he muttered, readjusting the computer bag slung over his shoulder and pushing up his circled glasses.
To Wonwooâs complete and utter misery, he was unfortunately acquainted with the person heâd bumped shoulders, and now he was wishing that he had just kept walking like an impatient asshole.
Seokmin was standing before him, dressed in a similar-style woolen trench coat that his hands were stuffed into, the sun turning certain threads of his chocolate brown hair all shimmery. He hadnât gotten back to Seokminâs numerous texts ever since Wonwoo sent a brief, very purposefully vague message to the boy that night he ran out with you at the dinner party.
Now he was wondering if the shoulder bump was intentional.
âWonwoo⊠uh, hey,â Seokmin stumbled.
Sniffling, Wonwoo let a second or two pass before answering.
He was still debating whether or not to walk away.
âWhatâs up?â
âYou just get out of class, or?â
Wonwoo nodded. âYeahâadvanced stats.â
Seokmin flitted a barely-there smile, staring at his coffee cup.
âIs that the free stuff from SRX?â
âIndeed.â
âHow does it taste?â
âUh, watery⊠like shit, basically.â
Wonwoo knewâhe fucking knewâthat there was something buzzing on the tip of Seokminâs tongue that he just couldnât spit out. His absentminded expression and clear not-giving-a-damness about whether Wonwooâs free coffee was actually good completely betrayed him. Not wanting to dawdle and get stuck in the mud of conversation, Wonwoo swallowed the lump in his throat, flashed his friend a tight-lipped smile, and pitched a goodbye, blandly wording it as, âI wonât keep you. Later.â
But Seokmin didnât seem prepared to let that happen.
And Wonwooâs eyes nearly rolled backward into his skull when the boy turned around and attempted to catch his attention again.
For some stupid, incomprehensible reason, Wonwoo stopped.
Maybe he knew the conversation needed to happen.
It only made him loathe the situation more.
âYeah?â
Seokmin dragged a hand through his hair, brushing it up and down against the back of his head while he squinted at Wonwoo.
âI think⊠uh⊠if youâre not busy⊠I think thereâs maybe some stuff we need to talk about. I donât mean to like, catch you at a bad time or anything⊠do you wanna go sit at the picnic table over there?â
At Seokminâs carefully suggested inquiry, Wonwoo followed the boyâs pointing finger toward the empty table placed on the large grass circle that the walkway wove around. With his grip hardening into the coffee cup, Wonwoo stopped to think despite knowing his answer.
âOkay⊠yeah.â
Wonwoo realized it had never felt this weird and stilted to sit down with Seokmin despite him being quite a reliable friend over the months, though Wonwoo was developing the sneaking feeling that his study buddy was about to deal an irreparable blow to their relationship. Seokminâs folded hands were sitting atop the flecked, aged wood of the table, thumbs nervously twiddling, meanwhile Wonwoo remained silent to sip from his coffee that only became more and more tasteless.
Eventually, his friend seemed to find the words he needed.
âSo, I donât know if youâve heard⊠but⊠Her and Mingyu are taking a break. Theyâre officially pressing the big pause button. I wasnât there to witness the conversation, although I get the gist it was a pretty⊠uh, unpleasant talk,â Seokmin winced, bracing his teeth, âand⊠well, naturally, I learned that you were a big part of that talk, seeing how it looked and allâyou and Her running out at the dinner partyâŠâ
He left what seemed like a purposeful pause, and Wonwoo assumed that he was supposed to feel pressured and jump to make a correction or provide an explanation, but he kept silent and rather expressionless. Ironically, Seokmin was the one to continue his spiel.
âWell, basically, there were some accusations thrown around as you can imagine. And Iâm not sitting here to point a finger and question you to death about everything, but I just thought Iâd give you the tableâuh, literallyâto explain whatâs been happening.â
Wonwoo finally set aside his drink, then shifting off the strap to his computer bag, letting it fall down his shoulder. He didnât make a huge, overwhelmed sigh even though his body was screaming for it, nor did he ponder abandoning the conversation despite the magnitude of everything Seokmin laid out for him.
Fuckâhe hated being matured.
âI canât speak on her feelings. But I like her.â
âOhâyou do?â Seokmin was astonishingly surprised.
Wonwoo shrugged. âYeah.â
âSo, then, does that meanââ
âActually, sorry, Iâm downplaying it like a coward,â Wonwoo interrupted, shaking his head, âI donât just like her. Iâm in love with her.â
It was then that Seokmin simply didnât speak at all. His mouth had formed a hollowed shape, resembling something like a gulping fish, and Wonwoo capitalized on the silence to keep his thoughts fluent.
âI understand, okay? I understand why Mingyu is pissed. It takes two to tango, I get all that. And I know you probably want me to state my regret and all that so I donât seem like such an asshole, but, honestly, I donât really regret anything. Mingyu doesnât care about her.â
Seokmin chuffed, rubbing at his chin. âOkay⊠I donât know if I would go as far as to say that in particular. But you are admitting to it? I donât know what it is youâve done but youâve done things with Her.â
âWeâve never had sex if thatâs what youâre asking.â
âAndââ
âWeâve never kissed, either⊠the only thing I was supposed to do was help her write that little love story. Which you set up, by the way. I didnât know it would turn into this. I tried to get out of it.â
âI never thought she would stick it out.â
âI know.â Wonwoo sucked in his bottom lip, staring across the weathered wood at Seokmin. âYou probably wanted her to drop it the second she mentioned it. I bet Mingyu thought the same.â
Seokmin scrunched up his face in disagreement. âThatâs not necessarily true. She just fixates on stuff and then burns out after. She's always been like that, ever since I've known her. I figured the book would be no different. I thought it was something she needed to get out of her system, I didnât think it would start rolling andââ he leaned forward into his palms for a moment, swallowing audibly. âSorry, I justâI donât get it, thatâs all. I donât get her fixations.â
âI think youâre just uncomfortable with her self-expression.â
âSheâitâs not self-expression, though. Look, I know a pinch of what her story is about. Itâs not about herself. Itâs about Mingyu.â
âYou think that just because sheâs writing about someone else, thereâs no pieces of herself in it? Her own feelings? Her own perspective? Câmon, Seokmin. Youâre fucking smarter than that. You know what it's actually about.â
His friendâs eyes drifted away from him. Â
Wonwoo then cleared his throat. âLook, you donât really need all the details, Seokmin. Like I said, I donât know exactly how she feels about me. I can surmise. I can say weâve had moments that we shouldnât. Butâgenuinelyâyou probably know more than I do and youâre lying to yourself if you canât realize that Mingyu is just some advantageous prick who makes her miserable.â
âWell, I think thatâI donât know if itâs reallyââ
âHe walked into an opportunity with her and he knew it. His whole fucking life and career was basically set up for him the second he met her family. Heâs beyond lucky Her ever looked his way.â
âJeez, Wonwoo. Honestly, itâs not like that.â
âHow is it not?â
Seokmin ran a hand through his hair, appearing flustered and without a tongue to make sense. âJustâokayâIâve been around them a lot. I know how it seems from an outsiderâs view. They can argue and push buttons. Their relationship isnât perfect, but whose is? Mingyu didnât just walk into the family asking for this and thatâheâs never asked for anything, no handouts. Everything thatâs been âset upâ for him was because Herâs family wanted it. They know heâs a good guy.â
The scoff shot from Wonwooâs mouth like an arrow. âIâm sorry but, what do they want for Her? Were we at the same dinner party? Did you see her nearly burst into tears? She has to live life in this rigid box, trying to conform to everyone else around her. Donât you think she wants to live her own life? Be her own person?â
âOf course, butââ
âNoâwhy is there even a âbutâ?â
âI donât think you understand. Her has everything she needs.â
âYou mean, what everyone thinks she needs.â Wonwoo tossed his hand up in the air, laughing, while also getting the strong impulse to ring out his friendâs neck. âIt doesnât make any sense to me. How can you be so close to her, but you donât realize how unhappy she is? You know what I think? Youâre part of it, Seokmin. You're always in her business, hovering, watching, sewing seeds of doubt, shooting down her interestsâand you disguise it as help. No one in that house listens to her. Theyâve told her who she should be instead of letting her figure it out for herself. How can you be so complicit in that? She gets no support from any of you, about the decisions in her life that actually matter. And Mingyuâhonestly, he can go fuck himself. Heâs just as complicit as you. Heâs soul-sucking.â
âGodâsh-sheâs an adult.â Seokmin was exasperated, his cheeks reddening like two ripe apples. âShe doesnât have to visit her parents. She doesnât have to date Mingyu. Nothing is forced on her. No one is dragging her there. I help because I know what she's capable of. I know the perfect life she can have. Her parents know, too. But she just gets sidetracked! She gets wrapped up in stuff that doesn't matter! If she hates everything, she can easily walk away.â
âBut you guys have made that so impossible for her.â
âHow?â
Wonwoo proceeded to clench his fist up so tight he thought his skin might bleed, the edge of his knuckles pressing down on the table.
âShe doesnât know who the fuck she is.â
Seokmin instantly paled. He looked whiter than a snowflake.
âThatâs like clipping a birdâs wings and then asking why it canât fly away. Knowing who you are is such a big part of life. Itâs arguably the foundation. What the fuck do you want her to do? I donât evenâI honestly donât even want to look at you, Seokmin. Let Mingyu beat me up if he wants toâlet it happen a thousand timesââ slinging the computer bag back over his shoulder, Wonwoo was rising from the picnic table while glaring down at the stiff, empty-faced Seokmin, who had suddenly morphed from a friend to a bitter stranger, ââI donât care what he thinks. Itâs not going to change how I feel about her, or make me stay away. Iâve seen who she can be and what she actually wants from life, and it's not some snotty, vapid, copy-and-paste hell that her parents are forcing on her. But neither of you seem to give a shit. Youâre both completely undeserving.â
Stepping away from the bench, Wonwoo tensed his jaw as the sunlight splashed over him, breaking in between the skeletal trees and their resilient orange leaves. âGot everything you wanted to know? Go run it back to Mingyu. Iâm sure thatâs what you were gonna do anyway.â
The anger in his chest felt like it was going to crawl out from his mouth and squeeze Seokmin into a ball, therefore Wonwoo exercised his breathing while on a strict path back down the walkway.
Abandoning Seokmin did hurt him more than he had thought, knowing he just lost a friend from his already very limited circle, someone whom he clicked with so readily. At the same time, however, there was a lightness about it. As Wonwooâs frustration seeped out during the walk back to his apartment, some of the weight pressed into his shoulders released itself like water evaporating from a blacktop.
He just wished he could be at your side more than anything.
There was obviously a reason for your silence.
[ Wonwoo | 11:28 am ]: I heard about the break.
[ Wonwoo | 11:28 am ]: Iâm here if you need anything at all.
âŠ
[ Her | 4:05 pm ]: you talked to seokmin?
[ Wonwoo | 4:07 pm ]: Yeah. Never again.
[ Her | 4:07 pm ]: mingyu is so mad
[ Wonwoo | 4:07 pm ]: I figure.
[ Her | 4:08 pm ]: please avoid him if you can. iâm worried
[ Wonwoo | 4:08 pm ]: Iâm not.
[ Her | 4:08 pm ]: wonwoo heâs seriously pissed
[ Her | 4:08 pm ]: canât you hang out with vernon some more
[ Wonwoo | 4:09 pm ]: Seriously?
[ Her | 4:09 pm ]: yes
[ Her | 4:09 pm ]: mingyu got into trouble with dots and had a real big scare. so he doesnât like to mess much with him or his friends. he'll showboat but that's about it
[ Her | 4:09 pm ]: well ik dots died but u get the point
[ Wonwoo | 4:10 pm ]: Fair.
[ Wonwoo | 4:10 pm ]: But I canât just pull Vernon around as my Mingyu repellent lol. Honestly, if he wants to rock me, idc.
[ Her | 4:10 pm ]: well I do care
[ Her | 4:10 pm ]: ugh
[ Her | 4:11 pm ]: life has been sucking so hard lately
[ Wonwoo | 4:11 pm ]: I want to come see you.
[ Her | 4:11 pm ]: I want that too. but I need more time, k?
[ Wonwoo | 4:12 pm ]: I know.
[ Wonwoo | 4:12 pm ]: Here if you need me.
âOCTOBER 18TH.
For the past two weeks, Wonwoo had been walking around with the looming possibility of getting jumped by your six-foot tall, rather muscley boyfriend, and he was thus very relieved to have made it this far without eating a fist to the face. Well, now Mingyu was an ex.
Maybe.
The pause in your relationship read like a gray area that Wonwoo had been treading the thinnest eggshells on, prompting him to wait and hear the truth from you directly whenever you felt steady enough to tell him. He wondered if today might be that day.
Placing another strawberry onto the cutting board, Wonwoo chopped his knife through the leafy green bit, removing the stem. The cleaned-up strawberry was then dropped into a bowl of fresh ones that you had been picking away at for the past few minutes or so.
Wonwoo smiled while grabbing another berry to cut.
âI feel like this bowl hasnât gotten any fuller, for some reason.â
Your legs were swinging as you sat atop the small kitchen island while looking down at his every movement with the knife. Once he dropped another cut strawberry into the bowl, you scooped it out.
âJust making sure they donât go bad,â you responded, shrugging.
He raised an eyebrow at you. âThe fruit you buy usually goes bad within the minute? Are you getting into a fist fight with it?â
You poked at his hip with your socked foot. âWell, you said you were cutting it for me. So can I eat it or not? Iâm getting mixed signals.â
âNo, of course you can eat it. Iâm just teasing.â
âI donât do too well with delayed gratification.â
Wonwoo smiled at you, proceeding to remove the last few strawberries from the basket to cleanly dissect their stems. He then turned around, tossing the cutting board and knife into the stainless-steel sink with a clatter. After washing his hands, he was back at the island, noticing that the bowl was now seated in your lap like a bag of movie theatre popcorn with just the perfect amount of butter and salt. For a moment, Wonwoo didnât say anythingâthat focused look to your face as you ate the fruit he prepared was much too captivating. He wanted to catch one of your swinging legs, pull you right to the counterâs very edge and have you wrap yourself around him. He wanted everything with you.
In your earlier days together, Wonwoo used to be a lot more evasive about his staring (at least, thatâs what he wanted to believe), but now he didnât feel as required to be so painfully subtle and imperceptible about things. He let you snack until you were satisfied, the empty bowl then being exchanged with a damp rag to clean your fingers.
âSo,â clearing his throat, Wonwoo braced his hands against the granite island and glanced at you from behind his glasses, scanning down the unbothered, relatively straight face you had, âeverything going okay?â
Pressing your lips together, you nodded, making only an âmhmâ sound that didnât leave much to be interpreted.
Wonwoo saw the hands that plunged swiftly between your thighs, how you were quick to squeeze around them, like there existed something weighted and hidden.
He wanted to leave it up to your discretionâhe really did.
âOkay, thatâs good⊠justâuh, heâs not giving you a hard time, right? Heâs not bothering you at all?â Wonwoo asked, adjusting the rim of the black beanie heâd thrown on to keep his messy hair tucked back. âI donât mean to disinter anything. Iâm only asking because Iââ
âBecause you care,â you finished his sentence quietly with a trusting and faint smile, âI know. Thank you. It is hard for me, though⊠I donât know why this particular thing is so hard but it is.â
Wonwoo slid his hands together, moving them slow along the cold granite. âNo⊠thatâs understandable. I get it plenty.â Hellâhe didnât just get itâWonwoo had miserably and insufferably lived it for damn near a year at that point. In fact, tomorrow would mark the day that he came home to this same apartment only to discover the interior stripped of all the traces, sentiments, and artifacts that breathed miraculous life into the girl he once thought to be his other half.
A whole fucking year without Jeanie.
How flipped things were. How oddly coincidental that he was now in the same space but with a new person to create everlasting memories. You had the most opposite personality and spark.
Wonwoo sighed. He got close to you, settling his hand atop your knee before gliding it underneath your thigh, gripping at you firmly and pulling you forward until he was bracketed in between your legs. Your response was smitten, and he couldnât deny that he loved to practically see your heart beating under your chest in addition to sensing the warmth that flourished off your skin like you were sizzling in a pan.
Wonwoo set one hand down on the counter, right next to your hip, while the other tended to the side of your face, his fingers running behind your ear and down the slender path to your silk-smooth neck.
âLookâŠâ he breathed out, finding your eyes that were now a bit watery and tinged with stinging emotion, âI know itâs hard. And I would never rush you into figuring things out⊠but I like youâŠâ Wonwoo swallowed, letting his thumb play with your earring meanwhile his deep voice triggered the sharp, raised hairs spreading down your arms like an electric current, âI love spending time with youâeven just being in the same room as you, getting to stare at youâbut I justâwhen I donât know what you are to Mingyu, I donât know what to do with us.â
You drew in an immediate breath, then releasing a quiet laugh mixed with a runny sniffle. âI-It seems like you knowâŠâ
He pushed both his hands into the countertop, smiling at you.
âWell, I know what I want to doâŠâ Wonwoo murmured, gazing so intimately into your eyes as the oceans he urged to drown in, âbut you have to understand my reservations about it. Thatâs all.â
Bringing a pinky finger to your mouth to nibble on, you nodded.
Softly, he pinched the bare expanse of your waist. You gasped.
âBecause I do, in fact, want you.â
You didnât say anything, although Wonwoo noted that you were staring back into his gaze with so many hues of simple human emotion pulsating behind your eyesâthere was frustration, possibly at yourself and everything you couldnât yet communicate, and twinkles of impulse that matched rhythm with your heart. Then, employing unforeseen abruptness, your fingers were running down the back of his neck all ticklish and he felt the warmth from your breath feather his lips as you moved in closer, smirking at him, hazy like a sunrise pouring its light through a thick cover of morning fog.
âIf you can be patient for just a little longer, you'll have all of me.â
Thankfully (or maybe not so thankfully judging from the pure adrenaline coursing through his veins in a hedonistic, addictive sort of way) there were a few knocks at his door.
Your eyes rolled. âIs that your landlord or something?â
Wonwoo took a step back, letting you slide off the countertop while he adjusted his glasses and brushed down his t-shirt. How were you suddenly so casual? One second you were chewing nervously on your finger with the timidness of a newborn doe and the nextâback to your typical self. He watched you approach the door, tilting his head.
âUh, maybe? She usually texts me, though.â
âOr Seokmin with a batch of chocolate apology brownies.â
He chuckled, folding his arms. âDoubt it.â
Really, Wonwoo had no idea who it could be. It possibly was his landlord who had perhaps forgotten her usual warning text, or maybe his younger, sometimes irresponsible neighbour across the hall who would specifically ask to borrow his scent-free laundry detergent every now and then. As long as it wasnât Lady Liberty on the other side (in Vernonâs tried and true nicknaming spirit) then Wonwoo had no reason to care.
âWelp,â you made a balmy, popping sound with your lips, âonly one way to find out. I think I can smell the chocolate.â But once the door was pulled open, that little joking smile fell from your face concerningly fast, as though someone had plucked it right off.
FuckâWonwoo thought right off the cuffâit was Lady Liberty.
Your head quirked ever so slightly. âUh, helloâŠâ
Whoever the person was, they were just outside the threshold of what Wonwoo could see from his spot in the kitchenâexcept, now he didnât think it was Mingyu at all, since your tone seemed more confused than anything else.
For a moment, Wonwoo just stood where he was, not particularly understanding why he couldnât even twitch a measly finger.
âHiâIâm sorry, is this theâis thisâdoes Wonwoo still live here?â
From across the room, you shifted him a glance.
There was a heavy pause before you answered.
â⊠Yeah.â
âO-Oh, well⊠um⊠Iâm so sorry, but are you living here as well? Is he home? I donât mean to bother or anything. I guess I came by on a whim. Itâs a little hard to explain⊠I can always come back later.â
At that point, Wonwoo was making his way beside you.
That voiceâthat delicate wispy voice, lighter than a tuft of cotton adrift through the breeze under a salt blue skyâthere was such a familiarity about it that he was getting dizzier by the second. Your jaw was distinctly clenched as Wonwoo stopped at your side.
He took one look into the hallway and damn near fainted.
âWhat the fuckâŠâ Wonwoo whispered, his mouth suddenly stark of moisture as he lifted a hand to grab the doorâs edge, âJeanie?â
âUh, hey, Wonwoo.â
Waitânever mind, never mindâhe panicked. Maybe he did want it to be Mingyu. In fact, Wonwoo would have anticipated Bohyuk showing up outside his door, or his parents, or his girlfriend of two weeks back in sixth grade who broke up with him over a juice box before he could guess that his ex who disappeared without a trace would be there.
It sounded borderline insane, but Wonwoo almost wanted to poke her just to test if she was even real. She looked real. She sounded real. You didnât seem to be staring into empty space while side-eyeing him worriedly, rather you had very much acknowledged her. Wonwooâs grip fastened to the door, then realizing he was using it as a personal crutch to keep him upright as his legs slowly regained their rigidity and strength. He also realized that you likely had no idea who she was until her name had been distantly tugged from his lips by his instincts.
Jeanie splayed out her hands in a demonstration of submission.
âIf itâs a bad time, I can come back laterâŠâ
Wonwoo noted that you had taken a step away from the door, although you continued to stare at Jeanie with a countenance that refused to spoil muchâit seemed inquisitive and curious but still hardenedâthe moment was probably overwhelming you, too.
He gulped dryly, flicking his eyes back to her. âUh, well, I wasnât evenâyouâre like, the last person I would expect to see andââ
âItâs okay. Iâll leave.â
Jerking back to you, Wonwoo nearly gave himself whiplash.
âHerâyou donât need toââ
But you shook your head.
Grabbing the cream purse off the couch and slipping back into your comfortable, clean white tennis shoes, you seemed eager to go while simultaneously jaded at the circumstances.
âNo, donât worry about it,â you stopped in front of Wonwoo, adjusting the strap wove around your shoulder, âthis seems important, so⊠I donât want to stand in the way of anything⊠Iâll see you later, âkay?â
Then, you turned to Jeanie, sticking out your hand. âNice to meet you.â
She looked to Wonwoo for a split second.
âUm, yeah, you as wellâŠâ Jeanie eventually accepted the handshake, sounding breathy with nerves, âsorry about all this.â
While making your way to the staircase, Wonwoo quickly stepped into the corridor and waved at you, feeling his chest tighten.
âIâll call you, okay?â
You flashed a transient smile. He hated watching you leave.
Jeanie was watching you, too, hands politely folded at her abdomen, bunny rabbit teeth digging at the skin of her ruby-stained and calloused lips. She had always been a chronic lip-biterâanxiety, thrill, or stress, Wonwoo vividly remembered the blisters she absentmindedly inflicted unto herself from the bad habit, similar to the scars marking the cuticle of his thumb. After a year Jeanie looked different no doubt, but she also reflected an unchanged image through her conserved, fidgety behaviours. She was shy like a budding flower kept just short of the sun.
âAre you okay if I come in?â Jeanie mumbled, hardly able to maintain eye contact with Wonwoo for no more than a second or two.
He stepped back, beckoning indoors.
âYeah⊠thatâs fine, I guess.â
âLooks pretty nice in hereâŠâ she remarked soft-spokenly, taking a moment to marvel the space she once came home to every day, although she couldnât seem more like a stranger to the apartment even if she triedâlike a magazine cutout slapped onto a novel.
Wonwoo rubbed under his nose. âWell⊠I make due.â
Her hair used to be a symmetric, blunt length with her chin, but she had clearly grown it out over the months. The black tresses thrived in long and loose ribbons down her back, shinier than sea glass polished by rough waves. She was never one to wear much makeup eitherâtrimming her eyebrows, glossing her lips, and flicking on some mascara was all she really ever cared to do, and Wonwoo remembered being in love with her simplicity.
Jeanie proceeded to walk behind the couch, squeezing the back in her hands. She was so tiny. That hadnât changed much. He could only stand in one place, keeping still, examining her every movement and fighting against the trillions of voices clawing to his mindâs surface.
âFeels strange to be in here,â she laughed, running her fingers along the couchâs fabric, staring around the space, âI think it definitely has more of your touch now⊠it was nice to see Saskia again, too.â
âYeah.â
She stopped on him. âYou look well. Healthy.â
Wonwoo squinted at her. âWhy are you here?â
He didnât say it in a rude, impatient way. Genuinely, Wonwoo wasnât angry with her, not like he might have been a few months ago.
But he was confused and feeling increasingly anxious. You were gone, probably on your way back home, though Wonwoo wished you hadnât left at all, even if it were to make things sticky and awkward. Your presence in a room was the comfort he badly, painfully missed.
âSure,â Jeanie cleared her throat, âIâll explain. Care to sit?â
Together, they nestled onto the couch.
Wonwoo was kept to one end while Jeanie sat more in the middle, pulling at the long, flowy hem of her fern-patterned blue dress.
He tugged at the rim to his beanie, waiting for her to speak.
The girl gripped onto her knees, poised a soft, gentle look in his direction while taking in a breath. Their nerves seemed to be coalescing like different colours bleeding from freshly soaked paintbrushes. If anxiety were personified into butterflies, the room would start fluttering.
âI guess I thought it was time. Taking a shot in the dark, I know. I didnât know if you would still be here, but I got luckyâŠâ she clutched at her dress, fingers pulling into the airy material. âWonwoo, itâs not like I donât think about you, or wonder about you. I know what I did, how much it hurt⊠then I wasnât sure if Iâd be able to come back to here, with you. But I processed it all and it became an itch I had to scratch.â
Puffing out through his nose, Wonwoo almost laughed.
âYeahâyou wanted to see if I, what? Threw myself off the building or persevered, becoming some big money writer?â
Jeanie blinked at him a few times, furrowing her neat, straight brow, with every hair gelled down perfectly in place.
Wonwoo shook his head, lifting out his hand.
âOkay, my bad. That sounded like such an asshole thing to say.â
âNo, itâs okay. I get it.â Her cheeks flooded with a tide of rosy pink as she chuckled. âI-I just⊠well, you seem different now.â
He pushed up his glasses. âYou think?â
âYeah.â
âIn a good or bad way?â
Jeanie clasped her hands together, thumbs tapping.
âWell, I guess you seem more... upfront, not as prevaricating. Maybe thatâs how youâve always been and I just never really saw it or you picked it up from someone else.â
Wonwoo shrugged. âProbably a bit of both.â
âI am sorry. I know it was all so⊠sudden. I know this is sudden. I thought about calling... my hands would just shake so much whenever I picked up the phone, getting all sweaty and stuff. It felt like something that I had to just do. And, well, once I was back in the area, I didnât even want to lend myself time to dwell. I only came in yesterday.â
âYou went back home, then?â
âI did.â
âI figured⊠well, I got the hint pretty clear when your mom sent me that email. It was only a sentence or two long, but it hurt like hell.â
âItâs what I asked her to send. Itâs all I felt you needed to know.â
âYeah, I get that.â
Jeanie sighed, âI feel warranted in what I did⊠even so, I-I think I owe you an apology. Because, well, you were and still are someone I regard highly. You were going through something pretty serious⊠I mean, itâs obvious youâre taking such better care of yourself.â
 âIt definitely hasnât been linear.â
Tucking some hair behind her ear, the girl smiled. âWell, what in life really is? It only feels that way when youâre going straight down.â
He hmphed, thinking. â⊠Yeah. Really though, donât worry about it. An apology isnât necessary. Youâve always been too gracious.â
âI-I guess⊠but, I think it is, sinceââ
âJeanie, câmon. Itâs really not. I was dragging you down.â
âWonwoo, I feel likeââ
âIâm telling youââ
âWell, Iâm telling you and it would mean a lot if you just let me speak and get this off my chest. Please. Then you can have the floor. Tell me to package it all back up. Whatever it is you have to say. But I spent our entire relationship just listening and trying to understand you and interpret all your vague signals when I should have been trying to understand myself, and what I wanted. Iâm not the verbose type, I know that. Going off on longwinded tangents about my feelings has never been something that suits me but Iâm here now and I owe it to the girl who just sucked it all up, all the time, trying to be this perfect girlfriend for you.â
He managed a long, introspective breath.
Fuckâhe really did owe her that. He owed her so much more.
â⊠Okay,â Wonwoo nodded complicity, âyouâre right.â
âLeaving was the very last thing I wanted. I swear it. I agonized over the choice every day. But you didnât even notice. Thatâs when I knew it was more than bad, and whatever it was you were going through was just pulling you down so deep, like a whirlpool. Itâs like⊠I would talk to you, and there was no one inside. When I felt like you needed space, I gave you space. When I felt like you had something hard to say, I would sit with you all day, trying to ease it out, waiting for you to say it.
When you seemed so angry at yourself and everything around youâI-I donât knowâI tried to be the best thing for you. But I was hitting wall after wall. Sometimes I wonder how much of it was my fault. If I had just been upfront about my feelings then maybe things would have been⊠well, you know, different. I guess I never did say much because it seemed like the last thing you needed to hear, like I would be adding to your already massive collection of burdens. You have to understand, I felt trapped, Wonwoo. Like I was in a glass box or something.
I was decaying from the inside out. If I didnât leave, if I didnât make that split second decision to phone up my mom and tell her everything that morning you left for workâthen maybe we would have gotten even worse. Maybe we would have just drowned. I donât know. Iâm⊠glad, relieved, happier than ever, that I donât know what might have happened. And now that it seems weâre both⊠whole⊠I feel like an apology is just a way for me to say that if I had the steel to speak for the both of us, maybe we could have spared so much pain in between.â
Jeanieâs doe eyes twinkled with tears. âI thought that being apart might heal us both⊠I-I did it âcauseâin essenceâI did it because I cared, Wonwoo. About you. So deeply. But I also needed to start caring about myself, too.â
The corners of his mouth flitted in an unbridled smile toward the girl, his gaze admiring how the evening sunlight warmed up her cool-toned skin and shimmered through her strong, healthy hair.
âI know,â Wonwoo finally answered. âIâve known for a while.â
Jeanie stayed for about an hour longer, until the sky started darkening. Together, they filled each other in on the breakages in each otherâs distant lives, like a spider reweaving a gash through its cobweb. He was pleased to learn that she was doing quite well for herselfânow moved out from her family house and living with her younger sister, Jeanie held true to pursuing her ambition of managing the library she had always adored coming to during her childhood (he remembered it specifically as âthe one with the bean bag corner and the giant toy crate with the giraffe.â)
Wonwoo felt he didnât have much to say regarding himself, however, he had plenty to say about you.
Rubbing at a strand of her hair, Jeanie nodded. âYeah, I remember Her. Sheâlikeâshe did scare me a bit⊠I donât knowâshe really seemed to know what she was doing. I was a little envious of that. And she had really great style. She could pull anything off. She came in looking for a textbook one time, but I made my co-worker help her instead. I think I was too nervous to talk to her.â
Wonwoo had his legs stretched out onto the coffee table, hands settled on his stomach. Itching at his eyebrow, he smiled. âI probably would have done the same, back then. Honestly though, sheâs nothing like what she seems. I can promise you that.â
Jeanie was quiet for a moment, adjusting the legs tucked up underneath herself. âSo⊠you two are⊠youâre dating?â
âNo⊠itâs weird. I wish.â
âI recognized her when she opened the door. I was pretty confused since⊠of all the people that you could have over⊠she seemed like the most unlikely candidate. I-I mean, Iâm not saying that you could neverâIâm not saying that it could never happenââ
He tilted his head at Jeanie, grinning slyly. âNo, just say it. You didnât imagine Iâd ever even be able to talk to someone like her.â
The girlâs face flushed. âWell, youâre quite the opposites.â
âIn some ways.â
âI donât think sheâd like me.â
Wonwoo pursed his lip in disagreement. âThatâs not true. To be fair, youâve ever only got to see one side of her. Sheâs trying to figure shit out just as much as we are. You never really stop, I suppose.â
He felt Jeanieâs gaze still on him for a few seconds, her mouth twitching into a delicate, sincere smile made brighter by her eyes. âSo⊠you figure sheâd like me? Even if she knew all the details about us? How rough it all was?â
Wonwoo crossed his arms, staring back toward her confidently. âI figure sheâd probably like you more than me, actually.â
8:28 pm
âHey, thanks for picking up.â
âOh, no big deal. You called me at a good time. I was just about to start my skincare and I would have needed to sit for fifteen minutes doing absolutely nothing in a slimy face mask.âÂ
âSounds fun.â
âIâm guessing your conversation is over and done with.â
âYeah. She only left like, five minutes ago.â
âAnd you didnât want to sit alone in your bedroom contemplating the universe for an additional hour with all the blinds drawn? Woah. Wonwoo, I am impressed. Finger snaps.â
âFinger snaps.â
âSo⊠am I allowed to know how the whole thing went or did you just call me to hear the sound of my voice?â
âBoth. But mostly to hear your voice.â
âOkay. Enlighten me then.â
9:45 pm
âAnyway⊠yeah. The conversation went well. I still canât believe she actually came back to see me. Like, what a mindfuck, you know?â
âThat took a lot of courage from her part.â
âYeah, it did. Makes me proud, though. To hear her actually speak her mind. She really was just trying to be the best possible person for me and the only thing that got her is heartbreak. Sheâs putting herself first, now. Sheâs spending a couple days in the city with her sister.â
â⊠Do you think that youâll want to see her again?â
âI donât know. Do I need to?â
âDo you?â
âNo. I mean, donât get me wrong, as much as it was a shock to see her again, there was great closure in it. If she had come to see me way sooner, no way would I have been open to itâI probably would have freaked the fuck out and had an anxiety attack or some shitâbut I feel way better about everything now. I felt like I understood her choices, kinda like I was the one making them... but, you know, weâre evolved people at this point. Weâve veered onto two separate paths, neither one being greater than or less than the other⊠just different.â
âRight.â
âWe just wished each other well.â
âNo, thatâs great. You put a bow on it. I just didnât really know what the whole thing was gonna entail⊠so, yeah, I had gotten kinda worried⊠likeâonce I knew it was herâI thought she looked so perfect for you. You two just made immediate sense in my mind. Sheâs got such a sweet voice, and the kind, shy personality that everyone always adores. I think if you stuck her in a room with me, sheâd hate my guts.â
âHaâJeanie hates no oneâs guts. Sheâs got no room in her heart for that kind of stuff. You two are different for sure, but I think thatâs what would make you interesting and attractive to each other.â
âReally?â
âYeah. If it makes you feel any better, she didnât think youâd like her either. But I told her youâd probably like her more than me.â
âWhat! She actually thought that? I mean, maybe I seemed a little damp when I left, but that was just my mind on overdrive.â
âNeed me to arrange a date between you two?â
âHaâshe did have a great perfume on. Maybe ask about that.â
âWell, I will if I see her.â
âShe doesnât know about the book you were writing for her, does she? I canât believe thatâs been sitting on your laptop all this time.â
âNo, she doesnât. I used to sit there and stare at it every day, but I donât think Iâve even opened the damn document in months⊠since I met you, my mind has gradually moved away from it, I guess. I think now itâs more of an effort thing. All the time I put into it. Itâs like, if I delete it, Iâm deleting that time from my life⊠does that even make sense?â
âYeah, I know what youâre saying.â
â⊠Did you ever finish your book for Mingyu? I know you wanted it done before your anniversary in December. It seemed like you were on track to have it done quite early, with all that time you gave yourself.â
âI did finish it, actually.â
âNo fucking wayâthatâs a big accomplishment.â
âYeah. Now Iâve just gotta decide what to do with it.â
âNOVEMBER 3RD.
Wonwoo was fairly surprised that Princess had invited him to her birthday dinner at Terra Cotta. At one point, he wasnât certain where he stood with your closest friend, even if his relationship with her presented itself as amicable on the surfaceâhe always thought that maybe deep down, Princess really did despise him. Then Wonwoo wondered if you had nipped at the birthday girl into inviting him, although that didnât seem like something in your character.
Through all his fretting, thumb-scraping, and late-night pondering in the shower, Wonwoo eventually came to the conclusion that was probably the simplest and most accurate: Princess just liked him.
A call from Vernon came through right as Wonwoo was getting into bed last week, to which the rambling boy had impetuously thrown out, âyeah, I got an invite to Herâs best friendâs birthday dinner or somethinâ like thatâwhat was her name again? Penelope? The sexy dark skin girl with the braids? Anyway, I told her Iâd love to go, but Iâm gonna be out of town for a few days in November. Said I could hook her up with a couple MDMA bombs, though. Yâknow, as a gift.â
Thus, that concluded the story of Wonwoo having to sit at a rather large and reserved candlelit table in an expensive, esteemed restaurant, surrounded by some friends and strangers alike, with a plastic baggie of hard drugs shoved into his pants pocket that he couldnât stop worrying about. Vernon had wanted him to leave it with Princess when appropriate. Most people invited were going to the club later in the nightâRoom 319âwhich he figured could only be survived by going buckwild off ecstasy. As his knee continued to ricochet underneath the tablecloth, Wonwoo was soothed by your hand sliding over his thigh.
You gave him a solicitous glance, smiling with care. âWhy donât I just put it in my purse?â The offer was whispered amongst the conversation.
Wonwoo couldnât help but flit his eyes around the table, ensuring no one was giving his general direction a lick of attention. The waiters and waitresses would pop from the blue every now and then with bottles that seemed glued to their hands, scouring for anyone who needed a top up on alcohol. His glass had been seldom touched for the past half-hour.
He sighed, shaking his head. âNo, itâs fine.â
âWonwoo,â you deadpanned at him.
âItâs fine.â
âOh my Godâjust give me it. Itâll take me two seconds to dig it out from your pocket and shove it in my damn purse. Besides, I canât enjoy myself when the anxiety is emanating off you in waves.â
His knee immediately stopped jerking. Wonwoo looked you straight in the eyes, the stiffness turning him into straw. âIs it really?â
âYes!â You laughed quietly, your head hunkering down on his shoulder for a brief moment. âNow, give me it please. Pretty please.â
Sliding a hand into the smooth pocket on his pants, Wonwoo began fishing out the small plastic baggie while puffing, âfuckâalright.â
âGosh,â he heard you mumble while discreetly taking the capsules from him, rustling them into your purse, âyou could never be a drug dealer, could you? How are you even friends with Vernon? That dude probably walks around with sample sizes taped to his jacket.â
âItâs different.â
âIs it?â
âYeah,â Wonwoo was finally able to roll out his shoulders and relaxâeven give you a humorous little smirk, âI have a way better chance of escaping the drug dogs than he does. Iâll get a nice head start.â
His thigh was met with a slap before your hand pulled away. âIâm acting like I donât know either of you.â
To be fair, Wonwoo couldnât picture his bad-mouthed, fairly uncouth friend in a snotty establishment like Terra Cotta, especially considering his ideal places to eat were twenty-four-hour diners and cereal pantries belonging to girls whom heâd just slept with. The restaurant was no doubt beautiful, though it was definitely for the upper echelons who could not only afford it, but also act the pleasant, opulent guise.
At least the table that Princess reserved was a bit more separated from the other tables in the restaurantâit was close to a waterfall built into the wall, encompassed by all sorts of burnish-looking smooth stones.
Neither Seokmin or Mingyu were at the dinnerâtwo absences that no one seemed to be questioning. To Wonwoo, that was a gigantic reliefâhe assumed you felt the same. Clara was there, seated further down the table, but Bells wasnât. Seungcheol was an obvious guest, and besides you, he was the person that Wonwoo had spoken to the most since arriving at the restaurantâheâd even given Wonwoo the slip on his secret gift for his girlfriend, which was a two-week vacation to the Bahamas after the winter exam season.
Wonwoo was a little jealous.
He would love for you and him to vacation somewhere.
Maybe even take you back to South Korea.
âSo, you guys,â Princess had started a conversation with you and Wonwoo from across the table, hands folded underneath her chin while she smiled kindly between you, âthink youâll come to the club after?â
You pouted at her, âweâre passing, babe. A million sorries.â
âAwe, thatâs okay.â She reached across the pristine tablecloth to lay her hand over top yours. âYou already took me out for my birthday, anyway. And let me vomit in your washroom for two hours.â
âMmhm. Youâd do the same for me.â
Princess giggled, her grin luminous and wholly genuine. âOh, of course. I have already done it!â
âWell, youâll have to tell me all about Room 319. The stories Iâve heard about that placeâsounds like some shit from a movie.â
âTrust me, youâll get the entire script in a bound book. I know the club thing isnât for everyoneâthatâs why I did the dinner. And Iâm doing cupcakes instead of cake! Remember those red velvet cupcakes we had that one night? And then that other night? FuckâI couldnât stop thinking about those damn things.â
âOh, those were fucking delicious.â
âDe-licious. Have you ever got to try one, Wonwoo?â
He swallowed, a bit jarred to be welcomed into their conversation that he had been happily listening to from the sidelines.
âI tried one. I liked it.â
Princess gasped at him. âOnly liked? Be serious!â
âWell, ask me again later tonight. I wasnât having it fresh.â
âI will be asking. Howâs Vernon? Iâm sad he couldnât make it.â
âOh, heâs fine. Sometimes he just mysteriously disappears from town for a couple daysâI donât ask because I donât want to know. But, uh, he did leave me with a gift for you⊠if you didnât already know.â
âOh⊠oh! Right!â Princess straightened up, nodding. âYeah, I remember. You can give it to me when we leave. Outside.â
âI have it actually,â you clarified, flickering a transient look at the tiny purse you had moved onto the table, âwhen we take a girlâs trip to the washroom, you can have it. The dose is pretty high. I know I donât have to worry about you and this stuff, but be careful, yâknow?â
âOf course. Just make sure you hide the purse in your lap when the waiter comes back. They love offering to take bags and satchels and all that stuff to hang in the coat room.â After clearing her throat with a sip from her pink, frothy champagne, Princess curiously poked at you two. âSo, how do you guys plan to spend the rest of your night?â
Wonwoo opted not to speak.
You grabbed your wine glass, swirling the aromatic alcohol around inside while shrugging. âNot sure. Itâs chilly out. Hope you donât freeze your tits off standing outside in the mile long line for the club.â
âThatâs what this push-up is for. The paddingâs so toasty warm.â
Laughing with Princess, you ended up snorting.
Seungcheol, who was sat beside his girlfriend and had been occupied in speaking to a friend Wonwoo forgot the name of, finally parted from his conversation, turning his head at the last second to hear the giggling.
âPush-up? What are you guys talking about?â
You shook your head. âNothingâjust her bra.â
âOh,â Seungcheol mumbled, âwhat about her bra?â
Princess smiled. âJust that with all this padding itâs got, itâll keep me nice and warm when Iâm waiting outside. Perfectly insulated.â
Rubbing a thumb and index finger along his jaw, Seungcheol grinned all relaxed-like while Princess rolled her dark brown eyes at his comment, the gold accents in her inner corners glimmering.
âI bet my hands would be a lot more efficient. Nothing warmer than skin on skin as they say.â
She shoved his shoulder half-heartedly. âWho says that? Now, bedroom eyes away before I make you wear a bag over your head.â
âI donât see a bag here.â
âAs the birthday girl, Iâm pretty sure I can request one.â
The dinner officially wrapped up around ten at night. Wonwoo was able to reaffirm with Princess that the red velvet cupcakes were indeed moist and delicious. As everyone stood right outside the restaurant in the nippy, cold November weather, giving hugs and farewells to those who werenât clubbing, he made sure to wish Princess probably the twentieth happy birthday sheâd heard that night. He waited for you to give her another speech about staying safe but still having fun, sprinkled with lots of âI love youâsâ and inside jokes that Wonwoo wondered if he would ever understand, before you two left on your own.
Each time he spoke, his breath would come to life in a warm wisp from his mouth, meanwhile the streets lights reflected in the melted snow all over the sidewalk he aimlessly wandered down, with you sticking close to his side. It hadnât been a heavy snow, at least.
âBe honest,â you said, glancing toward Wonwoo, âhow relieved are you that weâre not going to the club? On a scale of one to ten.â
âIs ten the most relieved?â
âYeah.â
He looked at you, completely unabashed. âTen.â
Kissing your teeth, you nodded. âThatâs what I expected.â
âSo,â Wonwoo hummed, stopping beside you at the intersection while waiting for the crosswalk light to change, âwhat now?â
Your eyebrows raised. âStill want to do something?â
As the cars whipped past, throwing up brisk winds and exhaust into the twinkling city atmosphere, Wonwoo shrugged. âThe night is young.â
âWhat's on your mind?â
âWeâre not far from Centertown. Itâs maybe a fifteen-minute walk or so at this point. Thereâs a bar there I want to try. The Honeymoon.â
He was glad you didnât seem opposed.
âSure. Iâm down.â
Once the crosswalk was open and the floods of people started pressing forward, there was somebody who passed themâsomebody who almost went completely unnoticed by Wonwoo until his memory reloaded and he suddenly found himself pausing to observe over his shoulder.
You pulled at his sleeve. âWhat?â
âUh, nothing,â Wonwoo replied, wetting his dry lips while heeding your polite tug, âthe woman that passed usâsheâs dressed exactly like this prostitute that Vernon told me he saw last winter, hanging outside Room 319. She has the heels and everything.â
âWhat the fuck. Really?â
âMmhm,â he laughed, âhe called her Pink Heels Lady. To be honest, I thought he was lying⊠but Iâm pretty sure that was her.â
âSpooky. Coincidence or fate, do you think?â
Wonwoo glanced at you, seeing the intrigued smile on your face.
âI donât know, actually,â he responded after the question hovered around in his mind for an oddly long second, deciding to pick up your hand in is, âI assume itâs just the universe working its magic.â
Wonwoo was never particularly into bars, although he could tolerate them much more than a club despite their parallels. The seedy lighting, deafening music, and signature throw-up gutter in the street or alleyway right outside the building was crucial to both, he had realized.
The Honeymoon was a newer bar that had garnered some notable buzz. It was less like a pub, being slightly more formal with a touch of modernity that had landed it just below presumptuous, in Wonwooâs opinion. At least the music wasnât overbearing, nor was there intoxicated, flush-faced men hollering at sports teams on televisions that would never hear them. You decided to sit at the counter, sliding onto the heightened chairs and leaving your jackets draped over the low backs.
You bristled, shaking out your shoulders. âIâm cold.â
Wonwoo cupped his hands overtop your icy cheeks for a moment, allowing some of his warmth to seep into your skin.
âA drink will fix that right up.â
âHow are your hands hotter than mine? Youâre always freezing.â
He smiled at you, letting you have your face back. âI can warm them up at will to your benefit.â Wonwoo joked, bumping his knee against yours. âWhat do you think of the place?â
Your lip pursed as you glanced around, examining the bartenders filling up glasses with their silvery, shiny spouts, and then over your shoulder at the numerous other tables occupied by the cityâs strangers. For a frigid November night, it was quite full.
âItâs nice. The lighting is pretty. Reminds me of Alley Cat.â
âOh, yeah. Vernon took me there once to celebrate my exams being done, then he got into a fist fight with this university student over something I canât rememberâsmashed a glass on the dudeâs head.â
Predictably, your eyes rolled. âOnly Vernon is getting into fist fights at Alley Cat.â
Wonwoo chuckled. âWell, now he canât get into fist fights there at allâmanagement banned him and the other guy. Apparently, theyâve got this back wall of people whoâve been kicked out and heâs on there.â
âFigures,â you sighed.
âOh my gosh! Wonwoo? Itâs you!â
At the sound of his name being excitedly called, Wonwoo was soon met with the surprised but cheerful expression coloured to Sierraâs freckled face. He hadnât forgotten that she worked there, but he was clueless about her schedule. She looked very pretty, glowing in a halo almost, with her coarse, reddish-brown hair pulled back slick into a ponytail and a crisp, clean black uniform tailored to fit her perfectly.
Wonwoo grinned. âHey there. I didnât know you worked tonight.â
Sierra set one hand onto the lacquered wood counter while the other stuck to her hip. âI donât usually. Fridays are game nights with my little sister. But there was a call-in. A little extra cash never hurt.â The girlâs big, round eyes then flitted to you. âHer, right? I donât think weâve ever met formally. I know youâre one smart cookie, though.â
âIâd like to think so,â you answered, smiling back at Sierra, âyou were at the party, werenât you? The one Seungcheol threw this summer?â
She nodded, âI was. I made a few drinks here and there.â
âI never got to taste one,â you frowned, pouting.
Throwing up her hands, Sierra was quick to exclaim with her typical charisma and sugar sweetness, âwhat! Preposterous! I think Iâm pretty wicked at it. What are you thinking of having?â
âTo be honest, Iâm not looking for anything too fancy at the moment. In fifteen minutes from now, I wonât be able to promise the same. Iâd like to start off with a rum and coke, if thatâs alright. For now.â
Sierra grinned. âNo, thatâs perfect. What about you, Wonwoo?â
He shrugged. âIâll have the same. For now.â
âWell, for now, Iâll start you guys off with two rum and cokes.â
Leaning his elbows onto the countertop, he threw her a question.
âHowâs it going with Carmen?â
While she prepared the drinks, Sierra blossomed into a smile. âOh, itâs going great. Sheâs genuinely a blast. Weâre going to the movies next weekâthat horror one is coming out, about the swimming poolâwe think itâs gonna suck but thatâs what makes it fun.â
Once Sierra slid you the cold glass, you tilted your head at her while fixing your lips around the black straw. âWhoâs Carmen?â
âMy girlfriend.â Sierra answered. âWe met here, actually.â
âUgh, no way,â you swooned, pressing a cheek into your hand as the next drink was given to Wonwoo, âthatâs so fucking adorable. Does she ever tell you how beautiful you look in that all-black uniform?â
Giggling, Sierra wiped down the countertop and flushed. âIâve heard it many times. Itâs honestly just a t-shirt and slacks!â
âWell, youâre making it work.â
âPleaseâmy face is heating up! Youâve got quite the gorgeous dress on yourself, you know. I always wonder where you get all your clothes. Wonwoo, have you complimented her yet, tonight?â
Mixing the ice cubes together to hear the satisfying clinks using his straw, he answered easily. âIt was the first thing out of my mouth.â
Sierra nodded in satisfaction. âGood! Well, I wonât hover. But if you need any refills or have any questions, you can try to flag me downâor ask Jamie! Sheâs just down there. Sheâs great at martinis. Later!â
Once Sierra had left to busy herself with tending to others waiting service at the counter, you looked to Wonwoo, lips downturned.
âJeez, sheâs so freaking nice. How come I donât have that kind of natural charm? Not that Iâm not charming. But hers is so⊠magnetic.â
âEveryoneâs got their natural quirks.â
âYeah, well, my natural quirk is that Iâm probably going to down this in the next two minutes. And then have three more after that.â
Wonwoo rubbed a hand to your shoulder, smirking into the glass that he raised to his mouth. âJust focus on the one you have now.â
3 more rum and cokes (+ 1 martini) later.
âNo, noâbut then, it gets even worse! Because not only had she been lying straight to his face the entire time, so was his best friend! They were seeing each other for weeks and weeksâhe had no idea. What gave it away though, was the perfume. He was always telling her not to wear heavy perfumes and stuff because it will leave a scent on the sheets, but she messed upâso they freaked it, she spends the night, and then the next day when heâs over, he goes into his friendâs room looking for a charger and smells the perfume on the sheets! He puts it together! And then, and thenââ
You paused, picking up the wide-mouthed martini glass to take a sip in the midst of your long-winded and passionate adultery story that Wonwoo had been struggling to follow for the past blurred time interval, the names now completely lost on his ears. There was hardly anything left in your glass, which led to your frustrated grumble, followed by an attempt to flag down the bartender, Jamie.
However, Wonwoo swiftly caught your hand despite his own impaired state, lowering it back to the countertop.
âOkay, I think thatâs enough.â He pushed forward the cup of water he requested for you. âThe least you can be right now is hydrated.â
Although you werenât happy about his thwarting, you did yield to the advice and drink some of the water. Wonwoo knew he should probably have some himself after his own splurge on the barâs pricy concoctions, but he still felt that he was holding up quite well. Before Jamie could whisk by again, he made sure to ask for another cup.
âSo, what happened next?â Wonwoo nudged your elbow while you stared off cluelessly, urging you to continue the story.
âWhat?â
âHe smells her perfume on the bedsheets. Now what?â
However, you were suddenly slumping forward, forehead nestled into your hands. For a moment, you stayed like that without word, until Wonwoo couldnât help his concern and touched at your bare shoulder.
âNot feeling well?â
You shook your head, whining out, âno, no. Itâs not that.â
He frowned, scooting to the edge of his chair and securing his arm across your shoulders. His voice was softer and closer against your warm cheek as he attempted to gauge that sour, twisted expression past your concealing hands, wanting to understand your hiding.
âWell, am I allowed to know whatâs bothering you?â
Again, you remained silent, biting your lip. There was such tenseness in your body that he could simply feel with just his arm.
Wonwoo leaned back, instead tugging at your wrist. âCan I at least see your face? Please?â You didnât budge. âHer, youâre worrying me a bit, here. Do you need me take you homeââ
âOkay, I have something to tell you.â Breaking abruptly from your husk, you were now staring straight and square at Wonwoo with distinct inebriation cloudy in your eyes, although there was something else too that compelled Wonwoo to bite his tongue and listen. âHonestly, I think Iâve held onto this long enough. And, Iâve wanted to confess this to you for a while now, but there was just so much debris in my life that I needed to sort through first. But youâre beyond important to me, and I just think that itâs time you finally know⊠so, can I tell you?â
âUmâŠâ
Wonwooâs throat was suddenly bone-dry and his pulse had spiked to the point where he could feel a vein along his neck start throbbingâhe even pondered waving down the bartender for another drink to pacify his growing nerves. Â
Ultimately, Wonwoo wouldnât last that long. Pushing up his glasses, he nodded, noting that you hadnât blinked once while you waited.
âSure. Tell me.â
Your upper lip twitched.
âMingyuâs been cheating on me, for two years.â
Wonwoo was quick to feel all his awareness become dull and drowned. He hardly registered his elbow shifting across the countertop, almost knocking over the glass of water onto the floor, nor did he realize the manner in which his mouth had subtly dropped open. You continued to stare at him with intensity, likely studying every tweak and fidget in his body language before swallowing deeply and choosing to continue the revelation.
He tightened up his jaw, trying to seem firm.
You looked ashamed of yourself as you admitted, âitâs been going on for two years, and Iâve known for about a year.â
âReally?â He answered, sounding mystified. âAn entire year?â
âGive or take.â
Then, Wonwoo was shaking his head. His fist had clenched up tight, though it wasnât the usual automated response that accompanied his anxietyâhe found there was immediate distaste and anger swirling together like storm clouds in the pit of his stomach.
Your gaze was cast to the water glass on the countertop, which you moved away for no apparent reason, your expression emptied.
After a frail sigh, you continued, âdo you remember that day I came into creative writing and got super upset at that guy for sitting in my seat? Remember how we talked about it at the nature museum, and I told you that I had a fight with Mingyu before going to class?â
âYeahâŠâ
âWell, that day, I tried bringing it up to him. And it totally didnât go over how I thought it would. Mingyu denied it all⊠of course, I only had some vague but suspicious texts to go off of, which he explained his way out of pretty poorly. But I just accepted it for the sake of our relationship. And I never brought it up again until⊠you know.â
Wonwoo let a natural, stagnant silence fall in between you, meanwhile the encompassing atmosphere was kept flowing by the various conversations of those around youâseemingly happyâwith plenty to drink as they kept warm from the bitter cold just outside.
He was biting his tongue, though he couldnât hold the question any longer, piquing his, âdo you know who he was cheating with?â
A huff shot straight through your nose.
âI knowâŠâ you mumbled, âand you know her, too.â
Suddenly, a name popped to his mouth without thought.
âBells.â
When you didnât confirm nor deny, opting to stare off to the side to conceal the emotion springing forth, Wonwoo knew it was solid truth.
âFuckâŠâ he cursed, grazing his hand across the smooth leg that was folded over your knee, âIâm so sorry⊠Iâm at a loss for words.â
You could only sigh while a glossy film developed in your eyes.
âI mean, Iâve been through all the stages alreadyâgrief, denial, acceptanceâwhatever the other ones areâso I donât know why Iâm still getting so choked up about it. I obviously didnât want to believe it⊠I mean, who the fuck does? Especially when you truly do have feelings for that person.â Shaking your head and sniffling, you exasperatedly flicked out a hand. âHer and her stupid sparkles. That was when I really started putting it together. Oh, Iâm going out to play poker, babe! And the next day, Iâm wearing his sweater, and I realize thereâs these fucking little bits of glitter on it, inside itâit was like a fucking beacon that was just screaming at meâhey! Your asshole boyfriend is cheating!â
That was something Wonwoo had noticed himself, after Bells had bumped into him at the partyâthe girlâs adoration for sparkly clothing and makeup essentially left behind a glaring trail of glimmery breadcrumbs. Wonwoo had found them on his clothes once he took them off and could really see the fabric underneath the light. The confession suddenly painted your actions that night in a new colour.
Rubbing against your temple, you explained further despite the struggle to speak over that clogged sound coming from your throat.
âItâs not like Iâm stupid, either, even if right now, in this situation, I seem like it. I know what Bells is like⊠sheâs spoiled rottenâalways has beenâand is used to getting whatever the fuck she wants. But, you see, thatâs the thing! Thatâs the fucking thing! Seokmin, Clara, Bells, even PrincessâI only met them because of the webs my parents have in their business world. I was never really allowed to find my own friends. It really just shows how much they had a say in my life⊠donât misconstrue, I truly do love Princess and sheâs by far the most normal, grounded person amongst them. She actually listens, and cares. But I was only allowed to befriend her âcause my parents know her parents.
Mingyu seemed like the one person I was actually able to connect with on my own⊠but heâs honestly changed so much. Itâs like, my parents were able to get their little fangs in him and warp him. And now⊠I really donât think he loves me at all⊠I think he loves my image, and what I represent, and the opportunities that come with me⊠but, I donât think he actually, genuinely loves me like he used to... like, back then, he was so, so sweet. He was always fumbling over himself, nervous, trying his best. I mean, you've read about it! He used to want to be an architect, Wonwoo. A freaking architect! He sketched all the time. He has a closet drawer full of sketch books from when he was younger. But everything's different now. He doesn't care. He hates when I bring it up! He hates me!
And I donât just thinkâI know it, Wonwoo. He resents me, but he wonât let go. Instead, he just sucks the life out of me, like heâs trying to get me to hate myself, too. And I do. I guess, as long as I hate myself, it makes me perfect in their eyes. Iâll just keep letting them mould me until I feel complete.â
Wonwoo didnât know what to do.
Hell, he didnât even know what to say except for the fact that you were rightâas long as you always felt subpar, or lacking, or frustrated with your drought of true identity, it would lead you back to the reliance you had on the deceptive characters in your lifeâit was nothing but a miserable cycle designed to bog you down and snuff you out. At least your tearful eyes had dried up.
You looked at him fondly, with a gentle smile. âThatâs what I like so much about you⊠even if you didnât intend toâwhich I know you didnât, judging from what Iâve heard about you trying to avoid writing with meââ (he bit his inner cheek coyly, casting a somewhat anxious hand through his hair), ââyou helped me realize parts of myself that were always there, but only needed some nurturing. You actually encouraged me. Supported me. AndâokayâI know I said that I hate myselfâbut since Iâve met you, Iâve been replacing it with an understanding of my situation. Iâve been kinder. Iâve been more of myself. I like to think what we have is a sort of symbiosis.â
Wonwoo nodded. âI think youâre right.â
âDo you think that Iâm⊠stupid⊠for staying?â
Immediately, Wonwooâs face furled in disagreement. âNo, no. Absolutely not. Mingyuâs been with you for so long. He has an integral quality in your life. It would be difficult to uproot yourself just like that. No oneâs a better judge of that situation than you.â
âYou think?â
âI know.â
As you relaxed back into the bar chair, Wonwoo could practically see this heavy, dark mist levitate from you and dissipate into the air. He knew that feeling of relief and inner freedom very well, and there was almost nothing that could compare to it.
Wonwoo then sipped from his glass of water, continuing to watch the stiffness melt off you like ebbing spring snow. "So, what was his response like? To your accusations? Was he at least honest?"
"Yeah, I got it all out of him eventually," you revealed with a very cumbersome sigh. "But he was deflecting like crazy... I'd never seen him like that before... he was fumbling his words all over, like he used to when we were first dating. But it was different. It wasn't nerves, it was just blind anger. He said I was no better. I mean, he's convinced we've had sex, and he wouldn't accept my denial, no matter what."
"It's not black and white," Wonwoo said, squeezing your arm, "it seems to me like a natural consequence. You felt trapped and alone."
For a split second, Jeanie flashed in his mind. A sear of guilt snapped through him. Mingyu would have much reflecting to do.
Nodding your head, you looked to Wonwoo and graced him with the words he may or may not have been waiting months to hear: "it's all over nowâMingyu and IâI made that extremely clear. And I honestly don't care what anyone else has to say. My mom didn't want to believe it... she's been acting strange since. I don't blame her."
In response, he merely nodded, warming you up with his gentle eyes.
But then he was shifting forward in his seat, elbows settled to the counter. Although it was quite late and he felt exhausted from drinking, his curiosity about a particular matter was still sharp.
âSo⊠Iâm wondering⊠what's your reason for writing the book?â
You gulped. âI wanted a way of looking back on everything. Seeing if maybe I could find myself somewhere amongst all those memories. Maybe when I started losing Mingyu was when I started losing myself. Maybe that's when I realized I was losing myself. Maybe that's when I realized I never really knew myself to begin with.â
He shrugged, his face colouring with admiration for you.
âWell... have you found something?â
Your only means of response was a twinkle-eyed grin.
The walk back to your apartment wasnât as dreadful as Wonwoo anticipated, mostly attributed to the alcohol soaking up in your stomachs, keeping your blood warm even in the face of a tough, harsh wind. Back when it wasnât so late in the night and his lips had yet to touch his first rum and coke, Wonwoo thought he would take himself home after seeing you off first. But now it was almost midnight, and he had this impending feeling of vertigo while he walked, and he was therefore very limp to fight the offer that involved a comfortable stay at your place until morning.
Wonwoo wasnât exactly sure where he deposited his coat or his shoes, or even his phoneâinstead he found himself sitting at the end of your bed, listening to the muffled sound of a running sink behind a closed door as you were busy in the washroom.
He leaned over, removing the glasses already slid down his nose and rubbing a palm into his eye until stars traversed the length of his vision. So, Lady Liberty was a cheater. For the past two years. It did bring Wonwoo to wonder what else Mingyu had said during your argument. Did he ever give a reason for cheating? Did he feel boxed into a life that wasn't the enriching utopia he surmised it might be, but he was toughing it out for the sake of success? Was he cheating because he was mad at you or mad at himself?
Or was he honestly just an asshole?
The Mingyu he was familiar with was shifty, and hardened, and image-obsessed, and now Wonwoo knew for a fact he wasnât delusional for feeling the tension between you and him whenever you were together. Godâhe could practically cut all the thickness in the air using Seokminâs nose and serve it like pieces of cake. But Mingyu hadn't always been like that according to your allegories. Deep down there could still be traces of the man you fell in love with, flickering like shiny little minnows beneath murky, clouded water.
But it was too late now.
Fitting his glasses back on, Wonwoo rolled back the sleeves to his crisp white dress shirt, proceeding to take a gander around your bedroom that he hadnât revisited in quite some time.
The running sink in the washroom across the hall was finally turned off, although Wonwoo had stopped paying attention to the background noise in place of reading your every detail off the walls. In minuscule ways, the room had changed. There were missing photographs from the dresser, your makeup vanity drawers no longer left ajar in your likely last-minuting rushing to ensure everything was perfect. The closet seemed cleaned-out. Emptier than it once was.
âI thought you might fall asleep.â
He jumped slightly, realizing that you were in the bedroom now, setting down your heels in the corner before making a stride toward the closet where the dress over your arm was hung back up.
Wonwoo bit his lip. âI questioned it.â
You smiled, and within that moment he noticed the long t-shirt you were draped in was the dark blue, logoed math shirt, the one youâd picked after sprinting back to his apartment amidst a rain storm. He felt something in his chest swell and ache in response to how pretty you looked wearing it. Wonwoo knew he was staring, blushing, but he didnât care. You had two of his t-shirts now. He hoped that collection might continue growing. He hoped that you wore them until his scent was naturally replaced by the strawberry sweetness of your own.
âThinking about anything in particular?â You asked, arms folded.
Slapping a guilty little grin on his face, Wonwoo shrugged. âNo.â
But then you started striding toward Wonwoo, uttering out something half-whispered that sounded a lot like âliarâ, and now he truly wasnât thinking about a damn thing, not even his own breath, as you proceeded to slide your arms around his neck and seat yourself in his lap. He was frozen. You hadnât been this fucking close to him since you two had cuddled during Seungcheolâs party.
But this was worseâthis was full-throttle intimacy with your penetrative, fluttering eyes eating up his soul while your bare thighs squeezed the sense out of him, trapping him, testing him.
âScared?â You whispered, moving your face in closer.
Yesâhe was horrifiedâhe couldnât even speak with you smiling at him so innocently despite the flames you were igniting.
Though, when he felt a wriggle from your hips that seemed to push against him in all the right places, Wonwooâs hands were immediate on your waist, tight and stilling, and he swore there was a vulnerable, pliant spark in your eyes that he had never seen before. Maybe Wonwoo could have been more polite about the approach, but after waiting so, so long, he felt like a rocket ship rife with fuel.
He kissed you.
In one decision his lips were pressed to yours, and in a kiss that was full of friction and earnest want, he could only dig deeper. Your arms curled further around his neck, to which you slipped in a quick, sharp breath before pouring yourself back into him so suddenly, mouths moulding again and again, spit slickening, noses bumping. He would have paused to take off his glasses, though Wonwoo was in no place to leave your lips for even a secondâespecially when your playful tongue glided with his and the world around him melted like wax.
Maybe he was biased (or maybe it was love), but Wonwoo swore it had never felt this right to kiss someone. He knew it, somewhere outside himself, far out in the ever-expanding universe and every other version that belonged, that this moment felt destined to happened. Wonwoo had never particularly believed in fate.
But then he wouldnât know how else to describe you.
His hands itching to touch more of your skin had gravitated to the thighs clenching at his hips. Your warmth and smoothness only made him greedier. As the kissing became messy in the desperation, he couldnât help but slide his hands to your ass, immediately kneading his cold fingers into the flesh, pulling, squeezing, pushing you closer into him because he quite literally wanted you to engulf his body.
Then, you were gripping at the back of his hair. You had opened up his throat for your wet lips to continue exploring, and Wonwoo felt every suckle and teething bite draw him further from clarity.
Each kiss slithered lower, until you were gradually lifting from his lap and placing yourself onto the carpet floor. Wonwoo had leaned back to tightly fist the bedsheets behind him, although he would never waver his lusted eyes from the sight of you between his spread legs, on your knees, palming him overtop his dress pants while biting your swollen, glistening lip. He almost wanted the camcorder to capture it.
âHow does it feel?â You hummed, staying focused on each pressured movement your hand applied to his prominent erection.
Wonwoo chuckled, clearing the huskiness in his throat, âlike Iâm gonna die.â His head tilted back. âHoly shit.â
Flashing nothing but a conniving, pleased smile, you tended to undoing his belt buckle. Wonwoo was burning up. As you pulled down the zipper to his pants and helped him shift down the waistband to his underwear an adequate distance, he couldnât process anything but the fact that he might burst like an explosion of confetti the second your hand would touch him.
Except, you opted to sit back on your haunches.
Tilting your head, you smirked at him.
âI would like a demonstration, please.â
He almost choked. âA what?â
âA demonstration,â you repeated, shuffling closer in between his thighs and gazing up much too seraphically through your lashes, âwonât you show me how you touch yourself, Wonwoo? Please?â
For the life of him, he couldnât produce one stupid fragment of a sentence, or even a word. Godâit didnât fucking help that you took reign and offered to get him startedâyour hand carefully reaching past his underwear, gripping onto him gently to spring his erection free. A shiver surged throughout his body at the sensation. Hotness spread like molten lava across his face as the result of your lascivious, teasing actions stood leaking and stiffer than wood right before your eyes, which were agleam with thrill and haze.
You seemed as though you were going to pounce on him.
But he could visibly see you swallow the temptation.
âAww, you have the prettiest dick Iâve ever seen,â you giggled, wrapping a hand around him that was soft and warm, âwould it make you feel better if I started you off, then? Gave you some help?â
Wonwooâs fists were tangled so intensely into the bedsheets he was surprised the fabric hadnât disintegrated. Holding his breath, he watched you lean forward until your mouth was hovering an agonizing distance over him, only to produce a line of spit that dripped onto his head. His jaw unhinged in a groan. Then you began working the saliva along his shaft, pumping a hand up and down, occasionally flickering your thumb over the sensitive tip only to remove the contact so casually, likely knowing it would rip him apart.
âYour turn.â
He took a second to push up his glasses and shake his head.
âMânot gonna last long, you know,â Wonwoo grunted, at last heeding your request and beginning to stroke himself for your viewing pleasure, âespecially after that big display. You fucking tease.â
With an arm slid over his thigh and the drool collecting in your mouth, you couldnât have looked anymore dazzled by the thirst you were experiencing, your eyes refusing to part from every tug delivered by his own hand. It was a spell, and you were unapologetically under it.
âMmm, a tease?â You purred, smiling. âI was just trying to help.â
âWere you?â Wonwoo scoffed, pumping faster while continuing to twist up the bedsheets using his other hand. âRubbing your fucking spit into my cock is tt-trying to help me? Is that what you think?â
âMmhm,â you answered, straightening up as Wonwoo felt himself become tenser, felt the pressure in his abdomen climb.
He shuddered, a groan reverberating from somewhere deep in his chest. The sound of his fist wetly slapping up and down consumed the room and Wonwoo knew it was only a matter of seconds before he lost it. You were basking in every sound and movement.
âFuck, fuck, I-I can'tââ
Suddenly, youâd pushed Wonwooâs hand away. His stomach flipped upside down. Before he could recognize the brief loss and regain of pleasure, your suckling, wet, hot mouth was already sliding down around his erection, your grip fastening to whatever you couldnât quite reach. Wonwoo bit his lip so hard at the sensation that something coppery-warm was tasted on his tongue, although that was the least of his concerns when you were throating him with messy desperation. His hand rested on your scalp, nervous to push your head down too firmly, but once he did, you moaned out so erotically around him that Wonwoo fragmented.
His hips bucked straight into your face while his fingers had tightened at the back of your scalp, feeling every intense throb expand against your throat, spurt after spurt filthy in your mouth. But you were diligent and zealous and Wonwoo knew you were swallowing it all despite the few tears trickling onto his pelvis. His length didnât leave the velvet, pillowy confines of your mouth until every bit was expertly milked out from him, though had Wonwoo let his hand drift off your hair in case you wanted a breath.
With a hiccup and a wipe against your chin, you were tasting the bedroomâs heavy air and exhaling ragged as Wonwoo marvelled you.
âTrying to take my soul with you or something?â He huffed, using his thumb to remove some leftovers from the side of your lips.
You caught his hand in an instant. âNoââ you piped up, quick to close your mouth around the digit and suck off whatever he politely removed, laving your tongue like you were licking a popsicle, ââI want all of it.â
He thought he might crumble, hearing you mumble such obscene words while tracks of tears dried overtop your cheeks, your voice sounding somewhat hoarse from the labour of taking him whole.
You were climbing back onto Wonwooâs lap almost blindly, his next breath taken away by a passionate kiss you pushed so fervently onto his lips. There was another tangling of tongues, saliva mixing together, but neither attempting to take controlâ though at this point Wonwoo would gladly oblige to throwing you on the bed and twisting off those frustrating panties he imagined were sticking to you. He could feel your arousal dampening through the baby pink cotton as his length twitched back to hardness underneath you.
âWonwoo,â you whined breathily into his ear while grinding your hips against him in search of friction, âIâve got to tell you something I did.â You bruised up his neck with more kisses. âSomething bad.â
His eyes were shut, hands continuing to grope your ass. âYeah?â He mumbled, feeling your tongue drag across a vein in his neck. âYou did something bad? What could that be?â
Your hands drifted down his chest, yanking open the buttons on his dress shirt in satisfying pops. Warm, feathery breath hit his ear. âThat day I stayed the night in your bedroom⊠aloneâŠâ you kissed him on his mouth, letting it linger and last, âI couldnât help it.â
Wonwoo had gripped the side of your face, meanwhile he rubbed underneath the waistband to your tiny, thin underwear.
âCouldnât help what?â
He flinched as your hand sunk down to grab his cock.
âI touched myself,â you confessed just an inch from his face, âI laid back against your pillows, spread my legs all wide⊠I had my fingers stuffed so deep inside myself, but it still didnât feel like enough.â Again, you were softly stroking him. Wonwoo continued to uphold that unwavering, painfully honest gaze you were pinning him in. âNdâ I came all over your t-shirt, Wonwoo. I played with myself until my fingers were cramping and my legs couldnât stay open anymore.â
He gulpedâheavyâlike swallowing a chunk of lead. His tender thumb grazed along your cheek and rubbed over your puffy lips. âI wanted to fuck you so bad that night,â Wonwoo soothed your confession with another, which was already quite obvious, âI dreamt about it. I wanted to bury myself so fucking deep inside your gut.â
You shook your head, eyes teary. âWhy didnât you?â He felt the delicate stroking motion along his erection come to a pause.
Wonwoo cradled your cheek. âIt would have fucked everything up.â
âBut I wanted it,â you whimpered. âIâve been wanting it for so long and you just left me there. I would have been quiet. You could have put me face down in the pillows and just used me all you wanted.â
âNo,â Wonwoo argued, âI would never want to use you. I want us to be together in everything. I know you wanted it. But lust makes you think different. Just like itâs making you think different right now.â
He softly slotted his mouth with yours, exchanging a much slower, sweeter kiss that lit a glow in his belly. You puddled right into the contact, curling your arms back around his neck to hold him tighter.
Much lighter kisses dappled the edges of your lips.
Wonwoo could feel you start to smile.
âI figured something was off the next morning,â he said.
You chuckled, âI didnât know how to face with you without thinking about it. I felt so dirty. But in the moment, I needed something.â
He nipped down your slender neck, letting his hot breath and reverberating, husky tone tickle your skin until your hairs stood up.
âHow wet were you?â Wonwoo purred, smirking.
Immediately, your hips were pushing down on him. âSoaked,â you then whispered, âI was making such a mess. I tried so hard to be quiet. But part of me wanted you to hear.â
Wonwooâs hands drifted up your t-shirt, gliding slow against your stomach, coming to reach the plump, sensitive breasts that he could only surmise were waiting for his attention. He cupped them in each palm, giving a tender squeeze and pull that pitched your breath into a squeak. Caressing your neck with more wet, open-mouthed kisses, he felt the absentminded grinding reignite the friction between you.
âDid you touch up here, too?â
His thumbs brushed your pert nipples. He felt you shiver.
âY-Yes.â
Tsking his teeth, he pleasured them with slow, rubbing circles that you mewled in response to. âYouâve got the softest skin. I could touch you until I die, and it still wouldn't be enough.â
âMmhm,â he heard you exhale shakily, âI touch myself at home, too. Put my pillow between my legs. Pretend Iâm grinding against you. Then let my fingers take me again and again until it hurts.â
How dare you fucking say that to himâhow dare you put such an intimate visual in his mind to haunt him like a ghost to hallowed grounds. How many times had you done it? How many times had you stood right in front of him, smiling so innocently, despite knowing damn well what you had done to yourself the night before.
Wonwoo pinched your nipples, watching you flinch.
âDoes it hurt right now?â
You nodded.
âWhere?â He lowered his voice, sinking his hand back down the creases in your tummy until it paused right on your mound, his eyes trained to your suddenly very desperate, misty look. âDown here?â
âYes.â
Holding eye contact with you, Wonwoo trailed his hand further along your panties until his touch was situated right between your thighs, directly feeling the wet fabric, the radiating heat, the aroused pulsations. Your fingernails were pricks in his shoulders.
âFuck, you are drenched, arenât you?â Wonwoo commented, rubbing his hand against you through the cotton material, your hips soon chasing the overwhelming pleasure. âCan feel you throbbing against my hand, you know that? Bet it aches so fucking good, hm?â
He grinned hard at your eyebrows knitting together. While he massaged you with one hand, the other gripped your chin where he pushed a hot, uncoordinated kiss onto your whiny mouth.
âLay across my lap,â Wonwoo whispered in between the hasty break for air, âlet me play with you instead, make you cum. Please.â
To his delight, your compliance came easily.
It didnât take long for you to splay yourself in the desired position, with Wonwoo pushing up the shirt to bunch at your waist while your bottom was perfectly presented in his lap. He massaged you, leaning down to mark a trail of kisses along your lower back, along your assâspreading you wide to see the large, soaked patch glistening on those easily rippable underwear.
âJust open your thighs a bit more,â Wonwoo instructed, to which you quickly listened, âfuckâperfectâall this, only for me.â He pushed his thumb against you through the panties and you instantly squeaked.
âRight?â He urged. âIs this all just for me?â
âMmhmâyes, yes. I fucking promise. Just for you.â
Wonwoo bit his lip to stop the size of the immediate smile from breaking across his face. Your hips wriggled up as his touch drifted away.
âI need more,â you groaned in frustration, âplease.â
âMore here?â Wonwoo pulled back on one side of your glute to help reveal the sensitive area, then rubbing his thumb against your clit.
Your entire body jerked, and he noticed your fingers dig into the bedsheets, clawing them up. He figured the wet friction between his thumb and your panties was frustratingly amplifying every little sensation in a dull but very cruel way. He continued his ministrations, adding some more pressure for you to squirm and moan at.
âDoes it still hurt?â Wonwoo asked, letting his other hand slide up your bare waist, the skin beginning to sweat and turn even warmer.
âPlease,â you groaned, attempting to adjust your hips against the stroking from his thumb, âI feel like mâgonna fucking die, Wonwoo.â
âStill need more, then?â
âYes!â
Deciding to throw you a bone, Wonwoo grabbed those thin, pink panties in his hand and helped you slide the constricting fabric down and off your legs. Once he spread you nice and wide, let the cold air ghost the slicken, swollen skin, you had gasped. For a moment, Wonwoo didnât speakâhe only stared at you with all the stars in the universe collecting behind his eyes, glittering like a snow globeâat how beautiful and exposed and needy you looked.
He let his fingers slide ever so slowly along your clit, drawing up to your hole, then pushing back down to hear you whimper brokenly.
Wonwoo swallowed the dryness in his throat.
âDo you have any fucking idea how beautiful you are?â He complimented, his fingers soaking in your arousal. âI knew your cunt would look pretty, but this is more than that. GodâŠâ experimentally, Wonwoo shifted a finger gentle into your opening, giving the digit a wriggle and few shallow pumps. Immediately your intense warmth clenched down tight before loosening, engendering him to effortlessly press in two more long fingers. âThere you go⊠good girlâŠâ he mumbled his encouragement as you gripped the bedsheets and moaned a guttural sound, âtaking in my fingers so fucking wellâthey slide in so easy⊠make such perfect, dirty noises whenever they fill up this gorgeous cunt.â
His thumb touched at your clit, lending it some attention that had you twisting and bucking back to receive even more pleasure.
âGod, WonwooâŠâ you gasped, sounding lost to the ecstasy while letting him take his time with mapping out your inner walls with curious strokes, âthat feels so fucking good. You have no idea. Feels like mâgonna pour all over you.â
He grinned, further stimulating your swollen clit, maintaining the pattern as you propped up on your elbows, tugged at the bedspread, and released a mellifluous, shuddering moan from your throat.
âF-fuck ye-yessâŠâ you whined as his fingers squelched deeper and his thumb continued its circles, âyes, yes, yes, keep doing thatâoh-oh, fuck! Mâgonna cum all over your fingersâmâgonna make a mess!â
âThatâs all I want,â he breathed, his chest tightening at how much arousal was pooling sticky around his digits, âthatâs all Iâve ever fucking wantedâmake a mess all over me, like the pretty, desperate girl you are. Let me see it. Let me feel everything. Cum just for me.â
Your entire body proceeded to seize, Wonwooâs fingers now struggling to pump, as this striking wave seemingly coursed through you and resulted in heavy fluids wetting his dress pants. It took a moment for you to power through the pleasure, though Wonwoo was at least able to maintain his stroking gestures against your clit until he noted the sharp, almost spastic twitches in your muscles.
âThatâs a good girl,â Wonwoo hummed in satisfaction while he gingerly eased his fingers out and left your poor, throbbing bud alone.
He smoothed his hand down your back, offering you a moment to relax, breathe, and ride out the electricity.
âFuck,â you wiped at the sweat on the back of your neck, chuckling at the discomfort, âI can feel it all between my legs.â
Wonwoo smirked. Hard. He bent forward to peck your temple, then brushed his lips against your stinging hot ear. "How about I clean that all up for you?" The velvety whisper caused your body to jitter.
"Clean me up how?" You turned your head, catching his eye.
There was a swap of positions. Wonwoo lowered himself to the bedroom floor, the carpet spongey against his knees, while you lay down on your back and draped your legs off the edge of the bed. But he was hungry for you, and greedier than a treasure hunter, and you went limp as he hitched your knees over his broad shoulders.
Being face to face with your intimate heat was like the kiss of lifeânew energy was taking over himâgiving him desire unlike any other.
He didn't know if he wanted to keep staring at you, your soft skin messy with slick and twitching anticipatorly at his closeness, or if he should stop prolonging the moment and just bury everything into you. Adjusting his glasses, Wonwoo licked his bitten lips. You were in the midst of shuffling up to your elbows, likely wondering what the hell he doing, staring between your thighs for so long.
But as quickly as you squeaked his name, it was interrupted by an intense gasp a second later. You leaned all your weight onto a single elbow, tossing your head back, panting for dear life as Wonwoo striped his tongue long and flat against your heat. His hands gripped your hips, sculpting them over your bone while he tasted your arousal, all sticky and musky and delicious to the point of addiction.
"O-Oh my god, Wonwoo," you cried, letting your body collapse onto the bedsheets, limbs becoming jelly, "that feels fucking amazing."
He licked into you like he were trying to reach the centre of a sweet, colourful jawbreaker. Every pass from his tongue was firm, encompassing, smothering you in pleasure and painting you with spit. But you reacted best when he toyed his ministrations around your sensitive clitâyour back would jolt off the bed, arched, as your thighs hugged him tightâWonwoo heard your begging akin to a distant echo. He would even smile into you, glasses all foggy, chin running in wetness, as you preached his name dumbly, losing your mind. Wonwoo pressed his mouth hot against you, flicking his tongue to your overstimulated clit, focusing hard on his pattern.
"Fuck, fuck!" You shouted, writhing into the sheets. "Please, Wonwoo. Please, please, pleaseâI'mâI'm gonna cum! Please, justâk-keepâ"
There was a surge of something warm and liquid that Wonwoo wanted to drink like a peach's nectar. You were throbbing right under his tongue and he loved it to a point that felt utterly insane. He didn't want to stop even if the world was ending. His face plunged in deeper, his hands grafting into your hips harsher, completely ignorant to your fingers pulling at his hectic locks of hair. Wonwoo only wanted you and nothing else and he was going to drown in it.
But you were attempting to sit up, your sweaty body becoming better at escaping his eager, hungry licks that dug into your slit, and once he heard you wince particularly sharp, he knew he had to stop.
He sat back, removing his glasses and wiping off his chin. You slid a leg from his shoulder, using a foot to gently prod against his chestâa light scolding for perhaps enjoying you a little too much.
"Are you starved?" You laughed heavily, gulping down a breath.
Wonwoo fit the glasses back to his face. "For you? Yes." He then licked at his teeth and lips, still yearning to find traces of your arousal, only to realize you were shaking. "ShitâI'm sorry if I hurt you." Standing up, he cupped your face, bending down to kiss you gentle on the lips over and over. "I'm so fucking sorry. You taste amazing, that's all. And you're so beautiful. I couldn't fucking help it."
With a giggle, you tousled his hair. "No, I'm fine. I like a little pain." Your eyes were back to shining. Then, you caught his mouth, stealing another kiss. "But Iâm even greedier than youâ," pushing yourself up, you nipped at his lips, ââand I want that pretty, long cock inside me to hit all the right spots.â The exchange had you seated back in Wonwooâs lap, where your bare, soaked pussy was free to brush against his straining and achingly hard length.
âYeah?â Wonwoo smirked, welcoming your spit-smeared mouth.
Feeling your hips grind against him, you purred, âyeah.â
âIâve got no protection,â Wonwoo admitted in between the make-out session, hardly able to pry your lips from one another as you slid backward on the bed with Wonwoo climbing over top.
Helping to shove off his dress shirt and slacks, discarding them to the floor, you shook your head. âDonât need it.â
Returning the gesture, Wonwoo had you fully undressed. The entirety of your bare body on full display felt like something sacredâan artwork that had been crafted with unimaginable attentiveness to every single detail, no matter how miniscule. He couldn't liken it to anything else in his life but a distant memory from childhoodâa grand mausoleum that he found himself inside with his older brother, the ceiling intricately chiselled with angelic, satin-like bodies.
Your words seemed distant. It took a second for him to remember.
âDon't need protection? Why?"
As your hands locked behind his neck, pulling him down close, you dug into his eyes with an emotional gaze. âFinish inside me.â
He stuttered, furrowing his brow, âseriously? You wonâtââ
âNo. Iâm taking precautions, you know.â Brushing at his dampened, thick hair, you asked, âhave you ever had unprotected sex?â
Wonwoo scoffed, surprised at the inquiry, âyeah. Butâis thatâyou really want that? With me?â He stared down at you intensely.
âI only want it if you want it, too.â
He nodded, biting his lip, taking a moment to examine your perspiring face alongside the the rising and dipping of your chest.
âI want it,â Wonwoo reaffirmed, âI definitely want it.â
Truth be told, a splinter of nerves had lodged into his chest at the thought of having to perform to your anticipationâWonwoo was never really sure if he would ever get intimate with youâand as his gaze again streamed your body, he felt overwhelmed. But then your fingertips were stroking down his bicep, seemingly drawing out the forthcoming anxiety from him like you were pulling out a thread of energy, and the easygoing smile he was met with tamed his heart.
Wonwoo eased closer toward you, allowing your expert touches to be the guide. Your hand had returned to his length for a few more thorough and especially lentamente tugs, prompting him to hiss into your neck while very flushed shades of pink crawled up his face.
He felt himself throb, wanting to simply collapse against you and climax at your hand for the second time. To make matters even more complicated, Wonwoo felt you shift slightly, and then the tip of his impatient cock was suddenly gliding all slippery like butter along your folds. Wonwooâs arms started to shake.
You laid your palm gentle against his neck.
âHowâs that feel?â You whispered in a trembling breath, meanwhile continuing the heavenly ministrations of tracing your clit with his length. âI-I think it feels quite niceâgetting you all wet.â
âAmazing,â he answered, pressing his forehead to yours and pecking at your lips, âyou want me to take it from here?â
Keeping silent, your grip drifted from his erection and you seemed satisfied to let the control sway now that Wonwoo was adjusted. Just before he aligned himself, however, he looked at you and laughed.
âCan you push up my glasses real quick?â
You chuckled, âseriously?â
âWhatâs wrong with wanting to be see you properly?â
âNothing,â you flashed a tender smile, then using your finger to help position the glasses back up his nose, âthere you go.â
Wonwoo proceeded to slide himself inside you at a slower pace that allowed him to bask in the intimate sensationâhe made damn sure every little squeeze, flutter, and convulsion your heat cushioned him with was feltâthough that made it considerably hard for him not to release in pathetic fashion, before he had even made a good, swift thrust. You were soaking up the moment just as much.
He didnât want to advert his eyes from the pleasure cascading like ripples across your face for even a second. Once he was buried in still and deep, completely stuffing you to the hilt, your breath had fogged up his glasses.
âFuckâs-sorryââ you squirmed through the apology, your hips occasionally canting against his in unbridled twitches, ââI can hardly fucking think right now. Do you know how much youâre throbbing?â
He choked out a hoarse laugh, âdo you know how insanely good you feel to me? Feels like mâgonna fucking break into a million pieces. â
âI want you to break me into a million pieces,â you whined so needily, looping your arms around his neck, âfuck me, Wonwoo. Please.â
He was positive you had told him that in a dream once.
As euphoric as you felt clenching around him, Wonwoo truly did want the sex to last. His thrusts into your heat werenât frantically impatient, rather they grooved incredibly, purposefully deepâeach stroke was thoughtful but hard, slow but timely, and judging from your high-pitched keens and the nails scraping against his shoulder blades, he knew you were appreciating the moment just the same.
Wonwoo grasped your sweaty hands in his, your fingers interlocking tight, in order to hold them against the sea of silky pillows above your head. With another especially daggering thrust that made his teeth clench and his abdomen flutter, you had jerked and cried out his name, followed by a breathless, ârr-right there!â
A leg wrapped around his hips, your ankle digging uncomfortably into his side while he continued to push his length into the spot that was making you howl. But it was getting increasingly difficult to continue the tempoâyour leg was tightening around him like a boa constrictor and your warmth was clamping down with plain strength, almost as though your body was attempting to lock him inside.
He merely squeezed your hands harder, losing his breath. âYouâre almost there, arenât you?â Taking advantage of another thorough stroke, Wonwoo had the bedframe thudding the wall, his words hotly pressing into your ear. âYouâre trying to keep me suctioned in.â
Your whimpers were falling apart like crumbling clay. Wonwoo tried to understand what it was you were mewling at him, something involving his name, how good it felt, that he should keep going, meanwhile tears were springing to your eyes and wetting your glimmery cheeks. Wonwoo bit his lip. He was throbbing wildly inside your heat, knowing you were only getting dumber and turning incoherent as he speared you so intimately on his cock.
Wonwoo wasnât going to last much longer and neither were you. He was already feeling himself burst and breakâthe convulsion ripped through him like a landslide and now your leg was fully hooked around his hips, pinning him against you while he emptied himself disgustingly deep inside your warmth.
The sensation must have triggered your own orgasm, because his cock felt like it was practically being suffocated as you squeezed down on him. Wonwoo thought he might blackout when you whined his name into the dim bedroom humidity, strung in a loud, trembling lilt that cracked beautifully in the middle.
Your arms were winding back around his neck, pulling his face to yours, a kiss crushed onto his awaiting mouth.
âI need more,â you panted in between the kisses, âdonât feel full enough yet. Cum inside me again, Wonwoo. Please, take me again.â
âAgain?â He smiled, his glasses bumping your nose. You were completely uncaring, only nipping at him harder. âAre you sure?â
âYes, yes, yes,â you chanted, âIâve never been surer of anything in my fucking life.â Suddenly, you were wriggling underneath him, rolling onto your stomach, and repositioning yourself such that you were face-down-ass-up. With eyes twinkling bright in pure, carnal lust, you threw him a a yearning glance from over your shoulder. âFuck me again, nice and deep like before." His heart shot into his throat. When you begged, it was like his world was shrinking into a bubble where only you and him existed. "PleaseâI need it before your cum starts leaking out. I need to be filled by you, Wonwoo. Please.â You looked like you might cry if he didn't oblige the plead.
And so he did, his fingers planting a firm grip on your strong hips.
As much as you were willing to take, he was willing to give, finding himself submerge further and further into the intoxicating nature of it all until he started to lose his mindâall he knew is that it was concerningly late at night, your bedsheets were sticky and ruined, and you had gone from being thrust into the pillows to slapping yourself down on his cock while Wonwoo hazily watched. He loved the sight of your sweat, your glowing light, your bouncing breasts and pleasure-drunk face far too much. At some point, you had slumped forward into him, spent to fucking hell.
With your chests were pressed together, his cock still throbbing and stuffed inside you, there was a moment of nothing but thick, laboured breathing and heartbeats synchronizing. He kissed your temple and wrapped his arms around you, proceeding to mumble something sweet and half-asleep that contained your name.
You had squeezed his length unforgivingly in response.
âFuckâdonât get me hard again. Iâm fucking exhausted.â
âI like when you use my name.â
He smiled into your cheek. âI can tell.â
Wonwoo had woken before you.
Mostly because the bedsheets had been gradually wrapped up and tugged away and progressively stolen from him during the night, letting the cool, morning air dust over him like spray from an ocean. You were a fidgety sleeper, he had realized, sometimes even a mumbler, although Wonwoo had never been able to discern what it was you were sluggishly declaring in your dreams.
He turned his head to you, saw the bare groove of your back, shapely like a flower petal, and your arm dug underneath the silk pillow, observing every breath your unconscious body took.
Then, Wonwoo was leaning over you, feeling his fingers sink into your fleshy waist while his lips touched a kiss against your warm cheek. He hoped you wouldnât mind him using your washroom for a shower.
Afterward, Wonwoo retraced the apartment, finding his shoes a questionable distance apartâone stood square at the front door while the other was left in the hallway leading to your room. His winter jacket was tossed over the arm to the couch, meanwhile his phone involved a more in-depth search. For some reason, heâd left it atop a shelf beside the television, hidden by a clumsy stack of textbooks.
When he tapped the screen, it illuminated some text messages from Vernon that had been sent at around two in the morningâmostly inquiries about the birthday dinner and whether or not Wonwoo had bothered going to the famed and mysterious Room 319.
Though, he opted not to respond, realizing the details he wanted to share with his friend would likely require a sit-down discussion over burgers, fries, and sodas at Solar Pop. Making his way back to the bedroom, Wonwoo carefully creaked open the door to find you half-shoved onto an arm, making tired circles against your eye.
He smiled, coming to sit beside you, handing off the glass of water he poured for himself.
âAre you leaving?â Was the first question you blearily pieced together after accepting the water but not drinking anything from it.
Wonwoo shook his head. âNo.â
You managed to sit up properly, the sheets settling around your hips while you continued holding onto the glass. For a moment, you seemed to just observe Wonwoo, your eyes still swollen from sleep.
âWhere are you going, then?â
He furrowed his brow. âNowhere,â Wonwoo laughed, pulling one leg up onto the bed. âI got up to shower. Went and found my things. Got a glass of water, which youâre now holding, by the way.â
You swallowed, looking down at your lap.
âOhâŠâ after a recollecting pause, you took a sip from it.
Wonwoo smiled, his eyes softening like fresh brown sugar, as he proceeded to unstick some matted hairs from the edge of your face.
âYouâre a pretty big sheet stealer,â he said, continuing to spread his fingers about your features, removing fluffs and rubbing off bits of dried spit, âand you seem to like talking, even in your sleep.â
âOh, yeah⊠I should have told you that.â
He shrugged. âItâs fine. I liked not knowing.â
âDid you?â With a laugh and smile, you drank some more water.
âYeah. Because itâs you, it makes me adore it even more.â
âI donât always mumble. I swear. Only sometimes.â
Wonwoo didnât care. âItâs not a big deal.â
âI guess I should shower, too. Then Iâll change the sheets and get new ones on.â You abruptly raised the blankets at your lap, lifting up a leg to examine something Wonwoo couldnât see. âYeah, I definitely need to change the sheets⊠oh! And take my pill. Fuck. I canât forget.â
âI can help with the sheets.â
âOkay,â you said while leaning forward to pull open a drawer on your nightstand, revealing a thin, silver cartridge of pills, âthanks.â
After you had showered and gotten dressed in a clean spare t-shirt, you changed the dirtied sheets to your bed together.
Then you and Wonwoo spent some time together in the open, bright living room, lounging on the couch. Maybe you had kissed a few more times, and maybe his naturally cold hands had found their way underneath your loose t-shirt to curiously massage and press along your pretty chest, and maybe you had kissed a little more after that while the sun rays slid up your sensitive skin.
You twisted away from Wonwooâs lips with a giggle.
âMâkay, thatâs enough, or else Iâll need another shower.â You grabbed at Wonwooâs hands that had been squeezing your breasts.
Although he didnât want to stop, he listened, relaxing against the pillow he had stuffed between his spine and the arm of the couch, now throwing an elbow behind his head. You were leaning back against him, getting comfy between his legs, and for a few minutes or so, the two of you gazed out those large, floor-length glass windows into the awakening, snow-capped city.
He felt you stir against him.
âYou know⊠sometimes you donât always speak English.â
Wonwoo itched his eyebrow, chuckling, âwhat?â
âLast night, like, when I was riding youââ your head tilted back onto his shoulder, beaming him a smile, ââyou would start switching languages. In between English and Korean. It was so cute.â
âOh, yeah.â He adjusted his glasses, staring down at you while his cheeks became rosy. âI donât know, itâs just something my brain does automatically. I donât always realize Iâm doing it.â
You grinned; eyes sparkling. âWhen it feels too good?â
Ruffling a hand through his hair, he simply smirked at you.
âHaving a front seat view to the most beautiful girl in the world riding me just happens to be something that makes me feel really good.â
You pushed your head up to kiss him, followed by a sweet and brief whisper that he smiled at, âcompliment appreciated.â
A few more quiet minutes passed. Wonwoo thought he could spend the entire day just sitting on the couch with you warm in his arms, watching the snow tumble down like wisps of tender willows.
âWonwoo?â
âMm?â
You got quiet.
Then, your weight against his chest was gone, and you had half-turned yourself around to look at him, seeming nervous.
He tilted his head. âWhatâs wrong?â
âNothing,â you answered, glancing down briefly before soaking him back into your agleam eyes. âI just want to apologize, actually.â
At that, Wonwoo stiffened. âYeah? What for?â
With a sigh and another anxious moment to fiddle with the rolled-up cuff belonging to his wrinkled dress shirt, you were reserved.
âEver since we fought, I can't help thinking about it. I mean, Iâve thought about what you said, and the fact you apologized, and explained yourself, and how you gave me time to process it all. You gave me so much grace, even when I felt like I hated you⊠but⊠I also said some hurtful things about you⊠I mean, back then I felt like you deserved it. And, I donât know⊠maybe you did? Like, maybe we both needed to just be there, screaming at each other, digging our guts out, throwing up all this stuff to the surface because no one else has ever given us that freedom or made us feel like we could before. Anyway, I just feel like itâs only right that I say sorry, too.â
Scratching at his neck, Wonwoo swallowed. He never thought of it like that. âUh, sure. If thatâs what you feel you need to do. â
âIâm sorry, Wonwoo. I really, truly am.â
He smiled, grasping at your hand and threading his fingers with yours. Pangs of regret were flooding your eyes, filling them up until they were undoubtedly teary and Wonwoo had to wipe it all away.
âItâs fine, I swear,â he whispered, moving in closer to you, brushing at your cheek as you sniffled. âNothing has ever truly changed how I feel about you. Youâre incredibly firm but sensitive, and have such fiery passion, and youâre curious about everything, and I know that it hurts so much to live without really knowing yourself. But I see you, and I feel like I know you. I never want to stop knowing you, alright?â
âWonwoo?â
âYeah?â
Your mouth pressed against his, and he tasted the salt from the tears that beaded down the slopes of your cheeks, warm with life.
âI love you.â He felt the whisper touch at his lips. âI really do.â
Wonwoo held onto your face like he was cradling a big pearl. âI love you, too.â Another kiss sealed the expression into felt, tangible emotion. âBut honestly, you already knew that.â
Later in the day, you came up to Wonwoo as he ate lunch at the table, only after having disappeared into a distant office space further down the hallway. You dropped before him a clear, plastic duotang, which held a notably thick stack of papers that had quite a weight to it upon picking up. It only took a few flips into the papers for Wonwoo to realize that it was the completed book he used to proofread for youâa series of chronological memories between yourself and the boyfriend you had gradually drifted apart from.
True to your word, you had forged ahead and finished the book alone.
He was proud to hold the evidence.
Wonwoo asked what you planned to do with the book now that it was done. He even wondered if you might let him read some parts he never got to work on, though he understood if you preferred to keep the contents private. As he was in the middle of lifting a hot spoon to his mouth, Wonwoo suddenly paused at hearing your response.
âI think Iâll just shred it.â
You didnât seem to care.
The decision came easier than pressing a button. There was only one copy of the book, apparently, and you had plans to turn all its pages into literary confetti. But that was a very you thing to do, Wonwoo had come to accept. Writing served many purposes, and it seemed that the purpose you had sought out was met. Somewhere, in all those paragraphs, sentences, letters, and ink, you found the fulfillment you had always ached for. At last, you struck a glimmer of promising gold after digging through all the haze and confusion.
âSure,â he answered, âshred away.â
â8 MONTHS LATER. END OF JUNE.
âIt looks so pathetic!â
âWhat?! No it doesnât!â
Peeking up from the mason jar of earthy blue water heâd been swirling together using some dirtied paintbrushes, Wonwoo saw you seated across from him, talking to a very dismayed, upset twelve-year-old girl. Sierraâs little sister, Cora, had enrolled in his landlordâs ceramics class over the summer, and thus every Saturday evening she spent her time moulding unwilling chunks of grey clay alongside other similarly aged students. It was only Cora in the shop since she had been the last to get her teapot in the kiln, taking extra time with every minute detail.
Though, despite her care and attentive pace, Cora was still not pleased with the teapot, leading her to grumble and shake her head.
You were sitting beside her, a hand rubbing along the little girlâs back while she continued scrutinizing her creation. Ever since you moved into Wonwooâs apartment back in May, Saskia had quite liked you more than her average tenant, and that somehow transformed into an offer to help her teach the summer ceramics class (with pay).
Wonwoo was always there to assist in the clean-up afterwardâhis favourite part was submerging all the greasy, bristly paintbrushes into a clean jar of water so that he could watch how their colours bled out in thin, swirling hues.
âNo, no, noâitâs just bad.â
âIâm telling you. Itâs not.â
Cora picked up the lid to the pot, then placed it back down. âThereâlookâit doesnât even close properly. And the spout is not spouty enough⊠itâs too thick, I think. Hardly any tea will go through!â
âWell, I really like it.â
Tucking a tuft of poofy, rust-brown hair behind her ear, Cora gave you a suspecting and funny sort of look that made Wonwoo smile to himself. She was a very shy student, but she talked to you the most.
âYou say that about everything I make,â Cora sighed.
âSo what?â
âSoâŠâ she nibbled on her small lip, looking off to the side, âyou have to say that, because you're nice. Youâre like my mom. She says she loves everything I make. But then why donât I ever love it?â
âShe loves it because you made it, obviously. And she loves you. I think love changes how we look at things. Even the impractical.â Then, you picked up her teapot and moved it closer. âYou know why I like this teapot? Because it shows youâre determined. I mean, look at all those bowls on the newspaper over thereâyouâre the only one who did the teapot! And you did it mostly by yourself. You wouldnât even let me help you roll out the clay. So, thatâs why I like it. Because I see you in it. And when you tackle it again, youâll know what to do differently. Plus, you know you can ask me for help, right? You know Iâll always help you.â
The little girlâs freckled face suddenly became less twisted with judgement and frustration. She set her elbows onto the table, scratching at a Hello Kitty bandaid along the back of her hand, while you gave her hair a quick ruffle. Wonwoo started drying off the paintbrushes using paper towel before moving them into the cup labelled âcleanâ with a piece of tape.
âWhat should I do with this, then? If it wonât work,â Cora asked.
You shrugged. âI donât know. But for now, just leave it with the other stuff. Weâll give it a nice glaze next time around. Make it even prettier. Then you can decide what to do with itâwhether or not you want to keep it or smash it on the ground. Itâs up to you, Cora.â
Wonwoo tilted his head. âWhy donât you turn it into a miniature flower pot or something? Fill it with soil and plant something in it?â
Cora raised her eyebrows. âI like that idea, actually.â
âMe too,â you said, shooting Wonwoo a sly wink that he smiled very stupidly at, âlook at this guy over here. Lurking with his good ideas.â
By the time Sierra was available to pick up her sister, Wonwoo had officially finished cleaning all the paintbrushes and whittling tools, as well as replacing the tablecloth with a fresh one. The three of you stood at the base to the shopâs very small stoop, exchanging some general conversation while a sleepy Cora held onto her sisterâs hand and leaned her seemingly heavy head against her side.
The sky was a tame yellow shade, not as bright as a buttercup, but something delicate of the like.
âHeyâI heard you guys are planning a vacation!â Sierra chirped, adjusting the car keys in her hand, âis that all true?â
âYeah,â you nodded, flashing Wonwoo a soft smile, âuh, we decided that weâre gonna spend some time in South Korea. I havenât visited his family at all. But, yeah. Gonna leave start of August and come back right before October. So, a pretty good chunk of time.â
âNo way!â She exclaimed.
âWeâll see how it pans out,â Wonwoo commented, sliding his arm around your waist and digging his fingers into your hip. âBut my brother wonât shut his mouth about meeting her. And my parents are obviously curious. Besides, there are some great places I want to show off.â
Sierra shook her head. âIâm jealous. And totally sure you guys will have a great experience together. Weâll miss you here, though.â
âPlease do,â you laughed, and Sierra pinched your cheek.
She then looked down at her sister, who had her eyes shut.
âOkay, Iâm gonna get this little dove home. Thank you so much for helping her at ceramics by the way. She talks about you all the time.â
âReally?â You touched at your face, seeming flustered. âWell, I love helping her out. Sheâs a sweet girl with a lot of will on her shoulders.â Lowering your voice, you moved in closer to Sierra. âIâll keep my eyes peeled for a cute gift she can have while weâre gone.â
After parting ways with Sierra and Cora, you and Wonwoo returned upstairs, back into the apartment to prepare for supper.
Both of you were feeling particularly lazy, and the shiny red tomato he was supposed to chop ended up being ignored in place of eating ice cream straight from its tub.
You were the one who grabbed itâWonwoo was only following suit as he picked up a spoon and curved some out.
Something else interesting about you that Wonwoo had learned since moving in together was that you didnât really care to ever sit on a chair, even when you were eating. It was either the sofa, the floor, or the kitchen table, in which you would be holding onto your food even though he always thought how easier it could be if you did sit down properly. The quirk was fun, nonetheless, and Wonwoo had admittedly started looking at the kitchen table in a different light after he proceeded to give you oral on it one night. Consequently, it bloomed a very dangerous habit between the two of you.
A habit that might become drastically less accessible once you two jetted off to his native country for over a month, confined between his parentâs cozy home where he grew up and the two-story apartment his wealthy brother and sister-in-law owned in the glittering heart of South Koreaâs Seoul. He was nervous. You were nervous. But at least you were together.
Over the months, your parents had gradually come to accept him as your boyfriend, even if they weren't exactly warmed up to the idea at the start. Wonwoo revisited your home a few times alongside you to help in the explanations of your story and future prospects, although he partially understood that Mingyu was like a precious sapphire to your family and having him out so suddenly was hard to stomach.
He spent years nestling himself a comfortable burrow and smoothing out the bumps to make a crafty façade that, particularly your mother, couldn't help but outwardly adore. Like a son. Like Seokmin, too.
Wonwoo thought Mingyu might give him trouble.
In truth, he'd scarcely seen him, unless transient glimpses of his towering, quickly bustling figure from across a university campus or city street were noteworthy. Obviously, he wasn't inside Mingyu's head and he really had no inclination as to what the boy might be thinking on the occasion he spotted you and Wonwoo hand-in-hand at the park, or sharing breakfast at the café along Sunnyside.
But if Mingyu maintained even half the feelings that Wonwoo did for you, then he was positive it hurt like fucking hell.
Of all people, Wonwoo supposed he himself knew best.
âAUGUST 1ST.
âWonwoo!â
He closed his dresser drawer, almost slamming his fingers inside. Your voice echoed from the living room, sounding hectic.
âYes? Whatâs up!â
âThe taxiâs here!â
Fuck. He immediately thought. The time was flying by.
Wonwoo had made a gigantic list of what to pack, but over time he kept adding and taking things away from it. Now, it was early morning, soft rain and cracks of bursting light coming down outside, and he was doing a final clean-sweep of the bedroom as well as his poorly scribbled list to ensure everything he needed was with him.
Quickly approaching the window, Wonwoo glanced outside to see the cab parked at the curb. Fuck. Again. Vernon always said he would happily provide you two a ride to the airport, but then the boy was unsurprisingly wrapped back into some trouble, and Wonwoo hadnât seen his best friend in over a week.
Graciously, however, Vernon had given him a heads up and a proper goodbye beforehand. Heâd even left him a voicemail to listen to, which immediately jumped into Wonwooâs brain at random as he scrambled around the bedroom in search of his phone.
âJust give me one more minute!â Wonwoo shouted.
There was a pause on your end, and then a sigh.
âDo you need help?â
âNoâall good. I promise. Can you let the cab driver know?â
âI will.â
âThank you!â Wonwoo sang, finding the phone blended into his bedsheets, then proceeding to open his inbox. âI love you!â
âI love you, too!â You shouted back. âJust hurry the fuck up!â
He let Vernonâs message play while also tossing his suitcase onto the bed, stuffing in a few more last-minute grabs with utter clumsiness.
âHeyyy, Glasses! How are things? Iâm shooting you this cute little message at aroundddâoh! Looks like itâs two in the morninâ! Itâs two in the fuckinâ morninâ and Iâm pulled up outside this dudeâs house all âcause he canât pay me back for my good, hard services. Itâs nothinâ serious, though. Donât get all uptight like usual. You know Iâm good at handlinâ stuff and keepinâ my cool. Probably my better qualities. Anyway, Iâm bored as fuck. Iâve spun this Lloyd CD about four times and I just canât listen to that dude anymore. He can sing, though.
I am pissed youâre leavinâ me. And Iâm pissed sheâs leavinâ me, too. You guys are what I look forward to whenever I drive down into that shithole city. Well, I think just about every cityâs a shithole city. In fact, the city Iâm in now is probably more of a shithole⊠Seokmin texted me the other dayâsaid he wants to talkâwhich is vague as fuck and to be honest, Iâve been ignorinâ it âcause I canât get myself to give a god damn. But maybe Iâll hear him out. That guy was a cutie, wasnât he? I still think youâre a bit cuter. And better at mini-put.
Iâll miss you a lot when youâre down there⊠it got me thinkinâ about the night when we first met. The New Yearâs Eve party. You remember that pretty well, donâtâchya? I saw you come in with those guysâthey didnât look like your crowd at allâbut then after a while you were alone. Wanderinâ around. It didnât even seem like you knew anyone else was there. You had the blankest look on your face. Like you were stuck in a loop and you didnât even know it. I donât know that I felt pity or anything⊠hell, maybe I felt a little. I just talked to âya âcause I wanted to know if you knew where you even were.
You knew you were at some stupid, loud, awful fuckinâ house party jammed with unfamiliar faces. You knew how much you hated beinâ there. But I donât think you actually knew how you got there, or why, or what was supposed to happen next. It kinda drew me to you. I wanted to understand it. And you gave me the weirdest look, too, when I stopped you. But once I got you outside, away from all the bullshit, you loosened up just a bit and I realized I was talkinâ to this smart, well-rounded, thoughtful guy who was just a little lost in the weeds.
I know you didnât really care about me like that. I was just some jumped-up weirdo who could give you mint weed at a sweet price. But I still liked you⊠I dunno⊠other people see you differently when they care a whole lot, donât they? I guess they see things about you that others canât, or they know exactly what you could be when others donât. They see stuff even you canât see. Itâs like a superpower, I think⊠my best superpower is probably makinâ girls giggle. Iâve got a lot of charm, wouldnât you agree? Haâanywayâstay safe on your trip, tell Her that Iâll miss her a lot, tooâoh! Oh!
Fuck! Thatâs it. That little fucker is cominâ outsideâhe canât resist his two am darts on the porch. God bless you, nicotine! Okay, uh, guess this is me hanginâ up on you. Later, Wonwoo!â
At that point, everything Wonwoo needed was packed. But heâd taken the additional time to complete Vernonâs voicemail, now sitting on the edge of his bed while staring out into the early, glimmering rain shower and the water droplets collecting against his window.
Then, Wonwoo glanced down at the laptop he had open.
He hadnât written in⊠months. Not even monthsâit had been over a year since Wonwoo wrote. And, somehow, it felt good not to write.
It felt necessary to step away from the craft.
Besides, writing would always be there. Just because he hadnât filled up a document on his computer with harmoniously arranged words, or penned anything down in the journal he used to scribble poetry in, that didnât make him not a writer. In fact, it could be crucial to know when to step away from somethingâwhen to let go of an invisible weight keeping one from progressing. While he hadnât thought about it in months, it floated to the surface of his mind that there may be something he should let go.
The unfinished book. 01.
Wonwoo deleted it. Simple as that.
Shoving the laptop into his shoulder-sling bag, Wonwoo made sure to knab his journal from the nightstand before he left, just in case anything did excite him with a crack of inspiration as he embarked on his newest chapter with you at his side. Rolling his suitcase hurriedly behind him, Wonwoo rushed out onto the street, feeling the rain graze his hair and skin, while you were leaned against the cab, arms folded and teeth anxiously raking over your bottom lip.
He peppered the cab driver in apologies while he helped shove the suitcase into the trunk.
âLiarââ you grumbled after sliding into the cab, undoing the buttons on your coat, ââyou said one minute, not one lifetime.â
âI know, I know,â Wonwoo laughed, removing his glasses to rub off the mist and dew, âbut that voice mail from Vernon distracted me.â
âLet me do it,â you said, taking his glasses with a sigh, âwe should be fine. I know weâll make it on time⊠I guess Iâm just on edge.â
He watched you massage at the lenses gently with a sleeve. The driver climbed back into the cab, now pulling away from the pottery shop and driving toward the beam of light that sliced through the dense clouds, like the sun was handling a giant blade.
âEverythingâs gonna work out, I promise⊠and I already told you that weâll be staying with Bohyuk first, right? Him and Nari?â
Handing the glasses back to Wonwoo, you nodded.
âYeah⊠godâI hope he likes me.â
âOh, he will. You guys are pretty similar, actually.â
The look you gave him warbled slightly.
âWhat if thatâs a bad thing? Every time you tell me a story about your brother, it usually involves you loathing him for something.â
âThose stories took place years ago.â
âBut the feelings are still there, arenât they?â
Wonwoo settled his hand over top yours, giving your fingers a soothing squeeze. He knew you wanted to make the perfect first impression. After all, first impressions were not something that could be easily taken back or erased, unless the people you were meeting were quite forgiving. And Bohyuk was fortunately the forgiving type.
It was only time that Wonwoo exercise the quality as well.
Leaning in close to your face, Wonwoo gazed into your eyes, watching their frantic nature become still like the surface of a calm pond.
âYouâve got nothing to worry about, alright?â He murmured.
Huffing out an intense, long breath, you nodded.
âAlright⊠can I have a kiss, please?â
Lifting his hand to graze against the side of your cheek, he paused to admire your beauty for a moment, only to properly cup your face and push his lips to yoursâwhich tasted sweet and balmyâbefore feeling you push back firm. He proceeded to give you another soft kiss for good measure, one that cured you to smile all fluttery and coy against his mouth until he was inevitably smiling, too.
In fact, Wonwoo only ever found himself smiling that hard when he was with you.
âEND.
heyyyy :] ramble incoming...
first and foremost, ABOVE ALL ELSE, i just want to say thank you! i know this was a very, very long fic for me to be uploading on tumblr. this site is not the most fanfic friendly (or creation friendly for that matter) so stomaching the fact that this needed to be split up into so many parts was like a dagger to the heart! for those who decided to buckle up and lock into this journey, i honestly thank you so much <3 life was not always kind in the process of writing this (hence the fact it took me 2 years, plus some extra) but i was so dedicated to seeing this story through! a lot of the frustration i was feeling toward myself was funnelled into wonwoo's character, so this is quite personal :3
nonetheless, i hope there's something, even a single thing, someone else can take away from the story as well! both wonwoo and her as characters introduce their own unique themes--wonwoo (at the core) is more so about learning to let go in order to progress, whereas her is about using creative tools to help guide the search for identity. i think that writing has helped me learn a lot about myself (even uncomfy, icky things) so i wanted that to be represented through her.
of course, these are not the only things they stand for! but these are the elements i based their characters on, to which other concepts sprouted from. i also loved the idea of pairing someone as lost and misguided and emotionally stunted as wonwoo with this girl who seems so bossy and firm. at first he doesn't like it, but that was really what he needed to accept some of the flaws holding him back. idk if you're familiar with the EXCUSE ME! HE ASKED FOR NO PICKLES! meme but that's what comes to mind when i think of them xD
additionally: special shout out to vernon. he became a much bigger part of this story than i originally intended. he is in some ways wonwoo's foil. vernon knows he's flawed but that's sorta his strength and what makes him genuine. he witnesses wonwoo's entire journey, so at times he also feels like our role, the "reader" and gives wonwoo some wisdomy parting words without rly knowing it (but that's part of his charm <3 i don't want vernon's emotional intelligence to be underrated, which is also an ode to the conversation wonu & her have back in the museum. wonwoo knows there are different types of intelligence and emotionally he is lackinggg).
also small s/o to seokmin. SORRY! HAD TO DO IT!
this has been my slowest slowburn! i wasn't sure how late they were going to kiss. but i didn't want to force anything. i wanted to add the moment when i felt it was surely right! also, if you haven't yet listened to the playlist and you're curious, i recommend listening to the very last song, writer, by ellie goulding. i've been listening to that song for many years, and one day it hit me how coincidentally her lyrics overlap with some of the fic's storyline!
i think it adds a nice final touch <3
LASTLY!
upon contemplation, i will be uploading this fic to ao3 in the same chaptered format it's been posted here! i realize the convenience to bookmarking on that site (and it also doesn't give people's phones a heart attack when trying to read something lengthy) so i hope that appeases some of you who wish to reread with more leisure! i'll be under the username @/uglypluto!
i'll upload the final chapter (this chapter) to ao3 probably between late sunday & early monday.
THANK YOU x100! đ
HER | part three (m).
â§â synopsis:Â wonwoo, a heartbroken and burnt out writer nearing the end of his math degree, wants nothing to do with the seemingly perfect, intimidating girl who has everyone under her thumb. you. unfortunately, his literary talent has got him shoved him between a rock and a hard place when you want to write a book and require his expertise. you two are the furthest from compatible. wonwoo canât see this going well. at all.
pairing: wonwoo x fem!reader word count: 24.8k genres/tropes:Â writer!wonwoo, university!au, plug!vernon + boyfriend!mingyu as prominent side characters, SLOWBURN (i am not fucking around this is my slowest burn yet), relationship drama, soul searching, strong angst/hurt (iâm coming for the jugular), comfort, romance, smut, a smoothie of every emotion on earth.
(!) warnings: drug use (weed, cocaine, ecstasy), wonwoo has anxiety + anxiety attacks + fairly dark thoughts, prescribed medication, gambling, intense language, infidelity, throwing up.
â§â a/n: just some quick things i want to make apparent!
the fic is told from wonwooâs pov, not the readerâs!Â
all major timeline events are organized through chronological dates
any smut or potentially triggering scenes are NOT MARKED bc the content is already quite mature, so just plz be aware of that!Â
bolded and italicized text implies the characters are conversing in korean, tho it doesnât happen often!
the fic in its entirety is 140k, so it has been split into 6 parts.
THE MIDWAY POINT đ now i've just gotta prepare the last 3 parts! this is a chunkier chapter. it contains one of the longest scenes i've ever written (not even the full thing lol, it had to be split). but you'll see why, a lot had to "occur" :p
happy reading!! đ
âąÂ part one | part two âą soundtrack for those curious! âąÂ read at ur own pace! :)
âHoly fuckâyou really did lose your shoe.â
He hadnât actually noticed until you were both inside his dim apartment, puddles of water now forming on the floorboards.
âI told you!â
Looking down, you had on just a black, sodden sock. With a suctioning and uncomfortably wet squelch, you managed to toe off your remaining sneaker, flinging it carefully onto the shoe mat.
Wonwoo did the same.
Thunder continued rumbling outside, with lightning hitting no more than a few seconds after. The strikes were like white knives in the sky, ripping and shearing apart the storm clouds of summer humidity.
âJesus,â you huffed, hands moulding down your face to wipe away all the droplets, âI canât believe you got me to run, first of all. Second of all, I canât tell if I absolutely hated or thoroughly enjoyed that.â
âI liked it,â Wonwoo said.
âOf course you did.â
He walked into the kitchen and grabbed a dish towel to begin cleaning off his glasses and phone, not caring about all the water he was dragging so liberally everywhere. Once Wonwoo fit the frames back to his face, he was able to clearly see you still standing by the door, and he appreciated that you didnât want to make a mess of his living room even though it wouldnât matter to him one teensy tiny bit.
Your fingers picked in a distracted manner at the clusters of your dripping hair, meanwhile soft, watery mascara dappled down your arched cheeks, framing you akin to a detailed and evocative painting. That hemmed, white t-shirt was clinging in soaked wrinkles to your heaving torso and chest, revealing subtle imprints of all the bare skin underneath. And Wonwoo found himself looking. Not in a lecherous, tainted way, but in the simple fact that you wereâŠ
He suddenly bit down on his inner cheek, curled his hand into a fist where he could easily dig at the scars on his thumb.
To Wonwoo, you were so indescribably beautiful, standing near his doorway, soaked to the bone in the rebirth of rainfall.
He had always thought you were pretty, but in that moment, he knew it was more than just thatâit was a realization that stopped the breath in his lungs and the heavy beats his heart was just barely making. At least, that was how it felt. Wonwoo sensed his panic flare up for a split second, and then it simmered away into casual nervousness. Before his eyes could linger long enough to get caught, he remembered to take a deep inhale and reground his thoughts. You stopped fiddling with your hair and sniffled.
âUm, is it okay if I jump in your shower? I meanâwell, itâs your place, so if you want to get yourself sorted first, thatâs fine.â
He shook his head. âNo, itâs okay. I donât mind at all.â
You smiled back at him, adjusting the small leather bag strewn over your shoulder. He hoped your journal wasnât soaked.
âAre you sure?â
âWellâokay, let me just run into my room and grab some clothes. Iâll dry off real quick in the washroom and change. I promise itâll take me less than like, five minutes.â
âThatâs probably best. Iâll just keep standing here.â
Hopping his way across the apartment, Wonwoo made it into his bedroom where he began ripping open the dresser drawers, pulling out some basic clothes like sweatpants and a hoodie. Then, he slipped into the washroom, peeling all the sopping, disgustingly sticky articles from his body and throwing them into the sink. Once he rubbed off with a towel, Wonwoo quickly got dressedâprobably the fastest heâd ever put on clothes in his entire life. You were still standing patiently by the door when Wonwoo returned to the living room, having dumped his wet outfit into the laundry hamper.
âIâm making a colossal sized puddle right now.â You laughed.
âHaâthatâs okay,â Wonwoo answered, handing you a clean towel heâd pulled from his toiletries closet. âIâll take care of it.â
You started walking toward the corridor, and then stopped.
âDo you think you have any clothes that might fit me? Itâs justâI obviously donât want to wear this again," you said, gesturing to the t-shirt and long skirt damply flush to your figure.
âOh, yeah. Iâll look through my dresser and closet and pick out some stuffâyou can see which fits best. Iâll throw your clothes and mine into the laundry as wellâget it all clean and warmed up.â
âIâd love that, thank you.â
While you started undressing in his washroom, Wonwoo began sorting through all the clothes he had, pulling out older t-shirts and even some shorts, though he knew they most likely wouldnât fit you. He heard you turn on the shower and wait for it to start heating.
Once Wonwoo was satisfied with all the options heâd picked, he knocked a few times on the washroom door. It was pulled open rather quickly, and he saw you standing in the threshold of thickening, hot steam, holding the spare towel closed at your chest.
âFor you. Thereâs a whole bunch of sizes.â
âOkay, thank you so much. Do you want my clothes?â
âYeahâthatâs all of it?â
âMmhm.â
âOkay. Take your time. Iâm gonna run to the basement and get these in the laundry. Iâll probably be back up in like, five minutes. If you need anything else, just shout. Iâll be able to hear it.â
Wonwoo wasnât sure how long it took you to shower, mostly because he was too occupied with looking out the windowpanes from his seat at the couch, watching the downpour continue, the evening dimness that flooded the room, and the liquified twinkling of city lights flickering behind all the rain. However, once you emerged from his bedroom and padded into the living area, dressed in a dark blue, logoed shirt from the neatly folded pile heâd handed you, Wonwoo had snapped back to the present. You smiled at him, and he saw that your face was now cleaned of the runny mascara and makeup.
âOhâuh, our clothes are still in the laundry.â
âThatâs okay,â you answered while walking around the coffee table. âI knew they wouldnât be done right away. Iâm fine to wait.â
Wonwoo proceeded to sit up straighter against the couch, rather than his slouched, wide spread position that heâd unconsciously sunk into before when staring vacantly into the rain.
âAnd, uhâjust so you know, Iâm wearing an embarrassing lack of clothes right now,â you admitted through your teeth, taking a ginger seat beside him. âSo, like, not that Iâm saying youâre going to be weird about it âcause I know you wonât be, but, do you have a blanket or something that I can toss over my lap?â
Immediately, Wonwoo got up from the couch.
âYeah, thereâs one in my room. Iâll grab it.â
He saw that your bag was also left in his bedroom, so he took it out with him, a few remaining droplets still bulbed on the surface.
âItâs probably not as soft as the one at your place.â
âDoesnât matter.â You flapped the blanket out and settled it primly over your legs. âAnd thanks for grabbing my bag, too.â
Wonwoo collapsed back onto the sofa.
âI hope your journalâs not ruined.â
After fishing around inside the pouch, you pulled out your phone, and then the leather notebook, which was completely dry.
âOh, thank God. Iâd actually be so pissed if it was wet, probably more so than my phone.â You flipped through the pages, feeling for any splotches or tears. âI prevail, after all.â
Wonwoo smiled, and fluffed a hand through his hair.
âIf you decide to stay longer because the rain wonât let up, I can always try to make you supper, or something. I canât promise that it will be the best meal of your life, but Iâm not that incompetent.â
âOhâbut what if I want something extravagant?â You smirked while flitting through your text messages. âLike buttery lobster with garlic mashed potatoes and steamed vegetables?â
He scratched under the pad of his glasses.
âIs that what you usually eat?â
âNo. Only when Iâm feeling super fancy. I force Mingyu to cook it for me because heâs good at that stuff. Really, I shouldnât have to ask himââ you glanced at Wonwoo, smiling, ââhe should just do it.â
âWell, if you decide to stay, I can make the next best thing.â
âYeah? Whatâs that?â
Looking into his kitchen, Wonwoo laughed at himself.
âRamen.â
âOh! I actually love ramen,â you exclaimed, shuffling up your legs under the blanket. âAnd I would totally stay, but I promised Princess that Iâd come to her new place at six oâclock-ish to help do some unpacking. Once my clothes are all done, Iâll probably get her to come pick me up. I don't know when the rain's gonna stop."
âThatâs fine,â Wonwoo replied with an accepting, warm expression, even though on the inside, he was rotting in disappointment because he would have given anything for you to stay and eat supper, maybe watch a movie afterward, order ice cream.
He hated when you would leave. It left him to swim alone with his own thoughtsâmostly consumed by youâand dreadfully wait until he could see or hear from you again. As Wonwoo stared off into space, he felt the phone in his pocket buzz.
It was a text from Vernon.
[ Vernon | 5:05 pm ]: hey sir-dork-a-lot
[ Vernon | 5:05 pm ]: Â you asked her about the party yet?!
Fuck. The stupid party. The Solar Pop incident with Mingyu.
Wonwoo had completely forgot that was somehow supposed to wedge his way into receiving an invite, when he didnât even want to go in the first place. Parties genuinely werenât his scene.
Especially the kind that Mingyu and his friend, Seungcheol, would throw. But, at the same time, there was this very small seed of curiosity planted in his stomachâthat, maybe, Wonwoo should just shoulder off his hatred of loud, cramped spaces and obnoxious university students chugging all their drinks straight from the bottle. If he just tried his best to stay calm, stay level-headed, breathe, then perhaps Wonwoo could survive a night partying with Vernon, as fucking ridiculous and deluded as it sounded.
He glanced over at you, who was texting someone.
God. Did he really want to ruin this calm, comfortable moment right now to ask about your boyfriendâs big slosh-fest?
âSo, I noticed in your schedule, like, two weeks into June, youâre gonna be off the call for three days, I think.â
You scratched your cheek, continuing to text.
âOh, yeah. I thought I already brought that up, but maybe Iâm thinking of a conversation with someone else.â Shutting off your phone, you started sliding it around the blanket while talking. âItâs this big party that Mingyuâs helping to host with his friend from basketball, Seungcheol. I don't know if you're familiar with him. They do it every summer. Itâs always so much fun, but I get so fucked up that I need at least two days recovery.â
Wonwoo swallowed, feeling how dry his throat was.
âYeah. I know Mingyuâs trying to get coke from Vernon.â
You stopped playing with the phone, instead looking immediately to Wonwoo through the rays of gradual light that began easing past the gentler rain. He held his breath.
âRight, Vernon.â You almost shuddered.
âYeahâŠâ
âIf he can get his hands on it, then, fuck, Iâm fine with that. Whatever. Mingyu invited him, of course. As long as he doesnât slink up to me and try to convince me the ten different ways he can give me the best orgasm Iâve ever had, I guess I shouldnât whine.â
Wonwoo was embarrassed for his friendâit was a pretty rough situation, he would imagine. Not his most shining moment.
âI know heâs your bestie,â you said, stretching your legs out onto the coffee table, âand Iâm not going to judge you to your face, but I will be judging you, silently, in the recesses of my own mind.â
Snickering, Wonwoo rubbed a hand down his neck.
âThe transparencyâs nice, I suppose. But, yeah. I understand why youâd have a gripe with him. To be fair, heâs not that bad. Heâs a good guy thatâs wrapped up in some shitty habits. Iâm sure you taught him a lesson that night. It gave him a serious degree of humbling.â
âPfft. Did it, now?â
Wonwoo opened his mouth, but he didnât speak, and it was then you doubled over in laughter at him, patting a hand on his knee.
âNo, no. Itâs okay. Iâll just deal.â
âI know you will⊠and, like, be safe and stuff.â
You grinned, shaking your head.
âOh, yeah. No need to worry. I know my limits⊠okayâwell, actually, I shouldnât say thatâI have a vaguely good idea of where my limits are, and sometimes I happen to surpass them. Not by ignorance, though. My mind is just too mushy at that point to care.â
âHow incredibly rambunctious,â Wonwoo replied. âYouâre probably blacklisted everywhere; a walking threat, actually.
âOh, shut up,â you chuckled, folding your arms. âIf you were trying to wiggle your way into being invited, Iâm revoking it now.â
âWell, that soils my next question.â
You raised your eyebrows, â⊠which is?â
For a moment, Wonwoo couldnât process that he was about to ask such a pathetic question. He tried thinking about it more as an out-of-body experience, where it wasnât really his true conscience taking the sails. You kept watching him, waiting for his response.
Thankfully, you didnât grant him the breadth to speak, and he was certain a lively hue of colour had just flushed back to his face.
âOh, youâre being serious. You want to go?â
âNot really,â Wonwoo admitted, pushing up his glasses. âBut, uh, I donât know. It helps that Vernon will be there. Iâm sure you can tell, Iâm not a party personânot at all. Just, it could be a good opportunity for⊠um⊠well, I really canât explain why, actually.â
âHm.â Your eyes narrowed. âI assume itâs Vernon pushing you into it for some stupid reason⊠I mean, I have no issues with you going, of course!â He watched you adjust your legs under the blanket, tucking them back beneath you. âBut just so you know, these parties are kinda intense and can be a major sensory overloadâeven for me! And I know that you donât like talking about it but Iâm not sure how well it bodes to put you in a position where you might have⊠uh, never mind, actually. I shouldnât speak on stuff that doesnât concern me. I just care about your wellbeing.â
Wonwoo pushed his lips together. A slight rush of something warm and tingly flowered at his core and he couldnât tell if he absolutely loved it or wanted the feeling to wither up and die. More light streamed through his windows as the rain weaned off and the sky morphed from grey back to a softer, evening powder blue.
âI appreciate your concern,â he answered after an almost questionable silence, âIâm sure it will be fine.â
âOh, sorryâI just wanted to be sure.â
âItâs okay.â
Neither of you spoke for a moment. Wonwoo twiddled his thumbs while you stared down at the blanket, presumably thinking.
âI would love for you to come, then.â
He caught you smiling at him after extending the offer in a quiet voice. The outside light filled up your eyes like a glass of swirling gold and Wonwoo believed your earnesty. And while he knew Vernon would be elated that he was able to come, Wonwoo was fighting to understand if he felt more relieved or terrified.
âJUNE 15TH.
Coming home from his long shift at the pharmacy, it was some time past eleven at night. The day hadnât been extremely busy, but Wonwoo found it always slowed down the most dramatically when he was absolutely itching to leave. He tried his best to get relaxed, jumping into a warm but short shower, making himself a cup of chamomile tea, looking back on some favourite excerpts from the journal he kept buried away in the first drawer on his nightstand.
Wonwoo willed himself not to look at any screens. And, yet, as he sat in his bed, drinking the last few sips of tea from his hot, porcelain cup, Wonwooâs eyes flickered across the room to his desk where his laptop was placed, and he felt this ticking urge to write.
At first, he wasnât sure what to do.
After all, heâd been putting in a significant effort to fix that godawful, nightmarish sleep schedule of his, and while his ventures werenât always the most successful, Wonwoo was making notable strides. To throw that all awayâjust to pick open his laptop and most likely end up staring straight into a lurid, white screen, while nothing of actual substance came to his fingertipsâit was fruitless, and perhaps a bit stupid. He knew he needed to let that story die.
The longer it sat, collecting pixelated dust on his desktop, the more it made sense to simply delete it. Move on. Acknowledge the fact that this relationship he once perceived as so perfect and glimmering had ended, and trying to find some wisps of closure in forcing himself to complete a fizzled romance was pointless. It made so much sense. Besides, Wonwoo was happier now than he had been back in March, April, May. And, he could attribute much of that to someone he once feared and poorly understoodâyou.
It was hard to describe, but you had been this flareâa comet more likeâthat kind of blazed with an uncontrolled fire into his very bleak life. And while heâd definitely felt your scorching, uncomfortable sting more than once, he was able to realize there was something so unique and enriching about you. Because you werenât just an uncontrollable fire, you were a full body laugh that made it hard to breath, but in the best, most treasured way. You were the quiet stillness of a pond, deep in the woods, listening to all the sounds that thrived around you, even though it didnât always seem like it.
And you were this very soft, caressing breeze that always found Wonwoo, even when he was at his lowest valleys, giving him that sensation of a shiver to let him know that he was still alive and breathing and not so horribly numb as he thought himself to be.
That was something heâd never experienced before.
It scared him somewhat, but there was comfort in the thought, nonetheless. True, warm, and pure comfort.
Wonwoo sighed, blinking away from his laptop.
He should probably just go to bed.
Once he washed his teacup out in the kitchen, Wonwoo started brushing his teeth. That big summer party he was supposed to attend with Vernon was tomorrow night, and to call him nervous was a complete understatement. Wonwoo wouldnât be surprised if he threw up. He would probably have to smoke a bit before leaving, just to mellow out. Of course, Vernon was overflowing with excitation, and maybe that was a good thingâhe could be Wonwooâs buffer.
Since your day together at the museum, Wonwoo had revisited your apartment twice to help with further proofreading and editing. He would be downright lying if he claimed that having to read through a memoire of your fulgurant love for Mingyu wasnât disheartening or turning him occasionally bitter. Wonwoo wanted to be happy that you were so devoted to him, you could write an entire book detailing all your sweetest moments and fondest memories and the overall history of your love. But he wasnât happy in the slightest.
You made him happyânot you, plus Mingyu
Continuing to brush his teeth, Wonwoo heard his phone ding once, and then again from his bedroom. And while he hadnât wanted to look at any screens tonight, he figured that responding to a couple texts wouldnât thwart all his progress. With the toothbrush still hanging from the corner of his mouth, Wonwoo flopped backward onto the bed and yanked his phone off the charger. While he was expecting the messages to be from Vernon due to their late sending, he was quite surprised to see they were actually from you.
[ Her | 11:50 pm ]: IMG.2102
[ Her | 11:50 pm ]: do I look pretty?
Immediately, Wonwoo shuffled up onto his elbows, tapping at the picture you had sent him. When he nearly choked on the excess of minty foam stuck in his mouth, Wonwoo quickly ran into the washroom to spit it all out. He recognized the outfit you were wearing in the photoâit was that white two-piece from the boutique in the mall that you had tried on, with the high-waisted, short, tight skirt and the strapped top that wrapped around the back of your neck and criss-crossed over your chest. Coming back to his bed to sit down, Wonwoo leaned over with an elbow digging into his knee.
Did you mean to send that to him?
For a moment, his thumbs just hovered above the keyboard, attempting to concoct a coherent thought in his mind. He recognized the large, silver-bordered mirror from your bedroom. And while the phone was slightly covering your face, you had this leg crooked up in a sweet, almost delicate pose despite the open and revealing nature of the outfit. Wonwoo rubbed under his glasses, huffing out deeply.
[ Wonwoo | 11:55 pm ]: Did you mean to send this?
He prayed you didnât take his text the wrong way.
[ Her | 11:55 pm ]: um yes
[ Her | 11:55 pm ]: ur wonwoo, arenât u?
[ Her | 11:55 pm ]: I just wanted to know what u thought of the outfit Iâm gonna wear. I know u have already seen it. but just in case u forgot I wanted to send another pic lol
[ Her | 11:56 pm ]: u think itâs bad? :(
Sitting back against his pillows, Wonwoo completely forgot all about his âno screensâ rule, texting you as quickly as possible.
[ Wonwoo | 11:56 pm ]: No, it doesnât look bad at all.
[ Wonwoo | 11:56 pm ]: You look gorgeous.
[ Her | 11:57 pm ]: and ur not just saying that?
[ Wonwoo | 11:57 pm ]: No, of course not.
[ Wonwoo | 11:57 pm ]: Youâll be the prettiest there.
[ Her | 11:57 pm ]: omgg thxx <3 okay I feel better now
[ Wonwoo | 11:57 pm ]: Why? What happened?
At that moment, Wonwoo actually received a text from Seokmin, but he rapidly flicked it away. Another text followed, and Wonwoo swore he flicked it away even faster, as though Seokmin was actually talking into his ear despite the quietness of his bedroom.
[ Her | 11:59 pm ]: Mingyu told me he doesnât really like it bc the skirt part is too short and he doesnât like the top. he says itâs too revealing and that everyone will just be looking at my boobs lol. but I donât want to change it :/ I like how it fits and itâs not like iâm going to be doing cartwheels or gymnastics
[ Her | 11:59 pm ]: idk he just made me feel bad about it
Wonwoo proceeded to rub a hand through his locks of clean, black hair, pulling them messily all over his head as he thought.
[ Wonwoo | 12:00 am ]: Hm. Well I do agree that itâs revealing and you probably will have people staring at you. I mean, if youâre not uncomfortable by that itâs fine. Youâll just have to be careful if you bend over or dance around, thatâs all :) But Iâm sure you already know that. You look beautiful. Donât worry too much.
[ Her | 12:00 am ]: okayy thank you so much! :)
[ Wonwoo | 12:00 am ]: No problem.
[ Her | 12:01 am ]: Iâm so glad that ur coming
[ Her | 12:01 am ]: it makes me feel better
[ Wonwoo | 12:01 am ]: Hopefully I can find you.
[ Her | 12:02 am ]: Iâll text you, no worries
[ Her | 12:02 am ]: mkay well I should go to bed now!
[ Her | 12:02 am ]: goodnight <3
[ Wonwoo | 12:02 am ]: Goodnight.
At last, Wonwoo clicked off the bright glare from his phone, setting it down against his chest. For at least five minutes, he did nothing but lay remarkably still in his bed and stare up at the ceiling, thinkingâas he usually didâabout why he was feeling that way.
That very certain, specific way that was so demanding in his heartbeat to be acknowledged, except for the fact Wonwoo wouldnât acknowledge it because then heâd throw up and probably lose himself entirely as he panicked.
Eventually, his thoughts were becoming too loud for his liking, and Wonwoo promptly tossed his phone aside and crawled underneath the covers before turning off the bedside lamp.
Even then, Wonwoo was restless. When he tried rolling onto his side, the uncomfortable poking against his nose reminded him he hadnât even removed his glasses. At first it was too hot, and Wonwoo pointed his leg out from beneath the blankets, pushing all the sheets down to rumple at his waist. But then it was notably cold after a few more minutes, and Wonwoo angrily stirred all his blankets back up to mask over his face. No matter what he did or how he positioned himself or what limb he decided to sacrifice to the hot-cold air, he wasnât going to fall asleep. Wonwooâs eyes popped open again.
Patting around the surface of the bed, his fingers eventually brushing the phone and glasses heâd discarded, Wonwoo decided he didnât care about going to sleep anymore if that was how his body was going to so painfully treat him. He shuffled up more against the pillows splayed at his back and checked the messages sent by Seokmin about half an hour agoâthe two boys hadnât spoken in a while, almost since their exams ended in May, and while Wonwoo would have ideally liked to keep in touch with his friend, he was laughably horrible at it. At least Seokmin seemed chipper.
[ Seokmin | 11:57 pm ]: Hey Wonwoo!
[ Seokmin | 11:57 pm ]: I heard you were going to Mingyu and Seungcheolâs party! I didnât think that would be something youâre into but Iâll also be there, probably for a couple hours
Wonwoo swiped out from the texts, not really feeling anything or thinking much about their content, and opened some messages from Vernon that heâd received at work but forgot to read.
[ Vernon |Â 9:55 pm ]: need a drive 4 the party?
[ Vernon | 9:55 pm ]: let me know beautiful xo
He couldnât help but muster a chuckle at the teasing nature of his friendâs texts, though Wonwoo didnât respond, making a mental note to answer the next day, instead. For another moment or two, he continued sitting in the dark shadows of his room, staring down at the only light which caught the reflection in his glasses. Wonwooâs thumb at first hesitated, but then he was reopening his earlier conversation with you, and with a few upward flicks, he was back on that cute photo youâd sent him. It hadnât left his mind at all.
This huge lump of guilt had come to sit in his gut like an anchor for a reason that Wonwoo didnât begin recognizing, that is until he finally felt the pull from somewhere deep inside himâthe thought had entered his mind and he knew if he just ignored it for even a second it would dissipate. But then, Wonwoo didnât ignore it, because he didnât truly want that. He was going to be selfish in that instance and sink into the pull, the heatânot dismissing the thought but the guilt he would later drown inâthe shame of it all.
Wonwoo kicked off his mask of bedsheets, letting them settle in a slow puff around his ankles.
In the beginning, all of it felt so bizarre. The hand that twisted underneath his sweatpants, and then his boxers, coming to softly graze fingertips along his hardening shaftâhe hadnât done this in weeks. Wonwoo rarely experienced sexual frustration. It just wasnât something that bothered him. But the absent tendency would always build up and inevitably break at some point and he hated that you were the cool, breathtaking breeze to push him over that cliff.
With the edges of his fingers, Wonwoo continued to stroke along himself, up and down, just barely touching. It would make his knee jolt or his thigh twitch, but the longer he teased, the more each touch transformed. The pleasure was soaking through and leading him in deeper until Wonwoo tilted up his hips in order to shove down the elastic waist of his sweatpants and underwear. The air was so cold but dually welcomed against his erection that he began pumping to full length in his hand, feeling it throb and grow and stiffen.
Wonwoo let his eyes flutter toward the phone he was holding at his stomach, examining your figure from head to toe. It was wrong and he fucking knew it, but as he rubbed a palm at his most sensitive head and felt the cum start to leak down his cock, Wonwoo couldnât bring himself to scale the acceptableness of his actions.
In that moment, Wonwoo looked at you in all the ways he shouldnât. He pressed his head back into the pillow, eyes falling shut while he lubricated himself in squeezing, slow strokes with his own arousal. His fingers gripped the phone tighter, refusing to drop it.
You were bright and flashing in his mind and Wonwoo wanted to know all of itâhe wanted to know the feeling of your silk, swollen lips leaving warm kisses up his shaft. He wanted to know the sensation of your tongue laving messy circles around his tip, teasing him, purring at him, staring up at him with those intimidating, sharp eyes that had always seemed beyond frightening. He wanted to know the sounds you would make if you ever so kindly allowed him to settle between your thighs. He knew how fucking beautiful your cunt would be and he could only imagine your taste would utterly melt him.
His fist wrapped tighter, pumped faster, and despite his usual quiet temperament in bed, a throaty, deep whine caught in Wonwooâs throat. He took another look at your picture, and somewhere amongst the smog of pleasure that thickly hazed his logic, Wonwoo felt this transient, selfish anger, because in that moment, he wanted you. He needed you. He would do fucking anything you asked him and more because there was so much weight you held in his life. Wonwoo just wanted to make you happy and he couldnât help but burn with the desperation to treat you better than anyone else ever had.
Knowing he was going to shatter soon, Wonwoo braced himself through the torture that was removing his hand and letting the intense, throbbing accumulation of pleasure ebb from his cock.
He gritted his teeth at the frustrating feeling.
But there was a reason for his decision. Looking back to the phone still aglow, Wonwoo swiped out from your picture and began scrolling higher up in the conversation, seeking out something particular that had jumped into his memory. And once he found it, there was an even denser feeling of guilt he had to ignore.
Last week, you ended up sending him a voice note because you were too exhausted to even bother typing. It wasnât that the audio contained anything even relatively lascivious, since you were mostly just rambling about your day and never quite finishing a thought.
However, Wonwoo loved your voice. He loved hearing it in person and through his phoneâs crappy speakers, especially when you sounded so sleepy, and your tone would soften, the occasional sigh or gentle breath hitting his ear just perfectly. Placing his hand back around his erection, Wonwoo hit play on your voice note and laid the phone beside his head on the pillow. He managed to smile through the pleasure that was rebuilding inside him as he intently listened.
âUm, hi, soâah! Sorry, my phone just fucking slid under the covers, oh my God. But, yeah, Iâm sending a voice note âcause Iâm drop dead exhausted from today. It was the worst. My legs hurt so bad that I could hardly carry myself to bed. Ugh. Anyway⊠okay, sorry, I forgot what I was gonna say⊠oh yeah! Soââ
It all felt too euphoricâtoo warm and overwhelming and the more Wonwoo listened to your sweet voice the more he felt himself pulsate with how badly he needed you. He planted one foot to his mattress, using it for stability and leverage as his hips thrust upward and he began unbridled fucking into his own hand. More than anything in the universe he wanted it to be your cuntâyour pretty, wet, soft cunt cushioning him in and gushing all over him. He was going to drive himself fucking crazy at the thought, so much that Wonwoo began begging for you in his husky, deep, quivering voice.
Most was complete incoherency, dipping into confusing, jumbled whimpers of his English and native Korean tongue. Your voice was right there by his ear, though he was hardly processing a word. His orgasm was going to collapse over him like a tidal wave and all Wonwoo could do was succumb as he continued pumping his strained cock. His breathing was laboured, heavy. He kept stuttering and pleading for you into the sheer darkness of his bedroom.
Lots of âpl-pleaseâ and âf-ffuck, fuck, fuck!â and âmâgonna cc-cum for you, I want tâcum for you, I need it all inside of you, put it all so deep in your p-perfect cuntââand plenty more tainted things he would take to his grave before he would ever confess to uttering.
As the voice note came to its end, Wonwoo had slammed his fist down for the last time. He immediately turned his cheek to the pillow, ignoring how the rounded glasses dug into his face, simply because his moan was too broken and shamefully loud. His cock started throbbing with the most intense pleasure heâd ever felt against his palm. The cum dribbled down his ghost-white knuckles. Wonwoo refused to even glance at the mess he was making. With a few more shaky pumps of his fist, heâd milked out all he possibly could, some spurts landing on his rumpled t-shirt. At last, he could exhale.
Lifting himself up with his clean hand, Wonwoo took a few moments to simply breathe. His entire body was still racing with adrenaline and hormones and the pure rush of his self-orchestrated ecstasy. But, pushing between all the energy was his guiltâthe fact of what heâd just done and how heâd so blatantly used you to make himself feel good. Wonwoo glanced back at his phone and the voice note in the conversation. Immediately, he clicked the device off, and there was strictly still, shapeless blackness that surrounded him.
What the fuck had he just done?
How was he supposed to text you, look at you, talk to you, knowing heâd officially jerked off to your picture and your voice. Even worseâit was probably the best his masturbation had ever felt. It was all so fucking heavenly in the moment that he thought he might die.
Wonwoo had no idea what to make of his actions.
His feelings for you.
But he thought he should at least tidy himself up.
âJUNE 16TH
Before Vernon had come by in his car, Wonwoo was caught in an exhausting and sickening guessing game of whether or not he needed to throw up. His lower stomach was in complete knots, prompting him to pace back and forth outside the washroom door, because sitting down was going to make him ruminate even more over how terribly nervous he was. Thankfully, however, Wonwoo never threw up, and he was able to calm himself a bit by rolling a blunt, sparking it while sat at the open windowsill in his bedroom.
There was also help from the nighttime breeze that touched against his warm face, a sensation he had always found so soothing.
Just before ten at night, Wonwoo received the critical text from Vernonâhe was parked outside on the street. Heâd fully smoked his blunt at the time of the message, and he pathetically prayed to himself that his nerves wouldnât sizzle back up at the worst possible time as he locked his apartment door. Once Wonwoo had stepped outside, he spotted Vernonâs old vanilla Camry stalled beside the postal box across the street. He was kind enough to reach over and push the door open for Wonwoo, who quickly shuffled into his seat.
Immediately, Wonwoo received his usual greeting.
âHey, Glasses.â
He gave a nod back in response, buckling on the seatbelt.
âSo, you smell like confusinâ mix of straight cannabis and a fuckinâ breezy Caribbean Ocean tide. How the fuck does that work?â
âUh, I put on cologne. And then I smoked?â
âYou nervous, then?â Vernon asked through his trademark conniving smirk, meanwhile he began steering out onto the street.
âOf course Iâm fucking nervous,â Wonwoo almost laughed back at the obvious nature of the question and habitually checked his friendâs blind spot. âI donât even go to like, dinner parties.â
âPfft, Iâm sure youâll be fine. The good thing about parties like theseâeveryone gets so fucked itâs unlikely theyâll remember some nervous dweeb like yourself. Amongst all that chaos, youâll blend straight in. Thereâs nothinâ to be shaked up about. I promise âya.â
Wonwoo merely huffed in response, opting to let Vernon focus on driving and working the carâs outdated stereo while he checked his phone. Actually, Wonwoo had wanted to text you before he left the apartment, but he was still stomaching all the rigid guilt that came with jerking himself off to your pretty picture and voice note the night before. It was a stupid, stupid choice.
All those thoughts that had been stampeding through his headâwanting you and needing you and craving to belong with you in a way that could never reach true fruitionâWonwoo had to convince himself it was all meaningless. His mind had conjured those ridiculous sentiments when his logic was razor thin and overcome by the deception of his lust, and, therefore, he refused to accept those urges were even close to his actual feelings for you. He clicked his phone back off, not meaning to sigh aloud but doing so anyway.
Vernon then shot him a speculative glance through the rear-view mirror, though Wonwoo barely caught it. He looked out the window instead, at all the passing lights and people who were eager to spend their Friday night doing something stimulating.
âSo, I know youâre probably just thinkinâ to yourself over there, as you usually do,â his friend said, fiddling with the radio until the static noise died back into music, âbut I think itâs all too funny.â
Wonwoo scrunched his nose, continuing to watch the nightlife slip by his tracing eyes outside the window.
âHm? Whatâs funny?â
Vernon chuckled. âAll that shit you said to me, like, over a month ago. Weâre not friends. And now, you nâHer hang out all the time. I think sheâs pumpinâ some actual life back into you. Youâre not like you were before, yâknow? Which is good to see. So, what I wanna know now isâwould you say the same? Or is she your friend?â
Right, Wonwoo remembered the conversation Vernon was referring toâthe night his friend drove him home after a tiresome shift at the pharmacy. With his entire chest, Wonwoo had claimed you two werenât friends. There had been a lot of truth to it, at least from his perspective. Or, maybe, heâd crushed down the prospect of it so vehemently because Wonwoo had just assumed someone like you would have no interest in honestly befriending him.
He could offer you something, and that was it.
But, nowâŠ
âYouâd have to ask her,â Wonwoo answered, shrugging.
Instantly, Vernon groaned.
âGod, thatâs such a fuckinâ cop-out answer, Glasses.â
âWell, what the fuck should I say? Yes, weâre friends, but then you might go and ask her, and sheâll say otherwise.â
âSo what?â Vernon engaged, raising his hand partially off the steering wheel in a half-gesture. âSo fuckinâ what if she says that? If you think of her as a friend then commit to that. Thereâs nothinâ wrong with it.â His voice became firmer, more convictional.
Wonwoo tilted his head back against the seat. Itâs not that he didnât think you were friendsâit was more so that he might to admit it, and then the relationship could all fall apart, crash like a burning, charred asteroid at his feet. And then Wonwoo would be back in the same self-inflicted crater he was before, thinking he had a genuine connection in his life only to have the rug pulled out from under him.
â⊠I donât know.â
âNo, you do know. But I see you wanna be all secretive about it and keep your cards close to the chest. So, whatever.â
Rubbing at the edge of his nose, Wonwoo took a quiet moment for himself to muse. He wanted another blunt.
âI donât think sheâll be that excited to see me.â Vernon said.
Turning his head, Wonwoo looked to his friend and laughed.
âYeah, canât imagine why.â
âThink sheâll rip my head off?â Vernon joked with a big, gummy grin, relaxing back into his seat. âThat might be kinda hot.â
âNoâit would be traumatizing, actually.â
âShe better not,â his friend answered, slapping his glove compartment and smirking pridefully. âIâve got her goddamn coke.â
âJesus fuckinâ Christ⊠Iâve never seen a street this packedâŠâ
Vernon couldnât help his awe from spilling out as he navigated at a snailâs pace down the road, each and every available spot that lined the curb being occupied by a vehicle. Wonwoo spotted a few groups making their way up the sidewalks, toward the colossal sized house to the distant right of the street. Seungcheol lived in Hill Crest, just like your parents, but he seemed poised at the neighbourhoodâs opposite endâprobably ideal for throwing an outrageous party that would otherwise magnetize the entire police task force to the door.
Wonwoo glanced down at his phone.
Seokmin had sent him a text a few minutes ago, inquiring if him and Vernon were close by or at the house. He sent a message back about the worrying lack of parking spaces, and then continued to help Vernon search through the overcrowd for a hopeful pocket.
âFuck⊠this isnât lookinâ goodâŠâ Vernon lamented.
âI doubt there will be anything close to the house,â Wonwoo sighed, folding his arms in doubt. âIt could be best to make a turn or go around the block? We might just have to take a hike.â
âHansol Vernon Chwe doesnât take fuckinâ hikes,â his friend jabbed, antsy fingers sculpting into his bitten lip while the other hand catered to steering the wheel. âI have this dudeâs blow. Doesnât that earn me a VIP-guest-list-skip-the-line type plot?â
Wonwoo scoffed. âShouldâve sorted that out earlier, man.â
âShut your dorky ass up. Iâll figure somethinâ out.â
At that moment, the phone slid between his thighs vibrated with another text from Seokmin. His eyes widened at the invite.
[ Seokmin | 10:40 pm ]: Oh dw about street parking!
[ Seokmin | 10:40 pm ]: Use the gate at the house
âI think youâre right. I might have to turn,â Vernon announced in a defeated breath, brushing a hand through his dust black hair. âGet ready to see the best three-point turn thatâs ever been turnt.â
âJust wait one minute,â Wonwoo then answered, leaning forward in his seat as he began to text Seokmin for more details.
[ Wonwoo | 10:41 pm ]: Gate?
[ Seokmin | 10:41 pm ]: Seungcheolâs got a gate that leads to this little underground parking thing. Some of his and Mingyuâs close friends are using it. Herâs friends, too
[ Wonwoo | 10:42 pm ]: Uh⊠I donât know haha.
[ Seokmin | 10:42 pm ]: I asked Seungcheol, itâs fine!
[ Wonwoo | 10:42 pm ]: You sure?
[ Seokmin | 10:42 pm ]: Yup
[ Seokmin | 10:42 pm ]: Gate code is #1142!
âDonât turn around, go up to the driveway and look for a gate,â Wonwoo instructed. âApparently, this dudeâs got an underground parking space. Seokmin gave me the code for it.â
âJesus Christ,â disbelieving laughter swelled up from Vernonâs chest as he proceeded along the street. âThis guyâs like, rich-rich. I wanna see all that fuckinâ cash up front. Bills in every colour.â
Wonwoo was just relieved that Seokmin was telling the truth, though he was nonetheless extremely anxious about using the parking space, and something sharp in his abdomen tightened upon reaching that bronze gate. Vernon had to roll down his window and partially lean outside to press in the code read from Wonwooâs phone.
They both cast each other a bewildered glance when the gate separated automatically, allowing them access down the slant.
âRich people can just do whatever they fuck they want, canât they?â Vernon laughed, shaking his head. âRemind me not to steal anything while weâre wanderinâ around in there.â
But Wonwoo couldnât say anything even half-conscious in response to his friendâs lazy joke. He was too busy focusing his breathing.
âJeez, it's about time, huh?â Vernonâs words sounded rife with electricity as they approached the main entryway to the house, the brisk, nighttime air blowing back against their heated faces.
They had already witnessed several people slipping inside and out, to which the shuddering, clear blurt of the music would escape the doorwayânot that they couldnât hear it already. The deep and rhythmic bass was emanating from within Seungcheolâs house like a growl caught in a beastâs belly, and Wonwoo could only fathom what kind of damage his eardrums might sustain after the night was over.
Right before Vernon could touch the handle, the doors abruptly burst open with an aggressive swing, revealing two girls who were latched hand in hand, giggling to each other. The distinct stench of marijuana clouded after them down the steps.
Vernon opted to catch the left door before it could close.
âAfter you, Glasses,â he invited with an almost glimmering smirk, then gesturing inward at the practical void that awaited himâauroras of flashing light, loud conversation, and pounding music.
It seemed like stepping into another universe.
âThanks for the chivalry,â Wonwoo answered.
He then forced himself into the mansion, not allowing the empty space in his mind to concoct ample regret or doubt. Vernon followed suit, the large door slamming shut in a forbidding manner behind the two boys, akin to a shoving a cork on a glass bottle and capturing all the sand grains inside. Wonwoo knew he could leave, though it didnât feel like it. However, he didnât want to act defeated before even starting the night. Maybe some of Seokminâs miraculous optimism gloss would rub off on him before it was too late.
The thing was, Wonwoo had no idea what to think or do nor could he develop one sensible, sound thought that he might express to Vernonâthe house was alive with what seemed to be a mighty sea of people. Some were mingling with their drinks loosely held in an attempt to feign casualness, pitching conversation despite the unrelenting music. Others were clashed together, dirty dancing, hands carnally wandering, probably thinking nothing other than how good it felt to be a part of the moment. Everything was so dim and dark. Lights blotched around the room in deep purples and blues.
Wonwoo had suddenly forgotten how to even move.
Until Vernonâs hand slapped his shoulder.
âHey, what should we start with?!â His friend had practically shouted over the music and its hypnotizing synths. âDo you wanna get a drink? Smoke one out? Or should we find Seokmin?â
For a moment, Wonwoo just stared at him, trying hard through the murkiness and heat to match the words he was hearing with Vernonâs lips. The environment would take a bit getting used to.
âAlsoâ,â he then grabbed Wonwooâs shoulder, ââletâs move away from the door before we get fuckinâ trampled, yeah?â
Vernon helped guide Wonwoo further into the main living area, down a few stairs and toward the large square of couches. There was hardly any room to sit without being uncomfortably close to someone elseâthey were either in another personâs lap, swapping a disgusting amount of liquored spit, or completely faded and about as coherent as a rock. Wonwoo didnât want to sit, anyway. He looked down at his phone, noticing that Seokmin had texted him again.
âUm, what do you want to do?â He decided to flip the question on Vernon, not wanting to be tasked with the decision.
Besides, he assumed his friend would know better.
âMe? I want a fuckinâ drink!â Vernon began to look around, though the air was notably veiled with a thin smoke and all the bodies were obstructing much view of anything. âOhâI told you already, didnât I?! That Iâm definitely intendinâ to get shitfaced?! Did you figure out a ride in case you wanted tâgo home later on?â
As Vernon began his quest to find a drink, Wonwoo was right behind him, remembering that Vernon had mentioned it already.
âI know!â He called out while reading Seokminâs text.
[ Seokmin | 11:00 pm ]: Thereâs like two big living spaces
[ Seokmin | 11:00 pm ]: Weâre not in the main one tho, easiest way is to go through the kitchen and out the other side!
Wonwoo had thought you would text him, and he couldnât evade his disappointment at the expectation. He decided to assume that maybe you just didnât know he was there yet. At most, he hoped you werenât too blasted and at least cognizant enough to hold a conversation with him. Though, Wonwoo had not one inkling as to what you were like at parties. He could only imagine from the scattered bits and pieces heâd heard from yourself and Vernon.Â
As Wonwoo followed Vernon down a foggy corridor, he suddenly bumped into the boyâs hard back with a bothered grunt. A girl had stepped out from a threshold that led into the kitchen and he realized that Vernon was only letting her leave before they entered.
She leaned in rather close to Vernonâs face, stroking a quick, flirtatious hand along the divots in his defined chest as she lilted aloud, âthanks, gorgeous.â
Her gaze switched to linger on Wonwoo for what felt like a long, excruciating eternity before proceeding past them in a confident stride down the dark and narrow hallway. Vernon kissed his teeth, staring back at Wonwoo with that hedonistic twinkle in his eyes.
âOkayâshe was fine, not gonna lie.â
âMmhm,â Wonwoo mumbled, adjusting his glasses, âcan we at least get a drink first before you decide to start fucking people?â
âWhy do you think weâre at the kitchen, smart ass?â
Shaking his head in dismissal at Vernonâs snarky comment, he urged the boy impatiently into the kitchen area (which was admittedly larger than Wonwooâs entire living space).
One side of the room was lined with arrays of salty snacks, while the opposite contained big, rounded punch bowls of pre-mixed alcohol that people were dipping into with ladles. Vernon had noticed the option to mix your own drink, and thus Wonwoo was dragged toward the kitchen island where the boys waited to pick from the various bottles of alcohol and soft drinks left scattered about.
Wonwoo peeped down at his phone again while Vernon got easily caught up in conversation with a girl preparing a lemon shot.
He finally answered Seokminâs texts.
âHey, Glasses!â Vernonâs hand latched onto his shoulder, giving it a shake. âThis is Sierra! Sheâs gonna make us our drinks!â
It took him a moment to properly decipher the girl Vernon had been speaking to, though, the longer he squinted through the shifty kitchen lighting, the more he could separate her silhouette and features from the dimness. She had a comfortable smile, full and warm, trustworthy, and so Wonwoo merely shrugged his agreement.
âDonât worry,â the girl shouted, pulling aside two solo cups and then twizzling off the bottlecap to the rum, âIâm a bartender, actually. I used to work Room 319. Now Iâm at Honeymoon.â
Vernon leaned his elbows on the granite, watching with intrigue as she sloshed a decent amount of alcohol into each cup.
âRoom 319? Youâve definitely seen some shit,â he cackled.
âOh, yeah. One-hundred percent.â
âYâknow, I tried getting this cunt to goââ Vernon jabbed an accusing thumb back at Wonwoo, ââbut heâs such a flake!â
Sierra proceeded to grin quite demurely, flashing a quick, barely detectable glance toward Wonwoo, who had just managed to catch it while shoving the phone back into his pocket. She then grabbed a sweetener from amongst the clutter, tucking a short tuft of hair behind her ear before adding a small drizzle to each solo cup.
âHey, itâs not for everybody!â Her cheeks flushed in the galactic, purplish light that flickered around the kitchen. âAnd, uh, this may sound weird, actually. But I recognize you, I think.â
âOh, me?â Wonwoo was finally forced to speak.
âYeah, uhââ she stumbled over her words a bit as she swirled the sweetener around inside the cups, ââfrom Bradbrookâs calculus. I think you sat a few rows ahead of me, or something. I just know because I, umâI was really close to failing the class. When I went to her for help, she gave me a ton of resources, even said I could try asking you about tutoring. She said youâre like, her best student.â
âHm,â Wonwoo hummed, cracking his neck, âIâve never tutored anyoneâdonât know why sheâd think to recommend me.â
âItâs okay! I never asked because you seemed like the type who didnât want to be bothered,â Sierra responded, beginning to top off the drinks with some bubbling soda. âI figured it out, anyway.â
âGood for you,â Wonwoo commended.
âYeah, I wasnât sure if it was you, âcause your hair would always be down over your forehead in class. But youâve got it all brushed and styled and stuff. It looks super nice!â
He smiled at her and mumbled, âthanks.â
âWell, Iâm gonna get running! No matter where I end up, I always seem to be everyoneâs mixologist at some point.â
Vernon dragged the alcohol over, maintaining his slouched position onto the island granite. Upon taking an experimental sip to taste the flavours and potency, his face momentarily soured, and then all his features relaxed. He was glowing like an ember, almost.
âNo, thatâs good. Tastes a bit like a⊠gummy bear?â
âOh, yeah. Itâs so delicious,â she agreed, shoving hands into her back pockets. âTastes even better kissing it off someone.â
As Wonwoo stared down at his fizzling drink, debating his first sip, he again felt the transient flittering of her eyes ghost him.
âGo figure,â Vernon rasped, smiling, âappreciate it, player.â
âMâkay,â Sierra chirped and waved, âbye!â
Not even a few seconds after she left, and someone else swooped in like an eagle to clasp the bottle of rum sheâd once been handling, Vernon turned his head to Wonwoo with a raised brow.
âShe was DTF for you, holy shit.â
âHm?â Wonwoo sounded muffled with the solo cup now perched at his lips, allowing the drink to seep into his mouth, tasting the smoothness of the rum, and then the sweet. âWhatâs that mean?â
âDTF?â Vernon echoed. âDown to fuck!â He smacked his arm.
âThatâs stupid and absurd.â
âWell, Glasses, youâre fuckinâ stupid and absurd if you didnât see it. I mean, if youâre not gonna get a chance with Her, mine as well start seekinâ out what you can. Might make you less uptight.â
âNoâthatâs what makes you less uptight, not me.â
âIâm just sayinâ, manâyouâre hot and you donât even take advantage of it. In no shapes or figures⊠forms? Whatever the stupid sayinâ is. Youâve got to live a little. But, whatever. Whereâs Seokmin?â
âThrough there, I think?â Wonwoo nodded toward a high-arched exit opposite to the side they entered the kitchen from. âThatâs what he texted me. But Iâll double check anyway, to be sure.â
Flashing on his phone, Wonwoo finally saw your messages.
[ Her | 11:11 pm ]: wonwooooooo
[ Her | 11:11 pm ]: LIVING ROOM! I'm waiting!!!!
And just like thatâlike a splitting snap of the fingersâhe felt everything all over again, and those nerves steamrolled him in the most pathetic way possible.
He stared down at his phone, moonfaced.
Wonwoo was happy you had remembered to message him, embarrassingly giddy at the thought, even. But he was also downright nauseous to reunite with your inquisitive friends, to meet Seungcheol, to again push through the intangible, brooding weight of seeing Mingyu. He took a gulp from the red cup, swishing the tart but sugared concoction between his cheeks before swallowing, hoping the rum burned down all his nerves in the throaty sting it left behind.
âYeah,â Wonwoo rediscovered his voice, âthrough there.â
At first, he couldnât identify you anywhere. The room was even bigger than the kitchen, just as poorly lit, with a high, pointed ceiling that somehow reminded him of the church he attended when he was too little to even properly grasp religion. But Wonwoo continued squinting through the jumbled crowd, making slow steps and surveiling the room each time alongside Vernon.
âI donât see âem!â He shouted overtop the music, grabbing Wonwooâs elbow to stop him from moulding into all the warm bodies.
âHe said theyâre in here!â Wonwoo raised his voice, checking his phone for another text, but seeing nothing. âFuck, I donât know.â
Sensing that fluttering, unsteady wind in his chest, Wonwoo was eager to indulge in another sip from his cup, desperately yearning for the alcohol to fucking hurry up and take its floating effect. Yet, as the taste subdued on his tongue, Wonwoo was able to notice a slight fissure that formed in between the congregation of peopleâa rather perfect alignment that revealed a home bar across the room, with familiar faces seated at the stools and more laughing behind the counter. That was when Wonwoo saw you, captured in a brush stroke of sweeping, amethyst light that dappled down your body.
You were leaned leisurely against Mingyuâs chest, holding onto his arm that draped like a protective sling over your shoulder, and Wonwoo supposed it was laid there with a not-so-subtle purpose.
Mingyu was speaking to his friend and co-host, Seungcheol, who was on the other side of the home bar, his lower back digging against the counter while he had quirked his head to still see Mingyu.
One face that Wonwoo had yet to discern was Seokmin, though, in all his honestly, Wonwoo wasnât that fixated on further searching the low dusk and marijuana plumes hanging tacky in the air. Heâd found you. All those nerves dissolved into comfort.
Maybe it was shallow, but thatâs what he cared about most.
âOh!â Vernon piped up. âDamn. Theyâre right down there.â
And, before the crowd could readjust themselves to drown the slivered space between yourself and Wonwoo, your head turned.
In the nick of time, you seemed to recognize him, because that hazy, unfocused nature about your countenance shifted in a mere second, and he saw a smile pick its way along your mouth, like a springtime garden at last twirling abloom. You proceeded to nudge Mingyuâs arm aside, whispering something into his ear that he didnât quite seem to hear correctly as he maintained his lengthy talk with Seungcheol.
Wonwoo knew he was smiling, too, bigger and bigger.
You wove your way through the crowd, to which Wonwoo couldnât help himself from the short chuckle he spat out as you impatiently shoved aside the guy that had stepped into your way.
âMove! Oh my fucking Godââ
But your flash of contempt didnât last long.
A second later, you were buckling into Wonwoo.
Your arms reached up to curl tightly around his neck, and he felt the grooves of your warm, soft body press firm against him for the first time. Wonwoo was scared at the proximity, though his pounding heart ever so gradually calmed as he took in a deep breath and smelled that faint, fresh scentâstrawberries. While it was undoubtedly integrated with some sort of spicy liquor, Wonwoo didnât care. He pulled himself into the momentârealized how fucking badly he wanted to drop the solo cup and splay his hands at the open, revealing back of your outfit and feel your bare, supple skin.
But he couldnât. Because Wonwoo wasnât your boyfriend.
And you werenât his to so unabashedly touch.
âIâm so fucking happy you made it!â He heard you squeal into his ear, his smile somehow widening at your animated voice.
âYeah? Bit of a hassle, not gonna lie," Wonwoo answered.
âParking? Iâm sorry! I should have texted you about the gate!â
âNo, no,â he laughed, trying his best and gentlest way to somehow ease some space in between you, âitâs okay. Everything worked out perfectly fine in the end. Donât worry about it, alright?â
âYou sure?â
Wonwoo looked into your eyes, so enchantingly bright and glistering as you blinked at him sympathetically, wearing a tiny pout.
Fuckâhe wanted to kiss you.
It was such a blatant, jarring thought that Wonwoo couldnât respond to your worry straight away, instead pushing down his urges.
â⊠Iâm sure.â
âWell,â you then hummed, at last relaxing your hold around his neck and making some very unwanted but necessary space between your bodies, âis it still true?â You bit your lip afterward.
âHm? Is what still true?â
Upon Wonwoo furrowing his brow, you pressed into him again, reaching up to his ear where you could comfortably talk and not worry about whether the music would muffle every syllable.
He felt the warmth of your breath tickle at his skin. And thenâshivers, everywhere. Trickling down his spine. His nape. Not the kind from chilly, cold weather, or a scary movie, but a different kind that prompted his sense to disintegrate in a simple second.
âDo you still think Iâm the prettiest here?â
Wonwoo sensed the grin paint his face, as easy as melting butter, though he hid it well in your sweet-scented hair.
âMmhm, âcourse you are,â he answered, purposefully deepening his already deep voice. âYouâre always the prettiest.â
One of your charming, seraphic giggles feathered at his ear and Wonwoo had never been so convinced that he would exchange just about anything in his life to call you his for the entire night.
âUm, hey, so⊠I donât want to fuckinâ ruin your guysâ little reunion or nothinâ, but I am still here, unfortunately!â
DamnâWonwoo had kind of forgotten that Vernon was even there, and hearing his gruff voice break through the roomâs drumming bass had quickly removed him from his fantasy. In a way, he was relieved, because Wonwoo knew heâd been thinking with unprecedented delusion and he needed something to draw a ripple through his thoughts before he became too meek to ignore them.
You then slotted yourself against Wonwooâs side, adjusting the white strap grooving around the back of your neck. One arm remained around his wideset shoulders, latching him into place.
âWell, thatâs an immaculate face I havenât seen in a while,â you deadpanned at poor Vernon, sculpting him up and down with shameless judgement. âAnd what have you been up to? Selling MDMA from behind porta-potties to dumb, gullible first years?â
But Vernon took it well, as he was most likely expecting it.
âSo, I wonât say no or yes to that.â
âHm. Figures.â
Vernon shook his head, mustering up a husky laugh. âShould I assume you havenât gotten over our incident, yet?â
Wonwoo felt your ovaled, sharp fingernails dig into his shoulder, and he settled his hand on your upper back to relax you.
âIâll get over it when I want to get over it.â
âOkay, okay." A smile bled across Vernonâs face. âAnd I respect that, yeah? How âbout we both agree to keep it lax? That work at all?â
Despite your narrowed, seething eyes, you agreed.
âIt works, for now.â You were in the midst of turning around, as though to begin pulling Wonwoo toward the bar, but you suddenly stopped on a dime, returning your glared focus back toward an unsuspecting, more lenient Vernon. âBy the way, Princess is in a relationship with Seungcheol, so paws off. And donât even think about trying to fuck Clara or Bells again or else youâll need to take every single pill you fucking own in order to feel even a fraction of anything after Iâm done beating your breaks off. Understand?â
âUh, yes. I do. I understand.â
And then you grinned, though it was colder than outer space, and Wonwoo was more than pleased he wasnât on the receiving end.
âPerfect! Now, letâs get everyone all introduced. I promise, though, thereâs not many strangers. I guess just Seungcheol? Some of his friends are around here somewhere, I donât know where.â
You curled an arm around Wonwooâs elbow and began tugging him into the barricade of people, most stepping aside for you without request, like you were a princess or some other type of respected royalty. Wonwoo glanced back at Vernon who was already giving him a wide-eyed, skeptical expression, and so he made sure to dip his head close to Vernonâs ear to murmur some encouragement.
âAt least your head isnât ripped off.â
However, it might have not been the most thoughtful.
âYeah, meta-fuckinâ-phorically it is,â Vernon laughed back. âI forgot how scary the chick is. How have you not pissed your pants yet?â
âYou get used to it after a while. Nâheyâwhen the hell did you have sex with Clara and Bells?" Wonwoo couldnât help himself from asking over his shoulder as he was further pulled along by your persistent guide.
âIt was before you got to know Her, alright? Butââ Vernon had suddenly leaned closer, his breath at Wonwooâs ear, ââBells is a fuckinâ homie hopper. Guaranteed sheâll try to get into your pants. I know sheâs tried it with Seungcheol, Seokmin, probably you, tonight.â
âWell, you two sound like a match made in heaven.â
âHa! Funny, man,â Vernon cackled, shoving his friendâs back in a teasing way. âNoâsheâs actually crazy. Gives good head, though.â
Wonwoo opted to ignore the last comment. He was soon at the bar alongside you, Vernon, and all the others, to which he noted your arm was still clasped around his elbow, a gesture that Wonwoo found himself greatly appreciating as everyone began pausing their own conversations to acknowledge the two newcomers. He didnât know who to look at or greet first as his heartbeat thundered, though he recognized Clara and Bells seated together on two leather stools, a few emptied shot glasses aligned before them like dominos.
Princess, the friend Wonwoo always thought you were closest to, was behind the counter with Seungcheol, staring Wonwoo down through her hooded and smooth brown eyes. He felt Mingyu watching him too, though it discomforted him much more than Princess.
âHey, nice to meet you guys, finally.â Seungcheol was leaning over the luminated countertop, bumping his fist against Wonwooâs, and then Vernonâs. âHope youâre finding it alright.â
Wonwoo had never met Seungcheol despite hearing his name frequently throughout campus, especially during the prime months for partying. The consensus was that everyone seemed to like and respect him for his cordial, easygoing attitude and sportsmanship, since he played a lot of basketball for the universityâs principal varsity team. Wonwoo had never once heard anything concerning or relatively malicious about the guy. He was almost akin to a celebrity.
âWe got in not too long ago,â Vernon explained, and Wonwoo was grateful he took the conversating initiative, âseems crazy. And thanks for lettinâ us use your garage! Street parkinâ was ass.â
âShit, yeah. I get it.â Seungcheol shrugged in agreement, meanwhile drawing a shallow glass over to himself. âItâs no problem, man. You did us a favour with the blow. Iâll pay upstairs, yeah?â
âHey, itâs all good. Whatâre you pourinâ up?â
Princess suddenly reached around Seungcheolâs shoulder, removing the large, maple bottle he was about to twist open.
âHeâs not pouring up anything,â she smiled, placing the alcohol on a shelf behind her, âbecause whiskey gets him beyond hammered, and I need him coherent for at least another hour.â
Seungcheol turned around, his mouth hung open.
âOkayâI was gonna pour out a splash.â
The girl grabbed his sharp jaw, giving Seungcheolâs face a tender shake before pushing her lips against his. His previous objection suddenly disappeared like morning dew. For a couple that had recently started dating according to your allegory, they seemed remarkably comfortable with each other.
âOkayâshot, shot!â Bells yelped excitedly, slapping her hand against the polished countertop as Clara grabbed a tequila bottle.
âOh, god.â Your eyes rolled, and Wonwoo heard the exhaustion in your tone. âHave fun getting alcohol poisoning.â
Mingyu scoffed, crossing his broad, buff arms. âTheyâll be blackout in less than an hour.â
âWhat for?â Vernon asked.
You finally let go of Wonwoo, grabbing your own solo cup off the countertop and taking a fast swig before answering.
âWhenever Seungcheol and Princess kiss, they take a shot.â
âAnd they kiss a lotâ" Clara hiccupped, a very inebriated fog cast across her gaze, ââ even more than Her nâ Mingyu!â
âOh, donât bring us into this,â you snapped from behind your drink, leaning an elbow onto the bar, âtake your shot and can it.â
âIâm starting to not even taste it!â
The giggling spilled from Bellsâ mouth like a waterspout, to which both her and Clara leaned in close to each otherâs faces, their expressions warping with breathless, dry gulps of laughter.
âExcuse them,â Princess then muttered, resting an arm along Seungcheolâs firm back, waves of moonlit blue dancing across her dark skin while she eyed her cackling friends with bits of judgement and concern. âIâm starting to believe they have an alcohol problem.â
âSo, if I lose you later, should I assume youâre in the washroom holding back their hair?â Seungcheol then huffed into his clasped hands, flicking soft eyes up toward his sighing girlfriend.
She pulled at a long braid of her hair, nodding.
âIf Iâm not, Iâll buy you dinner.â
âFuck, I like those odds, baby," he rasped, leaning back.
Princess smiled, squeezing his shoulder.
âNo, you absolutely donât, sweetheart.â
Wonwoo smiled at them, exercising his best effort to follow all the conversation even though his brain was whirring on overdrive. He was in the midst of sipping from the sweetened rum when Claraâs eyes snapped akin to a locket with his own, and she immediately squealed.
âOh! You! From Spring Street! Mr. Deep Voice!â
Lowering the cup from his face, Wonwooâs heart dropped.
He was more than perfectly okay with sitting on the sidelines and contributing nothing to the flow of conversation other than trivial nods and agreeable half-smiles. But Clara had singled him out, and now Bells was at last squirming around in her seat, her eyes patted with a popping, brilliant lime green as opposed to shimmery blue.
You tilted your head in questioning at Clara. âYes, yes, weâve been over this, girl. Heâs been standing here the past five minutes.â
âWonwoo!â Bells shrieked. âWhy didnât you say anything?!â
âHe doesnât need to say anything.â Wonwoo heard the irritable grit rub through your voice as you straightened your posture and propped a hand to your hip, glaring at your friends. âWhy donât you let him enjoy his drink instead of shouting at him?â
From behind, Mingyuâs large hand slid around your waist and stopped at your lower stomach, pulling you a step back into his chest.
âRelax. Sheâs drunk as fuck, alright?â He murmured by your temple, planting a reassuring kiss.
âNah, itâs okay.â Princess was quick to diffuse any degree of tension before it could morph into a terrifying flame. âHeâs just quiet, thatâs all. Nothing wrong with it. I like your hair, Wonwoo.â
He clenched his fist tight, nodding at her.
âThanks.â
It was only one goddamn word, but heâd choked it out with all the strength harboured in his chest and lungs. Princess smiled at him.
âGlasses is cool. All his jokes will come out later.â Vernon teased despite the instant, needling stare Wonwoo shot his way.
âHey, no pressure,â Seungcheol laughed, swiping his phone off the bar countertop. âShould we all head upstairs? Iâve got a nice little room set up for usâcan smoke and mellow out a bit, play some cards, finally get to that blowâwhatever you guys think is best.â
âFuck, Iâm down.â Sliding off the leather stool, Mingyu came to his feet and agreed, his hand still settled at your stomach.
His utterance was met with a chorus of likewise answers.
Wonwoo suddenly felt your fingertips graze his hand.
âAre you okay with that?â You asked him personally, smiling in a reassuring, nonchalant manner that helped ease his stiltedness.
âYeah,â he answered, delighted to see the sparks that jumped into your eyes through the shadows and nebulas of lavender light.
The room Seungcheol had referred to was quite separated from the party booming onward downstairs, though he claimed not to be worried about it much since his other friends were keeping tabs on all the action. Wonwoo appreciated the quieter, more laidback atmosphere that allowed him to actually think and analyze his situation, which he unfortunately could not help himself from doing.
It was a cozy and personally developed spaceâprobably the room Seungcheol spent most of his time in. Large, pristine movie posters were perfectly tapered to covering an entire wall, with stringed, dull-glowing lights swooped around the wooden infrastructure of the ceiling. A billiard ball table was toward the left, and then a circular table to the right, stacked with miscellaneous things such as playing cards, textbooks, and poker chips.
There were some shelves by the windows, mostly to hold decorative items, though Wonwoo saw a number of trophies from what he assumed to be Seungcheolâs past sports competitions.Â
Everyone began to settle.
As Vernon waltzed over to the couch by the cluttered table, heâd suddenly looked down at the cushions with a gruff shout.
âFuck! Jesus Christ, Seokmin! What the fuck are you doinâ?â
âOh, yeahâthe poor baby got a headache,â you crooned, walking toward the couch with a teasing smirk. âHe thought heâd try and avoid all of us by coming up here and taking a nap.â
âI wasnât napping,â Seokmin grumbled while pushing himself to sit up, swatting back your hand that rifled through his dark brown tresses disarrayed in every direction, âI was relaxing, thatâs all.â
âDude, you looked like you were dead,â Vernon laughed, stepping around from behind the couch to sit on the arm.
Leaning against a desk with two large speakers on it, Mingyu folded his arms, smiling at Seokmin whose face was beginning to tint red from all the attention. âThatâs just how he looks when he sleeps.â
âThanksâŠâ Seokmin answered, standing up and dusting himself off. âGuess Iâm never staying the night at your place again.â
âWell, if youâre not going to take the couch, I think these two should simmer down for a hot minute,â Princess said, shuffling the stumbling, giggling duo, Bells and Clara, to take a much needed seat.
âOkay, yeah. Mingyu, throw on some music. Give everyone a chance to get nice nâ comfy.â Seungcheol then beckoned toward Vernon. âOver here, man. Letâs get this shit sorted out.â
âAh, right, right.â
His friend was quick to rise from the couch and meet Seungcheol in the corner of the room, by the billiard table as well as a small black safe. Mingyu pulled out his phone, linking up his Bluetooth with Seungcheolâs expensive sound system, and music soon replaced the empty air in the room. He then joined Seungcheol and Vernon in the corner. Wonwoo opted not to sleuth and glanced elsewhere.
He saw that you were already talking to Princess, the two of you pulling out some beers and other drinks from a fridge he hadnât noticed before, and while he positively wanted to make time for a conversation with you, Wonwoo thought he should bother Seokmin first. The boy was shoving open a windowpane across the room.
âHey, liar,â he announced in a dragging but not overly serious tone. âNot downstairs like you said you were, huh?â
Seokmin turned around, rubbing his face.
âI know, I know. I got a headache at the last minute. But I knew everyone would come upstairs. Glad you could make it!â
âWell then, how much of a headache should I be expecting?â
âEh, depends,â his friend answered.
Wonwoo shrugged. âDepends on what?â
âI canât imagine you jumping around on a countertop with your shirt off and a whippet in your hand.â
He snorted. âIs that what you were doing?â
âNoâI was the one trying to get them off the counter.â
âFair.â
 âI think youâll be fine. At most, youâll step outside for some air and get a nice breeze in your hair. No biggie⊠whatâs that?â
âUh, just a drink this girl whipped up. Sierra.â
âOh.â Seokminâs eyes brightened. âYou mean Sierra Gomez?â
Wonwoo shrugged. âDunno.â
âDid she have like, chin length, sort of coarse and frizzy brown hair? Freckles all over her cheeks? âCause thatâs Sierra Gomez. She works at the⊠the, um⊠Honeymoon! Yeah. The Honeymoon. Sheâs niceâused to stare at the back of your head all the time in calculus.â
âHm.â
âAnywayâwhateverârandom thought.â
âWho used to stare at the back of your head in calculus?â
Turning around, Wonwoo noticed that you had approached their conversation at the open window, an abrupt flourish of wind sweeping back unto your inquisitive yet slightly firm expression. A bottle was in your hand, and you took a quick, easy sip from it.
âOh, itâs nothing,â Seokmin dismissed.
âNo, tell me.â
Your eyes then flitted between himself and Seokmin. There was an innocent smile on your face that nursed the beer bottle.
âA girl who used to look at Wonwoo all the time during calculus with Bradbrook. She made him his drink, thatâs all.â
âReally? Is that so?â
Wonwoo shrugged. âApparently.â
âWho?â You asked, still maintaining that polished smile.
Seokmin chuckled, ânah, you wouldnât know her.â
âMaybe I do.â
âNo,â he was persistent on convincing you, pulling at the flushed cusp of his ear, âI know you donât. Itâs not a big deal.â
Your focused gaze then lasered into Seokmin, and much of the airy politeness to your voice had gradually sharpened out.
âIf itâs not a big deal then tell me.â
Music from the speaker system atop the nearby desk drowned the momentary silence that lasted between the three. Wonwoo concentrated on the lyrics and the depth of the sensual beat, trying his hardest to mentally escape the odd tension smouldering up.
Seokmin was biting his lip, hard.
âTell me.â You now were demanding rather than asking.
âItâs notââ
âSeokmin!â
âOkay, okay! Sierra Gomez. Thatâs the girl.â
Wonwoo shifted his eyes to you, observing the manner in which you quirked your head, pursed your bottom lip, and began staring around the room in an honest attempt to place the name that Seokmin had so frighteningly blurted, almost like a suspect under interrogation. And then you were shrugging, sipping from your cold drink.
âHm, donât know her.â
âLike I said...â his friend sighed, leaning backward into the cool breeze and settling his hands against the windowsill.
âSheâs here? And she made you that?â You asked.
Wonwoo looked down at his cup, almost completely emptied.
â⊠Um, yeah.â
There was a nearly imperceptible falter that spilt across your face, though it travelled so quickly, like a blink of light, and Wonwoo was starting to think that maybe he hadnât even seen it at all.
âWell, that was really nice of her.â A strange breathiness lingered in your tone. âI mean, I donât know her but she sounds really⊠nice. Iâll have to chat with her someday. I donât know what weâll talk about⊠something nice, probably. Yeah. Weâll do that.â
Upon sensing your very unusual discomfort, Wonwoo thought he might try to quell whatever series of emotions must be taking shape behind those glassy eyes. But almost from thin air, Mingyu was at your side, sliding an arm around your waist and his head poking down to kiss your cheek. Wonwoo ate his words right back up.
âSorry to bite the conversation,â Mingyu excused himself, removing the arm from your waist to hang off your shoulder instead, where it covered the same revealing patch of your cleavage. âBut I like keeping an eye on this oneââ he pecked your temple, ââone sip sheâs normal, the next sheâs on top of the damn table giving everyone a fuckinâ show they donât deserve. Hard to tell what sheâs gonna do.â
Your uptight posture melted habitually against Mingyuâs chest, meanwhile a slight snarl forged across your lips.
Wonwoo knew that his drink was getting empty, and he didnât want to waste the remainder on trying to survive the unfortunate conversation heâd been whisked into. He realized how much he hated talking to Mingyu, especially now that Wonwoo was closer to you.
âAlright, you donât need to overembellish.â
âHa! Overembellish?â A heavy laugh flew off Mingyuâs tongue as he gave your shoulder a soft shake, staring down at you with his curious, twinkling eyes. âWhat am I overembellishing, pretty girl? Huh? You donât remember that dance with Clara? Kicking that dudeâs drink off the table? High out of your fuckinâ mind, werenât you?â
âYes, I remember. My problem is that youâre painting me out to be a mindless slut just waiting to show off. Itâs not like I go into these situations, intending to get on a table and kick peopleâs drinks and shit. Iâm just going with what I feel in the moment. I mean, Iâm sure it gets a bit slutty. But thatâs part of the fun. At least, I think.â
OkayâWonwoo didnât give a fuck about preserving his drink any more. He immediately dove in to take a generous sip, staring down the cup like there was something profoundly captivating scribbled on the bottom. Now that he was thinking about it, Wonwoo realized this is his first time witnessing your dynamic with Mingyu.
Mingyu sighed, tongue prodding against his inner cheek.
âCanât make it easy, can you?â
At that, you cackled, tipping your head against his neck.
âNever. You should know that by now.â
âThe important thing is, everyone has a good time.â Seokmin decided to add his two cents, not seeming as stiffened by the conversation as Wonwoo, probably since he was accustomed to it.
Nonetheless, it prompted your signature eye roll.
âHey everyone! Seokmin thinks the most important part of a party is that everyone has a good time!â You mockingly chided, proceeding to raise the bottle to your mouth for another sip while Mingyu rubbed his nose, laughing. âDid that really need to be said?â
Partially closing the window, Seokmin chuckled. âIâm just saying it âcause you guys always bicker and bring the mood down.â
Your grip around the beer bottle visibly tightened.
âBicker?! We donât bicker!â
âAre you serious?â Seokmin folded his arms, a disbelieving smile mixed with puzzlement carving his mouth. âYou just did!â
âNo, that wasnât bickering," you stated. âThat was Mingyu saying something stupid and me correcting it. Purely factual.â
Shaking his head, Mingyu merely smirked. âMmhm. Letâs go with that.â Though, it was quite obvious he was holding back what he actually wanted to say, but didnât want to prove Seokminâs point.
âAnyways, Iâm not trying to make you look bad,â Seokmin mumbled, brushing a hand along an itch on his arm. âSo, whatever you see here, Wonwoo, take it with a grain of salt, I guess.â
God, no.
Heâd wanted so desperately to remain invisibleâto not be summoned into the conversation in any way, shape, or form.
âPlease,â you sounded exasperated, messing about with your hair, âIâm sure Wonwooâd be the last person to care, anyway.â
At the worst possible time, heâd completely exhausted his soda and rum, and there was not even a single drop for him to make a lame show of sipping up. Wonwoo didnât know whether or not to say anything. Maybe, if he just smiled genuinely, nodded his head, then everything would keep moving and he could somehow escape the burdensome pressure. However, what he failed to realize was that his overthinking gave him a very dazed expression that made it seem as though he wasnât listening at all. Seokmin suddenly slapped his arm.
âYeah, youâre probably right. Dudeâs not even paying attention. Mentally checked out âcause of your arguing.â
âNo. Iâm listening,â Wonwoo answered, knowing the longer he stayed quiet the more guilty and strange heâd appear. âI just figure itâs better to let you guys hash it out. Iâd rather not get involved.â
âSmart,â Mingyu huffed, to which Wonwoo found himself in the crosshairs of his intimidating gaze. âBest not to pick sides, right?â
âOh my gosh, there are no sides.â Elbowing the tall, dark-haired boy gently in his rib, you shook your head. âAnd even if there were, Iâm forcing him to take my side. You obviously have Seokmin.â
âWhen you are going to stop saying that?â Mingyu sounded notably annoyed at your comment, though you merely shrugged it off, instead wrapping a small hand with his in a successful attempt to pull him away from the conversation at the breezy window.
âDonât whine, Gyu. Letâs go talk to Princess.â
Once you were gone, Wonwoo looked to Seokmin with some vague hope that he would share his astonishment at the situation. He couldnât tell if you and Mingyu just clashed so naturally because your relationship was the long lasting, weathered kind where there were lots of little quips due to your shared comfortability. Or, maybe there was something else he was missing. But Seokmin didnât seem even relatively phased, which lead Wonwoo into thinking that it was his overanalyzing brain picking things apart unnecessarily.
âOh, Iâve gotta talk with Vernon for a sec.â His friend remembered, pointing out the tattooed boy who was closely admiring all the expensively framed film posters. âNice to see you, though!â
The second Seokmin had slipped away, Wonwoo occupied his old position against the windowsill, letting his head tilt back until it bumped with the glass. A timidly building sickness ached in his stomach at the worry of all his conversations feeling like thatâso agonizing, uncomfortable, with his mind racing a mile a minute.
He sighed aloud, attempting to steady his breathing.
Things would get better. They had to.
âHey, Wonwoo! You wanna sit?â
Following the abrupt voice over to the now organized, tidied table, Wonwoo saw that it was Seungcheol who called his name. He tilted his head at an empty seat and Wonwoo decided to take the boy up on the offer rather than stumble into the undertow of his self-inflicted panic. Besides, Seungcheol was fairly relaxed and seemed easy to converse withâa much needed repose from Mingyu. As he sat down, setting his empty cup aside, Seungcheol leaned forward with his chin pressing down between his thumb and index finger.
âYou okay?â He asked, lifting an eyebrow.
Wonwoo nodded. âIâm good.â
Relaxing back into his seat, Seungcheol smiled.
âJust making sure. I know itâs not always the easiest trying to make it through a Her-Mingyu-Seokmin three-wayâpauseâignore how weirdly I phrased that,â he laughed, rubbing along his jaw.
The air around Wonwoo tinged with an immediate sense of relief, and he found himself relaxing, too, stretching out his legs.
âYeah,â he then breathed out deeply, the tension in his chest loosening up. âI assume itâs best to just shut the fuck up.â
âMmhm.â Seungcheol was eager to nod in agreement. âYeah, exactly. Shut the fuck up, and give the most neutral answers if needed. Itâs honestly a skill. Youâve gotta be a world class fence sitter.â
âSo it seems.â
âAnyway, Iâm curiousâwhatâre you studying?â
âNothing exciting. Mathematics, specifically calculus. I like a bit of data and statistics, too. I donât know. Just, analyzing stuff.â
âHm,â Seungcheol crossed his arms, grinning, âcanât say Iâd be very good at all that. You want to be a data analyst or something?â
Wonwoo shrugged. âMaybe. Iâve thought about teaching, too.â
âUniversity?â
âYeah⊠I heard youâre in biomedical now.â
âMmhmâswitched my whole degreeâcan thank Junhui for that. Heâs around here, somewhere. I like it, though. No regrets about it or anything. Besidesââ Seungcheol turned his head toward the billiard ball table where Princess was chatting with you and Mingyu, a fond, amorous expression softening his face, ââthatâs how I met Princess. I mean, sheâs so intelligent, level-headed, thoughtful. Finally worked up the courage to ask her out, like⊠two months ago, now? Things have been smooth sailing since.â
âI can see that. You guys mesh together well,â Wonwoo answered, at first staring at Princess, but sensing his eyes naturally drift toward you and that tight hold Mingyu had at your bare waist.
âThanks, man. HeyâI should say congrats, by the way.â
âHm?â Wonwoo mumbled, spreading his legs. âWhat for?â
âFrontiers. You got a super good score.â
âOh, that⊠uh, thanks. I mean, it was last year.â
Seungcheolâs face immediately scrunched with laughter.
âWhat?â
âShit. Itâs nothing.â Seungcheol was still chuckling a bit between his breathy words. âI love how you shrug it off. Like, whenever your name comes up, itâs always next to how smart you are, man. I love that you donât even fucking care. If that were me, Iâd be the most pretentious piece of shitâitâs actually insane.â
Wonwoo paused for a second to think, looking at his sneakers, and then back at Seungcheol, the cogs in his mind beginning to whirr.
âI didnât think my name would come up much. If at all.â
âNo, no, it does,â he answered, bouncing his fist off the table with another chuckle. âHeyâyou get around more than you think.â
Maybe Seungcheolâs words were supposed to be uplifting, or rewarding to hear, but Wonwoo felt his stomach drop and a horrible, papery dryness spread throughout his mouth. He absolutely hated the thought of people talking about him, discussing him, perceiving him.
âOh, yeah! Shit, Iâve been meaning to askââ Seungcheol brightened and shuffled further up in his seat, ââMingyu says you speak Korean? Were you born there, or from your parents, maybe?â
Wonwoo picked at his thumb slightly.
âUh, yeah, I do. I was born there.â
âSame. Daegu.â
âChangwon.â
Seungcheol smiled, and when he switched so fluidly from his English to Korean, Wonwoo needed a moment to comprehend the different syllables and speech patterns hitting his ear. It was almost like a glitch, but it was infinitesimal, and Wonwoo processed it quick.
âMingyu didnât know where you were born. He just said heâd spoken Korean with you. Itâs nice to hear, right?â
âIt is. My parents still live in Changwon. Though their English is limited so I hardly ever use it with them.â
Nodding his head in understanding, Seungcheol then propped a leg onto his knee and began to grin. âItâs the same for me. I donât know if Mingyuâs told youâhe wasnât born there but his parents spoke it around him growing up.â
âIâve heardâŠâ
âSo Seokmin says you like to write?â
âYes. Reading and writing.â
âIâm not much of a writer. I used to love reading. I still do, actually. But itâs difficult to make time for it.â
Wonwoo agreed. He would have never pegged Seungcheol as someone who enjoyed reading, mostly due to his reputation and his plethora of outlandish, jock friends, though he was pleasantly surprised to hear it.
âI havenât been reading much myself. Or writing. Iâm in a burnout, I suppose.â A sigh fell defeatedly from Wonwooâs mouth. âItâs frustrating. What kind of books did you read?â
âNothing unique. Lord of the Rings. I went through a period of really liking Goosebumps, too.â He then bit his inner cheek in contemplation as he thought harder about his catalogue. âThe weirdest book I remember reading was Walking Practice by Dolki Min. It gave me nightmares.â
âIâve heard lots of mixed opinions about it.â
âItâs a book you read once, somehow manage to enjoy, but know youâll never revisit⊠hm, itâs got me thinkingâŠâ Seungcheol was suddenly leaning forward, an arm dangling off the table as his forehead wrinkled with effort at placing a certain memory. âCorrect me if Iâm wrong, but didnât you used to date that girl who worked at the university library? I think her name was⊠shitââ he snapped his fingers a few times, bit down hard on his rosy lip while his dark brow furrowed, ââJeanie? I believe thatâs it. She always wore a little pin on her pullovers. Didnât really talk much. At least not to me. She was shy but seemed sweet.â
For a second, Wonwoo thought he misheard Seungcheolâthat the music from the speaker system was blaring much too loud and he somehow misinterpreted a word or sentence. He even dug into his ear for a second, sat up in his chair instead of casually leaning backward.
âWhat?â
Wonwoo hadnât even realized heâd dropped his Korean.
âOh, I was asking about that girl you used to date. It was Jeanie, right? She worked at the university library.â When Wonwoo kept staring at him without so much as a sound, blink, or even a tiny twitch, Seungcheol waved his hand in the air dismissively. âFuck, my bad. Iâm probably confusing you with someone else.â
âNo... youâre not.â
It had felt like a gunshotârealizing the specific pronunciation and shaping of Seungcheolâs lips hadnât been misinterpreted at all. He was in fact saying what Wonwoo dreaded, feared, like the ghost stories from his childhood that his brother would utter through a white, dying flashlight until Wonwoo uncontrollably wept. Like the last step at his parentsâ house he used to constantly miss, his heart practically jamming into his throat each and every time. It was that slow, nauseating accumulation of anxiety in his stomach, coming to buzz and rumble akin to a beehive. It was all those stupid mistakes.
Jeanie. To hear her name in another personâs mouth was almost sickening. To think about her again was pure heartache.
âThatâs what I figured,â Seungcheol said. âShe was nice, but I donât think she came back in the fall⊠I donât want to assume anything. Just a memory.â He reeled back on the topic as Wonwoo sat adjacent to him, paler than an alabaster pearl.
âYeahâŠâ he managed to croak out, feeling a rasp develop somewhere deep in his throat, âweâre not together anymore.â
âHey, it is what it is,â Seungcheol affirmed, putting on a sincere smile that Wonwoo found a pinch of solace in. âWe donât have to fuckinâ mull over it or anything. All that shitâs in the past, yeah?â
âYeah.â
âRight. Youâre here now, amongst friends, I hope.â
Wonwoo swallowed, thinking about what Seungcheol said.
He then shifted his head toward the billiard ball table. Vernon was now involved in a very passionate conversation with Mingyu that Wonwoo was unable to hear from his distance. The two boys were bouncing back and forth, animated in their hand motions and expressions, meanwhile you and Princess were passing the most subtly judgmental looks between each other. For a moment, Wonwooâs gaze caught your own, to which you shot him an innocuous eye roll paired with a small but tenderly growing smile. That thick uneasiness in his chest pulled back like a receding ocean tide and Wonwoo knew he was okay again.
Seungcheol took note of the glance, and he grinned.
âIt seems youâre pretty close with Her.â
Turning his attention back to Seungcheol, Wonwoo nodded.
âYeah, I guess you could say that. Sheâs⊠umâŠâ
âHard to describe, isnât she?â Seungcheol answered for him, now observing the scene at the billiard ball table as well.
Wonwoo almost hesitated asking his next question, but before his brain could make much sense of it, he was already speaking.
âDoes Mingyu always do that?â
Seungcheol chuckled, âdo what?â
âHeâs on her like a fucking sticker.â
Undoubtedly, his heart sank in at the predictable answer.
âYeah, Gyuâs always got his eye on her. I understand where heâs coming from. She attracts a lot of attention. He straight up socked this dude in the face last year for hitting on her. I mean, to be fair, he was drunk and Her can tend to be a little⊠well, she likes to push his buttons. It was high tension all night. Bound to explode.â
Remembering his meal at Solar Pop with Vernon a few weeks ago, Wonwoo knew how anxious his friend had been at the thought of getting ungracefully decked in the face by Mingyuâs knuckles. While it never happenedâand Wonwoo was certain then that it wouldnâtâhe would hate to be on the receiving end of whatever power Mingyu did pack behind a serious punch. Wonwoo despised fighting and conflict. There was often a cutting, wolfish nature wading about Mingyuâs dark gold eyes that quite frankly petrified him enough.
Considering how fearful Vernon had seemed, Wonwoo was surprised the boy was even talking with Mingyu so freely. But that forgiving, never-take-anything-too-seriously gene was just embedded straight into Vernonâs core. He could get along with anybody.
âHm,â was all Wonwoo hummed in response.
Since he had been laser-focused analyzing the cordial, humorous conversation between Vernon and Mingyu, he failed to note that Princess had joined her boyfriend at the table. Upon turning his head out of worry he might be caught staring, Wonwoo finally saw the beautiful girl leaning against Seungcheolâs back from behind; her arms draped comfortably around his neck and her cheek pressed to his midnight black hair. Wonwoo flashed an awkward half-smile.
âYou guys getting to know each other?â She asked.
Seungcheol exchanged an agreeing glance with Wonwoo.
âMmhm. Weâre basically two peas in a pod now,â the boy proceeded to joke while Princess grinned down at him, her eyes gleaming. âYeah, heâs pretty cool. One smart cookie, yâknow?â
âWow. Smarter than you, yeah?â She laughed, now straightening up and resting just a hand on his shoulder.
âHey, canât be a winner in everything.â
âOh. Maybe you canât.â
âShitâwatch yourself, missy.â
Seungcheol quickly twisted around in his chair, managing to catch Princess by the waist and playfully wrestle her onto his lap. She hardly fought in retaliation against him, a huge, warm smile glowing from her face as she let herself get wrapped in his squeezing arms.
Wonwoo wasnât sure if he wanted to throw up. Itâs not that he was some spiteful, self-loathing recluse who couldnât stand seeing others in healthy relationshipsâit wasnât that at all. What he despised was the loneliness it reflected unto himself, and the deeply unsettling thought that he was just too damaged, insecure, and unlovable to ever truly warrant the pure trust of another. He feared he could never bring his inner self to fruitfully open in such vulnerable ways.
âHey, Wonwoo. I just noticed your cupâs empty.â
When he connected with the earnest gaze of Princess, he realized she was pointing at the red cup left untouched by his elbow.
âOh, yeah.â
âDo you want a beer? Or a chaser?â She offered in a polite tone as Seungcheol gently moved her long braids aside to drape over her far shoulder. âWe have lots of stuff in the fridge over there.â
He bit into his lip, thinking.
âDoesnât have to be a drink,â Seungcheol said, shrugging. âIf you smoke, Iâve got some stuff already crushed up. Uh, Iâve got a bong around here somewhere. I think itâs on the shelf. Rolling papers, too. Donât know how you prefer to smoke it.â
âPapers, usually,â Wonwoo answered.
âCool. Iâve got that.â
With two soft, careful hands gliding up her waist, Seungcheol sweetly urged Princess to her feet and then pitched an announcement that anyone interested in smoking could come to the table.
Princess swiped the blue bong from Seungcheolâs shelf.
âIâm going for a bowl,â she said, clicking her tongue.
âOu, me too!â Clara chirped, using Bellsâ arm to help shove herself off the sofa, ignoring the way her friend whined.
âIâll come sit with you guys,â Princess added, âjust make a little room. And try not to throw up on me if you can help it.â
Wonwoo was in the midst of being accompanied at the table, with Vernon dragging out the chair to his left while Mingyu occupied the seat across from him. He watched the boyâs arm stretch out to accommodate you onto his lap, and Wonwoo assumed the hand he couldnât see was groping your thigh underneath the table. In the pit of his stomach, Wonwoo knew what that slimy, bitter feeling was, though he refused to acknowledge itâhe wouldnât even look at you.
Seungcheol tossed a ziplock bag filled with weed onto the table and spread out an array of thin, dull, white rectangular papers.
Immediately, Vernon was tugging on Wonwooâs sleeve.
âCan you roll mine, dude?â
âHm?â Mingyu grunted, seeming amused. âYouâre asking Wonwoo to roll your joint? You're a fucking drug dealer.â
âIâve never met anyone who can roll as good as him,â his friend complimented, leaning back in the wooden chair and firmly shaking Wonwooâs shoulder. âIf heâs in the room, Iâm gettinâ him to roll. Heâs got nice, talented, dexterous fingers. Isnât that right?â
Reaching for a translucent paper and smoothing out the crinkles, a suspect arch made its way to Wonwooâs brow, meanwhile the tips of his ears burned with all the eyeballs examining his every fucking move. Wonwoo opened the baggie, beginning to shake out the pre-grinded bud as he held the paper in a curled shape.
âPlease donât talk about my fingers like that,â he muttered, pushing up his glasses. âCheck that. You want a little more or less?â
âNah, leave it at that,â Vernon answered.
Brushing a hand through his hair, Seungcheol then crossed his arms, smirking. âI wanna see it when youâre done rolling.â
âMe too,â Mingyu agreed, staring Wonwoo down like a hawk.
âGreat. Why donât we pass the joint around the table when heâs done with it, and we can all grade it. How fun,â you mumbled sarcastically, slumping forward and resting your chin against a palm.
âYou gonna smoke or not, sweetheart?â Mingyu asked.
âI donât know yetâŠâ
Wonwoo knew you were staring at him while he fiddled with removing a crease in the partially rolled paper, because there was an itch crawling along him, like a sunburn, but not quite. Though, he opted to continue focusing on the joint, even with your eyes breathing him in from across the table, craving his acknowledgement.
âLick there,â he instructed, holding the paper for Vernon.
From the couch, Wonwoo heard a bubbly laugh. It was Bells, her legs kicked up onto Princessâ lap without a care in the world while Princess sparked a lighter to help Clara ignite the sapphire bowl.
âWonwoo, if you make one for me, can you lick it?â
He simply ignored her while carefully tucking at the joint.
Wonwoo turned to Vernon again. âLick.â
After some finely tuned adjustments that required his utmost focus, Wonwoo was at last satisfied with the roll, then handing the joint off to Vernon for him to further pack and twist up. Once his friend finished the job, he passed the joint back to Wonwoo, who further gave it down to Seungcheol. The boy glanced over it closely.
âDamn⊠thatâs pretty fuckinâ good, canât lie.â
âLet me see," Mingyu practically demanded, granting Seungcheol the slimmest opportunity to even pass the joint along.
Heâd snatched it up and settled back in his seatânearly sliding you straight off his lap in the processâsquinting to find some stupid imperfection or mistake he could point out, though, there was nothing. Without a word, he passed the smoke to Vernon.
âSee? Told âya. Glasses never fails me.â
âIf you donât mindââ Seungcheol rubbed at his bottom lip, staring at Wonwoo with a quirked eyebrow, ââcould I get one?â
âYeah, no problem.â
âMingyu wonât say it but you should roll one for him, too.â
As Wonwoo pulled another paper toward him, he managed to look at you, and the little spark that jumped into your pretty eye. He smiled because you were smiling, and that always made him feel so inexplicably warm inside, like the soft melting of browned caramel.
âI can do that,â he said, to which Mingyu nodded his head.
âThanks.â
âIâll roll one for you, too, Her. I mean, if you want it.â
âOkay. Thatâs sweet. Maybe later.â
You smiled at him again.
He smiled back.
Wonwoo wasnât sure how it happened or who initially decided the idea, but someone had suggested poker, and now the entire table was cleared off with the exception of Seungcheolâs playing cards and the multi-coloured chip stacks. They decided on classic Texas Holdâem because everyone whoâd decided to join was most familiar with the style, though Wonwoo cared to dabble more in Blackjack as there was a mathematical basis to it that scratched a satisfying itch in his brain. Nonetheless, he was fairly good at Texas Holdâem, too.
Vernon hated playing with him, and he made that extremely apparent through his moaning while Princess shuffled the card deck. There was a decent number of people playingâonly you, Clara, and Bells chose to sit on the sidelines and observe. Wonwoo had wanted you to play, but you kept declining, even without a concrete reason.
âOkay, everyoneâs familiar with the rules, right?â Princess asked for clarification, at first burning the top card off the deck. âIâll play dealer first round. That makes Seungcheol the small blind and Wonwoo the big blind. N'remember, you guys signed up for this, so if you can't afford to blow some money then you better be good.â
Everyone collectively agreed, and Princess began dealing the cards to all contenders until there was two before each person. Wonwoo wasn't exactly in the best position to be owing people cash, but he was a pretty solid player in his experience, though he was most comfortable going against Vernon and Seokmin. They had done a few poker nights at the random houses Vernon always claimed he was looking after for a friend. He had no idea what Seungcheol or Mingyu would be like as players. It did scare him a little.
Seungcheol made his move firstâjust a dollar, the equivalent of a single white-coloured chip. Wonwoo had to double the bet, so he moved out two white chips instead. Vernon decided to raise the amount to four chips, and Seokmin called the bet, matching it. Mingyu went next, his figure appearing foggy from across the table as the air became increasingly tinged with ruffles of smoke.
He called.
Seungcheol and Wonwoo both called at their turns, and thus, the first round of betting had ended. Everyone pushed forward their chips for Princess to collect, creating their small, measly looking pot.
Wonwoo kept the joint poised between his pointer and middle finger as he slyly gleaned the suit and ranks of his hand, keeping both cards flush against the table, just lifting their corners.
It didnât seem like much and would probably result in little rewardâan eight of clovers and a three of spadesâbut Wonwoo wasnât looking to show out in the very first game, anyway.
He glanced toward the couch, where you were squished almost shoulder to shoulder against Clara and Bells. The bong was sat in your lap as you leaned down over the mouthpiece and sparked at the cannabis packed into the bowl. Bells curled at her long, black hair, heels dug into the edge of the coffee table, eyes glazed as pastries.
âI didnât get anything from that,â she mumbled.
âThatâs âcause you donât know how to play,â Princess chuckled, again burning another card off the deck before setting down three more at the centre of the table, creating the flop.
Nine of diamonds, seven of hearts, and six of clovers.
Everyone took a minute to examine the flop, comparing it with the cards they had stowed close to their chests. Wonwoo, however, didnât even bother comparing, as he already knew his move.
âHmâŠâ Seungcheol paused, rubbing at his chin and sucking in his bottom lip. âI think Iâll check.â He then leaned back, placing forth no bet at all, and instead looked to Wonwoo for his decision.
âFold.â
âHa!â Vernon practically choked beside him, the joint almost spat from his mouth, and Wonwoo felt the boyâs hand push in a teasing pressure at his shoulder. âYouâre such a piece of shit, man.â
âWhy is he a piece of shit?â Bells wondered.
âJust, uhâah, never mind,â Vernon capitulated, still somewhat chuckling under his breath as Wonwoo smiled at him. âIâm gonna bet. Iâll put out some of these.â He slid out the required chips, forest-green in colour, each valued at twenty-five dollars.
Nibbling on his fingertip, Seokmin shook his head.
âIâm sorry, Iâm folding.â
Princess smiled. âNo, itâs okay! Mingyu next.â
âHm, call,â he responded, matching Vernon's dare.
The attention returned to Seungcheol, who was rooted in his indecisiveness, pressed fingers masking half his face as he stared down at the three community cards, brow furrowed with thought.
Eventually, he shrugged. âFuck it. Iâm folding too.â
âNot feeling lucky, babe?â Princess grinned, collecting the bets placed by Vernon and Mingyu to the growing pot.
âIâm treading cautiously, letâs just say that.â He smirked.
After revealing the fourth community card, another round ensued between Vernon and Mingyu. Wonwoo relaxed back into his seat, an analyzing eye shifting from his tattooed, face-pierced friend to the stoic and collected Mingyu who was awaiting Vernonâs turn.
Wonwoo held his bottom lip between sharp teeth, then staring down at his lap in an attempt to smother that prying, wide smile, knowing the exact move his friend would make. It was Vernon, after all. And he always played big, even when he shouldnât.
âBet. Here you go.â
More of those green chips were moved out.
Mingyu huffed, tongue curling against his pronounced canine. âI donât believe you, dude.â
Vernon cackled, propping up his knee and setting the heel of his sneaker onto the chair. He exhaled a smooth hit from his joint.
âOkay. Raise, then.â
Seungcheol chuckled, sharing a laugh with Seokmin who was sipping at a beer bottle from across the table.
âFineâhave it your way.â
"Iâll call.â
âNot feeling so confident, yeah?â Mingyu proceeded to laugh, eyeing Vernon closely with a testing, intrigued expression.
âIâll let the showdown speak for itself,â Vernon pitted back.
Again, Princess collected their chips and rid the deck of its top card, and then placed down the fifth and final community card, establishing the river and the arrangement from which Vernon and Mingyu would need to create the most powerful hand. Each boy at last turned over their deck, and it was clear cut who was the winner.
âMingyuâs got a full house,â Princess explained, standing up and leaning forward to swivel the card combination into place. âTake these three from the river, plus his nine of hearts and seven of cloversâthatâs a three of a kind and a pair. Vernon can at most make a straight.â She then sat back down, pushing the entire pot to Mingyu.
âDid you win, baby?â After remaining silent for the entire game, you had finally perked up from the couch, admittedly buzzed.
Brushing back his hair, he smirked. âI won. Mr. Drug Dealer owes me about three-hundred dollars. But I guess you've just got that laying around somewhere? Stuffed up your pillow case?â
Vernon laughed, then took a deep, long drag from his joint. "If you're not sleepin' against a pillow case full of cash, I'm happy to officially give you the opportunity. Takes away all your stress."
âCongratulations,â you flashed a hazy smile at your boyfriend, courtesy of the smoke wafting through the air, like you were caught in a reverie, âI'm glad all those Sundays were well spent.â
âOkay, weâll move down now,â Princess announced, reorganizing the cards into a deck. âSeungcheolâs the dealer, Wonwoo is the small blind, and Vernonâs the big blind this time.â
They continued to play until everyone at the table had a chance at being the blinds and the dealer. Wonwoo folded every round. He knew it might've been ignorant and distrustful, but to him, it was the perfect opportunity to see inside everyone's bag of tricks.
Heâd developed a fairly foolproof inkling toward their tactics and gives. Seokmin was by far the easiest player to make fold, though Wonwoo was already well awareâhe would only hold his ground if there was confidence in his hand, but even then, anyone else calling Seokminâs bet always engendered him to squirm. And while Vernon was still a more seasoned player by comparison, his brashness and tentative nature toward folding was often his downfall.
Seungcheol and Princess were a bit harder to read.
They were alike in their more cautious, calculating style of play, and Princess clearly had experience with orchestrating poker matches. Seungcheol, however, would routinely make the same mistake that Wonwoo had noticed straight awayâtouching or covering his face. When he was most confident, his fingers would sit more around his chin, or jaw, and when he was dealt a shitty hand with little to no promise of creating something notable from the community cards, those fingers etched further toward his lips.
You had still refused to join the match when offered by Princess, though you were paying greater attention to the gameâeven stopping by to hover with interest at Mingyuâs shoulder.
Princess was back to being the dealer.
Seungcheol was again the small blind. âIâll put up twenty.â
Wonwoo grabbed two stacks of his chips and slid them outward to double the boyâs forced bet. âForty.â
Everyone called.
Since the pot had gone unraised, Wonwoo decided to push forth more of his chips, adding on another twenty in small stacks. âRaise.â
The eagerness to increase the bet had drained. Again, all parties at the table simply called, and Wonwoo was feeling quite confident.
âFlop time,â Princess said with a smile, neatly setting out three cards at the tableâs centre for everyone to glean.
Seungcheol checked. So did Wonwoo.
âRaise.â Vernon was persistent in his choice.
Everyone matched the increased bet, now sitting at eighty chips, until it fell upon Wonwooâs turn. Expectant eyes were drilling holes into him like he was plywood at a construction site. Under normal circumstances, Wonwoo would abhor it more than anything else, but he was otherwise relaxed and in tune with his decisions as the joint smoke warmly fluttered around him. Coughing out a tickle from his throat, he grabbed another stack of his chips.
âItâs at eighty, so Iâll push to a hundred.â
âCunt,â Vernon coughed, though he matched the raise without so much as a leg shake or a bite at his glinting lip ring.
âFold,â Seokmin sighed, forfeiting his hand to Princess.
Wonwoo looked across the table, watching your fingertips squeeze into Mingyuâs thick shoulders as he pondered his choice.
âCall.â He eventually decided with a shrug.
Seungcheol agreed.
By the fifth community card, Wonwoo, Mingyu, Seungcheol, and Vernon were still engaged in the match. From his analysis, Wonwoo was sure he would take the pot. Seungcheol was rubbing just below his lip using a slow thumbâthere was uncertainty and doubt in the gesture. Vernonâs willingness to raise was merely intended to pressure out the others, but it hadnât worked, and his quietness suggested there might be regret, and still, confidence, that he could somehow get away with it. Finally, Wonwoo saw Mingyu.
He'd played a handful of pokerâspecifically Texas Holdâemâwith Mingyu when they had taken that probability elective last year.
The thing was, Mingyu had this gold-plated guise of believing his casual, unbothered demeanour couldnât be disrupted under any circumstanceâthat no one would catch that transient slip of credence in those molten brown eyes or note the way he cracked the wood in the chair from fidgeting when the silence was too heavy and all-encompassing. But Wonwoo would notice. He could see it clearer than glass. The more Mingyu disguised it, the easier it poured out.
âAlright, showdown. Letâs see your hands.â
Everyone flipped their cards.
A moment of silence ensued, and thenâ
âFuck you, Wonwoo,â Vernon grunted, jabbing his side.
Both him and Seungcheol could make a straight flush, but since the rank of Wonwooâs cards were higher, he took the win.
Not to mention the rather large, admirable pot. He was pretty pleased to see those colourful bills being forked out from the losers' wallets. It truly did pay off to play with rich people, and Mingyu and Seungcheol's pockets seemed endless.
By Wonwoo's third joint of the night, heâd won more rounds than anyone sitting at the table. Vernon had cursed at him a fair amount, Seokmin hardly wanted to play anymore amongst the serious tycoons that surrounded him, and wallets were running drier than any desert. The effects of all that smoke wafting through the air and meddling with his senses was starting to take effect.
He could potentially last another round before his most concrete thinking would get whittled down to thoughtless guesses.
Before the final round had started, Wonwoo glanced down at his phone to check the time. Holy shitâone in the morning. Heâd been at the party for almost three fucking hours and he was miraculously still functioning and somehow not crawling with the desperation to leave. You were seated back at the couch, head leaning on Claraâs shoulder as you waited, misty-eyed, for the final game to start. Wonwoo decided to text you even though you were sitting no less than five feet away.
[ Wonwoo | 1:02 am ]: Play the final round.
He watched as you picked up the phone from your lap to read the text message, and then, you were squinting at him in judgement.
[ Her | 1:02 am ]: um no
His thumbs fired back a response.
[ Wonwoo | 1:02 am ]: Why?
[ Her | 1:02 am ]: bc I donât want to
[ Wonwoo | 1:03 am ]: You donât know how to play?
[ Her | 1:03 am ]: ik how to play
[ Wonwoo | 1:03 am ]: So play.
[ Wonwoo | 1:03 am ]: Take Seokminâs place.
[ Wonwoo | 1:03 am ]: Please? Should I beg for it?
Your scoff could be heard from the couch, and Wonwoo had to remind himself to steam out the smile twitching on his lips.
[ Her | 1:04 am ]: is it really that important to u?
[ Wonwoo | 1:04 am ]: Yes.
[ Her | 1:04 am ]: fine
[ Her | 1:04 am ]: just donât come crying to me when u lose
Feeling especially triumphant that he was able to convince you, Wonwoo observed with a pleased smirk your quest to Seokminâs place at the table, where you tapped his shoulder and told him to take five. The boy didnât need to be told twice, allowing you his seat almost gratefully.
âAwe, youâre not gonna stay for the finale?â Princess asked in a crooning voice while shuffling the card deck between her hands.
Seokmin grabbed his skinny bottle of beer off the table and shook his head, his face glowing and his eyes beginning to hood.
âIâve learned my lesson about this game: Iâm not good at it, I donât have the money, and that I should never play with Wonwoo.â
âOr me?â Vernon gestured, turning out a palm expectantly.
âUh, right. And Vernon.â
Picking a fluff from Seokminâs shirt and flicking it into the air, you merely shrugged, flashing him a comforting smile.
âYâknow, itâs a good thing you suck,â you said, then leaning back in the chair and folding your arms. âIt means youâre a bad liar.â
âNice to play with you, alright?â Seungcheol added, grabbing onto the boyâs hand and giving it a firm clasp as he walked by.
âThanks. I think Iâll go back downstairs and see if I can find more people I know. Enjoy the game, guys! Tell me who wins!â
âProbably me,â you answered, waving him goodbye.
âHm, I didnât think youâd play at all,â Mingyu remarked while Princess began sorting out cards to everyone, and Wonwoo noted the boy's leg jostling underneath the table. âFeeling confident, are you?â
Poking out your tongue playfully at Mingyu, you smiled. âYes. Donât even think about trying to riddle me. Iâll see right through it.â
The game started out as usual. Seungcheol and Wonwoo offered the blind bets, and everyone at the table called. No one seemed keen to fold, even when Princess revealed the flop and his heart smacked in another resounding thump. An eight of spades, a king of spades, and an eight of clovers. Wonwoo then slipped his gaze around the table, particularly studying you, who hadnât stopped grinning since the game started. Of course you would be grinning. There was nothing very coy or subtle about you upon any first glance.
Wonwoo discreetly lifted the corners to his playing cards. He caught the wind in his chest. There was an ace of spades, his very first all night, paired with a nine of spades. It took all his self-control to remain muted on the outside and let his joint continue burning.
At the fourth community card, the pressure was starting to seep through, and the intimidating, stacked size of the pot collected before Princess was only making the fold especially tempting.
Every time it seemed like a call was in order, someone would raise, and the bets kept climbing until the glass ceiling was at last hit.
Seungcheol brushed antsy hands down the back of his head, scattering his hair and puffing out his chest in a large, accepting sigh.
âIâve gotta fold. Thereâs no way.â
Balancing a joint at the corner of his mouth, Wonwoo grabbed another stack from his chips and slid it outward, knowing there was little to no chance he would lose the round.
âRaise,â he announced, exhaling a deep breath.
âOh my God,â Vernon mumbled into his palm, taking a moment to tap his fingers against the wood, â⊠I have to fold. Yeah, Iâve gotta. A smart man like myself knows when to quit. You got me. Fucker.â
Unphased by the hopeless, daunting feeling that swelled around the table, you merely crossed a leg and dared to not only match, but raise the amount of chips that Wonwoo had audaciously put forth. Mingyu was slumped in his chair with a musing expression, eyes stung red and the thick fronds of his hair messily strewn about from how often his fingers dug through them. He eventually cleared his throat from the hot prickle and shook his head in conviction.
âNo, youâre lying. I donât believe it.â
But you just smirked and fluttered your lashes.
âWhatâs your move then, babe?â
âIâll check.â Mingyu shrugged, agitated by his own response.
And to that, Wonwoo poured more gasoline on the fire.
âRaise.â
âThere is no fuckinâ way your cards are that good,â Vernon grumbled between half-sealed lips, attempting to hold the joint still with his mouth while he sparked the end using his lighter.
âIâm raising your raise,â you challenged, âone-hundred.â
As his hand fell onto the table with a loud rattle, Vernon started to cackle. âThereâs no way your cards are that good, either.â
âWouldnât you like to know?â You lilted.
âMingyu?â Seungcheol hummed to get the boyâs attention. âItâs your move, man. Whatâre you gonna do?â
Wonwoo could see it scribbled all over Mingyuâs face. He didnât want to get caught in the intense bidding flare between you, because he obviously knew his cards werenât high enough rank to claim the pot at showdown. Wonwoo wasnât planning to fold because the community cards were aligned in his favour. That steely, brash façade of the golden boy across from him was wearing increasingly thinner and Mingyu had seemed to realize it himself. After an almost agonizing silence, he pushed his cards away from him, forfeiting.
âYeah, I canât do it. Fuck you guys.â
âOh, thatâs too bad, sweetheart. Thatâs too bad, â you giggled, leaning over to sling an arm around his shoulders and stipple his cheek in small kisses that Mingyu wriggled from.
âAlright, just fuckinâ get to the showdown already,â he tutted.
Wonwoo couldnât have been happier that Mingyu removed himself from the game. It was solely between him and you, now.
âYou raised to one-hundred?â He asked for clarification.
Nodding your head, you agreed. âYes. One-hundred.â
The thing was, Wonwoo knew he was going to win. Even without Princess revealing the final community card, there was an opportunity for him to make a straight flush. Unless an unprecedented stroke of luck had fallen into your own hand and you could somehow make a royal flush, the game was already decided.
Unless Wonwoo folded.
âIâll raise,â he answered, wanting to test your limits.
âJesus, this is gonna take all fuckinâ night, isnât it?â Vernon proceeded to groan while exercising his stiff shoulder.
You smiled, and a glint illuminated in your eyes like a fallen star the size of a perfect sand grain.
 âShould I make it more interesting?â
Uncrossing your leg, you sat up straight, pressing tight against the table as you braced an arm behind your remaining chips and shoved them forward slowly, right into the tableâs centre. Everyone began to mumble excitedly at the brazen act, though Wonwoo could only focus on you and that mischievous but beautiful curve to your lips, ignoring everything else in the room.
âAll in.â
He felt a fist lightly strike his chest.
âGlasses! Youâve gotta match that!â
Seungcheol was rubbing along his chin, grinning.
âThatâs gonna make a huge pot⊠lotta moneyâŠâ
âHeâs been making moves all game,â Princess laughed. âNot that Iâm pressuring you, Wonwoo. I mean, itâs your call.â
Mingyu shook his head. âSheâs so bluffing.â
âHush up so he can think!â Vernon cackled.
There was so much sound and noise and voices. But, through the cacophony and haze of all those distractions, Wonwoo could see into you so clearly it was like you had become magically transparent. In turn, you were staring at him, awaiting his response, and he felt those sharp eyes shearing at his fabricated thoughts, picking them all apart into little corners and strips and threads. It was impossibly subtle, and only Wonwoo caught itâyour head just beginning to shake in disagreement.
However, Wonwoo had already made his decision.
âIâm folding.â
Vernonâs fists struck down on the table like a thunderous clap, and the tension nailed into the atmosphere suddenly burst.
Before Wonwoo could even make sense of the exploding conversation, his cards were pulled away from him by Princess. She flipped over both yours and his hand.
âWonwoo, you stupid fuck!â Vernon practically leapt from his chair, wriggling at the boyâs shoulder. âThatâs a straight flâoh my god! Iâm actually soâyou could have easily won that!â
âOkay, okay. Sheâs got a straight flush, too!â Princess called, pointing down at your cards. âBut Wonwooâs rank is higher.â
âDoesnât matter, anyway,â Mingyu said, pushing back in his chair and stretching out his muscular arms. âHe folded. Her wins.â
Seungcheol sifted through the colourful chips.
âLooks like he owes you about five-hundred bucks.â
Continuing to smile at you, Wonwoo picked the joint back between his lips, borrowing Vernonâs lighter to fizzle the end and keep the paper burning. Your arms were crossed, hardly pleased.
âLooks like I do.â Wonwoo accepted through a wispy exhale of smoke, rolling out his shoulders and further quirking his lips.
After the final poker match, everyone decided to disseminate and take about half an hour to excuse themselves. Mingyu went back downstairs with Seungcheol so they could keep an eye on the general rowdiness, making sure people hadnât started rioting or smashing vases, swinging from chandeliers and drinking questionable concoctions out of high-heeled boots.
Vernon wandered off in search for a washroom since Princess had occupied the nearest one down the staircase, at first helping nurse Clara through her incoming bout of alcohol sickness, with Bells joining them a few minutes afterward when that last sip decided to lurch back up her throat.
Only you and Wonwoo remained in the attic.
He was sat widespread at the sofa, slumped down, eyes closed, attempting to appreciate the high that could be attributed to the third joint he was now halfway through smoking. But then he felt the cushion beside him dip, and there was a pinch sinking rather harshly into the flesh on his hand that made his eyes fling back open.
âWhat the fuck are you doing?â Wonwoo moaned, rubbing over the small, crescent shaped branding dug by your fingernail.
Settling down notably close to Wonwoo, your knee prodded into his thigh while your one leg folded over the other. That scowl had yet to be ironed out from your countenance, and he could only suspect you were about to come down hard in regards to his stunt.
âBoo hoo. Youâre such a lying liar who lies.â
Wonwoo stretched out a hand to his face, massaging slow against his temples while he sighed, âlyingâs part of the game...â
âNoââ the retort shot out with an electrifying quickness, âânot your type of lying. Your double-crossed lying. Youâre a fraud.â
âA fraud?â He echoed, letting the hand fall into his lap. âOkay, thatâs a bit accusatory. I wouldnât call what I did fraudulent.â
Shifting his elbow off the arm of the couch, the joint was poised back at his lips, and Wonwoo couldnât help but chuckle at your glaring, stiff face. He swiftly blew out his hit, smirking hard.
âI hate you for what you did. I mean, you should have gone all in and matched me. But, no! You took the wuss route and made me look stupid! It taints everything. And you better wipe away that jovial curl in your lip before I sock it off your face and steal your cig.â
Wonwoo tilted his head at you, perking an eyebrow.
âHowâd you know my cards were better?â
At first, the question visibly stumped you. There was a lag in your responseâan open mouth but not a single word to follow.
Then, it seemed as though you breathed out all your rage.
âDonât ask such a dumb question,â sounded your calm sigh, with a leg bobbing up and down, âyou made it so obvious.â
âI did? Hm.â
âYeahâŠI know your tactic. You make everyone feel and nice and comfortable playing with you. Then, you totally flip the script and pull out the rug.â Your shoulder was digging into his and you two were now squished together so closely that he could feel your radiating warmth and smell the fragrance in your hair. âFor someone whoâs so damn quiet, your eyes are like a book. They just swim and trash with everything youâre thinking. So, donât think youâre all that.â
Wonwoo switched the joint to his other hand, instead leaning against his fist and peering aside at you who seemed so certain of everything. Admittedly, heâd never heard that before, and if he werenât beyond drowned in the watery red glowing behind his hooded gaze, your spiel would have downright terrified him.
It wasnât that you just knew Wonwoo, it was that you were beginning to understand him and the way his mind operated.
Noâif he were sober, that thought would obliterate him.
He shrugged. âI donât think Iâm all that.â
âBlah, blah. Yâknow, the one thing about you that bothers meâyouâre actually not a loser. People like you Wonwoo. People are impressed by you. They want to know you. And you just keep them at bay with your stinging hot fireplace poker, jabbing at them in case they get too close. I see it. AndâI donât know, maybe youâre right to keep all those people out. Maybe it gives you more control.â
Wonwoo dragged a hand along his face, laughing. âI think Iâm a little too high to be having that conversation with you.â
âNo, youâre not. You just donât want to talk about it as usual. I don't suppose you've got five-hundred big ones in your wallet, do you?â
He shot you an obvious glance while chuckling, "absolutely fucking not. But sit tight, though. I can get it to you somehow."
Your head shook. "I don't care about the money."
He stared down at the joint aglow in his hand.
And then he was holding it out in front of you.
âHit?â
You hesitated, but ultimately grabbed it, positioning the joint between your index and middle finger akin to a cigarette. Wonwoo watched intently at the soft inhale you breathed in, and the gradual relaxing of your chest as the smoke was gently puffed outward.
âNot so tough, is it?â He hummed in his deep, velvet-smooth voice, to which you squinted at him and scrunched your nose.
âI just studied how you did it, thatâs all.â
Your knee was now pressed atop his lap. Wonwoo felt that momentary, passionate itch to settle his palm flat against your warm skinâignore all boundaries that existed between you as well as their scalding consequences just for the sake of sweetly touching you, the one visible hope in his life. Still, Wonwoo was too afraid. As much as he wanted all your light and love to himself, it could never be true.
âWeâre doing lines next,â you said, â⊠are you gonna do it?â
âOh, no.â Wonwoo shook his head. âI tried it once and it went fucking terribly. Iâm not gonna bother messing with it again.â
You looked relieved.
âThatâs good. Itâs so weird for me. Like, when it first enters my system, everything feels strange and I get this spinning, nauseating sensation. But it always passes. And then I let everything go.â
Wonwoo quirked at you a barely-there smile.
âI know itâs obviousâjust be careful, alright?â
You puffed out another hit.
âI will.â
It was a bit strangeâto just stand there, off to the side, as an observer of someone who was lining up a perfect streak of white powder using their credit card. And yet, thatâs what Wonwoo had found himself doing, staring without much shame as you, Mingyu, Vernon, and Seungcheol began pressing shut one nostril and inhaling the cocaine through the other. Wonwoo never bothered to ask Vernon how he acquired the coke, or what he paid for it, or how he even knew someone that could baggie it up for him so nicelyâWonwoo didnât ask anything of the sort because heâd rather avoid prison.
Though, that might be inevitable in the bigger picture. His closest friend was a drug dealer. By nature, he was already associated.
Princess had walked over to him, dropping off some bottled water from the fridge that he immediately uncapped and gulped down. It seemed his efforts to mend that broken circadian rhythm of his had done some actual good, because Wonwoo was feeling the tire spread over his eyes and the energy deplete from his body like an inflatable with an air leak. You had snorted the coke almost a little too naturally. He remembered an old conversation with Vernonâshe takes that shit like itâs pixie dustâand he supposed it made sense.
He helped Princess shove the window open again to let some freshness back into the warm attic space. She spent a moment or so staring down at the driveway, watching the people come and go.
âHow are Bells and Clara?â Wonwoo asked.
She glanced at him, though her brown eyes eventually wandered back to the ongoing buzz outside and below.
âClara is totalled,â Princess sighed. âSheâs lying down in one of the spare bedrooms. A friend is looking after her. Bells on the other hand...â she glimpsed over her shoulder, scanning the room, âIâm not sure where she went. I thought she came back upstairs, but itâs likely she wandered down to the living room. That girl is all gas, no breaks. Throws up one second, back to sloshing the next.â
Wonwoo swallowed more of his cold water.
âI take it Seungcheol owes you a dinner?â
âHaâyeah, he owes it to me big time,â she muttered, at last turning her back to the breeze. âGood thing I didnât let him drink that fucking whiskey. Holy shit. It would be worse than Clara.â
âHmâŠâ Wonwoo hummed, suddenly wondering aloud as he watched you cough into your fist at the table while Mingyu rubbed his nose and patted your cheek. âHe doesnât do it all the time, though?â
Princess folded her arms and smiled.
âNo, she doesnât.â
âShe?â
âHer.â
âOh. I was askingââ
âI know what you were asking. You donât have to hide it.â
Wonwoo thought about further countering Princessâ assumption, but the way she was watching himâhead knowingly tilted with that smitten crook so rightfully framed on her glossed, shiny lipsâhe knew it would be futile to even try. He felt relief at the confirmation, too. As long as you were careful. Really fucking careful.
âSorry,â he answered, shrugging.
âNah, apology not needed.â Princess shook her head.
The girl proceeded to look down at her feet, remaining silent and pensiveâtoying with the idea of saying something important but ultimately weighing its consequence before involving Wonwoo.
He was sipping from his water again when Princess at last cleared her throat, then holding the swig between his cheeks.
âUm, I donât know, exactly, what it is you and Her talk about, or what you write about, or what you two do, ever. Just, uh, whatever it isâand maybe itâs best I donât knowâsheâs really⊠happy. Not that she wasnât happy before. But⊠itâs different, yâknow? The energy is different. And I see this really, really beautiful light in her that Iâve never seen before. So, yeah. Iâm glad you two are friends. And that you listen to her and stick by her and help her with this new craft even when sheâs not the most cooperative, or⊠well⊠yâknow⊠itâs Her after all. You donât really know which version youâll get.â
Wonwoo still hadnât swallowed. The water was becoming uncomfortably lukewarm in his mouth but he held it there.
Princess dusted off her shirt, smiling again. âAnyway, Iâll go check on Seungcheol. Probably try to find Bells. Ah, later.â
Only when the girl had left him alone at the windowsill did he finally choke down that large sip, bracing through it as though heâd just downed some especially bitter cough syrup. His mind was replaying pieces of Princessâ speech in addition to that appreciative, even admirable look she had been giving him. He didnât know what to take from it. He didnât even know what he was feeling. All his emotions were cooking in one big heap at the pit of his gut like a disproportioned stew. Wonwoo rubbed a hand along his face in partial confusion and agony, hearing a giggle from you somewhere across the room, as he attempted to sort everything out.
Wanting to move somewhere a bit quieter, Wonwoo thought he might try his luck with the rooms down the staircase, and hopefully not waltz into anything he so clearly shouldnât have. Yet, just as his hand ghosted along the wood railing, Wonwoo was suddenly colliding with someone and the rapidly permeating, muddled scent of daisies, cannabis, and fireball was filling his nose.
His water bottle dropped to the floor and rolled to the base of the stairs. Fingers scraped deep into his shirt. He grabbed onto the personâs waist with instinct, helping to steady them.
âFuckâholy shit. Thanks, Wonwoo.â
But then the realization had metaphorically slapped him.
âMy bad. Sorry.â
It was Bells whoâd been stumbling up the stairs and plowed straight into his chest. She didnât seem the most present, either.
âNo, no, no. I wasnât looking where I was going.â
The last thing he wanted on planet Earth was to get sucked into a conversation with herânot that he had any sort of grudge or concrete reason to dislike the girlâbut his head was starting to ache and he craved peace and quiet for just five fucking minutes.
Her fingers were still wound into his shirt, almost holding him there, against the banister of the stairs, and Wonwoo couldnât help but stare straight into her intensely dilated eyes that studied him like a shark.
âUh, all good...â
Wonwoo honestly wanted to grab the girl by her shoulders and physically set her aside. At the same time, he didnât think it was the best protocol to act so uncouth with one of your close friends.
âOh, sorry!â It seemed to dawn on her that she was pinning him against the handrailing. âI just didnât want to fall.â
She at last loosened her fingers, though Wonwoo noted how she somewhat dragged her hands along his chest in the process of doing so, like that girl had done earlier to Vernon. It was unnecessary, but she was drunk, and Wonwoo thought he could end the conversation quicker if he remained pleasant. Stood at the top of the stairs, Wonwoo smiled at her, knowing how exhausted he was inside.
âI hope youâre feeling okay.â
Bells smiled, swaying her shoulders, âIâve never felt better.â
â⊠Are you⊠sure about that?â
âMmhm.â
âDo you need water or anything?â
âDonât think so.â
âUh, alright, cool. Well, Iâm gonna goââ
âWonwoo, wait.â She latched onto his arm, fast and sharp.
He paused, not so much because of her grip but mostly from shock, as she had suddenly moved in closer and he could now feel her strength squeezing against his bicep. She batted her eyelashes up at him demurely, and there was nothing he stomached but discomfort.
âWhat are you doing after this?â The girl hummed, lowering her voice and intentionally smoothing it to add a sultry effect.
Dry swallowing, he debated whether or not he should even respond and instead simply peel her unwanted hand off his arm.
â⊠Going to bed?â He croaked, shifting in his place.
âWould you want to do something with me?â She bit her lip. âMy apartmentâs in South Elm. Have you ever been there?â
âItâs not a good idea.â Wonwoo was losing his patience.
âAwe, not a good idea? Whyâs that?â She giggled, slowly massaging her hand down the length of his bicep and nibbling on her inner cheek. âWe can do anything you want at my place⊠I live alone⊠so, Iâm up for it. Anything at all.â
âOkay, uh, look. I donât want to beââ
All of a sudden, Bells was ripped from Wonwoo like a sticky bandage, and while he was more than confused at the situation, he was nonetheless relieved. He assumed it was Princess whoâd done the deed, and thus Wonwoo was very surprised to learn that it had been youâyou, who did not appear happy in the slightest, and his relief was starting to transform into thick concern because it seemed as though you were going to ricochet Bells head off the banister.
âWhat the hell is wrong with you?!â You shouted, shoving a belittling hand against Bells' shoulder and tugging her away. âWhy are you fucking cornering him like that?!â
âUhâwhat? Cornering him? Her, Iâm so confused.â
âConfused? About what, Bells? Youâre fucking harassing him! Like, why are you in his face and putting your hands on him?!â
âWoah, woah, woah. Whatâs your fucking problem? I wasnât in his face; Iâm talking to him. Just talking. Youâre jumped up again.â
âJumped up?! You're one to talk!â
Wonwoo at first tried to intervene, mostly out of serious worry for Bells safety, because you were steaming. However, every time he attempted to speak up, his words would drown out in the echo of your squabbling. It didnât help that you two were both mentally degraded in your own rightâall that anger was shooting straight from your chest to your mouth with no thought involved.
âJust leave him alone!â You jabbed a finger at her chest.
Bells slapped your hand away. âDonât touch me!â
âOh, why? Does it make you uncomfortable, having someone in your fucking face, touching you without permission? Does that make you upset, Bells? Hm, wow. So funny you would say that.â
Wonwoo settled a hand at your shoulder, tugging at you once, then twice, wanting to pull you back without being too forceful.
âItâs okay,â he assured, though his heart was pounding and he wished someone else would help or even take note of what was happening, âitâs not a big deal, alright? Nothing worth all this.â
Again, he was completely ignored.
âSo, thatâs it?â Bells laughed, throwing up her arms. âOnly you can talk to him, and look at him, and breathe around him? Thatâs all you? No one else is allowed to like, have a conversation with him?!â
âYou donât want to have a conversation with him!â Your fists balled up tight as you screamed at her. âYou want him to fuck you!â
âOkay, okayâ!â Wonwoo jolted with panic when you pushed the drunken girl, immediately coiling his arms around your waist and lurching you backward before a flailing hand could strike Bellsâ face.
Bells stumbled for no less than second until she regained her balance and looked to you with the most seething, nettled eyes.
The situation seemed on the precipice of exploding beyond control, with you wriggling and thrashing against his arms, employing a strength he couldnât have expected amidst your sluggish state. You were shouting at him to stop intervening, though, he knew letting go meant you would most likely beat the girlâs breaks off.
Thankfully, at the nick of time, Mingyu had sprinted across the room, catching Bells' arm just before it lashed out in a strike.
âWhat the fuck is going on?!â Mingyu grunted while wrestling the smaller, feisty girl away despite all her manic squirming.
Wonwoo almost got nipped by the unbridled swinging of your elbow as he gritted through his teeth, âI wish I knew.â
He did know. However, it wasnât the time to discuss it.
âFuck! Just take Her downstairs!â The boy shouted.
Jesus Christâthat was easier said than done. Trying to haul you backward down a staircase as you twisted, kicked, and screamed a very colourful litany of profanities at your friend was the exact nightmare it sounded like. Vernonâs head had suddenly popped over the banister, staring down at you and Wonwoo, his eyes blown wide with pure befuddlement, as though he wasnât sure if it was real life or a narcotic delusion. Princess had gone to help Mingyu calm down Bells. Seungcheol had joined the commotion, too, though he didnât come across the most intelligible. His mind was all fog. Â
And yet, somehow, Wonwoo managed to ply you away from the stairs and into the corridor with hardly a breath to spare.
âEND OF PART III.



